"Rowling, J.K. - Harry Potter 02 - Harry Potter and the Chamber of Secrets" - читать интересную книгу автора (Rowling J. K)
by J.K. Rowling
Book 2 in the Harry Potter Series ![]() CHAPTER ONE THE WORST BIRTHDAY Not for the first time, an
argument had broken out over breakfast at number four, Privet Drive. Mr. Vernon
Dursley had been woken in the early hours of the morning by a loud, hooting
noise from his nephew Harry's room.
"Third time this
week!" he roared across the table. "If you can't control that owl,
it'll have to go!"
Harry tried, yet again, to
explain.
"She's bored,"
he said. "She's used to flying around outside. If I could just let her out
at night -"
"Do I look stupid?" snarled
Uncle Vernon, a bit of fried egg dangling from his bushy mustache. "I know
what'll happen if that owl's let out."
He exchanged dark looks with his
wife, Petunia.
Harry tried to argue back but
his words were drowned by a long, loud belch from the Dursleys' son, Dudley.
"I want more bacon."
"There's more in the frying
pan, sweetums," said Aunt Petunia, turning misty eyes on her massive son.
"We must build you up while we've got the chance...I don't like the sound
of that school food..."
"Nonsense, Petunia, I never
went hungry when I was at Smeltings," said Uncle Vernon heartily.
"Dudley gets enough, don't you, son?"
Dudley, who was so large his
bottom drooped over either side of the kitchen chair, grinned and turned to
Harry.
"Pass the frying pan."
"You've forgotten the magic
word," said Harry irritably. The effect of this
simple sentence on the rest of the family was incredible: Dudley gasped and
fell off his chair with a crash that shook the whole kitchen; Mrs. Dursley gave
a small scream and clapped her hands to her mouth; Mr. Dursley jumped to his
feet, veins throbbing in his temples.
"I meant 'please'!"
said Harry quickly. "I didn't mean -"
"WHAT HAVE I TOLD
YOU," thundered his uncle, spraying spit over the table, "ABOUT
SAYING THE 'M' WORD IN OUR HOUSE?"
"But I -"
"HOW DARE YOU THREATEN
DUDLEY!" roared Uncle Vernon, pounding the table with his fist.
"I just -"
"I WARNED YOU! I WILL NOT
TOLERATE MENTION OF YOUR ABNORMALITY UNDER THIS ROOF!"
Harry stared from his
purple-faced uncle to his pale aunt, who was trying to heave Dudley to his
feet.
"All right," said
Harry, "all right..." Uncle Vernon sat back down, breathing like a winded
rhinoceros and watching Harry closely out of the corners of his small, sharp
eyes.
Ever since Harry had come home
for the summer holidays, Uncle Vernon had been treating him like a bomb that
might go off at any moment, because Harry Potter wasn't a normal boy. As
a matter of fact, he was as not normal as it is possible to be.
Harry Potter was a wizard - a
wizard fresh from his first year at Hogwarts School of Witchcraft and Wizardry.
And if the Dursleys were unhappy to have him back for the holidays, it was
nothing to how Harry felt. He missed Hogwarts so much it was like having a constant
stomachache. He missed the castle, with its secret passageways and ghosts, his
classes (though perhaps not Snape, the Potions master), the mail arriving by
owl, eating banquets in the Great Hall, sleeping in his four-poster bed in the
tower dormitory, visiting the gamekeeper, Hagrid, in his cabin next to the
Forbidden Forest in the grounds, and, especially, Quidditch, the most popular
sport in the wizarding world (six tall goal posts, four flying balls, and
fourteen players on broomsticks).
All Harry's spellbooks, his
wand, robes, cauldron, and top-of-the-line Nimbus Two Thousand broomstick had
been locked in a cupboard under the stairs by Uncle Vernon the instant Harry
had come home. What did the Dursleys care if Harry lost his place on the House
Quidditch team because he hadn't practiced all summer? What was it to the
Dursleys if Harry went back to school without any of his homework done? The
Dursleys were what wizards called Muggles (not a drop of magical blood in their
veins), and as far as they were concerned, having a wizard in the family was a
matter of deepest shame. Uncle Vernon had even padlocked Harry's owl, Hedwig,
inside her cage, to stop her from carrying messages to anyone in the wizarding
world.
Harry looked nothing like the
rest of the family. Uncle Vernon was large and neckless, with an enormous black
mustache; Aunt Petunia was horse-faced and bony; Dudley was blond, pink, and
porky. Harry, on the other hand, was small and skinny, with brilliant green
eyes and jet-black hair that was always untidy. He wore round glasses, and on
his forehead was a thin, lightning-shaped scar.
It was this scar that made Harry
so particularly unusual, even for a wizard. This scar was the only hint of
Harry's very mysterious past, of the reason he had been left on the Dursleys'
doorstep eleven years before.
At the age of one year old,
Harry had somehow survived a curse from the greatest Dark sorcerer of all time,
Lord Voldemort, whose name most witches and wizards still feared to speak.
Harry's parents had died in Voldemort's attack, but Harry had escaped with his
lightning scar, and somehow - nobody understood why -Voldemort's powers had
been destroyed the instant he had failed to kill Harry.
So Harry had been brought up by
his dead mother's sister and her husband. He had spent ten years with the
Dursleys, never understanding why he kept making odd things happen without
meaning to, believing the Dursleys' story that he had got his scar in the car
crash that had killed his parents.
And then, exactly a year ago,
Hogwarts had written to Harry, and the whole story had come out. Harry had
taken up his place at wizard school, where he and his scar were famous...but now
the school year was over, and he was back with the Dursleys for the summer,
back to being treated like a dog that had rolled in something smelly.
The Dursleys hadn't even
remembered that today happened to be Harry's twelfth birthday. Of course, his
hopes hadn't been high; they'd never given him a real present, let alone a cake
- but to ignore it completely...
At that moment, Uncle Vernon
cleared his throat importantly and said, "Now, as we all know, today is a
very important day."
Harry looked up, hardly daring
to believe it.
"This could well be the day
I make the biggest deal of my career," said Uncle Vernon.
Harry went back to his toast. Of
course, he thought bitterly, Uncle Vernon was talking about the stupid
dinner party. He'd been talking of nothing else for two weeks. Some rich
builder and his wife were coming to dinner and Uncle Vernon was hoping to get a
huge order from him (Uncle Vernon's company made drills).
"I think we should run
through the schedule one more time," said Uncle Vernon. "We should
all be in position at eight o'clock. Petunia, you will be -?"
"In the lounge," said
Aunt Petunia promptly, "waiting to welcome them graciously to our home."
"Good, good. And
Dudley?" "I'll be waiting to open the door." Dudley put
on a foul, simpering smile. "May I take your coats, Mr. and Mrs.
Mason?"
"They'll love
him!" cried Aunt Petunia rapturously.
"Excellent, Dudley,"
said Uncle Vernon. Then he rounded on Harry. "And you?"
"I'll be in my bedroom,
making no noise and pretending I'm not there," said Harry tonelessly.
"Exactly," said Uncle
Vernon nastily. "I will lead them into the lounge, introduce you, Petunia,
and pour them drinks. At eight-fifteen -"
"I'll announce
dinner," said Aunt Petunia.
"And, Dudley, you'll say
-"
"May I take you through to
the dining room, Mrs. Mason?" said Dudley, offering his fat arm to an
invisible woman.
"My perfect little
gentleman!" sniffed Aunt Petunia.
"And you?" said
Uncle Vernon viciously to Harry.
"I'll be in my room, making
no noise and pretending I'm not there," said Harry dully. "Precisely. Now, we should aim to get in a few good
compliments at dinner. Petunia, any ideas?"
"Vernon tells me you're a wonderful
golfer, Mr. Mason...Do tell me where you bought your dress, Mrs.
Mason..." "Perfect...Dudley?"
"How about -'We had to
write an essay about our hero at school, Mr. Mason, and I wrote about you.'"
This was too much for both Aunt
Petunia and Harry. Aunt Petunia burst into tears and hugged her son, while
Harry ducked under the table so they wouldn't see him laughing.
"And you, boy?"
Harry fought to keep his face
straight as he emerged.
"I'll be in my room, making
no noise and pretending I'm not there," he said.
"Too right, you will."
said Uncle Vernon forcefully. "The Masons don't know anything about you
and it's going to stay that way. When dinner's over, you take Mrs. Mason back
to the lounge for coffee, Petunia, and I'll bring the subject around to drills.
With any luck, I'll have the deal signed and sealed before the news at ten. be
shopping for a vacation home in Majorca this time to morrow."
Harry couldn't feel too excited
about this. He didn't think the Dursleys would like him any better in Majorca
than they did on Privet Drive.
"Right - I'm off into town
to pick up the dinner jackets for Dudley and me. And you," he
snarled at Harry. "You stay out of your aunt's way while she's
cleaning." Harry left through the back door. It was a brilliant,
sunny day. He crossed the lawn, slumped down on the garden bench, and sang
under his breath:
"Happy birthday to me...happy
birthday to me..."
No cards, no presents, and he
would be spending the evening pretending not to exist. He gazed miserably into
the hedge. He had never felt so lonely. More than anything else at Hogwarts,
more even than playing Quidditch, Harry missed his best friends, Ron Weasley
and Hermione Granger. They, however, didn't seem to be missing him at all.
Neither of them had written to him all summer, even though Ron had said he was
going to ask Harry to come and stay.
Countless times, Harry had been
on the point of unlocking Hedwig's cage by magic and sending her to Ron and
Hermione with a letter, but it wasn't worth the risk. Underage wizards weren't
allowed to use magic outside of school. Harry hadn't told the Dursleys this; he
knew it was only their terror that he might turn them all into dung beetles
that stopped them from locking him in the cupboard under the stairs with
his wand and broomstick. For the first couple of weeks back, Harry had enjoyed
muttering nonsense words under his breath and watching Dudley tearing out of
the room as fast as his fat legs would carry him. But the long silence from Ron
and Hermione had made Harry feel so cut off from the magical world that even
taunting Dudley had lost its appeal - and now Ron and Hermione had forgotten
his birthday.
What wouldn't he give now for a
message from Hogwarts? From any witch or wizard? He'd almost be glad of a sight
of his archenemy, Draco Malfoy, just to be sure it hadn't all been a dream...
Not that his whole year at
Hogwarts had been fun. At the very end of last term, Harry had come
face-to-face with none other than Lord Voldemort himself. Voldemort might be a
ruin of his former self, but he was still terrifying, still cunning, still
determined to regain power. Harry had slipped through Voldemort's clutches for
a second time, but it had been a narrow escape, and even now, weeks later,
Harry kept waking in the night, drenched in cold sweat, wondering where
Voldemort was now, remembering his livid face, his wide, mad eyes -
Harry suddenly sat bolt upright
on the garden bench. He had been staring absent-mindedly into the hedge -and
the hedge was staring back. Two enormous green eyes had appeared among the leaves.
Harry jumped to his feet just as
a jeering voice floated across the lawn. "I know what day it is," sang Dudley, waddling
toward him.
The huge eyes blinked and
vanished.
"What?" said Harry,
not taking his eyes off the spot where they had been.
"I know what day it
is," Dudley repeated, coming right up to him.
"Well done," said
Harry. "So you've finally learned the days of the week."
"Today's your birthday,"
sneered Dudley. "How come you haven't got any cards? Haven't you even got
friends at that freak place?"
"Better not let your mum
hear you talking about my school," said Harry coolly.
Dudley hitched up his trousers,
which were slipping down his fat bottom.
"Why're you staring at the
hedge?" he said suspiciously.
"I'm trying to decide what
would be the best spell to set it on fire," said Harry.
Dudley stumbled backward at
once, a look of panic on his fat face.
"You c-can't - Dad told you
you're not to do m-magic - he said he'll chuck you out of the house - and you
haven't got anywhere else to go - you haven't got any friends to take
you -"
"Jiggery pokery!"
said Harry in a fierce voice. "Hocus pocus - squiggly wiggly -"
"MUUUUUUM!" howled
Dudley, tripping over his feet as he dashed back toward the house.
"MUUUUM! He's doing you know what!" Harry paid dearly for his moment of fun. As neither Dudley
nor the hedge was in any way hurt, Aunt Petunia knew he hadn't really done
magic, but he still had to duck as she aimed a heavy blow at his head with the
soapy frying pan. Then she gave him work to do, with the promise he wouldn't
eat again until he'd finished.
While Dudley lolled around
watching and eating ice cream, Harry cleaned the windows, washed the car, mowed
the lawn, trimmed the flowerbeds, pruned and watered the roses, and repainted
the garden bench. The sun blazed overhead, burning the back of his neck. Harry
knew he shouldn't have risen to Dudley's bait, but Dudley had said the very
thing Harry had been thinking himself...maybe he didn't have any friends
at Hogwarts...
Wish they could see famous Harry
Potter now, he
thought savagely as he spread manure on the flower beds, his back aching, sweat
running down his face.
It was half past seven in the
evening when at last, exhausted, he heard Aunt Petunia calling him.
"Get in here! And walk on
the newspaper!"
Harry moved gladly into the
shade of the gleaming kitchen. On top of the fridge stood tonight's pudding: a
huge mound of whipped cream and sugared violets. A loin of roast pork was
sizzling in the oven.
"Eat quickly! The Masons
will be here soon!" snapped Aunt Petunia, pointing to two slices of bread
and a lump of cheese on the kitchen table. She was already wearing a
salmon-pink cocktail dress.
Harry washed his hands and
bolted down his pitiful supper. The moment he had finished, Aunt Petunia
whisked away his plate. "Upstairs! Hurry!"
As he passed the door to the
living room, Harry caught a glimpse of Uncle Vernon and Dudley in bow ties and
dinner jackets. He had only just reached the upstairs landing when the door
bell rang and Uncle Vernon's furious face appeared at the foot of the stairs.
"Remember, boy - one sound
-"
Harry crossed to his bedroom on
tiptoe slipped inside, closed the door, and turned to collapse on his bed. The
trouble was, there was already someone sitting on it. CHAPTER TWO DOBBY'S WARNING
Harry managed not to shout out,
but it was a close thing. The little creature on the bed had large, bat-like
ears and bulging green eyes the size of tennis balls. Harry knew instantly that
this was what had been watching him out of the garden hedge that morning.
As they stared at each other,
Harry heard Dudley's voice from the hall.
"May I take your coats, Mr.
and Mrs. Mason?"
The creature slipped off the bed
and bowed so low that the end of its long, thin nose touched the carpet. Harry
noticed that it was wearing what looked like an old pillowcase, with rips for
arm- and leg-holes.
"Er - hello," said
Harry nervously. "Harry
Potter!" said the creature in a high-pitched voice Harry was sure would
carry down the stairs. "So long has Dobby wanted to meet you, sir...Such an
honor it is..."
"Th-thank you," said
Harry, edging along the wall and sinking into his desk chair, next to Hedwig,
who was asleep in her large cage. He wanted to ask, "What are you?"
but thought it would sound too rude, so instead he said, "Who are
you?"
"Dobby, sir. Just Dobby.
Dobby the house-elf," said the creature.
"Oh - really?" said
Harry. "Er - I don't want to be rude or anything, but - this isn't a great
time for me to have a house-elf in my bedroom."
Aunt Petunias high, false laugh
sounded from the living room. The elf hung his head.
"Not that I'm not pleased
to meet you," said Harry quickly, "but, er, is there any particular
reason you're here?" "Oh, yes, sir," said Dobby earnestly.
"Dobby has come to tell you, sir...it is difficult, sir...Dobby wonders where
to begin..."
"Sit down," said Harry
politely, pointing at the bed.
To his horror, the elf burst
into tears - very noisy tears.
"S-sit down!"
he wailed. "Never ...never ever..."
Harry thought he heard the
voices downstairs falter.
"I'm sorry," he
whispered, "I didn't mean to offend you or anything -"
"Offend Dobby!" choked
the elf. "Dobby has never been asked to sit down by a wizard - like
an equal -" Harry, trying to say "Shh!" and look comforting
at the same time, ushered Dobby back onto the bed where he sat hiccoughing,
looking like a large and very ugly doll. At last he managed to control himself,
and sat with his great eyes fixed on Harry in an expression of watery
adoration.
"You can't have met many
decent wizards," said Harry, trying to cheer him up.
Dobby shook his head. Then,
without warning, he leapt up and started banging his head furiously on the
window, shouting, "Bad Dobby! Bad Dobby!"
"Don't - what are you
doing?" Harry hissed, springing up and pulling Dobby back onto the bed - Hedwig
had woken up with a particularly loud screech and was beating her wings wildly
against the bars of her cage. "Dobby had to punish himself, sir," said the
elf, who had gone slightly cross-eyed. "Dobby almost spoke ill of his
family, sir..."
"Your family?"
"The wizard family Dobby
serves, sir...Dobby is a house-elf - bound to serve one house and one family
forever..."
"Do they know you're
here?" asked Harry curiously.
Dobby shuddered.
"Oh, no, sir, no...Dobby will
have to punish himself most grievously for coming to see you, sir. Dobby will
have to shut his ears in the oven door for this. If they ever knew, sir -"
"But won't they notice if
you shut your ears in the oven door?"
"Dobby doubts it, sir.
Dobby is always having to punish himself for something, sir. They lets Dobby
get on with it, sir. Sometimes they reminds me to do extra punishments..."
"But why don't you leave?
Escape?"
"A house-elf must be set
free, sir. And the family will never set Dobby free...Dobby will serve the family
until he dies, sir..."
Harry stared.
"And I thought I had it bad
staying here for another four weeks," he said. "This makes the
Dursleys sound almost human. Can't anyone help you? Can't I?"
Almost at once, Harry wished he
hadn't spoken. Dobby dissolved again into wails of gratitude.
"Please," Harry
whispered frantically, "please be quiet. If the Dursleys hear anything, if
they know you're here -"
"Harry Potter asks if he
can help Dobby...Dobby has heard of your greatness, sir, but of your goodness,
Dobby never knew..."
Harry, who was feeling
distinctly hot in the face, said, "Whatever you've heard about my
greatness is a load of rubbish. I'm not even top of my year at Hogwarts; that's
Hermione, she -"
But he stopped quickly, because
thinking about Hermione was painful.
"Harry Potter is humble and
modest," said Dobby reverently, his orb-like eyes aglow. "Harry
Potter speaks not of his triumph over He-Who-Must-Not-Be-Named -"
"Voldemort?" said
Harry.
Dobby clapped his hands over his
bat ears and moaned, "Ah, speak not the name, sir! Speak not the
name!"
"Sorry," said Harry
quickly. "I know lots of people don't like it. My friend Ron -"
He stopped again. Thinking about
Ron was painful, too.
Dobby leaned toward Harry, his
eyes wide as headlights.
"Dobby heard tell," he
said hoarsely, "that Harry Potter met the Dark Lord for a second time just
weeks ago...that Harry Potter escaped yet again." Harry nodded and Dobby's eyes suddenly shone with tears.
"Ah, sir," he gasped,
dabbing his face with a corner of the grubby pillowcase he was wearing.
"Harry Potter is valiant and bold! He has braved so many dangers already!
But Dobby has come to protect Harry Potter, to warn him, even if he does have
to shut his ears in the oven door later...Harry Potter must not go back to
Hogwarts."
There was a silence broken only
by the chink of knives and forks from downstairs and the distant rumble of
Uncle Vernon's voice.
"W-what?" Harry
stammered. "But I've got to go back - term starts on September first. It's
all that's keeping me going. You don't know what it's like here. I don't belong
here. I belong in your world - at Hogwarts."
"No, no, no," squeaked
Dobby, shaking his head so hard his ears flapped. "Harry Potter must stay
where he is safe. He is too great, too good, to lose. If Harry Potter goes back
to Hogwarts, he will be in mortal danger." "Why?" said Harry in surprise.
"There is a plot, Harry
Potter. A plot to make most terrible things happen at Hogwarts School of
Witchcraft and Wizardry this year," whispered Dobby, suddenly trembling
all over. "Dobby has known it for months, sir. Harry Potter must not put
himself in peril. He is too important, sir!"
"What terrible
things?" said Harry at once. "Who's plotting them?"
Dobby made a funny choking noise
and then banged his head frantically against the wall.
"All right!" cried
Harry, grabbing the elf's arm to stop him. "You can't tell me. I
understand. But why are you warning me?" A sudden, unpleasant
thought struck him. "Hang on - this hasn't got anything to do with Vol- -
sorry - with You-Know-Who, has it? You
could just shake or nod," he added hastily as Dobby's head tilted
worryingly close to the wall again.
Slowly, Dobby shook his head.
"Not - not He-Who-Must-Not-Be-Named,
sir -"
But Dobby's eyes were wide and
he seemed to be trying to give Harry a hint. Harry, however, was completely
lost.
"He hasn't got a brother,
has he?"
Dobby shook his head, his eyes
wider than ever.
"Well then, I can't think
who else would have a chance of making horrible things happen at
Hogwarts," said Harry. "I mean, there's Dumbledore, for one thing -
you know who Dumbledore is, don't you?"
Dobby bowed his head.
"Albus Dumbledore is the
greatest headmaster Hogwarts has ever had. Dobby knows it, sir. Dobby has heard
Dumbledore's powers rival those of He-Who-Must-Not-Be-Named at the height of
his strength. But, sir" - Dobby's voice dropped to an urgent whisper -
"there are powers Dumbledore doesn't...powers no decent wizard..."
And before Harry could stop him,
Dobby bounded off the bed, seized Harry's desk lamp, and started beating
himself around the head with earsplitting yelps.
A sudden silence fell
downstairs. Two seconds later Harry, heart thudding madly, heard Uncle Vernon
coming into the hall, calling, "Dudley must have left his television on
again, the little tyke!"
"Quick! In the
closet!" hissed Harry, stuffing Dobby in, shutting the door, and flinging
himself onto the bed just as the door handle turned.
"What - the - devil
- are - you - doing?" said Uncle Vernon through gritted teeth, his face
horribly close to Harry's. "You've just ruined the punch line of my
Japanese golfer joke...One more sound and you'll wish you'd never been born,
boy!"
He stomped flat-footed from the
room.
Shaking, Harry let Dobby out of
the closet.
"See what it's like
here?" he said. "See why I've got to go back to Hogwarts? It's the
only place I've got - well, I think I've got friends."
"Friends who don't even write
to Harry Potter?" said Dobby slyly.
"I expect they've just been
- wait a minute," said Harry, frowning. "How do you know my
friends haven't been writing to me?"
Dobby shuffled his feet.
"Harry Potter mustn't be
angry with Dobby. Dobby did it for the best -"
"Have you been stopping
my letters?"
"Dobby has them here,
sir," said the elf. Stepping nimbly out of Harry's reach, he pulled a
thick wad of envelopes from the inside of the pillowcase he was wearing. Harry
could make out Hermione's neat writing, Ron's untidy scrawl, and even a
scribble that looked as though it was from the Hogwarts gamekeeper, Hagrid.
Dobby blinked anxiously up at
Harry. "Harry Potter mustn't be angry...Dobby hoped...if Harry
Potter thought his friends had forgotten him...Harry Potter might not want to go
back to school, sir..."
Harry wasn't listening. He made
a grab for the letters, but Dobby jumped out of reach.
"Harry Potter will have
them, sir, if he gives Dobby his word that he will not return to Hogwarts. Ah,
sir, this is a danger you must not face! Say you won't go back, sir!"
"No," said Harry
angrily. "Give me my friends' letters!"
"Then Harry Potter leaves
Dobby no choice," said the elf sadly.
Before Harry could move, Dobby
had darted to the bedroom door, pulled it open, and sprinted down the stairs.
Mouth dry, stomach lurching,
Harry sprang after him, trying not to make a sound. He jumped the last six
steps, landing catlike on the hall carpet, looking around for Dobby. From the
dining room he heard Uncle Vernon saying, "...tell Petunia that very funny
story about those American plumbers, Mr. Mason. She's been dying to hear..."
Harry ran up the hall into the
kitchen and felt his stomach disappear.
Aunt Petunia's masterpiece of a
pudding, the mountain of cream and sugared violets, was floating up near the
ceiling. On top of a cupboard in the corner crouched Dobby.
"No," croaked Harry.
"Please...they'll kill me..."
"Harry Potter must say he's
not going back to school -"
"Dobby...please..."
"Say it, sir -"
"I can't -"
Dobby gave him a tragic look.
"Then Dobby must do it,
sir, for Harry Potter's own good."
The pudding fell to the floor
with a heart-stopping crash. Cream splattered the windows and walls as the dish
shattered. With a crack like a whip, Dobby vanished.
There were screams from the
dining room and Uncle Vernon burst into the kitchen to find Harry, rigid with
shock, covered from head to foot in Aunt Petunia's pudding.
At first, it looked as though
Uncle Vernon would manage to gloss the whole thing over. ("Just our nephew
-very disturbed - meeting strangers upsets him, so we kept him
upstairs...") He shooed the shocked Masons back into the dining room,
promised Harry he would flay him to within an inch of his life when the Masons
had left, and handed him a mop. Aunt Petunia dug some ice cream out of the
freezer and Harry, still shaking, started scrubbing the kitchen clean.
Uncle Vernon might still have
been able to make his deal - if it hadn't been for the owl.
Aunt Petunia was just passing
around a box of after-dinner mints when a huge barn owl swooped through the
dining room window, dropped a letter on Mrs. Mason's head, and swooped out
again. Mrs. Mason screamed like a banshee and ran from the house shouting about
lunatics. Mr. Mason stayed just long enough to tell the Dursleys that his wife
was mortally afraid of birds of all shapes and sizes, and to ask whether this
was their idea of a joke.
Harry stood in the kitchen,
clutching the mop for support, as Uncle Vernon advanced on him, a demonic glint
in his tiny eyes.
"Read it!" he hissed
evilly, brandishing the letter the owl had delivered. "Go on - read
it!"
Harry took it. It did not
contain birthday greetings. Dear Mr. Potter, We have received intelligence that a Hover
Charm was used at your place of residence this evening at twelve minutes past
nine. As
you know, underage wizards are not permitted to perform spells outside school,
and further spellwork on your part may
lead to expulsion from said school. (Decree for the Reasonable Restriction of
Underage Sorcery, 1875, Paragraph C). We
would also ask you to remember that any magical activity that risks notice by
members of the non magical community (Muggles) is a serious offense under
section 13 of the International Confederation of Warlocks' Statute of Secrecy. Enjoy your holidays!
Yours sincerely,
Mafalda Hopkirk
IMPROPER USE OF MAGIC OFFICE
Ministry of Magic
Harry looked up from the letter
and gulped.
"You didn't tell us you
weren't allowed to use magic outside school," said Uncle Vernon, a mad
gleam dancing in his eyes. "Forgot to mention it...Slipped your mind, I
daresay..."
He was bearing down on Harry
like a great bulldog, all his teeth bared. "Well, I've got news for you,
boy...I'm locking you up...You're never going back to that school...never...and if
you try and magic yourself out - they'll expel you!"
And laughing like a maniac, he
dragged Harry back upstairs.
Uncle Vernon was as bad as his
word. The following morning, he paid a man to fit bars on Harry's window. He
himself fitted a cat-flap in the bedroom door, so that small amounts of food
could be pushed inside three times a day. They let Harry out to use the
bathroom morning and evening. Otherwise, he was locked in his room around the clock.
Three days later, the Dursleys
were showing no sign of relenting, and Harry couldn't see any way out of his
situation. He lay on his bed watching the sun sinking behind the bars on the
window and wondered miserably what was going to happen to him.
What was the good of magicking
himself out of his room if Hogwarts would expel him for doing it? Yet life at
Privet Drive had reached an all-time low. Now that the Dursleys knew they
weren't going to wake up as fruit bats, he had lost his only weapon. Dobby might
have saved Harry from horrible happenings at Hogwarts, but the way things were
going, he'd probably starve to death anyway.
The cat-flap rattled and Aunt
Petunias hand appeared, pushing a bowl of canned soup into the room. Harry,
whose insides were aching with hunger, jumped off his bed and seized it. The
soup was stone-cold, but he drank half of it
in one gulp. Then he crossed the room to Hedwig's cage and tipped the
soggy vegetables at the bottom of the bowl into her empty food tray. She
ruffled her feathers and gave him a look of deep disgust.
"It's no good turning your
beak up at it - that's all we've got," said Harry grimly.
He put the empty bowl back on
the floor next to the cat-flap and lay back down on the bed, somehow even
hungrier than he had been before the soup. Supposing he was still alive in another four weeks, hat
would happen if he didn't turn up at Hogwarts? Would someone be sent to see why
he hadn't come back? Would they be able to make the Dursleys let him go?
The room was growing dark.
Exhausted, stomach rumbling, mind spinning over the same unanswerable
questions, Harry fell into an uneasy sleep.
He dreamed that he was on show
in a zoo, with a card reading UNDERAGE WIZARD
attached to his cage. People goggled through the bars at him as he lay,
starving and weak, on a bed of straw. He saw Dobby's face in the crowd and
shouted out, asking for help, but Dobby called, "Harry Potter is safe
there, sir!" and vanished. Then the Dursleys appeared and Dudley rattled
the bars of the cage, laughing at him.
"Stop it," Harry
muttered as the rattling pounded in his sore head. "Leave me alone...cut it
out...I'm trying to sleep..."
He opened his eyes. Moonlight
was shining through the bars on the window. And someone was goggling
through the bars at him: a freckle-faced, red-haired, long-nosed someone.
Ron Weasley was outside Harry's
window. CHAPTER THREE THE BURROW
"
Ron." breathed Harry, creeping
to the window and pushing it up so they could talk through the bars. "Ron,
how did you -? What the -?"
Harry's mouth fell open as the
full impact of what he was seeing hit him. Ron was leaning out of the back
window of an old turquoise car, which was parked in midair. Grinning at
Harry from the front seats were Fred and George, Ron's elder twin brothers. "All right, Harry?" asked George.
"What's been going
on?" said Ron. "Why haven't you been answering my letters? I've asked
you to stay about twelve times, and then Dad came home and said you'd got an
official warning for using magic in front of Muggles -"
"It wasn't me - and how did
he know?"
"He works for the
Ministry," said Ron. "You know we're not supposed to do spells
outside school -"
"You should talk,"
said Harry, staring at the floating car.
"Oh, this doesn't
count," said Ron. "We're only borrowing this. It's Dad's, we
didn't enchant it. But doing magic in front of those Muggles you live with
-"
"I told you, I didn't - but
it'll take too long to explain now - look, can you tell them at Hogwarts that
the Dursleys have locked me up and won't let me come back, and obviously I
can't magic myself out, because the Ministry'll think that's the second spell
I've done in three days, so -"
"Stop gibbering," said
Ron. "We've come to take you home with us."
"But you can't magic me out
either -"
"We don't need to,"
said Ron, jerking his head toward the front seat and grinning. "You forget
who I've got with me."
"Tie that around the
bars," said Fred, throwing the end of a rope to Harry.
"If the Dursleys wake up,
I'm dead," said Harry as he tied the rope tightly around a bar and Fred
revved up the car.
"Don't worry," said
Fred, "and stand back."
Harry moved back into the
shadows next to Hedwig, who seemed to have realized how important this was and
kept still and silent. The car revved louder and louder and suddenly, with a
crunching noise, the bars were pulled clean out of the window as Fred drove
straight up in the air. Harry ran back to the window to see the bars dangling a
few feet above the ground. Panting, Ron hoisted them up into the car. Harry
listened anxiously, but there was no sound from the Dursleys' bedroom.
When the bars were safely in the
back seat with Ron, Fred reversed as close as possible to Harry's window.
"Get in," Ron said.
"But all my Hogwarts stuff
- my wand - my broomstick -"
"Where is it?"
"Locked in the cupboard
under the stairs, and I can't get out of this room -"
"No problem," said
George from the front passenger seat. "Out of the way, Harry." Fred and George climbed catlike through the window into
Harry's room. You had to hand it to them, thought Harry, as George took an
ordinary hairpin from his pocket and started to pick the lock.
"A lot of wizards think
it's a waste of time, knowing this sort of Muggle trick," said Fred,
"but we feel they're skills worth learning, even if they are a bit
slow."
There was a small click and the
door swung open.
"So - we'll get your trunk
- you grab anything you need from your room and hand it out to Ron,"
whispered George.
"Watch out for the bottom
stair - it creaks," Harry whispered back as the twins disappeared onto the
dark landing.
Harry dashed around his room,
collecting his things and passing them out of the window to Ron. Then he went
to help Fred and George heave his trunk up the stairs. Harry heard Uncle Vernon
cough.
At last, panting, they reached
the landing, then carried the trunk through Harry's room to the open window.
Fred climbed back into the car to pull with Ron, and Harry and George pushed
from the bedroom side. Inch by inch, the trunk slid through the window.
Uncle Vernon coughed again.
"A bit more," panted
Fred, who was pulling from inside the car. "One good push -"
Harry and George threw their
shoulders against the trunk and it slid out of the window into the back seat of
the car.
"Okay, let's go,"
George whispered.
But as Harry climbed onto the
windowsill there came a sudden loud screech from behind him, followed
immediately by the thunder of Uncle Vernon's voice.
"THAT RUDDY OWL!"
"I've forgotten
Hedwig!"
Harry tore back across the room
as the landing light clicked on - he snatched up Hedwig's cage, dashed to the
window, and passed it out to Ron. He was scrambling back onto the chest of
drawers when Uncle Vernon hammered on the unlocked door - and it crashed open.
For a split second, Uncle Vernon
stood framed in the doorway; then he let out a bellow like an angry bull and
dived at Harry, grabbing him by the ankle.
Ron, Fred, and George seized
Harry's arms and pulled as hard as they could.
"Petunia!" roared
Uncle Vernon. "He's getting away! HE'S GETTING AWAY!"
But the Weasleys gave a gigantic
tug and Harry's leg slid out of Uncle Vernon's grasp - Harry was in the car -
he'd slammed the door shut -
"Put your foot down,
Fred!" yelled Ron, and the car shot suddenly toward the moon.
Harry couldn't believe it - he
was free. He rolled down the window, the night air whipping his hair, and
looked back at the shrinking rooftops of Privet Drive. Uncle Vernon, Aunt
Petunia, and Dudley were all hanging, dumbstruck, out of Harry's window.
"See you next summer!"
Harry yelled.
The Weasleys roared with
laughter and Harry settled back in his seat, grinning from ear to ear.
"Let Hedwig out," he
told Ron. "She can fly behind us. She hasn't had a chance to stretch her
wings for ages."
George handed the hairpin to Ron
and, a moment later, Hedwig soared joyfully out of the window to glide
alongside them like a ghost.
"So - what's the story,
Harry?" said Ron impatiently. "What's been happening?"
Harry told them all about Dobby,
the warning he'd given Harry and the fiasco of the violet pudding. There was a
long, shocked silence when he had finished.
"Very fishy," said
Fred finally.
"Definitely dodgy"
agreed George. "So he wouldn't even tell you who's supposed to be plotting
all this stuff?"
"I don't think he
could," said Harry. "I told you, every time he got close to letting
something slip, he started banging his head against the wall."
He saw Fred and George look at
each other.
"What, you think he was
lying to me?" said Harry.
"Well," said Fred,
"put it this way - house-elves have got powerful magic of their own, but
they can't usually use it without their master's permission. I reckon old Dobby
was sent to stop you coming back to Hogwarts. Someone's idea of a joke. Can you
think of anyone at school with a grudge against you?"
"Yes," said Harry and
Ron together, instantly.
"Draco Malfoy," Harry
explained. "He hates me."
"Draco Malfoy?" said
George, turning around. "Not Lucius Malfoy's son?"
"Must be, it's not a very
common name, is it?" said Harry.
"I've heard Dad talking
about him," said George. "He was a big supporter of You-Know-Who."
"And when You-Know-Who
disappeared," said Fred, craning around to look at Harry, "Lucius
Malfoy came back saying he'd never meant any of it. Load of dung - Dad reckons
he was right in You- Know-Who's inner circle."
Harry had heard these rumors
about Malfoy's family before, and they didn't surprise him at all. Malfoy made
Dudley Dursley look like a kind, thoughtful, and sensitive boy...
"I don't know whether the
Malfoys own a house-elf..." said Harry.
"Well, whoever owns him
will be an old wizarding family, and they'll be rich," said Fred.
"Yeah, Mum's always wishing
we had a house-elf to do the ironing," said George. "But all we've
got is a lousy old ghoul in the attic and gnomes all over the garden.
House-elves come with big old manors and castles and places like that; you
wouldn't catch one in our house..."
Harry was silent. Judging by the
fact that Draco Malfoy usually had the best of everything, his family was
rolling in wizard gold; he could just see Malfoy strutting around a large manor
house. Sending the family servant to stop Harry from going back to Hogwarts
also sounded exactly like the sort of thing Malfoy would do. Had Harry been
stupid to take Dobby seriously?
"I'm glad we came to get
you, anyway," said Ron. "I was getting really worried when you didn't
answer any of my letters. I thought it was Errol's fault at first -"
"Who's Errol?" "Our owl. He's ancient. It wouldn't be the first time
he'd collapsed on a delivery. So then I tried to borrow Hermes -"
"Who?"
"The owl Mum and Dad bought
Percy when he was made prefect," said Fred from the front.
"But Percy wouldn't lend
him to me," said Ron. "Said he needed him."
"Percy's been acting very
oddly this summer," said George, frowning. "And he has been
sending a lot of letters and spending a load of time shut up in his room...I
mean, there's only so many times you can polish a prefect badge...You're driving
too far west, Fred," he added, pointing at a compass on the dashboard.
Fred twiddled the steering wheel.
"So, does your dad know
you've got the car?" said Harry, guessing the answer.
"Er, no," said Ron,
"he had to work tonight. Hopefully we'll be able to get it back in the
garage without Mum noticing we flew it."
"What does your dad do at
the Ministry of Magic, anyway?"
"He works in the most
boring department," said Ron. "The Misuse of Muggle Artifacts
Office."
"The what?" "It's all to do with bewitching things that are
Muggle-made, you know, in case they end up back in a Muggle shop or house.
Like, last year, some old witch died and her tea set was sold to an antiques
shop. This Muggle woman bought it, took it home, and tried to serve her friends
tea in it. It was a nightmare - Dad was working overtime for weeks."
"What happened?"
"The teapot went berserk
and squirted boiling tea all over the place and one man ended up in the
hospital with the sugar tongs clamped to his nose. Dad was going frantic - it's
only him and an old warlock called Perkins in the office - and they had to do
Memory Charms and all sorts of stuff to cover it up -"
"But your dad - this car
-"
Fred laughed. "Yeah, Dad's
crazy about everything to do with Muggles; our shed's full of Muggle stuff. He
takes it apart, puts spells on it, and puts it back together again. If he
raided our house he'd have to put himself under arrest. It drives Mum mad."
"That's the main
road," said George, peering down through the windshield. "We'll be
there in ten minutes... Just as well, it's getting light..."
A faint pinkish glow was visible
along the horizon to the east.
Fred brought the car lower, and
Harry saw a dark patchwork of fields and clumps of trees.
"We're a little way outside
the village," said George. "Ottery St. Catchpole."
Lower and lower went the flying
car. The edge of a brilliant red sun was now gleaming through the trees. "Touchdown!" said Fred as, with a slight bump,
they hit the ground. They had landed next to a tumbledown garage in a small
yard, and Harry looked out for the first time at Ron's house.
It looked as though it had once
been a large stone pigpen, but extra rooms had been added here and there until
it was several stories high and so crooked it looked as though it were held up
by magic (which Harry reminded himself, it probably was). Four or five chimneys
were perched on top of the red roof. A lopsided sign stuck in the ground near
the entrance read, THE BURROW. Around the
front door lay a jumble of rubber boots and a very rusty cauldron. Several fat
brown chickens were pecking their way around the yard.
"It's not much," said
Ron.
"It's wonderful,"
said Harry happily, thinking of Privet Drive.
They got out of the car.
"Now, we'll go upstairs
really quietly," said Fred, "and wait for Mum to call us for
breakfast Then, Ron, you come bounding downstairs going, 'Mum, look who turned
up in the night!' and she'll be all pleased to see Harry and no one need ever
know we flew the car."
"Right," said Ron.
"Come on, Harry, I sleep at the - at the top -"
Ron had gone a nasty greenish
color, his eyes fixed on the house. The other three wheeled around.
Mrs. Weasley was marching across
the yard, scattering chickens, and for a short, plump, kind-faced woman, it was
remarkable how much she looked like a saber-toothed tiger.
"Ah, "said
Fred.
"Oh, dear," said
George.
Mrs. Weasley came to a halt in
front of them, her hands on her hips, staring from one guilty face to the next.
She was wearing a flowered apron with a wand sticking out of the pocket.
"So," she said.
"Morning, Mum," said
George, in what he clearly thought was a jaunty, winning voice. "Have you any idea how worried I've been?" said
Mrs. Weasley in a deadly whisper.
"Sorry, Mum, but see, we
had to -"
All three of Mrs. Weasley's sons
were taller than she was, but they cowered as her rage broke over them. "Beds empty! No note! Car gone - could have
crashed - out of my mind with worry - did you care? - never, as long as I've
lived - you wait until your father gets home, we never had trouble like this
from Bill or Charlie or Percy -"
"Perfect Percy,"
muttered Fred.
"YOU COULD DO WITH TAKING A
LEAF OUT OF PERCY'S BOOK!" yelled Mrs. Weasley, prodding a finger in
Fred's chest. "You could have died, you could have been seen,
you could have lost your father his job -"
It seemed to go on for hours.
Mrs. Weasley had shouted herself hoarse before she turned on Harry, who backed
away.
"I'm very pleased to see
you, Harry, dear," she said. "Come in and have some breakfast."
She turned and walked back into
the house and Harry, after a nervous glance at Ron, who nodded encouragingly,
followed her. The kitchen was small and rather cramped. There was a
scrubbed wooden table and chairs in the middle, and Harry sat down on the edge
of his seat, looking around. He had never been in a wizard house before.
The clock on the wall opposite
him had only one hand and no numbers at all. Written around the edge were
things like Time to make tea, Time to feed the chickens, and You're
late. Books were stacked three deep on the mantelpiece, books with titles
like Charm Your Own Cheese, Enchantment in Baking, and One Minute Feasts
- It's Magic! And unless Harry's ears were deceiving him, the old radio
next to the sink had just announced that coming up was "Witching Hour,
with the popular singing sorceress, Celestina Warbeck."
Mrs. Weasley was clattering
around, cooking breakfast a little haphazardly, throwing dirty looks at her
sons as she threw sausages into the frying pan. Every now and then she muttered
things like "don't know what you were thinking of," and "never
would have believed it."
"I don't blame you,
dear," she assured Harry, tipping eight or nine sausages onto his plate.
"Arthur and I have been worried about you, too. Just last night we were
saying we'd come and get you ourselves if you hadn't written back to Ron by
Friday. But really," (she was now adding three fried eggs to his plate)
"flying an illegal car halfway across the country - anyone could have seen
you -" She flicked her wand casually at the dishes in the sink,
which began to clean themselves, clinking gently in the background.
"It was cloudy,
Mum!" said Fred.
"You keep your mouth closed
while you're eating!" Mrs. Weasley snapped.
"They were starving him,
Mum!" said George.
"And you!" said Mrs.
Weasley, but it was with a slightly softened expression that she started
cutting Harry bread and buttering it for him.
At that moment there was a
diversion in the form of a small, redheaded figure in a long nightdress, who
appeared in the kitchen, gave a small squeal, and ran out again.
"Ginny," said Ron in
an undertone to Harry. "My sister. She's been talking about you all
summer." "Yeah, she'll be wanting your autograph, Harry,"
Fred said with a grin, but he caught his mother's eye and bent his face over
his plate without another word. Nothing more was said until all four plates
were clean, which took a surprisingly short time.
"Blimey, I'm
tired," yawned Fred, setting down his knife and fork at last. "I
think I'll go to bed and -"
"You will not,"
snapped Mrs. Weasley. "It's your own fault you've been up all night.
You're going to de-gnome the garden for me; they're getting completely out of
hand again -"
"Oh, Mum -"
"And you two," she
said, glaring at Ron and Fred. "You can go up to bed, dear," she
added to Harry. "You didn't ask them to fly that wretched car -"
But Harry, who felt wide awake,
said quickly, "I'll help Ron. I've never seen a de-gnoming -"
"That's very sweet of you,
dear, but it's dull work," said Mrs. Weasley. "Now, let's see what
Lockhart's got to say on the subject -"
And she pulled a heavy book from
the stack on the mantelpiece. George groaned.
"Mum, we know how to
de-gnome a garden -"
Harry looked at the cover of
Mrs. Weasley's book. Written across it in fancy gold letters were the words Gilderoy
Lockhart's Guide to Household Pests. There was a big photograph on the
front of a very good-looking wizard with wavy blond hair and bright blue eyes.
As always in the wizarding world, the photograph was moving; the wizard, who
Harry supposed was Gilderoy Lockhart, kept winking cheekily up at them all.
Mrs. Weasley beamed down at him.
"Oh, he is marvelous,"
she said. "He knows his household pests, all right, it's a wonderful
book..."
"Mum fancies
him," said Fred, in a very audible whisper.
"Don't be so ridiculous,
Fred," said Mrs. Weasley, her cheeks rather pink. "All right, if you
think you know better than Lockhart, you can go and get on with it, and woe
betide you if there's a single gnome in that garden when I come out to inspect
it."
Yawning and grumbling, the
Weasleys slouched outside with Harry behind them. The garden was large, and in
Harry's eyes, exactly what a garden should be. The Dursleys wouldn't have liked
it - there were plenty of weeds, and the grass needed cutting - but there were
gnarled trees all around the walls, plants Harry had never seen spilling from
every flower bed, and a big green pond full of frogs.
"Muggles have garden
gnomes, too, you know," Harry told Ron they crossed the lawn.
"Yeah, I've seen those
things they think are gnomes," said Ron, bent double with his head in a
peony bush, "like fat little Santa Clauses with fishing rods..."
There was a violent scuffling
noise, the peony bush shuddered, and Ron straightened up. "This is
a gnome," he said grimly.
"Gerroff me! Gerroff
me!" squealed the gnome.
It was certainly nothing like
Santa Claus. It was small and leathery looking, with a large, knobby, bald head
exactly like a potato. Ron held it at arm's length as it kicked out at him with
its horny little feet; he grasped it around the ankles and turned it upside
down.
"This is what you have to
do," he said. He raised the gnome above his head ("Gerroff me!")
and started to swing it in great circles like a lasso. Seeing the shocked look
on Harry's face, Ron added, "It doesn't hurt them -you've just got
to make them really dizzy so they can't find their way back to the gnome
holes."
He let go of the gnome's ankles:
It flew twenty feet into the air and landed with a thud in the field over the
hedge.
"Pitiful," said Fred.
"I bet I can get mine beyond that stump."
Harry learned quickly not to
feel too sorry for the gnomes. He decided just to drop the first one he caught
over the hedge, but the gnome, sensing weakness, sank its razor-sharp teeth
into Harry's finger and he had a hard job shaking it off - until -
"Wow, Harry - that must've
been fifty feet..."
The air was soon thick with
flying gnomes.
"See, they're not too
bright," said George, seizing five or six gnomes at once. "The moment
they know the de-gnoming's going on they storm up to have a look. You'd think
they'd have learned by now just to stay put."
Soon, the crowd of gnomes in the
field started walking away in a straggling line, their little shoulders
hunched.
"They'll be back,"
said Ron as they watched the gnomes disappear into the hedge on the other side
of the field. "They love it here...Dad's too soft with them; he thinks
they're funny..."
Just then, the front door
slammed.
"He's back!" said
George. "Dad's home!"
They hurried through the garden
and back into the house.
Mr. Weasley was slumped in a
kitchen chair with his glasses off and
his eyes closed. He was a thin man, going bald, but the little hair he had was
as red as any of his children's. He was wearing long green robes, which were
dusty and travel-worn.
"What a night," he
mumbled, groping for the teapot as they all sat down around him. "Nine
raids. Nine! And old Mundungus Fletcher tried to put a hex on me when I had my
back turned..."
Mr. Weasley took a long gulp of
tea and sighed.
"Find anything, Dad?"
said Fred eagerly.
"All I got were a few
shrinking door keys and a biting kettle," yawned Mr. Weasley. "There
was some pretty nasty stuff that wasn't my department, though. Mortlake was
taken away for questioning about some extremely odd ferrets, but that's the
Committee on Experimental Charms, thank goodness..."
"Why would anyone bother
making door keys shrink?" said George.
"Just Muggle-baiting,"
sighed Mr. Weasley. "Sell them a key that keeps shrinking to nothing so
they can never find it when they need it...Of course, it's very hard to convict
anyone because no Muggle would admit their key keeps shrinking - they'll insist
they just keep losing it. Bless them, they'll go to any lengths to ignore
magic, even if it's staring them in the face...But the things our lot have taken
to enchanting, you wouldn't believe -"
"LIKE CARS, FOR
INSTANCE?"
Mrs. Weasley had appeared,
holding a long poker like a sword. Mr. Weasley's eyes jerked open. He stared
guiltily at his wife.
"C-cars, Molly, dear?"
"Yes, Arthur, cars,"
said Mrs. Weasley, her eyes flashing. "Imagine a wizard buying a rusty old
car and telling his wife all he wanted to do with it was take it apart to see
how it worked, while really he was enchanting it to make it fly."
Mr. Weasley blinked.
"Well, dear, I think you'll
find that he would be quite within the law to do that, even if - er - he maybe
would have done better to, um, tell his wife the truth...There's a loophole in
the law, you'll find...As long as he wasn't intending to fly the car, the
fact that the car could fly wouldn't -"
"Arthur Weasley, you made
sure there was a loophole when you wrote that law!" shouted Mrs. Weasley.
"Just so you could carry on tinkering with all that Muggle rubbish in your
shed! And for your information, Harry arrived this morning in the car you
weren't intending to fly!"
"Harry?" said Mr.
Weasley blankly. "Harry who?"
He looked around, saw Harry, and
jumped.
"Good lord, is it Harry
Potter? Very pleased to meet you, Ron's told us so much about -"
"Your sons flew that car to
Harry's house and back last night!" shouted Mrs. Weasley. "What have you got to say
about that, eh?"
"Did you really?" said
Mr. Weasley eagerly. "Did it go all right? I - I mean," he faltered
as sparks flew from Mrs. Weasley's eyes, "that - that was very wrong, boys
- very wrong indeed..."
"Let's leave them to
it," Ron muttered to Harry as Mrs. Weasley swelled like a bullfrog.
"Come on, I'll show you my bedroom."
They slipped out of the kitchen
and down a narrow passageway to an uneven staircase, which wound its way,
zigzagging up through the house. On the third landing, a door stood ajar. Harry
just caught sight of a pair of bright brown eyes staring at him before it
closed with a snap.
"Ginny," said Ron.
"You don't know how weird it is for her to be this shy. She never shuts up
normally -"
They climbed two more flights
until they reached a door with peeling paint and a small plaque on it, saying
RONALD'S ROOM.
Harry stepped in, his head
almost touching the sloping ceiling, and blinked. It was like walking into a
furnace: Nearly everything in Ron's room seemed to be a violent shade of
orange: the bedspread, the walls, even the ceiling. Then Harry realized that
Ron had covered nearly every inch of the shabby wallpaper with posters of the
same seven witches and wizards, all wearing bright orange robes, carrying
broomsticks, and waving energetically.
"Your Quidditch team?"
said Harry.
"The Chudley Cannons,"
said Ron, pointing at the orange bedspread, which was emblazoned with two giant
black C's and a speeding cannonball. "Ninth in the league."
Ron's school spellbooks were
stacked untidily in a corner, next to a pile of comics that all seemed to
feature The Adventures of Martin Miggs, the Mad Muggle. Ron's magic wand
was lying on top of a fish tank full of frog spawn on the windowsill, next to
his fat gray rat, Scabbers, who was snoozing in a patch of sun.
Harry stepped over a pack of
Self-Shuffling playing cards on the floor and looked out of the tiny window. In
the field far below he could see a gang of gnomes sneaking one by one back
through the Weasleys' hedge. Then he turned to look at Ron, who was watching
him almost nervously, as though waiting for his opinion.
"It's a bit small,"
said Ron quickly. "Not like that room you had with the Muggles. And I'm
right underneath the ghoul in the attic; he's always banging on the pipes and
groaning..."
But Harry, grinning widely,
said, "This is the best house I've ever been in."
Ron's ears went pink. CHAPTER FOUR AT FLOURISH AND BLOTTS
Life at the Burrow was as
different as possible from life on Privet Drive. The Dursleys liked everything
neat and ordered; the Weasleys' house burst with the strange and unexpected.
Harry got a shock the first time he looked in the mirror over the kitchen
mantelpiece and it shouted, "Tuck your shirt in, scruffy!" The
ghoul in the attic howled and dropped pipes whenever he felt things were
getting too quiet, and small explosions from Fred and George's bedroom were
considered perfectly normal. What Harry found most unusual about life at Ron's,
however, wasn't the talking mirror or the clanking ghoul: It was the fact that
everybody there seemed to like him.
Mrs. Weasley fussed over the
state of his socks and tried to force him to eat fourth helpings at every meal.
Mr. Weasley liked Harry to sit next to him at the dinner table so that he could
bombard him with questions about life with Muggles, asking him to explain how
things like plugs and the postal service worked.
"Fascinating."
he would say as Harry talked him through using a telephone. "Ingenious,
really, how many ways Muggles have found of getting along without magic."
Harry heard from Hogwarts one
sunny morning about a week after he had arrived at the Burrow. He and Ron went
down to breakfast to find Mr. and Mrs. Weasley and Ginny already sitting at the
kitchen table. The moment she saw Harry, Ginny accidentally knocked her
porridge bowl to the floor with a loud clatter. Ginny seemed very prone to
knocking things over whenever Harry entered a room. She dived under the table
to retrieve the bowl and emerged with her face glowing like the setting sun.
Pretending he hadn't noticed this, Harry sat down and took the toast Mrs.
Weasley offered him.
"Letters from school,"
said Mr. Weasley, passing Harry and Ron identical envelopes of yellowish
parchment, addressed in green ink. "Dumbledore already knows you're here,
Harry - doesn't miss a trick, that man. You two've got them, too," he
added, as Fred and George ambled in, still in their pajamas.
For a few minutes there was
silence as they all read their letters. Harry's told him to catch the Hogwarts
Express as usual from King's Cross station on September first. There was also a
list of the new books he'd need for the coming year.
SECOND-YEAR STUDENTS WILL REQUIRE:
The Standard Book of Spells, Grade 2 by
Miranda Goshawk
Break with a Banshee
by Gilderoy Lockhart
Gadding with Ghouls
by Gilderoy Lockhart
Holidays with Hags
by Gilderoy Lockhart
43 Travels with Trolls
by Gilderoy Lockhart
Voyages with Vampires
by Gilderoy Lockhart
Wanderings with Werewolves
by Gilderoy Lockhart
Year with the Yeti
by Gilderoy Lockhart
Fred, who had finished his own
list, peered over at Harry's.
"You've been told to get
all Lockhart's books, too!" he said. "The new Defense Against the
Dark Arts teacher must be a fan - bet it's a witch."
At this point, Fred caught his
mother's eye and quickly busied himself with the marmalade.
"That lot won't come
cheap," said George, with a quick look at his parents. "Lockhart's
books are really expensive..."
"Well, we'll manage,"
said Mrs. Weasley, but she looked worried. "I expect we'll be able to pick
up a lot of Ginny's things secondhand."
"Oh, are you starting at
Hogwarts this year?" Harry asked Ginny.
She nodded, blushing to the roots
of her flaming hair, and put her elbow in the butter dish. Fortunately no one
saw this except Harry, because just then Ron's elder brother Percy walked in.
He was already dressed, his Hogwarts prefect badge pinned to his sweater vest.
"Morning, all," said
Percy briskly. "Lovely day." He sat down in the only remaining chair but leapt up again
almost immediately, pulling from underneath him a molting, gray feather duster
- at least, that was what Harry thought it was, until he saw that it was
breathing.
"Errol!" said Ron,
taking the limp owl from Percy and extracting a letter from under its wing.
"Finally - he's got Hermione's answer. I wrote to her saying we
were going to try and rescue you from the Dursleys."
He carried Errol to a perch just
inside the back door and tried to stand him on it, but Errol flopped straight
off again so Ron lay him on the draining board instead, muttering,
"Pathetic." Then he ripped open Hermione's letter and read it out
loud:
"'Dear Ron, and Harry if
you're there, "'I hope everything went all right and that Harry is
okay and that you didn't do anything illegal to get him out, Ron, because that
would get Harry into trouble, too. I've been really worried and if Harry is all
right, will you please let me know at once, but perhaps it would be better if
you used a different owl because I think another delivery might finish your one
off.
"'I'm very busy with
schoolwork, of course' - How can she be?" said Ron in horror. "We're on vacation! -
'and we're going to London next Wednesday to buy my new books. Why don't we
meet in Diagon Alley?
"'Let me know what's
happening as soon as you can. Love from Hermione.' "
"Well, that fits in nicely,
we can go and get all your things then, too," said Mrs. Weasley, starting
to clear the table. "What're you all up to today?"
Harry, Ron, Fred, and George
were planning to go up the hill to a small paddock the Weasleys owned. It was
surrounded by trees that blocked it from view of the village below, meaning
that they could practice Quidditch there, as long as they didn't fly too high.
They couldn't use real Quidditch
balls, which would have been hard to explain if they had escaped and flown away
over the village; instead they threw apples for one another to catch. They took
turns riding Harry's Nimbus Two Thousand, which was easily the best broom;
Ron's old Shooting Star was often outstripped by passing butterflies.
Five minutes later they were
marching up the hill, broomsticks over their shoulders. They had asked Percy if
he wanted to join them, but he had said he was busy. Harry had only seen Percy
at mealtimes so far; he stayed shut in his room the rest of the time.
"Wish I knew what he was up
to," said Fred, frowning. "He's not himself. His exam results came
the day before you did; twelve O.W.L.s and he hardly gloated at all."
"Ordinary Wizarding
Levels," George explained, seeing Harry's puzzled look. "Bill got
twelve, too. If we're not careful, we'll have another Head Boy in the family. I
don't think I could stand the shame."
Bill was the oldest Weasley brother.
He and the next brother, Charlie, had already left Hogwarts. Harry had never
met either of them, but knew that Charlie was in Romania studying dragons and
Bill in Egypt working for the wizard's bank, Gringotts.
"Dunno how Mum and Dad are
going to afford all our school stuff this year," said George after a
while. "Five sets of Lockhart books! And Ginny needs robes and a wand and
everything..."
Harry said nothing. He felt a
bit awkward. Stored in an underground vault at Gringotts in London was a small
fortune that his parents had left him. Of course, it was only in the wizarding
world that he had money; you couldn't use Galleons, Sickles, and Knuts in
Muggle shops. He had never mentioned his Gringotts bank account to the
Dursleys; he didn't think their horror of anything connected with magic would
stretch to a large pile of gold.
Mrs. Weasley woke them all early
the following Wednesday. After a quick half a dozen bacon sandwiches each, they
pulled on their coats and Mrs. Weasley took a flowerpot off the kitchen
mantelpiece and peered inside.
"We're running low,
Arthur," she sighed. "We'll have to buy some more today...Ah well,
guests first! After you, Harry dear!"
And she offered him the
flowerpot.
Harry stared at them all
watching him.
"W-what am I supposed to
do?" he stammered.
"He's never traveled by
Floo powder," said Ron suddenly. "Sorry, Harry, I forgot."
"Never?" said Mr.
Weasley. "But how did you get to Diagon Alley to buy your school things
last year?"
"I went on the Underground
-"
"Really?" said Mr.
Weasley eagerly. "Were there escapators? How exactly -"
"Not now,
Arthur," said Mrs. Weasley. "Floo powder's a lot quicker, dear, but
goodness me, if you've never used it before -"
"He'll be all right,
Mum," said Fred. "Harry, watch us first."
He took a pinch of glittering
powder out of the flowerpot, stepped up to the fire, and threw the powder into
the flames.
With a roar, the fire turned
emerald green and rose higher than Fred, who stepped right into it, shouted,
"Diagon Alley!" and vanished.
"You must speak clearly,
dear," Mrs. Weasley told Harry as George dipped his hand into the
flowerpot. "And be sure to get out at the right grate..."
"The right what?" said
Harry nervously as the fire roared and whipped George out of sight, too.
"Well, there are an awful
lot of wizard fires to choose from, you know, but as long as you've spoken
clearly -"
"He'll be fine, Molly,
don't fuss," said Mr. Weasley, helping himself to Floo powder too.
"But, dear, if he got lost,
how would we ever explain to his aunt and uncle?"
"They wouldn't mind,"
Harry reassured her. "Dudley would think it was a brilliant joke if I got
lost up a chimney, don't worry about that -"
"Well...all right...you go
after Arthur," said Mrs. Weasley. "Now, when you get into the fire,
say where you're going."
"And keep your elbows
tucked in," Ron advised.
"And your eyes shut,"
said Mrs. Weasley. "The soot -"
"Don't fidget," said
Ron. "Or you might well fall out of the wrong fireplace -"
"But don't panic and get
out too early; wait until you see Fred and George."
Trying hard to bear all this in
mind, Harry took a pinch of Floo powder and walked to the edge of the fire. He
took a deep breath, scattered the powder into the flames, and stepped forward;
the fire felt like a warm breeze; he opened his mouth and immediately swallowed
a lot of hot ash.
"D-Dia-gon Alley," he
coughed.
It felt as though he was being
sucked down a giant drain. He seemed to be spinning very fast - the roaring in
his ears was deafening - he tried to keep his eyes open but the whirl of green
flames made him feel sick -something hard knocked his elbow and he tucked it in
tightly, still spinning and spinning - now it felt as though cold hands were
slapping his face - squinting through his glasses he saw a blurred stream of
fireplaces and snatched glimpses of the rooms beyond - his bacon sandwiches
were churning inside him - he closed his eyes again wishing it would stop, and
then...
He fell, face forward, onto cold
stone and felt the bridge of his glasses snap.
Dizzy and bruised, covered in
soot, he got gingerly to his feet, holding his broken glasses up to his eyes.
He was quite alone, but where he was, he had no idea. All he could tell was
that he was standing in the stone fireplace of what looked like a large, dimly
lit wizard's shop - but nothing in here was ever likely to be on a Hogwarts
school list.
A glass case nearby held a
withered hand on a cushion, a bloodstained pack of cards, and a staring glass
eye. Evil-looking masks stared down from the walls, an assortment of human
bones lay upon the counter, and rusty, spiked instruments hung from the
ceiling. Even worse, the dark, narrow street Harry could see through the dusty
shop window was definitely not Diagon Alley.
The sooner he got out of here,
the better. Nose still stinging where it had hit the hearth, Harry made his way
swiftly and silently toward the door, but before he'd got halfway toward it,
two people appeared on the other side of the glass - and one of them was the
very last person Harry wanted to meet when he was lost, covered in soot, and
wearing broken glasses: Draco Malfoy.
Harry looked quickly around and
spotted a large black cabinet to his left; he shot inside it and pulled the
doors closed, leaving a small crack to peer through. Seconds later, a bell
clanged, and Malfoy stepped into the shop.
The man who followed could only
be Draco's father. He had the same pale, pointed face and identical cold, gray
eyes. Mr. Malfoy crossed the shop, looking lazily at the items on display, and
rang a bell on the counter before turning to his son and saying, "Touch
nothing, Draco."
Malfoy, who had reached for the
glass eye, said, "I thought you were going to buy me a present."
"I said I would buy you a
racing broom," said his father, drumming his fingers on the counter.
"What's the good of that if
I'm not on the House team?" said Malfoy, looking sulky and bad-tempered.
"Harry Potter got a Nimbus Two Thousand last year. Special permission from
Dumbledore so he could play for Gryffindor. He's not even that good, it's just
because he's famous...famous for having a stupid scar on his
forehead..."
Malfoy bent down to examine a
shelf full of skulls.
"...everyone thinks he's so
smart, wonderful Potter with his scar and his broomstick
-" "You have told me this at least a dozen times
already," said Mr. Malfoy, with a quelling look at his son. "And I
would remind you that it is not - prudent - to appear less than fond of Harry
Potter, not when most of our kind regard him as the hero who made the Dark Lord
disappear - ah, Mr. Borgin."
A stooping man had appeared
behind the counter, smoothing his greasy hair back from his face.
"Mr. Malfoy, what a
pleasure to see you again," said Mr. Borgin in a voice as oily as his
hair. "Delighted - and young Master Malfoy, too - charmed. How may I be of
assistance? I must show you, just in today, and very reasonably priced -"
"I'm not buying today, Mr.
Borgin, but selling," said Mr. Malfoy.
"Selling?" The smile
faded slightly from Mr. Borgin's face.
"You have heard, of course,
that the Ministry is conducting more raids," said Mr. Malfoy, taking a
roll of parchment from his inside pocket and unraveling it for Mr. Borgin to
read. "I have a few - ah - items at home that might embarrass me, if the
Ministry were to call..."
Mr. Borgin fixed a pair of
pince-nez to his nose and looked down the list.
"The Ministry wouldn't
presume to trouble you, sir, surely?"
Mr. Malfoy's lip curled.
"I have not been visited
yet. The name Malfoy still commands a certain respect, yet the Ministry grows
ever more meddlesome. There are rumors about a new Muggle Protection Act - no
doubt that flea-bitten, Muggle-loving fool Arthur Weasley is behind it -"
Harry felt a hot surge of anger.
"- and as you see, certain
of these poisons might make it appear -" "I understand, sir, of course," said Mr. Borgin.
"Let me see..."
"Can I have that?"
interrupted Draco, pointing at the withered hand on its cushion.
"Ah, the Hand of
Glory!" said Mr. Borgin, abandoning Mr. Malfoy's list and scurrying over
to Draco. "Insert a candle and it gives light only to the holder! Best friend
of thieves and plunderers! Your son has fine taste, sir."
"I hope my son will amount
to more than a thief or a plunderer, Borgin," said Mr. Malfoy coldly, and
Mr. Borgin said quickly, "No offense, sir, no offense meant -"
"Though if his grades don't
pick up," said Mr. Malfoy, more coldly still, "that may indeed be all
he is fit for -"
"It's not my fault,"
retorted Draco. "The teachers all have favorites, that Hermione Granger
-"
"I would have thought you'd
be ashamed that a girl of no wizard family beat you in every exam,"
snapped Mr. Malfoy.
"Ha!" said Harry under
his breath, pleased to see Draco looking both abashed and angry.
"It's the same all
over," said Mr. Borgin, in his oily voice. "Wizard blood is counting
for less everywhere -"
"Not with me," said
Mr. Malfoy, his long nostrils flaring.
"No, sir, nor with me,
sir," said Mr. Borgin, with a deep bow.
"In that case, perhaps we
can return to my list," said Mr. Malfoy shortly. "I am in something
of a hurry, Borgin, I have important business elsewhere today -"
They started to haggle. Harry
watched nervously as Draco drew nearer and nearer to his hiding place,
examining the objects for sale. Draco paused to examine a long coil of
hangman's rope and to read, smirking, the card propped on a magnificent necklace
of opals, Caution: Do Not Touch. Cursed - Has Claimed the Lives of Nineteen
Muggle Owners to Date. Draco turned away and saw the cabinet right in front of
him. He walked forward - he stretched out his hand for the handle
"Done," said Mr. Malfoy at the counter. "Come, Draco -"
Harry wiped his forehead on his
sleeve as Draco turned away.
"Good day to you, Mr.
Borgin. I'll expect you at the manor tomorrow to pick up the goods."
The moment the door had closed,
Mr. Borgin dropped his oily manner.
"Good day yourself, Mister
Malfoy, and if the stories are true, you haven't sold me half of what's hidden
in your manor..." Muttering darkly, Mr. Borgin disappeared into a back room.
Harry waited for a minute in case he came back, then, quietly as he could,
slipped out of the cabinet, past the glass cases, and out of the shop door.
Clutching his broken glasses to
his face, Harry stared around. He had emerged into a dingy alleyway that seemed
to be made up entirely of shops devoted to the Dark Arts. The one he'd just
left, Borgin and Burkes, looked like the largest, but opposite was a nasty
window display of shrunken heads and, two doors down, a large cage was alive
with gigantic black spiders. Two shabby-looking wizards were watching him from
the shadow of a doorway, muttering to each other. Feeling jumpy, Harry set off,
trying to hold his glasses on straight and hoping against hope he'd be able to
find a way out of here.
An old wooden street sign
hanging over a shop selling poisonous candles told him he was in Knockturn
Alley. This didn't help, as Harry had never heard of such a place. He supposed
he hadn't spoken clearly enough through his mouthful of ashes back in the
Weasleys' fire. Trying to stay calm, he wondered what to do.
"Not lost are you, my
dear?" said a voice in his ear, making him jump.
An aged witch stood in front of
him, holding a tray of what looked horribly like whole human fingernails. She
leered at him, showing mossy teeth. Harry backed away.
"I'm fine, thanks," he
said. "I'm just -"
"HARRY! What d'yeh think
yer doin' down there?"
Harry's heart leapt. So did the
witch; a load of fingernails cascaded down over her feet and she cursed as the
massive form of Hagrid, the Hogwarts' gamekeeper, came striding toward them,
beetle-black eyes flashing over his great bristling beard.
"Hagrid!" Harry
croaked in relief. "I was lost - Floo powder -"
Hagrid seized Harry by the
scruff of the neck and pulled him away from the witch, knocking the tray right
out of her hands. Her shrieks followed them all the way along the twisting
alleyway out into bright sunlight. Harry saw a familiar, snow-white marble
building in the distance - Gringotts Bank. Hagrid had steered him right into
Diagon Alley.
"Yer a mess!" said
Hagrid gruffly, brushing soot off Harry so forcefully he nearly knocked him
into a barrel of dragon dung outside an apothecary. "Skulkin' around
Knockturn Alley, I dunno dodgy place, Harry - don' want no one ter see yeh down
there -"
"I realized that,"
said Harry, ducking as Hagrid made to brush him off again. "I told you, I
was lost - what were you doing down there, anyway?"
"I was lookin' fer a
Flesh-Eatin' Slug Repellent," growled Hagrid. "They're ruinin' the
school cabbages. Yer not on yer own?"
"I'm staying with the
Weasleys but we got separated," Harry explained. "I've got to go and
find them..."
They set off together down the
street.
"How come yeh never wrote
back ter me?" said Hagrid as Harry jogged alongside him (he had to take
three steps to every stride of Hagrid's enormous boots). Harry explained all
about Dobby and the Dursleys.
"Lousy Muggles,"
growled Hagrid. "If I'd've known -"
"Harry! Harry! Over
here!" Harry looked up and saw Hermione Granger standing at the
top of the white flight of steps to Gringotts. She ran down to meet them, her
bushy brown hair flying behind her.
"What happened to your
glasses? Hello, Hagrid - Oh, it's wonderful to see you two again - Are
you coming into Gringotts, Harry?"
"As soon as I've found the
Weasleys," said Harry.
"Yeh won't have long ter
wait," Hagrid said with a grin.
Harry and Hermione looked
around: Sprinting up the crowded street were Ron, Fred, George, Percy, and Mr.
Weasley.
"Harry," Mr. Weasley
panted. "We hoped you'd only gone one grate too far..." He
mopped his glistening bald patch. "Molly's frantic - she's coming now
-"
"Where did you come
out?" Ron asked.
"Knockturn Alley,"
said Hagrid grimly.
"Excellent!"
said Fred and George together. "We've never been allowed in," said Ron
enviously.
"I should ruddy well think
not," growled Hagrid. Mrs. Weasley now came galloping into view, her
handbag swinging wildly in one hand, Ginny just clinging onto the other.
"Oh, Harry - oh, my dear -
you could have been anywhere -"
Gasping for breath she pulled a
large clothes brush out of her bag and began sweeping off the soot Hagrid
hadn't managed to beat away. Mr. Weasley took Harry's glasses, gave them a tap
of his wand, and returned them, good as new.
"Well, gotta be off,"
said Hagrid, who was having his hand wrung by Mrs. Weasley ("Knockturn
Alley! If you hadn't found him, Hagrid!"). "See yer at
Hogwarts!" And he strode away, head and shoulders taller than anyone else
in the packed street.
"Guess who I saw in Borgin
and Burkes?" Harry asked Ron and Hermione as they climbed the Gringotts
steps. "Malfoy and his father."
"Did Lucius Malfoy buy
anything?" said Mr. Weasley sharply behind them.
"No, he was selling -"
"So he's worried,"
said Mr. Weasley with grim satisfaction. "Oh, I'd love to get Lucius
Malfoy for something ..."
"You be careful,
Arthur," said Mrs. Weasley sharply as they were bowed into the bank by a
goblin at the door. "That family's trouble. Don't go biting off more than
you can chew -"
"So you don't think I'm a
match for Lucius Malfoy?" said Mr. Weasley indignantly, but he was
distracted almost at once by the sight of Hermione's parents, who were standing
nervously at the counter that ran all along the great marble hall, waiting for
Hermione to introduce them.
"But you're Muggles!"
said Mr. Weasley delightedly. "We must have a drink! What's that you've
got there? Oh, you're changing Muggle money. Molly, look!" He pointed
excitedly at the ten-pound notes in Mr. Granger's hand.
"Meet you back here,"
Ron said to Hermione as the Weasleys and Harry were led off to their
underground vaults by another Gringotts goblin.
The vaults were reached by means
of small, goblin-driven carts that sped along miniature train tracks through
the bank's underground tunnels. Harry enjoyed the breakneck journey down to the
Weasleys' vault, but felt dreadful, far worse than he had in Knockturn Alley,
when it was opened. There was a very small pile of silver Sickles inside, and
just one gold Galleon. Mrs. Weasley felt right into the corners before sweeping
the whole lot into her bag. Harry felt even worse when they reached his vault.
He tried to block the contents from view as he hastily shoved handfuls of coins
into a leather bag.
Back outside on the marble
steps, they all separated. Percy muttered vaguely about needing a new quill.
Fred and George had spotted their friend from Hogwarts, Lee Jordan. Mrs.
Weasley and Ginny were going to a secondhand robe shop. Mr. Weasley was
insisting on taking the Grangers off to the Leaky Cauldron for a drink.
"We'll all meet at Flourish
and Blotts in an hour to buy your schoolbooks," said Mrs. Weasley, setting
off with Ginny. "And not one step down Knockturn Alley!" she shouted
at the twins' retreating backs.
Harry, Ron, and Hermione
strolled off along the winding, cobbled street. The bag of gold, silver, and
bronze jangling cheerfully in Harry's pocket was clamoring to be spent, so he
bought three large strawberry-and-peanut-butter ice creams, which they slurped
happily as they wandered up the alley, examining the fascinating shop windows.
Ron gazed longingly at a full set of Chudley Cannon robes in the windows of
Quality Quidditch Supplies until Hermione dragged them off to buy ink and
parchment next door. In Gambol and Japes Wizarding Joke Shop, they met Fred,
George, and Lee Jordan, who were stocking up on Dr. Filibuster's Fabulous
Wet-Start, No-Heat Fireworks, and in a tiny junk shop full of broken wands,
lopsided brass scales, and old cloaks covered in potion stains they found
Percy, deeply immersed in a small and deeply boring book called Prefects Who
Gained Power.
"A study of Hogwarts
prefects and their later careers,"
Ron read aloud off the back cover. "That sounds fascinating..." "Go away," Percy snapped.
"'Course, he's very
ambitious, Percy, he's got it all planned out...He wants to be Minister of
Magic..." Ron told Harry and Hermione in an undertone as they left Percy to
it.
An hour later, they headed for
Flourish and Blotts. They were by no means the only ones making their way to
the bookshop. As they approached it, they saw to their surprise a large crowd
jostling outside the doors, trying to get in. The reason for this was
proclaimed by a large banner stretched across the upper windows:
GILDEROY LOCKHART will be signing copies of his autobiography MAGICAL ME
today 12:30
P.M. to 4:30
P.M.
"We can actually meet
him!" Hermione squealed. "I mean, he's written almost the whole
booklist!"
The crowd seemed to be made up
mostly of witches around Mrs. Weasley's age. A harassed-looking wizard stood at
the door, saying, "Calmly, please, ladies...Don't push, there...mind the
books, now..."
Harry, Ron, and Hermione
squeezed inside. A long line wound right to the back of the shop, where
Gilderoy Lockhart was signing his books. They each grabbed a copy of The
Standard Book of Spells, Grade 2 and sneaked up the line to where the rest
of the Weasleys were standing with Mr. and Mrs. Granger.
"Oh, there you are,
good," said Mrs. Weasley. She sounded breathless and kept patting her
hair. "We'll be able to see him in a minute..."
Gilderoy Lockhart came slowly
into view, seated at a table surrounded by large pictures of his own face, all
winking and flashing dazzlingly white teeth at the crowd. The real Lockhart was
wearing robes of forget-me-not blue that exactly matched his eyes; his pointed
wizard's hat was set at a jaunty angle on his wavy hair.
A short, irritable-looking man
was dancing around taking photographs with a large black camera that emitted
puffs of purple smoke with every blinding flash.
"Out of the way,
there," he snarled at Ron, moving back to get a better shot. "This is
for the Daily Prophet -" "Big deal," said Ron, rubbing his foot where the
photographer had stepped on it.
Gilderoy Lockhart heard him. He
looked up. He saw Ron - and then he saw Harry. He stared. Then he leapt to his
feet and positively shouted, "It can't be Harry Potter?"
The crowd parted, whispering excitedly;
Lockhart dived forward, seized Harry's arm, and pulled him to the front. The
crowd burst into applause. Harry's face burned as Lockhart shook his hand for
the photographer, who was clicking away madly, wafting thick smoke over the
Weasleys.
"Nice big smile,
Harry," said Lockhart, through his own gleaming teeth. "Together, you
and I are worth the front page."
When he finally let go of
Harry's hand, Harry could hardly feel his fingers. He tried to sidle back over
to the Weasleys, but Lockhart threw an arm around his shoulders and clamped him
tightly to his side.
"Ladies and
gentlemen," he said loudly, waving for quiet. "What an extraordinary
moment this is! The perfect moment for me to make a little announcement I've
been sitting on for some time!
"When young Harry here
stepped into Flourish and Blotts today, he only wanted to buy my autobiography
- which I shall be happy to present him now, free of charge -" The crowd
applauded again. "He had no idea," Lockhart continued, giving
Harry a little shake that made his glasses slip to the end of his nose,
"that he would shortly be getting much, much more than my book, Magical
Me. He and his schoolmates will, in fact, be getting the real magical me.
Yes, ladies and gentlemen, I have great pleasure and pride in announcing that
this September, I will be taking up the post of Defense Against the Dark Arts
teacher at Hogwarts School of Witchcraft and Wizardry!"
The crowd cheered and clapped
and Harry found himself being presented with the entire works of Gilderoy Lockhart.
Staggering slightly under their weight, he managed to make his way out of the
limelight to the edge of the room, where Ginny was standing next to her new
cauldron.
"You have these,"
Harry mumbled to her, tipping the books into the cauldron. "I'll buy my
own -"
"Bet you loved that, didn't
you, Potter?" said a voice Harry had no trouble recognizing. He
straightened up and found himself face-to-face with Draco Malfoy, who was
wearing his usual sneer.
"Famous Harry
Potter," said Malfoy. "Can't even go into a bookshop without
making the front page."
"Leave him alone, he didn't
want all that!" said Ginny. It was the first time she had spoken in front
of Harry. She was glaring at Malfoy.
"Potter, you've got
yourself a girlfriend!" drawled Malfoy. Ginny went scarlet as Ron
and Hermione fought their way over, both clutching stacks of Lockhart's books.
"Oh, it's you," said
Ron, looking at Malfoy as if he were something unpleasant on the sole of his
shoe. "Bet you're surprised to see Harry here, eh?"
"Not as surprised as I am
to see you in a shop, Weasley," retorted Malfoy. "I suppose your
parents will go hungry for a month to pay for all those."
Ron went as red as Ginny. He
dropped his books into the cauldron, too, and started toward Malfoy, but Harry
and Hermione grabbed the back of his jacket.
"Ron!" said Mr.
Weasley, struggling over with Fred and George. "What are you doing? It's
too crowded in here, let's go outside."
"Well, well, well - Arthur
Weasley."
It was Mr. Malfoy. He stood with
his hand on Draco's shoulder, sneering in just the same way.
"Lucius," said Mr.
Weasley, nodding coldly.
"Busy time at the Ministry,
I hear," said Mr. Malfoy. "All those raids...I hope they're paying you
overtime?"
He reached into Ginny's cauldron
and extracted, from amid the glossy Lockhart books, a very old, very battered
copy of A Beginner's Guide to Transfiguration.
"Obviously not," Mr.
Malfoy said. "Dear me, what's the use of being a disgrace to the name of
wizard if they don't even pay you well for it?"
Mr. Weasley flushed darker than
either Ron or Ginny.
"We have a very different
idea of what disgraces the name of wizard, Malfoy," he said.
"Clearly," said Mr.
Malfoy, his pale eyes straying to Mr. and Mrs. Granger, who were watching
apprehensively. "The company you keep, Weasley...and I thought your family
could sink no lower."
There was a thud of metal as
Ginny's cauldron went flying; Mr. Weasley had thrown himself at Mr. Malfoy,
knocking him backward into a bookshelf. Dozens of heavy spellbooks came
thundering down on all their heads; there was a yell of, "Get him,
Dad!" from Fred or George; Mrs. Weasley was shrieking, "No, Arthur,
no!"; the crowd stampeded backward, knocking more shelves over;
"Gentlemen, please - please!" cried the assistant, and then, louder
than all -
"Break it up, there, gents,
break it up -"
Hagrid was wading toward them
through the sea of books. In an instant he had pulled Mr. Weasley and Mr.
Malfoy apart. Mr. Weasley had a cut lip and Mr. Malfoy had been hit in the eye
by an Encyclopedia of Toadstools. He was still holding Ginny's old
Transfiguration book. He thrust it at her, his eyes glittering with malice.
"Here, girl - take your
book - it's the best your father can give you -" Pulling himself out of
Hagrid's grip he beckoned to Draco and swept from the shop.
"Yeh should've ignored him,
Arthur," said Hagrid, almost lifting Mr. Weasley off his feet as he
straightened his robes. "Rotten ter the core, the whole family, everyone
knows that - no Malfoy's worth listenin' ter - bad blood, that's what it is - come
on now - let's get outta here."
The assistant looked as though
he wanted to stop them leaving, but he barely came up to Hagrid's waist and
seemed to think better of it. They hurried up the street, the Grangers shaking
with fright and Mrs. Weasley beside herself with fury.
"A fine example to set for
your children...brawling in public...what Gilderoy Lockhart must've
thought -"
"He was pleased," said
Fred. "Didn't you hear him as we were leaving? He was asking that bloke
from the Daily Prophet if he'd be able to work the fight into his report
- said it was all publicity -"
But it was a subdued group that
headed back to the fireside in the Leaky Cauldron, where Harry, the Weasleys,
and all their shopping would be traveling back to the Burrow using Floo powder.
They said good-bye to the Grangers, who were leaving the pub for the Muggle
street on the other side; Mr. Weasley started to ask them how bus stops worked,
but stopped quickly at the look on Mrs. Weasley's face.
Harry took off his glasses and
put them safely in his pocket before helping himself to Floo powder. It
definitely wasn't his favorite way to travel. CHAPTER FIVE THE WHOMPING WILLOW
The end of the summer vacation
came too quickly for Harry's liking. He was looking forward to getting back to
Hogwarts, but his month at the Burrow had been the happiest of his life. It was
difficult not to feel jealous of Ron when he thought of the Dursleys and the
sort of welcome he could expect next time he turned up on Privet Drive.
On their last evening, Mrs.
Weasley conjured up a sumptuous dinner that included all of Harry's favorite
things, ending with a mouthwatering treacle pudding. Fred and George rounded
off the evening with a display of Filibuster fireworks; they filled the kitchen
with red and blue stars that bounced from ceiling to wall for at least half an
hour. Then it was time for a last mug of hot chocolate and bed.
It took a long while to get
started next morning. They were up at dawn, but somehow they still seemed to
have a great deal to do. Mrs. Weasley dashed about in a bad mood looking for
spare socks and quills; people kept colliding on the stairs, half-dressed with
bits of toast in their hands; and Mr. Weasley nearly broke his neck, tripping
over a stray chicken as he crossed the yard carrying Ginny's trunk to the car.
Harry couldn't see how eight
people, six large trunks, two owls, and a rat were going to fit into one small
Ford Anglia. He had reckoned, of course, without the special features that Mr.
Weasley had added.
"Not a word to Molly,"
he whispered to Harry as he opened the. trunk and showed him how it had been
magically expanded so that the luggage fitted easily.
When at last they were all in
the car, Mrs. Weasley glanced into the back seat, where Harry, Ron, Fred,
George, and Percy were all sitting comfortably side by side, and said,
"Muggles do know more than we give them credit for, don't
they?" She and Ginny got into the front seat, which had been stretched so
that it resembled a park bench. "I mean, you'd never know it was this
roomy from the outside, would you?"
Mr. Weasley started up the
engine and they trundled out of the yard, Harry turning back for a last look at
the house. He barely had time to wonder when he'd see it again when they were
back. George had forgotten his box of Filibuster fireworks. Five minutes after
that, they skidded to a halt in the yard so that Fred could run in for his
broomstick. They had almost reached the highway when Ginny shrieked that she'd
left her diary. By the time she had clambered back into the car, they were
running very late, and tempers were running high.
Mr. Weasley glanced at his watch
and then at his wife.
"Molly, dear -"
"No, Arthur -"
"No one would see - this
little button here is an Invisibility Booster I installed - that'd get us up in
the air - then we fly above the clouds. We'd be there in ten minutes and no one
would be any the wiser -"
"I said no, Arthur, not in
broad daylight -"
They reached King's Cross at a
quarter to eleven. Mr. Weasley dashed across the road to get trolleys for their
trunks and they all hurried into the station.
Harry had caught the Hogwarts
Express the previous year. The tricky part was getting onto platform nine and
three-quarters, which wasn't visible to the Muggle eye. What you had to do was
walk through the solid barrier dividing platforms nine and ten. It didn't hurt,
but it had to be done carefully so that none of the Muggles noticed you
vanishing.
"Percy first," said
Mrs. Weasley, looking nervously at the clock overhead, which showed they had
only five minutes to disappear casually through the barrier.
Percy strode briskly forward and
vanished. Mr. Weasley went next; Fred and George followed.
"I'll take Ginny and you
two come right after us," Mrs. Weasley told Harry and Ron, grabbing
Ginny's hand and setting off. In the blink of an eye they were gone.
"Let's go together, we've
only got a minute," Ron said to Harry.
Harry made sure that Hedwig's
cage was safely wedged on top of his trunk and wheeled his trolley around to
face the barrier. He felt perfectly confident; this wasn't nearly as
uncomfortable as using Floo powder. Both of them bent low over the handles of
their trolleys and walked purposefully toward the barrier, gathering speed. A
few feet away from it, they broke into a run and -
CRASH.
Both trolleys hit the barrier
and bounced backward; Ron's trunk fell off with a loud thump, Harry was knocked
off his feet, and Hedwig's cage bounced onto the shiny floor, and she rolled
away, shrieking indignantly; people all around them stared and a guard nearby
yelled, "What in blazes d'you think you're doing?"
"Lost control of the
trolley," Harry gasped, clutching his ribs as he got up. Ron ran to pick
up Hedwig, who was causing such a scene that there was a lot of muttering about
cruelty to animals from the surrounding crowd.
"Why can't we get
through?" Harry hissed to Ron.
"I dunno -"
Ron looked wildly around. A
dozen curious people were still watching them.
"We're going to miss the
train," Ron whispered. "I don't understand why the gateway's sealed
itself -"
Harry looked up at the giant
clock with a sickening feeling in the pit of his stomach. Ten seconds...nine
seconds ...
He wheeled his trolley forward
cautiously until it was right against the barrier and pushed with all his
might. The metal remained solid.
Three seconds...two seconds...one
second...
"It's gone," said Ron,
sounding stunned. "The train's left. What if Mum and Dad can't get back
through to us? Have you got any Muggle money?"
Harry gave a hollow laughed.
"The Dursleys haven't given me pocket money for about six years."
Ron pressed his ear to the cold
barrier.
"Can't hear a thing,"
he said tensely, "What're we going to do? I don't know how long it'll take
Mum and Dad to get back to us."
They looked around. People were
still watching them, mainly because of Hedwig's continuing screeches.
"I think we'd better go and
wait by the car," said Harry. "We're attracting too much atten
-"
"Harry!" said Ron, his
eyes gleaming. "The car!"
"What about it?"
"We can fly the car to
Hogwarts!"
"But I thought -"
"We're stuck, right? And
we've got to get to school, haven't we? And even underage wizards are allowed
to use magic if it's a real emergency, section nineteen or something of the
Restriction of Thingy -"
"But your Mum and
Dad..." said Harry, pushing against the barrier again in the vain hope that
it would give way. "How will they get home?"
"They don't need the
car!" said Ron impatiently. "They know how to Apparate! You know,
just vanish and reappear at home! They only bother with Floo powder and the car
because we're all underage and we're not allowed to Apparate yet..." Harry's feeling of
panic turned suddenly to excitement.
"Can you fly it?"
"No, problem," said
Ron, wheeling his trolley around to face the exit. "C'mon, let's go. If we
hurry we'll be able to follow the Hogwarts Express -"
And they marched off through the
crowd of curious Muggles, out of the station and back onto the side road where
the old Ford Anglia was parked.
Ron unlocked the cavernous trunk
with a series of taps from his wand. They heaved their luggage back in, put
Hedwig on the back seat, and got into the front.
"Check that no one's
watching," said Ron, starting the ignition with another tap of his wand.
Harry stuck his head out of the window: Traffic was rumbling along the main
road ahead, but their street was empty.
"Okay," he said.
Ron pressed a tiny silver button
on the dashboard. The car around them vanished - and so did they. Harry could
feel the seat vibrating beneath him, hear the engine, feel his hands on his
knees and his glasses on his nose, but for all he could see, he had become a
pair of eyeballs, floating a few feet above the ground in a dingy street full
of parked cars.
"Let's go," said Ron's
voice from his right.
And the ground and the dirty
buildings on either side fell away, dropping out of sight as the car rose; in
seconds, the whole of London lay, smoky and glittering, below them.
Then there was a popping noise
and the car, Harry, and Ron reappeared.
"Uh-oh," said Ron,
jabbing at the Invisibility Booster. "It's faulty -"
Both of them pummeled it. The
car vanished. Then it flickered back again.
"Hold on!" Ron yelled,
and he slammed his foot on the accelerator; they shot straight into the low,
woolly clouds and everything turned dull and foggy.
"Now what?" said
Harry, blinking at the solid mass of cloud pressing in on them from all sides.
"We need to see the train
to know what direction to go in," said Ron.
"Dip back down again -
quickly -"
They dropped back beneath the
clouds and twisted around in their seats, squinting at the ground.
"I can see it!" Harry
yelled. "Right ahead - there!"
The Hogwarts Express was
streaking along below them like a scarlet snake.
"Due north," said Ron,
checking the compass on the dashboard. "Okay, we'll just have to check on
it every half hour or so - hold on -"
And they shot up through the
clouds. A minute later, they burst out into a blaze of sunlight.
It was a different world. The
wheels of the car skimmed the sea of fluffy cloud, the sky a bright, endless
blue under the blinding white sun.
"All we've got to worry
about now are airplanes," said Ron.
They looked at each other and
started to laugh; for a long time, they couldn't stop.
It was as though they had been
plunged into a fabulous dream. This, thought Harry, was surely the only way to
travel - past swirls and turrets of snowy cloud, in a car full of hot, bright
sunlight, with a fat pack of toffees in the glove compartment, and the prospect
of seeing Fred's and George's jealous faces when they landed smoothly and
spectacularly on the sweeping lawn in front of Hogwarts castle.
They made regular checks on the
train as they flew farther and farther north, each dip beneath the clouds
showing them a different view. London was soon far behind them, replaced by
neat green fields that gave way in turn to wide, purplish moors, a great city
alive with cars like multicolored ants, villages with tiny toy churches.
Several uneventful hours later,
however, Harry had to admit that some of the fun was wearing off. The toffees
had made them extremely thirsty and they had nothing to drink. He and Ron had
pulled off their sweaters, but Harry's T-shirt was sticking to the back of his
seat and his glasses kept sliding down to the end of his sweaty nose. He had
stopped noticing the fantastic cloud shapes now and was thinking longingly of
the train miles below, where you could buy ice-cold pumpkin juice from a
trolley pushed by a plump witch. Why hadn't they been able to get onto
platform nine and three-quarters? "Can't be much further, can it?" croaked Ron,
hours later still, as the sun started to sink into their floor of cloud,
staining it a deep pink. "Ready for another check on the train?"
It was still right below them,
winding its way past a snowcapped mountain. It was much darker beneath the
canopy of clouds.
Ron put his foot on the
accelerator and drove them upward again, but as he did so, the engine began to
whine.
Harry and Ron exchanged nervous
glances.
"It's probably just
tired," said Ron. "It's never been this far before..."
And they both pretended not to
notice the whining growing louder and louder as the sky became steadily darker.
Stars were blossoming in the blackness. Harry pulled his sweater back on,
trying to ignore the way the windshield wipers were now waving feebly, as
though in protest.
"Not far," said Ron,
more to the car than to Harry, "not far now," and he patted the
dashboard nervously.
When they flew back beneath the
clouds a little while later, they had to squint through the darkness for a
landmark they knew.
"There!" Harry
shouted, making Ron and Hedwig jump. "Straight ahead!"
Silhouetted on the dark horizon,
high on the cliff over the lake, stood the many turrets and towers of Hogwarts
castle.
But the car had begun to shudder
and was losing speed.
"Come on," Ron said
cajolingly, giving the steering wheel a little shake, "nearly there, come
on -"
The engine groaned. Narrow jets
of steam were issuing from under the hood. Harry found himself gripping the
edges of his seat very hard as they flew toward the lake.
The car gave a nasty wobble.
Glancing out of his window, Harry saw the smooth, black, glassy surface of the
water, a mile below. Ron's knuckles were white on the steering wheel. The car
wobbled again.
"Come on," Ron
muttered.
They were over the lake - the
castle was right ahead - Ron put his foot down.
There was a loud clunk, a
splutter, and the engine died completely.
"Uh-oh," said Ron,
into the silence.
The nose of the car dropped.
They were falling, gathering speed, heading straight for the solid castle wall.
"Noooooo!"
Ron yelled, swinging the
steering wheel around; they missed the dark stone wall by inches as the car
turned in a great arc, soaring over the dark greenhouses, then the vegetable
patch, and then out over the black lawns, losing altitude all the time.
Ron let go of the steering wheel
completely and pulled his wand out of his back pocket -
"STOP! STOP!" he
yelled, whacking the dashboard and the windshield, but they were still
plummeting, the ground flying up toward them -
"WATCH OUT FOR THAT
TREE!" Harry bellowed, lunging for the steering wheel, but too late -
CRUNCH.
With an earsplitting bang of
metal on wood, they hit the thick tree trunk and dropped to the ground with a
heavy jolt. Steam was billowing from under the crumpled hood; Hedwig was
shrieking in terror; a golfball-size lump was throbbing on Harry's head where
he had hit the windshield; and to his right, Ron let out a low, despairing
groan.
"Are you okay?" Harry
said urgently.
"My wand," said Ron,
in a shaky voice. "Look at my wand -"
It had snapped, almost in two;
the tip was dangling limply, held on by a few splinters.
Harry opened his mouth to say he
was sure they'd be able to mend it up at the school, but he never even got
started. At that very moment, something hit his side of the car with the force
of a charging bull, sending him lurching sideways into Ron, just as an equally
heavy blow hit the roof.
"What's happen -?"
Ron gasped, staring through the
windshield, and Harry looked around just in time to see a branch as thick as a
python smash into it. The tree they had hit was attacking them. Its trunk was
bent almost double, and its gnarled boughs were pummeling every inch of the car
it could reach.
"Aaargh!" said Ron as
another twisted limb punched a large dent into his door; the windshield was now
trembling under a hail of blows from knuckle-like twigs and a branch as thick
as a battering ram was pounding furiously on the roof, which seemed to be
caving in.
"Run for it!" Ron
shouted, throwing his full weight against his door, but next second he had been
knocked backward into Harry's lap by a vicious uppercut from another branch.
"We're done for!" he
moaned as the ceiling sagged, but suddenly the floor of the car was vibrating -
the engine had restarted.
"Reverse!"
Harry yelled, and the car shot backward; the tree was still trying to hit them;
they could hear its roots creaking as it almost ripped itself up, lashing out
at them as they sped out of reach.
"That," panted Ron,
"was close. Well done, car -"
The car, however, had reached
the end of its tether. With two sharp clunks, the doors flew open and Harry
felt his seat tip sideways: Next thing he knew he was sprawled on the damp
ground. Loud thuds told him that the car was ejecting their luggage from the
trunk; Hedwig's cage flew through the air and burst open; she rose out of it
with an angry screech and sped off toward the castle without a backward look.
Then, dented, scratched, and steaming, the car rumbled off into the darkness,
its rear lights blazing angrily.
"Come back!" Ron
yelled after it, brandishing his broken wand. "Dad'll kill me!"
But the car disappeared from
view with one last snort from its exhaust.
"Can you believe our
luck?" said Ron miserably, bending down to pick up Scabbers. "Of all
the trees we could've hit, we had to get one that hits back."
He glanced over his shoulder at
the ancient tree, which was still flailing its branches threateningly. "Come on," said Harry wearily, "we'd better
get up to the school..."
It wasn't at all the triumphant
arrival they had pictured. Stiff, cold, and bruised, they seized the ends of their
trunks and began dragging them up the grassy slope, toward the great oak front
doors.
"I think the feast's
already started," said Ron, dropping his trunk at the foot of the front
steps and crossing quietly to look through a brightly lit window. "Hey -
Harry - come and look - it's the Sorting!"
Harry hurried over and,
together, he and Ron peered in at the Great Hall.
Innumerable candles were
hovering in midair over four long, crowded tables, making the golden plates and
goblets sparkle. Overhead, the bewitched ceiling, which always mirrored the sky
outside, sparkled with stars.
Through the forest of pointed
black Hogwarts hats, Harry saw a long line of scared-looking first years filing
into the Hall. Ginny was among them, easily visible because of her vivid
Weasley hair. Meanwhile, Professor McGonagall, a bespectacled witch with her
hair in a tight bun, was placing the famous Hogwarts Sorting Hat on a stool
before the newcomers.
Every year, this aged old hat,
patched, frayed, and dirty, sorted new students into the four Hogwarts houses
(Gryffindor, Hufflepuff, Ravenclaw, and Slytherin). Harry well remembered
putting it on, exactly one year ago, and waiting, petrified, for its decision
as it muttered aloud in his ear. For a few horrible seconds he had feared that
the hat was going to put him in Slytherin, the house that had turned out more
Dark witches and wizards than any other but he had ended up in Gryffindor,
along with Ron, Hermione, and the rest of the Weasleys. Last term, Harry and
Ron had helped Gryffindor win the House Championship, beating Slytherin for the
first time in seven years.
A very small, mousy-haired boy
had been called forward to place the hat on his head. Harry's eyes wandered
past him to where Professor Dumbledore, the headmaster, sat watching the
Sorting from the staff table, his long silver beard and half-moon glasses
shining brightly in the candlelight. Several seats along, Harry saw Gilderoy
Lockhart, dressed in robes of aquamarine. And there at the end was Hagrid, huge
and hairy, drinking deeply from his goblet.
"Hang on..." Harry
muttered to Ron. "There's an empty chair at the staff table...Where's
Snape?"
Professor Severus Snape was
Harry's least favorite teacher. Harry also happened to be Snape's least
favorite student. Cruel, sarcastic, and disliked by everybody except the
students from his own house (Slytherin), Snape taught Potions.
"Maybe he's ill!" said
Ron hopefully.
"Maybe he's left,"
said Harry, "because he missed out on the Defense Against Dark Arts job again!"
"Or he might have been sacked!"
said Ron enthusiastically. "I mean, everyone hates him -" "Or maybe," said a very cold voice right behind
them, "he's waiting to hear why you two didn't arrive on the school
train."
Harry spun around. There, his
black robes rippling in a cold breeze, stood Severus Snape. He was a thin man
with sallow skin, a hooked nose, and greasy, shoulder-length black hair, and at
this moment, he was smiling in a way that told Harry he and Ron were in very
deep trouble.
"Follow me," said
Snape.
Not daring even to look at each
other, Harry and Ron followed Snape up the steps into the vast, echoing
entrance hall, which was lit with flaming torches. A delicious smell of food
was wafting from the Great Hall, but Snape led them away from the warmth and
light, down a narrow stone staircase that led into the dungeons.
"In!" he said, opening
a door halfway down the cold passageway and pointing.
They entered Snape's office,
shivering. The shadowy walls were lined with shelves of large glass jars, in
which floated all manner of revolting things Harry didn't really want to know
the name of at the moment. The fireplace was dark and empty. Snape closed the
door and turned to look at them.
"So," he said softly,
"the train isn't good enough for the famous Harry Potter and his faithful
sidekick Weasley. Wanted to arrive with a bang, did we, boys?"
"No, sir, it was the
barrier at King's Cross, it -"
"Silence!" said Snape
coldly. "What have you done with the car?" Ron gulped. This wasn't
the first time Snape had given Harry the impression of being able to read
minds. But a moment later, he understood, as Snape unrolled today's issue of
the Evening Prophet. "You were seen," he hissed, showing them
the headline: FLYING FORD ANGLIA MYSTIFIES MUGGLES. He began to read
aloud: "Two Muggles in London, convinced they saw an old car flying over
the Post Office tower...at noon in Norfolk, Mrs. Hetty Bayliss, while hanging out
her washing...Mr. Angus Fleet, of Peebles, reported to police...Six or seven
Muggles in all. I believe your father works in the Misuse of Muggle Artifacts
Office?" he said, looking up at Ron and smiling still more nastily.
"Dear, dear...his own son..."
Harry felt as though he'd just
been walloped in the stomach by one of the mad tree's larger branches. If
anyone found out Mr. Weasley had bewitched the car...he hadn't thought of that...
"I noticed, in my search of
the park, that considerable damage seems to have been done to a very valuable
Whomping Willow," Snape went on.
"That tree did more damage
to us than we -" Ron blurted out.
"Silence!"
snapped Snape again. "Most unfortunately, you are not in my House and the
decision to expel you does not rest with me. I shall go and fetch the people
who do have that happy power. You will wait here." Harry and Ron stared at each other, white-faced. Harry
didn't feel hungry any more. He now felt extremely sick. He tried not to look
at a large, slimy something suspended in green liquid on a shelf behind Snape's
desk. If Snape had gone to fetch Professor McGonagall, head of Gryffindor
House, they were hardly any better off. She might be fairer than Snape, but she
was still extremely strict.
Ten minutes later, Snape
returned, and sure enough it was Professor McGonagall who accompanied him.
Harry had seen Professor McGonagall angry on several occasions, but either he
had forgotten just how thin her mouth could go, or he had never seen her this
angry before. She raised her wand the moment she entered; Harry and Ron both
flinched, but she merely pointed it at the empty fireplace, where flames suddenly
erupted.
"Sit," she said, and
they both backed into chairs by the fire.
"Explain," she said,
her glasses glinting ominously.
Ron launched into the story,
starting with the barrier at the station refusing to let them through.
"- so we had no choice,
Professor, we couldn't get on the train."
"Why didn't you send us a
letter by owl? I believe you have an owl?" Professor McGonagall
said coldly to Harry.
Harry gaped at her. Now she said
it, that seemed the obvious thing to have done.
"I - I didn't think -"
"That," said Professor
McGonagall, "is obvious."
There was a knock on the office
door and Snape, now looking happier than ever, opened it. There stood the
headmaster, Professor Dumbledore.
Harry's whole body went numb.
Dumbledore was looking unusually grave. He stared down his very crooked nose at
them, and Harry suddenly found himself wishing he and Ron were still being
beaten up by the Whomping Willow.
There was a long silence. Then
Dumbledore said, "Please explain why you did this."
It would have been better if he
had shouted. Harry hated the disappointment in his voice. For some reason, he
was unable to look Dumbledore in the eyes, and spoke instead to his knees. He
told Dumbledore everything except that Mr. Weasley owned the bewitched car,
making it sound as though he and Ron had happened to find a flying car parked
outside the station. He knew Dumbledore would see through this at once, but
Dumbledore asked no questions about the car. When Harry had finished, he merely
continued to peer at them through his spectacles.
"We'll go and get our
stuff," said Ron in a hopeless sort of voice.
"What are you talking
about, Weasley?" barked Professor McGonagall.
"Well, you're expelling us,
aren't you?" said Ron.
Harry looked quickly at
Dumbledore.
"Not today, Mr. Weasley,"
said Dumbledore. "But I must impress upon both of you the seriousness of
what you have done. I will be writing to both your families tonight. I must
also warn you that if you do anything like this again, I will have no choice
but to expel you."
Snape looked as though Christmas
had been canceled. He cleared his throat and said, "Professor Dumbledore,
these boys have flouted the Decree for the Restriction of Underage Wizardry,
caused serious damage to an old and valuable tree - surely acts of this nature
-"
"It will be for Professor
McGonagall to decide on these boys' punishments, Severus," said Dumbledore
calmly. "They are in her House and are therefore her responsibility."
He turned to Professor McGonagall. "I must go back to the feast, Minerva,
I've got to give out a few notices. Come, Severus, there's a delicious-looking
custard tart I want to sample -"
Snape shot a look of pure venom
at Harry and Ron as he allowed himself to be swept out of his office, leaving
them alone with Professor McGonagall, who was still eyeing them like a wrathful
eagle.
"You'd better get along to
the hospital wing, Weasley, you're bleeding."
"Not much," said Ron,
hastily wiping the cut over his eye with his sleeve.
"Professor, I wanted to
watch my sister being Sorted -"
"The Sorting Ceremony is
over," said Professor McGonagall. "Your sister is also in
Gryffindor."
"Oh, good," said Ron.
"And speaking of Gryffindor
-" Professor McGonagall said sharply, but Harry cut in: "Professor,
when we took the car, term hadn't started, so - so Gryffindor shouldn't really
have points taken from it - should it?" he finished, watching her
anxiously.
Professor McGonagall gave him a
piercing look, but he was sure she had almost smiled. Her mouth looked less
thin, anyway.
"I will not take any points
from Gryffindor," she said, and Harry's heart lightened considerably.
"But you will both get a detention." It was better than Harry had
expected. As for Dumbledore's writing to the Dursleys, that was nothing. Harry
knew perfectly well they'd just be disappointed that the Whomping Willow hadn't
squashed him flat.
Professor McGonagall raised her
wand again and pointed it at Snape's desk. A large plate of sandwiches, two
silver goblets, and a jug of iced pumpkin juice appeared with a pop.
"You will eat in here and
then go straight up to your dormitory," she said. "I must also return
to the feast."
When the door had closed behind
her, Ron let out a long, low whistle.
"I thought we'd had
it," he said, grabbing a sandwich.
"So did I," said
Harry, taking one, too.
"Can you believe our luck,
though?" said Ron thickly through a mouthful of chicken and ham.
"Fred and George must've flown that car five or six times and no Muggle
ever saw them." He swallowed and took another huge bite. "Why
couldn't we get through the barrier?" Harry shrugged. "We'll have to watch our step from
now on, though," he said, taking a grateful swig of pumpkin juice.
"Wish we could've gone up to the feast..."
"She didn't want us showing
off," said Ron sagely. "Doesn't want people to think it's clever,
arriving by flying car."
When they had eaten as many
sandwiches as they could (the plate kept refilling itself) they rose and left
the office, treading the familiar path to Gryffindor Tower. The castle was
quiet; it seemed that the feast was over. They walked past muttering portraits
and creaking suits of armor, and climbed narrow flights of stone stairs, until
at last they reached the passage where the secret entrance to Gryffindor Tower
was hidden, behind an oil painting of a very fat woman in a pink silk dress.
"Password?" she said
as they approached.
"Er -" said Harry.
They didn't know the new year's
password, not having met a Gryffindor prefect yet, but help came almost
immediately; they heard hurrying feet behind them and turned to see Hermione
dashing toward them.
"There you are!
Where have you been? The most ridiculous rumors - someone said
you'd been expelled for crashing a flying car!"
"Well, we haven't been
expelled," Harry assured her.
"You're not telling me you did
fly here?" said Hermione, sounding almost as severe as Professor
McGonagall.
"Skip the lecture,"
said Ron impatiently, "and tell us the new password."
"It's 'wattlebird,'"
said Hermione impatiently, "but that's not the point -"
Her words were cut short,
however, as the portrait of the fat lady swung open and there was a sudden
storm of clapping. It looked as though the whole of Gryffindor House was still
awake, packed into the circular common room, standing on the lopsided tables
and squashy armchairs, waiting for them to arrive. Arms reached through the
portrait hole to pull Harry and Ron inside, leaving Hermione to scramble in
after them.
"Brilliant!" yelled
Lee Jordan. "Inspired! What an entrance! Flying a car right into the
Whomping Willow, people'll be talking about that one for years -"
"Good for you," said a
fifth year Harry had never spoken to; someone was patting him on the back as
though he'd just won a marathon; Fred and George pushed their way to the front
of the crowd and said together, "Why couldn't we've come in the car,
eh?"
Ron was scarlet in the face,
grinning embarrassedly, but Harry could see one person who didn't look happy at
all. Percy was visible over the heads of some excited first years, and he
seemed to be trying to get near enough to start telling them off. Harry nudged
Ron in the ribs and nodded in Percy's direction. Ron got the point at once.
"Got to get upstairs - bit
tired," he said, and the two of them started pushing their way toward the
door on the other side of the room, which led to a spiral staircase and the
dormitories.
"'Night," Harry called
back to Hermione, who was wearing a scowl just like Percy's.
They managed to get to the other
side of the common room, still having their backs slapped, and gained the peace
of the staircase. They hurried up it, right to the top, and at last reached the
door of their old dormitory, which now had a sign on it saying SECOND YEARS.
They entered the familiar, circular room, with its five four-posters hung with
red velvet and its high, narrow windows. Their trunks had been brought up for
them and stood at the ends of their beds.
Ron grinned guiltily at Harry.
"I know I shouldn't've
enjoyed that or anything, but..."
The dormitory door flew open and
in came the other second year Gryffindor boys, Seamus Finnigan, Dean Thomas,
and Neville Longbottom.
"Unbelievable!"
beamed Seamus.
"Cool," said Dean.
"Amazing," said
Neville, awestruck. Harry couldn't help it. He grinned, too. CHAPTER SIX GILDEROY LOCKHART
The next day, however, Harry
barely grinned once. Things started to go downhill from breakfast in the Great
Hall. The four long house tables were laden with tureens of porridge, plates of
kippers, mountains of toast, and dishes of eggs and bacon, beneath the
enchanted ceiling (today, a dull, cloudy gray). Harry and Ron sat down at the
Gryffindor table next to Hermione, who had her copy of Voyages with Vampires
propped open against a milk jug. There was a slight stiffness in the way she
said "Morning," which told Harry that she was still disapproving of
the way they had arrived. Neville Longbottom, on the other hand, greeted them
cheerfully. Neville was a round-faced and accident-prone boy with the worst
memory of anyone Harry had ever met.
"Mail's due any minute - I
think Gran's sending a few things I forgot." Harry had only just started his porridge when, sure
enough, there was a rushing sound overhead and a hundred or so owls streamed
in, circling the hall and dropping letters and packages into the chattering
crowd. A big, lumpy package bounced off Neville's head and, a second later,
something large and gray fell into Hermione's jug, spraying them all with milk
and feathers.
"Errol!" said Ron,
pulling the bedraggled owl out by the feet. Errol slumped, Unconscious, onto
the table, his legs in the air and a damp red envelope in his beak.
"Oh, no -" Ron gasped.
"It's all right, he's still
alive," said Hermione, prodding Errol gently with the tip of her finger.
"It's not that - it's that."
Ron was pointing at the red
envelope. It looked quite ordinary to Harry, but Ron and Neville were both
looking at it as though they expected it to explode.
"What's the matter?"
said Harry.
"She's - she's sent me a
Howler," said Ron faintly.
"You'd better open it,
Ron," said Neville in a timid whisper. "It'll be worse if you Don't
My gran sent me one once, and I ignored it and" - he gulped -"it was
horrible."
Harry looked from their
petrified faces to the red envelope.
"What's a Howler?" he
said.
But Ron's whole attention was
fixed on the letter, which had begun to smoke at the corners.
"Open it," Neville
urged. "It'll all be over in a few minutes -"
Ron stretched out a shaking
hand, eased the envelope from Errol's beak, and slit it open. Neville stuffed
his fingers in his ears. A split second later, Harry knew why. He thought for a
moment it had exploded; a roar of sound filled the huge hall, shaking
dust from the ceiling.
"-STEALING THE CAR, I
WOULDN'T HAVE BEEN SURPRISED IF THEY'D EXPELLED YOU, YOU WAIT TILL I GET HOLD
OF YOU, I DON'T SUPPOSE YOU STOPPED TO THINK WHAT YOUR FATHER AND I WENT THROUGH
WHEN WE SAW IT WAS GONE -"
Mrs. Weasleys yells, a hundred
times louder than usual, made the plates and spoons rattle on the table, and
echoed deafeningly off the stone walls. People throughout the hall were
swiveling around to see who had received the Howler, and Ron sank so low in his
chair that only his crimson forehead could be seen.
"-LETTER FROM DUMBLEDORE
LAST NIGHT, I THOUGHT YOUR FATHER WOULD DIE OF SHAME, WE DIDN'T BRING YOU UP TO
BEHAVE LIKE THIS, YOU AND HARRY COULD BOTH HAVE DIED -"
Harry had been wondering when
his name was going to crop up. He tried very hard to look as though he couldn't
hear the voice that was making his eardrums throb.
"-ABSOLUTELY DISGUSTED -
YOUR FATHER'S FACING AN INQUIRY AT WORK, IT'S ENTIRELY YOUR FAULT AND IF YOU PUT
ANOTHER TOE OUT OF LINE WE'LL BRING YOU STRAIGHT BACK HOME."
A ringing silence fell. The red
envelope, which had dropped from Ron's hand, burst into flames and curled into
ashes. Harry and Ron sat stunned, as though a tidal wave had just passed over
them. A few people laughed and, gradually, a babble of talk broke out again.
Hermione closed Voyages with
Vampires and looked down at the top of Ron's head.
"Well, I don't know what
you expected, Ron, but you -"
"Don't tell me I deserved
it," snapped Ron.
Harry pushed his porridge away.
His insides were burning with guilt. Mr. Weasley was facing an inquiry at work.
After all Mr. and Mrs. Weasley had done for him over the summer...
But he had no time to dwell on
this; Professor McGonagall was moving along the Gryffindor table, handing out
course schedules. Harry took his and saw that they had double Herbology with
the Hufflepuffs first.
Harry, Ron, and Hermione left
the castle together, crossed the vegetable patch, and made for the greenhouses,
where the magical plants were kept. At least the Howler had done one good
thing: Hermione seemed to think they had now been punished enough and was being
perfectly friendly again.
As they neared the greenhouses
they saw the rest of the class standing outside, waiting for Professor Sprout.
Harry, Ron, and Hermione had only just joined them when she came striding into
view across the lawn, accompanied by Gilderoy Lockhart. Professor Sprout's arms
were full of bandages, and with another twinge of guilt, Harry spotted the
Whomping Willow in the distance, several of its branches now in slings.
Professor Sprout was a squat
little witch who wore a patched hat over her flyaway hair; there was usually a
large amount of earth on her clothes and her fingernails would have made Aunt
Petunia faint. Gilderoy Lockhart, however, was immaculate in sweeping robes of
turquoise, his golden hair shining under a perfectly positioned turquoise hat
with gold trimming.
"Oh, hello there!" he
called, beaming around at the assembled students. "Just been showing
Professor Sprout the right way to doctor a Whomping Willow! But I don't want
you running away with the idea that I'm better at Herbology than she is! I just
happen to have met several of these exotic plants on my travels..."
"Greenhouse three today, chaps!"
said Professor Sprout, who was looking distinctly disgruntled, not at all her
usual cheerful self.
There was a murmur of interest.
They had only ever worked in greenhouse one before - greenhouse three housed
far more interesting and dangerous plants. Professor Sprout took a large key
from her belt and unlocked the door. Harry caught a whiff of damp earth and
fertilizer mingling with the heavy perfume of some giant, umbrella-sized
flowers dangling from the ceiling. He was about to follow Ron and Hermione
inside when Lockhart's hand shot out.
"Harry! I've been wanting a
word - you don't mind if he's a couple of minutes late, do you, Professor
Sprout?"
Judging by Professor Sprout's
scowl, she did mind, but Lockhart said, "That's the ticket," and
closed the greenhouse door in her face.
"Harry," said
Lockhart, his large white teeth gleaming in the sunlight as he shook his head.
"Harry, Harry, Harry."
Completely nonplussed, Harry
said nothing.
"When I heard - well, of
course, it was all my fault. Could have kicked myself."
Harry had no idea what he was
talking about. He was about to say so when Lockhart went on, "Don't know
when I've been more shocked. Flying a car to Hogwarts! Well, of course, I knew
at once why you'd done it. Stood out a mile. Harry, Harry, Harry." It was remarkable how he could show every one of those
brilliant teeth even when he wasn't talking.
"Gave you a taste for
publicity, didn't I?" said Lockhart. "Gave you the bug. You
got onto the front page of the paper with me and you couldn't wait to do it
again."
"Oh, no, Professor, see
-"
"Harry, Harry, Harry,"
said Lockhart, reaching out and grasping his shoulder. "I understand.
Natural to want a bit more once you've had that first taste - and I blame
myself for giving you that, because it was bound to go to your head - but see
here, young man, you can't start flying cars to try and get yourself
noticed. Just calm down, all right? Plenty of time for all that when you're
older. Yes, yes, I know what you're thinking! 'It's all right for him, he's an
internationally famous wizard already!' But when I was twelve, I was just as
much of a nobody as you are now. In fact, I'd say I was even more of a nobody!
I mean, a few people have heard of you, haven't they? All that business with
He-Who-Must-Not-Be-Named!" He glanced at the lightning scar on Harry's
forehead. "I know, I know - it's not quite as good as winning Witch
Weekly's Most Charming Smile Award five times in a row, as I have - but
it's a start, Harry, it's a start." He gave Harry a hearty wink and strode off. Harry stood
stunned for a few seconds, then, remembering he was supposed to be in the
greenhouse, he opened the door and slid inside.
Professor Sprout was standing
behind a trestle bench in the center of the greenhouse. About twenty pairs of different-colored
ear muffs were lying on the bench. When Harry had taken his place between Ron
and Hermione, she said, "We'll be repotting Mandrakes today. Now, who can
tell me the properties of the Mandrake?"
To nobody's surprise, Hermione's
hand was first into the air.
"Mandrake, or Mandragora,
is a powerful restorative," said Hermione, sounding as usual as though she
had swallowed the textbook. "It is used to return people who have been
transfigured or cursed to their original state."
"Excellent. Ten points to
Gryffindor," said Professor Sprout. "The Mandrake forms an essential
part of most antidotes. It is also, however, dangerous. Who can tell me
why?"
Hermione's hand narrowly missed
Harry's glasses as it shot up again.
"The cry of the Mandrake is
fatal to anyone who hears it," she said promptly.
"Precisely. Take another
ten points," said Professor Sprout. "Now, the Mandrakes we have here
are still very young."
She pointed to a row of deep
trays as she spoke, and everyone shuffled forward for a better look. A hundred
or so tufty little plants, purplish green in color, were growing there in rows.
They looked quite unremarkable to Harry, who didn't have the slightest idea
what Hermione meant by the "cry" of the Mandrake.
"Everyone take a pair of
earmuffs," said Professor Sprout.
There was a scramble as everyone
tried to seize a pair that wasn't pink and fluffy.
"When I tell you to put
them on, make sure your ears are completely covered," said
Professor Sprout. "When it is safe to remove them, I will give you the
thumbs-up. Right - earmuffs on." Harry snapped the earmuffs over his ears. They shut out
sound completely. Professor Sprout put the pink, fluffy pair over her own ears,
rolled up the sleeves of her robes, grasped one of the tufty plants firmly, and
pulled hard.
Harry let out a gasp of surprise
that no one could hear.
Instead of roots, a small,
muddy, and extremely ugly baby popped out of the earth. The leaves were growing
right out of his head. He had pale green, mottled skin, and was clearly bawling
at the top of his lungs.
Professor Sprout took a large
plant pot from under the table and plunged the Mandrake into it, burying him in
dark, damp compost until only the tufted leaves were visible. Professor Sprout
dusted off her hands, gave them all the thumbs-up, and removed her own
earmuffs.
"As our Mandrakes are only
seedlings, their cries won't kill yet," she said calmly as though she'd
just done nothing more exciting than water a begonia. "However, they will
knock you out for several hours, and as I'm sure none of you want to miss your
first day back, make sure your earmuffs are securely in place while you work. I
will attract your attention when it is time to pack up. "Four to a tray - there is a large supply of pots
here - compost in the sacks over there - and be careful of the Venemous
Tentacula, it's teething."
She gave a sharp slap to a
spiky, dark red plant as she spoke, making it draw in the long feelers that had
been inching sneakily over her shoulder.
Harry, Ron, and Hermione were
joined at their tray by a curly-haired Hufflepuff boy Harry knew by sight but
had never spoken to.
"Justin
Finch-Fletchley," he said brightly, shaking Harry by the hand. "Know
who you are, of course, the famous Harry Potter...And you're Hermione Granger -
always top in everything" (Hermione beamed as she had her hand shaken too)
"- and Ron Weasley. Wasn't that your flying car?"
Ron didn't smile. The Howler was
obviously still on his mind.
"That Lockhart's something,
isn't he?" said Justin happily as they began filling their plant pots with
dragon dung compost. "Awfully brave chap. Have you read his books? I'd
have died of fear if Id been cornered in a telephone booth by a werewolf, but
he stayed cool and - zap - just fantastic. "My name was down for Eton, you know. I can't tell
you how glad I am I came here instead. Of course, Mother was slightly
disappointed, but since I made her read Lockhart's books I think she's begun to
see how useful it'll be to have a fully trained wizard in the family..."
After that they didn't have much
chance to talk. Their earmuffs were back on and they needed to concentrate on
the Mandrakes. Professor Sprout had made it look extremely easy, but it wasn't.
The Mandrakes didn't like coming out of the earth, but didn't seem to want to
go back into it either. They squirmed, kicked, flailed their sharp little
fists, and gnashed their teeth; Harry spent ten whole minutes trying to squash
a particularly fat one into a pot.
By the end of the class, Harry,
like everyone else, was sweaty, aching, and covered in earth. Everyone traipsed
back to the castle for a quick wash and then the Gryffindors hurried off to
Transfiguration.
Professor McGonagall's classes
were always hard work, but today was especially difficult. Everything Harry had
learned last year seemed to have leaked out of his head during the summer. He
was supposed to be turning a beetle into a button, but all he managed to do was
give his beetle a lot of exercise as it scuttled over the desktop avoiding his
wand.
Ron was having far worse
problems. He had patched up his wand with some borrowed Spellotape, but it
seemed to be damaged beyond repair. It kept crackling and sparking at odd
moments, and every time Ron tried to transfigure his beetle it engulfed him in
thick gray smoke that smelled of rotten eggs. Unable to see what he was doing,
Ron accidentally squashed his beetle with his elbow and had to ask for a new
one. Professor McGonagall wasn't pleased.
Harry was relieved to hear the
lunch bell. His brain felt like a wrung sponge. Everyone filed out of the
classroom except him and Ron, who was whacking his wand furiously on the desk.
"Stupid - useless - thing
-"
"Write home for another
one," Harry suggested as the wand let off a volley of bangs like a
firecracker.
"Oh, yeah, and get another
Howler back," said Ron, stuffing the now hissing wand into his bag. "
'It's your own fault your wand got snapped -'" They went down to lunch, where Ron's mood was not improved
by Hermione's showing them the handful of perfect coat buttons she had produced
in Transfiguration.
"What've we got this
afternoon?" said Harry, hastily changing the subject.
"Defense Against the Dark
Arts," said Hermione at once.
"Why, "demanded
Ron, seizing her schedule, "have you outlined all Lockhart's lessons in
little hearts?"
Hermione snatched the schedule
back, blushing furiously.
They finished lunch and went
outside into the overcast courtyard. Hermione sat down on a stone step and
buried her nose in Voyages with Vampires again. Harry and Ron stood
talking about Quidditch for several minutes before Harry became aware that he
was being closely watched. Looking up, he saw the very small, mousy-haired boy
he'd seen trying on the Sorting Hat last night staring at Harry as though
transfixed. He was clutching what looked like an ordinary Muggle camera, and
the moment Harry looked at him, he went bright red.
"All right, Harry? I'm -
I'm Colin Creevey," he said breathlessly, taking a tentative step forward.
"I'm in Gryffindor, too. D'you think - would it be all right if - can I
have a picture?" he said, raising the camera hopefully.
"A picture?" Harry
repeated blankly.
"So I can prove I've met
you," said Colin Creevey eagerly, edging further forward. "I know all
about you. Everyone's told me. About how you survived when You-Know-Who tried
to kill you and how he disappeared and everything and how you've still got a
lightning scar on your forehead" (his eyes raked Harry's hairline)
"and a boy in my dormitory said if I develop the film in the right potion,
the pictures'll move." Colin drew a great shuddering breath of
excitement and said, "It's amazing here, isn't it? I never knew all
the odd stuff I could do was magic till I got the letter from Hogwarts. My
dad's a milkman, he couldn't believe it either. So I'm taking loads of pictures
to send home to him. And it'd be really good if I had one of you" - he
looked imploringly at Harry - "maybe your friend could take it and I could
stand next to you? And then, could you sign it?"
"Signed photos?
You're giving out signed
photos, Potter?"
Loud and scathing, Draco
Malfoy's voice echoed around the courtyard. He had stopped right behind Colin,
flanked, as he always was at Hogwarts, by his large and thuggish cronies,
Crabbe and Goyle.
"Everyone line up!"
Malfoy roared to the crowd. "Harry Potter's giving out signed
photos!" "No, I'm not," said Harry angrily, his fists
clenching. "Shut up, Malfoy."
"You're just jealous,"
piped up Colin, whose entire body was about as thick as Crabbe's neck.
"Jealous?" said
Malfoy, who didn't need to shout anymore: half the courtyard was listening in.
"Of what? I don't want a foul scar right across my head, thanks. I don't
think getting your head cut open makes you that special, myself."
Crabbe and Goyle were sniggering
stupidly.
"Eat slugs, Malfoy,"
said Ron angrily. Crabbe stopped laughing and started rubbing his knuckles in a
menacing way.
"Be careful, Weasley,"
sneered Malfoy. "You don't want to start any trouble or your Mommy'll have
to come and take you away from school." He put on a shrill, piercing
voice. "'If you put another toe out of line'-"
A knot of Slytherin fifth-years
nearby laughed loudly at this.
"Weasley would like a
signed photo, Potter," smirked Malfoy. "It'd be worth more than his
family's whole house -"
Ron whipped out his Spellotaped
wand, but Hermione shut Voyages with Vampires with a snap and whispered,
"Look out!" "What's all this, what's all this?" Gilderoy
Lockhart was striding toward them, his turquoise robes swirling behind him.
"Who's giving out signed photos?" Harry started to speak but he was cut short as Lockhart
flung an arm around his shoulders and thundered jovially, "Shouldn't have
asked! We meet again, Harry!" Pinned to Lockhart's side and burning with humiliation,
Harry saw Malfoy slide smirking back into the crowd. "Come on then, Mr. Creevey," said Lockhart,
beaming at Colin. "A double portrait, can't do better than that, and we'll
both sign it for you."
Colin fumbled for his camera and
took the picture as the bell rang behind them, signaling the start of afternoon
classes.
"Off you go, move along
there," Lockhart called to the crowd, and he set off back to the castle
with Harry, who was wishing he knew a good Vanishing Spell, still clasped to
his side.
"A word to the wise,
Harry," said Lockhart paternally as they entered the building through a side
door. "I covered up for you back there with young Creevey - if he was
photographing me, too, your schoolmates won't think you're setting yourself up
so much..."
Deaf to Harry's stammers,
Lockhart swept him down a corridor lined with staring students and up a
staircase.
"Let me just say that
handing out signed pictures at this stage of your career isn't sensible - looks
a tad bigheaded, Harry, to be frank. There may well come a time when, like me,
you'll need to keep a stack handy wherever you go, but" - he gave a little
chortle - "I don't think you're quite there yet."
They had reached Lockhart's
classroom and he let Harry go at last. Harry yanked his robes straight and
headed for a seat at the very back of the class, where he busied himself with
piling all seven of Lockhart's books in front of him, so that he could avoid
looking at the real thing.
The rest of the class came
clattering in, and Ron and Hermione sat down on either side of Harry.
"You could've fried an egg
on your face" said Ron. "You'd better hope Creevey doesn't meet
Ginny, or they'll be starting a Harry Potter fan club."
"Shut up," snapped
Harry. The last thing he needed was for Lockhart to hear the phrase "Harry
Potter fan club"
When the whole class was seated,
Lockhart cleared his throat loudly and silence fell. He reached forward, picked
up Neville Longbottom's copy of Travels with Trolls, and held it up to
show his own, winking portrait on the front.
"Me," he said,
pointing at it and winking as well. "Gilderoy Lockhart, Order of Merlin, Third
Class, Honorary Member of the Dark Force Defense League, and five-time winner
of Witch Weekly's Most Charming Smile Award but I don't talk about that.
I didn't get rid of the Bandon Banshee by smiling at her!" He waited for them to laugh; a few people smiled weakly.
"I see you've all bought a
complete set of my books - well done. I thought we'd start today with a little
quiz. Nothing to worry about - just to check how well you've read them, how
much you've taken in -"
When he had handed out the test
papers he returned to the front of the class and said, "You have thirty
minutes - start - now!"
Harry looked down at his paper
and read: 1. What is Gilderoy Lockhart 's favorite color? 2. What is Gilderoy Lockhart's secret ambition? 3. What, in your opinion, is Gilderoy Lockhart's greatest achievement to date?
On and on it went, over three
sides of paper, right down to: 54. When is Gilderoy Lockhart's birthday, and what would his ideal gift be?
Half an hour later, Lockhart
collected the papers and rifled through them in front of the class.
"Tut, tut - hardly any of
you remembered that my favorite color is lilac. I say so in Year with the
Yeti. And a few of you need to read Wanderings with Werewolves more
carefully - I clearly state in chapter twelve that my ideal birthday gift would
be harmony between all magic and non-magic peoples - though I wouldn't say no
to a large bottle of Ogdeds Old Firewhisky!"
He gave them another roguish
wink. Ron was now staring at Lockhart with an expression of disbelief on his
face; Seamus Finnigan and Dean Thomas, who were sitting in front, were shaking
with silent laughter. Hermione, on the other hand, was listening to Lockhart
with rapt attention and gave a start when he mentioned her name.
"...but Miss Hermione Granger
knew my secret ambition is to rid the world of evil and market my own range of
hair-care potions - good girl! In fact" - he flipped her paper over -
"full marks! Where is Miss Hermione Granger?"
Hermione raised a trembling
hand.
"Excellent!" beamed
Lockhart. "Quite excellent! Take ten points for Gryffindor! And so - to
business -"
He bent down behind his desk and
lifted a large, covered cage onto it.
"Now - be warned! It is my
job to arm you against the foulest creatures known to wizardkind! You may find
yourselves facing your worst fears in this room. Know only that no harm can
befall you whilst I am here. All I ask is that you remain calm."
In spite of himself, Harry
leaned around his pile of books for a better look at the cage. Lockhart placed
a hand on the cover. Dean and Seamus had stopped laughing now. Neville was
cowering in his front row seat.
"I must ask you not to
scream," said Lockhart in a low voice. "It might provoke them."
As the whole class held its
breath, Lockhart whipped off the cover.
"Yes," he said
dramatically. "Freshly caught Cornish pixies." Seamus Finnigan couldn't control himself. He let out a
snort of laughter that even Lockhart couldn't mistake for a scream of terror.
"Yes?" He smiled at
Seamus.
"Well, they're not -
they're not very - dangerous, are they?" Seamus choked.
"Don't be so sure!"
said Lockhart, waggling a finger annoyingly at Seamus. "Devilish tricky
little blighters they can be!" The pixies were electric blue and about eight inches high,
with pointed faces and voices so shrill it was like listening to a lot of
budgies arguing. The moment the cover had been removed, they had started
jabbering and rocketing around, rattling the bars and making bizarre faces at
the people nearest them.
"Right, then,"
Lockhart said loudly. "Let's see what you make of them!" And he
opened the cage.
It was pandemonium. The pixies
shot in every direction like rockets. Two of them seized Neville by the ears
and lifted him into the air. Several shot straight through the window,
showering the back row with broken glass. The rest proceeded to wreck the
classroom more effectively than a rampaging rhino. They grabbed ink bottles and
sprayed the class with them, shredded books and papers, tore pictures from the
walls, up-ended the waste basket, grabbed bags and books and threw them out of
the smashed window; within minutes, half the class was sheltering under desks
and Neville was swinging from the iron chandelier in the ceiling.
"Come on now - round them
up, round them up, they're only pixies," Lockhart shouted.
He rolled up his sleeves,
brandished his wand, and bellowed, "Peskipiksi Pesternomi!" It had absolutely no effect; one of the pixies seized his
wand and threw it out of the window, too. Lockhart gulped and dived under his
own desk, narrowly avoiding being squashed by Neville, who fell a second later
as the chandelier gave way.
The bell rang and there was a
mad rush toward the exit. In the relative calm that followed, Lockhart
straightened up, caught sight of Harry, Ron, and Hermione, who were almost at
the door, and said, "Well, I'll ask you three to just nip the rest of them
back into their cage." He swept past them and shut the door quickly behind
him.
"Can you believe
him?" roared Ron as one of the remaining pixies bit him painfully on the
ear. "He just wants to give us some hands-on
experience," said Hermione, immobilizing two pixies at once with a clever
Freezing Charm and stuffing them back into their cage.
"Hands on?
"said Harry, who was trying to grab a pixie dancing out of reach with its
tongue out. "Hermione, he didn't have a clue what he was doing -"
"Rubbish," said
Hermione. "You've read his books - look at all those amazing things he's
done -"
"He says he's
done," Ron muttered. CHAPTER SEVEN MUDBLOODS AND MURMURS
Harry spent a lot of time over
the next few days dodging out of sight whenever he saw Gilderoy Lockhart coming
down a corridor. Harder to avoid was Colin Creevey, who seemed to have
memorized Harry's schedule. Nothing seemed to give Colin a bigger thrill than
to say, "All right, Harry?" six or seven times a day and hear,
"Hello, Colin," back, however exasperated Harry sounded when he said
it.
Hedwig was still angry with
Harry about the disastrous car journey and Ron's wand was still malfunctioning,
surpassing itself on Friday morning by shooting out of Ron's hand in Charms and
hitting tiny old Professor Flitwick squarely between the eyes, creating a
large, throbbing green boil where it had struck. So with one thing and another,
Harry was quite glad to reach the weekend. He, Ron, and Hermione were planning
to visit Hagrid on Saturday morning. Harry, however, was shaken awake several
hours earlier than he would have liked by Oliver Wood, Captain of the
Gryffindor Quidditch team.
"Whassamatter?" said
Harry groggily.
"Quidditch practice!" said
Wood. "Come on!"
Harry squinted at the window.
There was a thin mist hanging across the pink-and-gold sky. Now that he was
awake, he couldn't understand how he could have slept through the racket the
birds were making.
"Oliver," Harry
croaked. "It's the crack of dawn."
"Exactly," said Wood.
He was a tall and burly sixth year and, at the moment, his eyes were gleaming
with a crazed enthusiasm. "It's part of our new training program. Come on,
grab your broom, and let's go," said Wood heartily. "None of the
other teams have started training yet; we're going to be first off the mark
this year -"
Yawning and shivering slightly,
Harry climbed out of bed and tried to find his Quidditch robes.
"Good man," said Wood.
"Meet you on the field in fifteen minutes."
When he'd found his scarlet team
robes and pulled on his cloak for warmth, Harry scribbled a note to Ron
explaining where he'd gone and went down the spiral staircase to the common
room, his Nimbus Two Thousand on his shoulder. He had just reached the portrait
hole when there was a clatter behind him and Colin Creevey came dashing down
the spiral staircase, his camera swinging madly around his neck and something
clutched in his hand.
"I heard someone saying
your name on the stairs, Harry! Look what I've got here! I've had it developed,
I wanted to show you -"
Harry looked bemusedly at the
photograph Colin was brandishing under his nose.
A moving, black-and-white
Lockhart was tugging hard on an arm Harry recognized as his own. He was pleased
to see that his photographic self was putting up a good fight and refusing to
be dragged into view. As Harry watched, Lockhart gave up and slumped, Panting,
against the white edge of the picture.
"Will you sign it?"
said Colin eagerly.
"No," said Harry
flatly, glancing around to check that the room was really deserted.
"Sorry, Colin, I'm in a hurry - Quidditch practice -"
He climbed through the portrait
hole.
"Oh, wow! Wait for me! I've
never watched a Quidditch game before!"
Colin scrambled through the hole
after him.
"It'll be really
boring," Harry said quickly, but Colin ignored him, his face shining with
excitement.
"You were the youngest
House player in a hundred years, weren't you, Harry? Weren't you?" said
Colin, trotting alongside him. "You must be brilliant. I've never flown.
Is it easy? Is that your own broom? Is that the best one there is?"
Harry didn't know how to get rid
of him. It was like having an extremely talkative shadow.
"I don't really understand
Quidditch," said Colin breathlessly. "Is it true there are four
balls? And two of them fly around trying to knock people off their
brooms?"
"Yes," said Harry
heavily, resigned to explaining the complicated rules of Quidditch.
"They're called Bludgers. There are two Beaters on each team who carry
clubs to beat the Bludgers away from their side. Fred and George Weasley are
the Gryffindor Beaters."
"And what are the other
balls for?" Colin asked, tripping down a couple of steps because he was
gazing open-mouthed at Harry.
"Well, the Quaffle - that's
the biggish red one - is the one that scores goals. Three Chasers on each team
throw the Quaffle to each other and try and get it through the goal posts at
the end of the pitch - they're three long poles with hoops on the end."
"And the fourth ball
-"
"- is the Golden Snitch,"
said Harry, "and it's very small, very fast, and difficult to catch. But
that's what the Seeker's got to do, because a game of Quidditch doesn't end
until the Snitch has been caught. And whichever team's Seeker gets the Snitch
earns his team an extra hundred and fifty points."
"And you're the
Gryffindor Seeker, aren't you?" said Colin in awe.
"Yes," said Harry as
they left the castle and started across the dew-drenched grass. "And
there's the Keeper, too. He guards the goal posts. That's it, really."
But Colin didn't stop
questioning Harry all the way down the sloping lawns to the Quidditch field,
and Harry only shook him off when he reached the changing rooms; Colin called
after him in a piping voice, "I'll go and get a good seat, Harry!"
and hurried off to the stands.
The rest of the Gryffindor team
were already in the changing room. Wood was the only person who looked truly
awake. Fred and George Weasley were sitting, puffy-eyed and touslehaired, next
to fourth year Alicia Spinnet, who seemed to be nodding off against the wall
behind her. Her fellow Chasers, Katie Bell and Angelina Johnson, were yawning
side by side opposite them.
"There you are, Harry, what
kept you?" said Wood briskly. Now,
I wanted a quick talk with you all before we actually get onto the field,
because I spent the summer devising a whole new training program, which I
really think will make all the difference..."
Wood was holding up a large
diagram of a Quidditch field, on which were drawn many lines, arrows, and
crosses in different colored inks. He took out his wand, tapped the board, and
the arrows began to wiggle over the diagram like caterpillars. As Wood launched
into a speech about his new tactics, Fred Weasley's head drooped right onto
Alicia Spinnet's shoulder and he began to snore.
The first board took nearly
twenty minutes to explain, but there was another board under that, and a third
under that one. Harry sank into a stupor as Wood droned on and on.
"So," said Wood, at
long last, jerking Harry from a wistful fantasy about what he could be eating
for breakfast at this very moment up at the castle. "Is that clear? Any
questions?"
"I've got a question,
Oliver," said George, who had woken with a start. "Why couldn't you
have told us all this yesterday when we were awake?"
Wood wasn't pleased.
"Now, listen here, you
lot," he said, glowering at them all. "We should have won the
Quidditch cup last year. We're easily the best team. But unfortunately - owing
to circumstances beyond our control -"
Harry shifted guiltily in his
seat. He had been unconscious in the hospital wing for the final match of the
previous year, meaning that Gryffindor had been a player short and had suffered
their worst defeat in three hundred years.
Wood took a moment to regain
control of himself. Their last defeat was clearly still torturing him.
"So this year, we train
harder than ever before...Okay, let's go and put our new theories into
practice!" Wood shouted, seizing his broomstick and leading the way out of
the locker rooms. Stiff-legged and still yawning, his team followed.
They had been in the locker room
so long that the sun was up completely now, although remnants of mist hung over
the grass in the stadium. As Harry walked onto the field, he saw Ron and
Hermione sitting in the stands.
"Aren't you finished
yet?" called Ron incredulously.
"Haven't even
started," said Harry, looking jealously at the toast and marmalade Ron and
Hermione had brought out of the Great Hall. "Wood's been teaching us new
moves."
He mounted his broomstick and
kicked at the ground, soaring up into the air. The cool morning air whipped his
face, waking him far more effectively than Wood's long talk. It felt wonderful
to be back on the Quidditch field. He soared right around the stadium at full
speed, racing Fred and George.
"What's that funny clicking
noise?" called Fred as they hurtled around the corner.
Harry looked into the stands.
Colin was sitting in one of the highest seats, his camera raised, taking
picture after picture, the sound strangely magnified in the deserted stadium.
"Look this way, Harry! This
way!" he cried shrilly.
"Who's that?" said
Fred.
"No idea," Harry lied,
putting on a spurt of speed that took him as far away as possible from Colin.
"What's going on?"
said Wood, frowning, as he skimmed through the air toward them. "Why's
that first year taking pictures? I don't like it. He could be a Slytherin spy,
trying to find out about our new training program."
"He's in Gryffindor,"
said Harry quickly.
"And the Slytherins don't
need a spy, Oliver," said George.
"What makes you say
that?" said Wood testily.
"Because they're here in
person," said George, pointing.
Several people in green robes
were walking onto the field, broomsticks in their hands.
"I don't believe it!"
Wood hissed in outrage. "I booked the field for today! We'll see about
this!"
Wood shot toward the ground,
landing rather harder than he meant to in his anger, staggering slightly as he
dismounted. Harry, Fred, and George followed.
"Flint!" Wood bellowed
at the Slytherin Captain. "This is our practice time! We got up specially!
You can clear off now!"
Marcus Flint was even larger
than Wood. He had a look of trollish cunning on his face as he replied,
"Plenty of room for all of us, Wood."
Angelina, Alicia, and Katie had
come over, too. There were no girls on the Slytherin team, who stood shoulder
to shoulder, facing the Gryffindors, leering to a man.
"But I booked the
field!" said Wood, positively spitting with rage. "I booked it!"
"Ah," said Flint.
"But I've got a specially signed note here from Professor Snape. 'I,
Professor S. Snape, give the Slytherin team permission to practice today on the
Quidditch field owing to the need to train their new Seeker'."
"You've got a new
Seeker?" said Wood, distracted. "Where?"
And from behind the six large
figures before them came a seventh, smaller boy, smirking all over his pale,
pointed face. It was Draco Malfoy.
"Aren't you Lucius Malfoy's
son?" said Fred, looking at Malfoy with dislike.
"Funny you should mention
Draco's father," said Flint as the whole Slytherin team smiled still more
broadly. "Let me show you the generous gift he's made to the Slytherin
team."
All seven of them held out their
broomsticks. Seven highly polished, brand-new handles and seven sets of fine
gold lettering spelling the words Nimbus Two Thousand and One gleamed
under the Gryffindors' noses in the early morning sun. "Very latest model. Only came out last month,"
said Flint carelessly, flicking a speck of dust from the end of his own.
"I believe it outstrips the old Two Thousand series by a considerable
amount. As for the old Cleansweeps" - he smiled nastily at Fred and
George, who were both clutching Cleansweep Fives -" sweeps the board with
them."
None of the Gryffindor team
could think of anything to say for a moment. Malfoy was smirking so broadly his
cold eyes were reduced to slits.
"Oh, look," said
Flint. "A field invasion."
Ron and Hermione were crossing
the grass to see what was going on.
"What's happening?"
Ron asked Harry. "Why aren't you playing? And what's he doing
here?" He was looking at Malfoy, taking in his Slytherin
Quidditch robes.
"I'm the new Slytherin
Seeker, Weasley," said Malfoy, smugly. "Everyone's just been admiring
the brooms my father's bought our team.
Ron gaped, open-mouthed, at the
seven superb broomsticks in front of him.
"Good, aren't they?"
said Malfoy smoothly. "But perhaps the Gryffindor team will be able to
raise some gold and get new brooms, too. You could raffle off those Cleansweep
Fives; I expect a museum would bid for them."
The Slytherin team howled with
laughter.
"At least no one on the
Gryffindor team had to buy their way in," said Hermione sharply.
"They got in on pure talent."
The smug look on Malfoy's face
flickered.
"No one asked your opinion,
you filthy little Mudblood," he spat.
Harry knew at once that Malfoy
had said something really bad because there was an instant uproar at his words.
Flint had to dive in front of Malfoy to stop Fred and George jumping on him,
Alicia shrieked, "How dare you!" and Ron plunged his hand into
his robes, pulled out his wand, yelling, "You'll pay for that one,
Malfoy!" and pointed it furiously under Flint's arm at Malfoys face.
A loud bang echoed around the
stadium and a jet of green light shot out of the wrong end of Ron's wand,
hitting him in the stomach and sending him reeling backward onto the grass.
"Ron! Ron! Are you all
right?" squealed Hermione.
Ron opened his mouth to speak,
but no words came out. Instead he gave an almighty belch and several slugs
dribbled out of his mouth onto his lap.
The Slytherin team were
paralyzed with laughter. Flint was doubled up, hanging onto his new broomstick
for support. Malfoy was on all fours, banging the ground with his fist. The
Gryffindors were gathered around Ron, who kept belching large, glistening
slugs. Nobody seemed to want to touch him.
"We'd better get him to
Hagrid's, it's nearest," said Harry to Hermione, who nodded bravely, and
the pair of them pulled Ron up by the arms.
"What happened, Harry? What
happened? Is he ill? But you can cure him, can't you?" Colin had run down
from his seat and was now dancing alongside them as they left the field. Ron
gave a huge heave and more slugs dribbled down his front.
"Oooh," said Colin,
fascinated and raising his camera. "Can you hold him still, Harry?"
"Get out of the way,
Colin!" said Harry angrily. He and Hermione supported Ron out of the
stadium and across the grounds toward the edge of the forest.
"Nearly there, Ron,"
said Hermione as the gamekeeper's cabin came into view. "You'll be all
right in a minute - almost there -"
They were within twenty feet of
Hagrid's house when the front door opened, but it wasn't Hagrid who emerged.
Gilderoy Lockhart, wearing robes of palest mauve today, came striding out.
"Quick, behind here,"
Harry hissed, dragging Ron behind a nearby bush. Hermione followed, somewhat
reluctantly.
"It's a simple matter if
you know what you're doing!" Lockhart was saying loudly to Hagrid.
"If you need help, you know where I am! I'll let you have a copy of my
book. I'm surprised you haven't already got one - I'll sign one tonight and
send it over. Well, good-bye!" And he strode away toward the castle.
Harry waited until Lockhart was
out of sight, then pulled Ron out of the bush and up to Hagrid's front door.
They knocked urgently.
Hagrid appeared at once, looking
very grumpy, but his expression brightened when he saw who it was.
"Bin wonderin' when you'd
come ter see me - come in, come in - thought you mighta bin Professor Lockhart
back again -"
Harry and Hermione supported Ron
over the threshold into the one-roomed cabin, which had an enormous bed in one
corner, a fire crackling merrily in the other. Hagrid didn't seem perturbed by
Ron's slug problem, which Harry hastily explained as he lowered Ron into a
chair.
"Better out than in,"
he said cheerfully, plunking a large copper basin in front of him. "Get
'em all up, Ron."
"I don't think there's
anything to do except wait for it to stop," said Hermione anxiously,
watching Ron bend over the basin. "That's a difficult curse to work at the
best of times, but with a broken wand -"
Hagrid was bustling around
making them tea. His boarhound, Fang, was slobbering over Harry.
"What did Lockhart want
with you, Hagrid?" Harry asked, scratching Fang's ears.
"Givin' me advice on
gettin' kelpies out of a well," growled Hagrid, moving a half-plucked
rooster off his scrubbed table and setting down the teapot. "Like I don'
know. An' bangin' on about some banshee he banished. If one word of it was
true, I'll eat my kettle."
It was most unlike Hagrid to
criticize a Hogwarts' teacher, and Harry looked at him in surprise. Hermione,
however, said in a voice somewhat higher than usual, "I think you're being
a bit unfair. Professor Dumbledore obviously thought he was the best man for
the job -"
"He was the on'y man
for the job," said Hagrid, offering them a plate of treacle fudge, while
Ron coughed squelchily into his basin. "An' I mean the on'y one.
Gettin' very difficult ter find anyone fer
the Dark Arts job. People aren't too keen ter take it on, see. They're
startin' ter think it's jinxed. No one's lasted long fer a while now. So tell
me," said Hagrid, jerking his head at Ron. "Who was he tryin' ter
curse?"
"Malfoy called Hermione
something - it must've been really bad, because everyone went wild."
"It was bad,"
said Ron hoarsely, emerging over the tabletop looking pale and sweaty.
"Malfoy called her 'Mudblood,' Hagrid -"
Ron dived out of sight again as
a fresh wave of slugs made their appearance. Hagrid looked outraged. "He didn'!" he growled at Hermione.
"He did," she said.
"But I don't know what it means. I could tell it was really rude, of
course -"
"It's about the most
insulting thing he could think of," gasped Ron, coming back up.
"Mudblood's a really foul name for someone who is Muggle-born - you know,
non-magic parents. There are some wizards - like Malfoy's family - who think
they're better than everyone else because they're what people call
pure-blood." He gave a small burp, and a single slug fell into his
outstretched hand. He threw it into the basin and continued, "I mean, the
rest of us know it doesn't make any difference at all. Look at Neville
Longbottom - he's pure-blood and he can hardly stand a cauldron the right way
up."
"An' they haven't invented
a spell our Hermione can' do," said Hagrid proudly, making Hermione go a
brilliant shade of magenta.
"It's a disgusting thing to
call someone," said Ron, wiping his sweaty brow with a shaking hand.
"Dirty blood, see. Common blood. It's ridiculous. Most wizards these days
are half-blood anyway. If we hadn't married Muggles we'd've died out."
He retched and ducked out of
sight again.
"Well, I don' blame yeh fer
tryin' ter curse him, Ron," said Hagrid loudly over the thuds of more
slugs hitting the basin. "Bu' maybe it was a good thing yer wand
backfired. 'Spect Lucius Malfoy would've come marchin' up ter school if yeh'd
cursed his son. Least yer not in trouble."
Harry would have pointed out
that trouble didn't come much worse than having slugs pouring out of your
mouth, but he couldn't; Hagrid's treacle fudge had cemented his jaws together. "Harry," said Hagrid abruptly as though struck
by a sudden thought. "Gotta bone ter pick with yeh. I've heard you've bin
givin' out signed photos. How come I haven't got one?"
Furious, Harry wrenched his
teeth apart.
"I have not been
giving out signed photos," he said hotly. "If Lockhart's still
spreading that around -"
But then he saw that Hagrid was
laughing.
"I'm on'y jokin'," he
said, patting Harry genially on the back and sending him face first into the
table. "I knew yeh hadn't really. I told Lockhart yeh didn' need teh. Yer
more famous than him without tryin'."
"Bet he didn't like
that," said Harry, sitting up and rubbing his chin.
"Don' think he did,"
said Hagrid, his eyes twinkling. "An' then I told him I'd never read one
o' his books an' he decided ter go. Treacle fudge, Ron?" he added as Ron
reappeared.
"No thanks," said Ron
weakly. "Better not risk it."
"Come an' see what I've bin
growin'," said Hagrid as Harry and Hermione finished the last of their
tea.
In the small vegetable patch
behind Hagrid's house were a dozen of the largest pumpkins Harry had ever seen.
Each was the size of a large boulder.
"Gettin' on well, aren't
they?" said Hagrid happily. "Fer the Halloween feast...should be big
enough by then."
"What've you been feeding
them?" said Harry.
Hagrid looked over his shoulder
to check that they were alone.
"Well, I've bin givin' them
- you know - a bit o' help -"
Harry noticed Hagrid's flowery
pink umbrella leaning against the back wall of the cabin. Harry had had reason
to believe before now that this umbrella was not all it looked; in fact, he had
the strong impression that Hagrid's old school wand was concealed inside it.
Hagrid wasn't supposed to use magic. He had been expelled from Hogwarts in his
third year, but Harry had never found out why - any mention of the matter and
Hagrid would clear his throat loudly and become mysteriously deaf until the
subject was changed.
"An Engorgement Charm, I
suppose?" said Hermione, halfway between disapproval and amusement.
"Well, you've done a good job on them."
"That's what yer little
sister said," said Hagrid, nodding at Ron. "Met her jus'
yesterday." Hagrid looked sideways at Harry, his beard twitching.
"Said she was jus' lookin' round the grounds, but I reckon she was hopin'
she might run inter someone else at my house." He winked at Harry.
"If yeh ask me, she wouldn' say no ter a signed -"
"Oh, shut up," said
Harry. Ron snorted with laughter and the ground was sprayed with slugs.
"Watch it!" Hagrid
roared, pulling Ron away from his precious pumpkins.
It was nearly lunchtime and as
Harry had only had one bit of treacle fudge since dawn, he was keen to go back
to school to eat. They said good-bye to Hagrid and walked back up to the
castle, Ron hiccoughing occasionally, but only bringing up two very small
slugs.
They had barely set foot in the
cool entrance hall when a voice rang out, "There you are, Potter -
Weasley." Professor McGonagall was walking toward them, looking stern.
"You will both do your detentions this evening."
"What're we doing,
Professor?" said Ron, nervously suppressing a burp.
"You will be
polishing the silver in the trophy room with Mr. Filch," said Professor
McGonagall. "And no magic, Weasley - elbow grease."
Ron gulped. Argus Filch, the
caretaker, was loathed by every student in the school.
"And you, Potter, will be
helping Professor Lockhart answer his fan mail," said Professor
McGonagall.
"Oh n- Professor, can't I
go and do the trophy room, too?" said Harry desperately.
"Certainly not," said
Professor McGonagall, raising her eyebrows. "Professor Lockhart requested
you particularly. Eight o'clock sharp, both of you."
Harry and Ron slouched into the
Great Hall in states of deepest gloom, Hermione behind them, wearing a well-you-did-break-school-rules
sort of expression. Harry didn't enjoy his shepherd's pie as much as he'd
thought. Both he and Ron felt they'd got the worse deal.
"Filch'll have me there all
night," said Ron heavily. "No magic! There must be about a hundred
cups in that room. I'm no good at Muggle cleaning."
"I'd swap anytime,"
said Harry hollowly. "I've had loads of practice with the Dursleys.
Answering Lockhart's fan mail...he'll be a nightmare..."
Saturday afternoon seemed to
melt away, and in what seemed like no time, it was five minutes to eight, and
Harry was dragging his feet along the second-floor corridor to Lockhart's
office. He gritted his teeth and knocked.
The door flew open at once.
Lockhart beamed down at him.
"Ah, here's the
scalawag!" he said. "Come in, Harry, come in -"
Shining brightly on the walls by
the light of many candles were countless framed photographs of Lockhart. He had
even signed a few of them. Another large pile lay on his desk.
"You can address the
envelopes!" Lockhart told Harry, as though this was a huge treat.
"This first one's to Gladys
Gudgeon, bless her - huge fan of mine -"
The minutes snailed by. Harry
let Lockhart's voice wash over him, occasionally saying, "Mmm" and
"Right" and "Yeah." Now and then he caught a phrase like,
"Fame's a fickle friend, Harry," or "Celebrity is as celebrity
does, remember that."
The candles burned lower and
lower, making the light dance over the many moving faces of Lockhart watching
him. Harry moved his aching hand over what felt like the thousandth envelope,
writing out Veronica Smethley's address. It must be nearly time to leave,
Harry thought miserably, please let it be nearly time... And then he heard something - something quite apart from
the spitting of the dying candles and Lockhart's prattle about his fans.
It was a voice, a voice to chill
the bone marrow, a voice of breathtaking, ice-cold venom.
"Come...come to me...Let me
rip you...Let me tear you...Let me kill you..." Harry gave a huge jump and a large lilac blot appeared on
Veronica Smethley's street.
"What?" he said
loudly.
"I know!" said
Lockhart. "Six solid months at the top of the best-seller list! Broke all
records!"
"No," said Harry
frantically. "That voice!"
"Sorry?" said
Lockhart, looking puzzled. "What voice?"
"That - that voice that
said - didn't you hear it?"
Lockhart was looking at Harry in
high astonishment.
"What are you talking
about, Harry? Perhaps you're getting a little drowsy? Great Scott - look at the
time! We've been here nearly four hours! I'd never have believed it - the
time's flown, hasn't it?"
Harry didn't answer. He was
straining his ears to hear the voice again, but there was no sound now except
for Lockhart telling him he mustn't expect a treat like this every time he got
detention. Feeling dazed, Harry left.
It was so late that the
Gryffindor common room was almost empty. Harry went straight up to the
dormitory. Ron wasn't back yet. Harry pulled on his pajamas, got into bed, and
waited. Half an hour later, Ron arrived, nursing his right arm and bringing a
strong smell of polish into the darkened room.
"My muscles have all seized
up," he groaned, sinking on his bed. "Fourteen times he made me buff
up that Quidditch cup before he was satisfied. And then I had another slug
attack all over a Special Award for Services to the School. Took ages to get
the slime off...How was it with Lockhart?"
Keeping his voice low so as not
to wake Neville, Dean, and Seamus, Harry told Ron exactly what he had heard.
"And Lockhart said he
couldn't hear it?" said Ron. Harry could see him frowning in the
moonlight. "D'you think he was lying? But I don't get it - even someone
invisible would've had to open the door."
"I know," said Harry,
lying back in his four-poster and staring at the canopy above him. "I
don't get it either." CHAPTER EIGHT THE DEATHDAY PARTY
October arrived, spreading a damp
chill over the grounds and into the castle. Madam Pomfrey, the nurse, was kept
busy by a sudden spate of colds among the staff and students. Her Pepperup
potion worked instantly, though it left the drinker smoking at the ears for
several hours afterward. Ginny Weasley, who had been looking pale, was bullied
into taking some by Percy. The steam pouring from under her vivid hair gave the
impression that her whole head was on fire. Raindrops the size of bullets
thundered on the castle windows for days on end; the lake rose, the flower beds
turned into muddy streams, and Hagrid's pumpkins swelled to the size of garden
sheds. Oliver Wood's enthusiasm for regular training sessions, however, was not
dampened, which was why Harry was to be found, late one stormy Saturday
afternoon a few days before Halloween, returning to Gryffindor Tower, drenched
to the skin and splattered with mud.
Even aside from the rain and
wind it hadn't been a happy practice session. Fred and George, who had been
spying on the Slytherin team, had seen for themselves the speed of those new
Nimbus Two Thousand and Ones. They reported that the Slytherin team was no more
than seven greenish blurs, shooting through the air like missiles. As Harry
squelched along the deserted corridor he came across somebody who looked just as
preoccupied as he was. Nearly Headless Nick, the ghost of Gryffindor Tower, was
staring morosely out of a window, muttering under his breath, "...don't
fulfill their requirements...half an inch, if that..."
"Hello, Nick," said
Harry.
"Hello, hello," said
Nearly Headless Nick, starting and looking round. He wore a dashing, plumed hat
on his long curly hair, and a tunic with a ruff, which concealed the fact that
his neck was almost completely severed. He was pale as smoke, and Harry could
see right through him to the dark sky and torrential rain outside.
"You look troubled, young
Potter," said Nick, folding a transparent letter as he spoke and tucking
it inside his doublet.
"So do you," said
Harry.
"Ah," Nearly Headless
Nick waved an elegant hand, "a matter of no importance...It's not as though
I really wanted to join...Thought I'd apply, but apparently I 'don't fulfill
requirements' -"
In spite of his airy tone, there
was a look of great bitterness on his face.
"But you would think,
wouldn't you," he erupted suddenly, pulling the letter back out of his
pocket, "that getting hit forty-five times in the neck with a blunt axe
would qualify you to join the Headless Hunt?"
"Oh - yes," said
Harry, who was obviously supposed to agree.
"I mean, nobody wishes more
than I do that it had all been quick and clean, and my head had come off
properly, I mean, it would have saved me a great deal of pain and ridicule.
However -" Nearly Headless Nick shook his letter open and read furiously:
"'We can only accept
huntsmen whose heads have parted company with their bodies. You will appreciate
that it would be impossible otherwise for members to participate in hunt
activities such as Horseback Head-Juggling and Head Polo. It is with the
greatest regret, therefore, that I must inform you that you do not fulfill our
requirements. With very best wishes, Sir Patrick Delaney-Podmore.'"
Fuming, Nearly Headless Nick
stuffed the letter away.
"Half an inch of skin and
sinew holding my neck on, Harry! Most people would think that's good and
beheaded, but oh, no, it's not enough for Sir Properly
Decapitated-Podmore."
Nearly Headless Nick took
several deep breaths and then said, in a far calmer tone, "So - what's
bothering you? Anything I can do?"
"No," said Harry.
"Not unless you know where we can get seven free Nimbus Two Thousand and
Ones for our match against Sly-"
The rest of Harry's sentence was
drowned out by a high-pitched mewling from somewhere near his ankles. He looked
down and found himself gazing into a pair of lamp-like yellow eyes. It was Mrs.
Norris, the skeletal gray cat who was used by the caretaker, Argus Filch, as a
sort of deputy in his endless battle against students.
"You'd better get out of
here, Harry," said Nick quickly. "Filch isn't in a good mood - he's
got the flu and some third years accidentally plastered frog brains all over
the ceiling in dungeon five. He's been cleaning all morning, and if he sees you
dripping mud all over the place -"
"Right," said Harry, backing away from the accusing
stare of Mrs. Norris, but not quickly enough. Drawn to the spot by the
mysterious power that seemed to connect him with his foul cat, Argus Filch
burst suddenly through a tapestry to Harry's right, wheezing and looking wildly
about for the rule-breaker. There was a thick tartan scarf bound around his
head, and his nose was unusually purple.
"Filth!" he shouted,
his jowls aquiver, his eyes popping alarmingly as he pointed at the muddy
puddle that had dripped from Harry's Quidditch robes. "Mess and muck
everywhere! I've had enough of it, I tell you! Follow me, Potter!"
So Harry waved a gloomy good-bye
to Nearly Headless Nick and followed Filch back downstairs, doubling the number
of muddy footprints on the floor. Harry had never been inside Filch's office
before; it was a place most students avoided. The room was dingy and
windowless, lit by a single oil lamp dangling from the low ceiling. A faint
smell of fried fish lingered about the place. Wooden filing cabinets stood
around the walls; from their labels, Harry could see that they contained details
of every pupil Filch had ever punished. Fred and George Weasley had an entire
drawer to themselves. A highly polished collection of chains and manacles hung
on the wall behind Filch's desk. It was common knowledge that he was always
begging Dumbledore to let him suspend students by their ankles from the
ceiling.
Filch grabbed a quill from a pot
on his desk and began shuffling around looking for parchment.
"Dung," he muttered
furiously, "great sizzling dragon bogies...frog brains...rat intestines...I've
had enough of it...make an example...where's the form...yes..."
He retrieved a large roll of
parchment from his desk drawer and stretched it out in front of him, dipping
his long black quill into the ink pot.
"Name...Harry Potter. Crime..." "It was only a bit of mud!" said Harry.
"It's only a bit of mud to
you, boy, but to me it's an extra hour scrubbing!" shouted Filch, a drip
shivering unpleasantly at the end of his bulbous nose. "Crime...befouling
the castle...suggested sentence..."
Dabbing at his streaming nose,
Filch squinted unpleasantly at Harry who waited with bated breath for his
sentence to fall.
But as Filch lowered his quill,
there was a great BANG! on the ceiling of the office, which made the oil lamp
rattle.
"PEEVES!" Filch
roared, flinging down his quill in a transport of rage. "I'll have you
this time, I'll have you!"
And without a backward glance at
Harry, Filch ran flat-footed from the office, Mrs. Norris streaking alongside
him.
Peeves was the school
poltergeist, a grinning, airborne menace who lived to cause havoc and distress.
Harry didn't much like Peeves, but couldn't help feeling grateful for his
timing. Hopefully, whatever Peeves had done (and it sounded as though he'd
wrecked something very big this time) would distract Filch from Harry.
Thinking that he should probably
wait for Filch to come back, Harry sank into a moth-eaten chair next to the
desk. There was only one thing on it apart from his half-completed form: a
large, glossy, purple envelope with silver lettering on the front. With a quick
glance at the door to check that Filch wasn't on his way back, Harry picked up
the envelope and read:
Kwikspell
A Correspondence Course in
Beginners' Magic.
Intrigued, Harry flicked the envelope open and pulled out
the sheaf of parchment inside. More curly silver writing on the front page
said:
Feel out of step
in the world of modern magic? Find yourself making excuses not to perform
simple spells? Ever been taunted for your woeful wandwork?
There is an answer!
Kwikspell is an all-new,
fail-safe, quick-result, easy-learn course. Hundreds of witches and wizards
have benefited from the Kwikspell method!
Madam Z. Nettles of Topsham
writes:
"I had no memory for
incantations and my potions were a family joke! Now, after a Kwikspell course,
I am the center of attention at parties and friends beg for the recipe of my
Scintillation Solution!"
Warlock D. J. Prod of Didsbury
says:
"My wife used to sneer at
my feeble charms, but one month into your fabulous Kwikspell course and I
succeeded in turning her into a yak! Thank you, Kwikspell!"
Fascinated, Harry thumbed
through the rest of the envelope's contents. Why on earth did Filch want a
Kwikspell course? Did this mean he wasn't a proper wizard? Harry was just
reading "Lesson One: Holding Your Wand (Some Useful Tips)" when shuffling
footsteps outside told him Filch was coming back. Stuffing the parchment back
into the envelope, Harry threw it back onto the desk just as the door opened.
Filch was looking triumphant.
"That vanishing cabinet was
extremely valuable!" he was saying gleefully to Mrs. Norris. "We'll
have Peeves out this time, my sweet -"
His eyes fell on Harry and then
darted to the Kwikspell envelope, which, Harry realized too late, was lying two
feet away from where it had started.
Filch's pasty face went brick
red. Harry braced himself for a tidal wave of fury. Filch hobbled across to his
desk, snatched up the envelope, and threw it into a drawer.
"Have you - did you read
-?" he sputtered.
"No," Harry lied quickly.
Filch's knobbly hands were
twisting together.
"If I thought you'd read my
private -not that it's mine - for a friend - be that as it may - however
-"
Harry was staring at him,
alarmed; Filch had never looked madder. His eyes were popping, a tic was going
in one of his pouchy cheeks, and the tartan scarf didn't help.
"Very well - go - and don't
breathe a word - not that - however, if you didn't read - go now, I have to
write up Peeves' report - go -"
Amazed at his luck, Harry sped
out of the office, up the corridor, and back upstairs. To escape from Filch's
office without punishment was probably some kind of school record.
"Harry! Harry! Did it
work?"
Nearly Headless Nick came
gliding out of a classroom. Behind him, Harry could see the wreckage of a large
black-and-gold cabinet that appeared to have been dropped from a great height.
"I persuaded Peeves to
crash it right over Filch's office," said Nick eagerly. "Thought it
might distract him -"
"Was that you?" said
Harry gratefully. "Yeah, it worked, I didn't even get detention.
Thanks, Nick!"
They set off up the corridor
together. Nearly Headless Nick, Harry noticed, was still holding Sir Patrick's
rejection letter... "I wish there was something I could do for you about
the Headless Hunt," Harry said. Nearly Headless Nick stopped in his tracks
and Harry walked right through him. He wished he hadn't; it was like stepping
through an icy shower.
"But there is
something you could do for me," said Nick excitedly. "Harry - would I
be asking too much - but no, you wouldn't want -"
"What is it?" said
Harry. "Well, this Halloween will be my five hundredth deathday,"
said Nearly Headless Nick, drawing himself up and looking dignified.
"Oh," said Harry, not
sure whether he should look sorry or happy about this. "Right."
"I'm holding a party down
in one of the roomier dungeons. Friends will be coming from all over the
country. It would be such an honor if you would attend. Mr. Weasley and Miss
Granger would be most welcome, too, of course - but I daresay you'd rather go
to the school feast?" He watched Harry on tenterhooks.
"No," said Harry
quickly, "I'll come -"
"My dear boy! Harry Potter,
at my deathday party! And -" he hesitated, looking excited "- do you
think you could possibly mention to Sir Patrick how very frightening and
impressive you find me?"
"Of - of course," said
Harry.
Nearly Headless Nick beamed at
him.
"A deathday party?"
said Hermione keenly when Harry had changed at last and joined her and Ron in
the common room. "I bet there aren't many living people who can say
they've been to one of those - it'll be fascinating!"
"Why would anyone want to
celebrate the day they died?" said Ron, who was halfway through his
Potions homework and grumpy. "Sounds dead depressing to me..."
Rain was still lashing the
windows, which were now inky black, but inside all looked bright and cheerful.
The firelight glowed over the countless squashy armchairs where people sat
reading, talking, doing homework or, in the case of Fred and George Weasley,
trying to find out what would happen if you fed a Filibuster firework to a
salamander. Fred had "rescued" the brilliant orange, fire-dwelling
lizard from a Care of Magical Creatures class and it was now smouldering gently
on a table surrounded by a knot of curious people.
Harry was at the point of
telling Ron and Hermione about Filch and the Kwikspell course when the
salamander suddenly whizzed into the air, emitting loud sparks and bangs as it
whirled wildly round the room. The sight of Percy bellowing himself hoarse at
Fred and George, the spectacular display of tangerine stars showering from the
salamander's mouth, and its escape into the fire, with accompanying explosions,
drove both Filch and the Kwikspell envelope from Harry's mind.
By the time Halloween arrived,
Harry was regretting his rash promise to go to the deathday party. The rest of
the school was happily anticipating their Halloween feast;
the Great Hall had been decorated with the
usual live bats, Hagrid's vast pumpkins had been carved into lanterns large
enough for three men to sit in, and there were rumors that Dumbledore had booked
a troupe of dancing skeletons for the entertainment.
"A promise is a
promise," Hermione reminded Harry bossily. "You said you'd go to the
deathday party."
So at seven o'clock, Harry, Ron,
and Hermione walked straight past the doorway to the packed Great Hall, which
was glittering invitingly with gold plates and candles, and directed their
steps instead toward the dungeons.
The passageway leading to Nearly
Headless Nick's party had been lined with candles, too, though the effect was
far from cheerful: These were long, thin, jet-black tapers, all burning bright
blue, casting a dim, ghostly light even over their own living faces. The
temperature dropped with every step they took. As Harry shivered and drew his
robes tightly around him, he heard what sounded like a thousand fingernails
scraping an enormous blackboard.
"Is that supposed to be music?"
Ron whispered. They turned a corner and saw Nearly Headless Nick standing at a
doorway hung with black velvet drapes.
"My dear friends," he
said mournfully. "Welcome, welcome...so pleased you could come..."
He swept off his plumed hat and
bowed them inside.
It was an incredible sight. The
dungeon was full of hundreds of pearly-white, translucent people, mostly
drifting around a crowded dance floor, waltzing to the dreadful, quavering
sound of thirty musical saws, played by an orchestra on a raised, black-draped
platform. A chandelier overhead blazed midnight-blue with a thousand more black
candles. Their breath rose in a mist before them; it was like stepping into a freezer.
"Shall we have a look
around?" Harry suggested, wanting to warm up his feet.
"Careful not to walk
through anyone," said Ron nervously, and they set off around the edge of
the dance floor. They passed a group of gloomy nuns, a ragged man wearing chains,
and the Fat Friar, a cheerful Hufflepuff ghost, who was talking to a knight
with an arrow sticking out of his forehead. Harry wasn't surprised to see that
the Bloody Baron, a gaunt, staring Slytherin ghost covered in silver
bloodstains, was being given a wide berth by the other ghosts.
"Oh, no," said
Hermione, stopping abruptly. "Turn back, turn back, I don't want to talk
to Moaning Myrtle -"
"Who?" said Harry as
they backtracked quickly.
"She haunts one of the
toilets in the girls' bathroom on the first floor," said Hermione.
"She haunts a toilet?"
"Yes. It's been
out-of-order all year because she keeps having tantrums and flooding the place.
I never went in there anyway if I could avoid it; it's awful trying to have a
pee with her wailing at you -" "Look, food!" said Ron. On the other side of the dungeon was a long table, also
covered in black velvet. They approached it eagerly but next moment had stopped
in their tracks, horrified. The smell was quite disgusting. Large, rotten fish
were laid on handsome silver platters; cakes, burned charcoal-black, were
heaped on salvers; there was a great maggoty haggis, a slab of cheese covered
in furry green mold and, in pride of place, an enormous gray cake in the shape
of a tombstone, with tar-like icing forming the words, SIR NICHOLAS DE MIMSY-PORPINGTON DIED 31ST OCTOBER, 1492
Harry watched, amazed, as a
portly ghost approached the table, crouched low, and walked through it, his
mouth held wide so that it passed through one of the stinking salmon.
"Can you taste it if you
walk though it?" Harry asked him.
"Almost," said the
ghost sadly, and he drifted away.
"I expect they've let it
rot to give it a stronger flavor," said Hermione knowledgeably, pinching
her nose and leaning closer to look at the putrid haggis.
"Can we move? I feel
sick," said Ron.
They had barely turned around,
however, when a little man swooped suddenly from under the table and came to a
halt in midair before them.
"Hello, Peeves," said
Harry cautiously.
Unlike the ghosts around them,
Peeves the Poltergeist was the very reverse of pale and transparent. He was
wearing a bright orange party hat, a revolving bow tie, and a broad grin on his
wide, wicked face.
"Nibbles?" he said
sweetly, offering them a bowl of peanuts covered in fungus.
"No thanks," said
Hermione.
"Heard you talking about
poor Myrtle," said Peeves, his eyes dancing. "Rude you was
about poor Myrtle." He took a deep breath and bellowed, "OY!
MYRTLE!"
"Oh, no, Peeves, don't tell
her what I said, she'll be really upset," Hermione whispered frantically.
"I didn't mean it, I don't mind her - er, hello, Myrtle."
The squat ghost of a girl had
glided over. She had the glummest face Harry had ever seen, half-hidden behind
lank hair and thick, pearly spectacles.
"What?" she said
sulkily.
"How are you, Myrtle?"
said Hermione in a falsely bright voice. "It's nice to see you out of the
toilet."
Myrtle sniffed.
"Miss Granger was just
talking about you -" said Peeves slyly in Myrtle's ear. "Just saying
-"
"Just saying - saying - how
nice you look tonight," said Hermione, glaring at Peeves.
Myrtle eyed Hermione
suspiciously.
"You're making fun of
me," she said, silver tears welling rapidly in her small, see-through
eyes.
"No - honestly - didn't I
just say how nice Myrtle's looking?" said Hermione, nudging Harry and Ron
painfully in the ribs.
"Oh, yeah -"
"She did -"
"Don't lie to me,"
Myrtle gasped, tears now flooding down her face, while Peeves chuckled happily
over her shoulder. "D'you think I don't know what people call me behind my
back? Fat Myrtle! Ugly Myrtle! Miserable, moaning, moping Myrtle!"
"You've forgotten
pimply," Peeves hissed in her ear.
Moaning Myrtle burst into
anguished sobs and fled from the dungeon. Peeves shot after her, pelting her
with moldy peanuts, yelling, "Pimply! Pimply!"
"Oh, dear," said
Hermione sadly.
Nearly Headless Nick now drifted
toward them through the crowd.
"Enjoying yourselves?"
"Oh, yes," they lied.
"Not a bad turnout,"
said Nearly Headless Nick proudly. "The Wailing Widow came all the way up
from Kent...It's nearly time for my speech, I'd better go and warn the
orchestra..."
The orchestra, however, stopped
playing at that very moment. They, and everyone else in the dungeon, fell
silent, looking around in excitement, as a hunting horn sounded.
"Oh, here we go," said
Nearly Headless Nick bitterly.
Through the dungeon wall burst a
dozen ghost horses, each ridden by a headless horseman. The assembly clapped
wildly; Harry started to clap, too, but stopped quickly at the sight of Nick's
face.
The horses galloped into the middle
of the dance floor and halted, rearing and plunging. At the front of the pack
was a large ghost who held his bearded head under his arm, from which position
he was blowing the horn. The ghost leapt down, lifted his head high in the air
so he could see over the crowd (everyone laughed), and strode over to Nearly
Headless Nick, squashing his head back onto his neck.
"Nick!" he roared.
"How are you? Head still hanging in there?"
He gave a hearty guffaw and
clapped Nearly Headless Nick on the shoulder.
"Welcome, Patrick,"
said Nick stiffly.
"Live 'uns!" said Sir
Patrick, spotting Harry, Ron, and Hermione and giving a huge, fake jump of
astonishment, so that his head fell off again (the crowd howled with laughter).
"Very amusing," said
Nearly Headless Nick darkly.
"Don't mind Nick!"
shouted Sir Patrick's head from the floor. "Still upset we won't let him
join the Hunt! But I mean to say - look at the fellow -"
"I think," said Harry
hurriedly, at a meaningful look from Nick, "Nick's very - frightening and
- er -"
"Ha!" yelled Sir
Patrick's head.
"Bet he asked you to say
that!"
"If I could have everyone's
attention, it's time for my speech!" said Nearly Headless Nick loudly,
striding toward the podium and climbing into an icy blue spotlight.
"My late lamented lords,
ladies, and gentlemen, it is my great sorrow..."
But nobody heard much more. Sir
Patrick and the rest of the Headless Hunt had just started a game of Head
Hockey and the crowd were turning to watch. Nearly Headless Nick tried vainly
to recapture his audience, but gave up as Sir Patrick's head went sailing past
him to loud cheers.
Harry was very cold by now, not
to mention hungry.
"I can't stand much more of
this," Ron muttered, his teeth chattering, as the orchestra ground back
into action and the ghosts swept back onto the dance floor.
"Let's go," Harry
agreed.
They backed toward the door,
nodding and beaming at anyone who looked at them, and a minute later were
hurrying back up the passageway full of black candles.
"Pudding might not be
finished yet," said Ron hopefully, leading the way toward the steps to the
entrance hall.
And then Harry heard it.
"...rip...tear...kill..." It was the same voice, the same cold, murderous voice he
had heard in Lockhart's office.
He stumbled to a halt, clutching
at the stone wall, listening with all his might, looking around, squinting up
and down the dimly lit passageway.
"Harry, what're you
-?"
"It's that voice again -
shut up a minute -"
"...soo hungry...for
so long..." "Listen!" said Harry urgently, and Ron and
Hermione froze, watching him.
"...kill...time to
kill..." The voice was growing fainter. Harry was sure it was
moving away - moving upward. A mixture of fear and excitement gripped him as he
stared at the dark ceiling; how could it be moving upward? Was it a phantom, to
whom stone ceilings didn't matter?
"This way," he
shouted, and he began to run, up the stairs, into the entrance hall. It was no
good hoping to hear anything here, the babble of talk from the Halloween feast
was echoing out of the Great Hall. Harry sprinted up the marble staircase to
the first floor, Ron and Hermione clattering behind him.
"Harry, what're we -"
"SHH!"
Harry strained his ears.
Distantly, from the floor above, and growing fainter still, he heard the voice:
"...I smell blood...I SMELL BLOOD!"
His stomach lurched -
"It's going to kill
someone!" he shouted, and ignoring Ron's and Hermione's bewildered faces,
he ran up the next flight of steps three at a time, trying to listen over his
own pounding footsteps - Harry hurtled around the whole of the second floor, Ron
and Hermione panting behind him, not stopping until they turned a corner into
the last, deserted passage.
"Harry, what was
that all about?" said Ron, wiping sweat off his face. "I couldn't
hear anything..." But Hermione gave a sudden gasp, pointing down the
corridor.
"Look!"
Something was shining on the
wall ahead. They approached slowly, squinting through the darkness. Foot-high
words had been daubed on the wall between two windows, shimmering in the light
cast by the flaming torches. THE CHAMBER OF SECRETS HAS BEEN OPENED. ENEMIES OF THE HEIR, BEWARE.
"What's that thing -
hanging underneath?" said Ron, a slight quiver in his voice.
As they edged nearer, Harry
almost slipped - there was a large puddle of water on the floor; Ron and
Hermione grabbed him, and they inched toward the message, eyes fixed on a dark
shadow beneath it. All three of them realized what it was at once, and leapt
backward with a splash.
Mrs. Norris, the caretaker's
cat, was hanging by her tail from the torch bracket. She was stiff as a board,
her eyes wide and staring.
For a few seconds, they didn't
move. Then Ron said, "Let's get out of here."
"Shouldn't we try and help
-" Harry began awkwardly.
"Trust me," said Ron.
"We don't want to be found here."
But it was too late. A rumble,
as though of distant thunder, told them that the feast had just ended. From
either end of the corridor where they stood came the sound of hundreds of feet
climbing the stairs, and the loud, happy talk of well-fed people; next moment,
students were crashing into the passage from both ends.
The chatter, the bustle, the
noise died suddenly as the people in front spotted the hanging cat. Harry, Ron,
and Hermione stood alone, in the middle of the corridor, as silence fell among
the mass of students pressing forward to see the grisly sight.
Then someone shouted through the
quiet.
"Enemies of the Heir,
beware! You'll be next, Mudbloods!"
It was Draco Malfoy. He had
pushed to the front of the crowd, his cold eyes alive, his usually bloodless
face flushed, as he grinned at the sight of the hanging, immobile cat. CHAPTER NINE THE WRITING ON THE WALL
What's going on here? What's
going on?" Attracted no doubt by
Malfoy's shout, Argus Filch came shouldering his way through the crowd. Then he
saw Mrs. Norris and fell back, clutching his face in horror.
"My cat! My cat! What's
happened to Mrs. Norris?" he shrieked.
And his popping eyes fell on
Harry.
"You!" he
screeched. "You! You've murdered my cat! You've killed her! I'll
kill you! I'll -"
"Argus!" Dumbledore had arrived on the scene, followed by a number
of other teachers. In seconds, he had swept past Harry, Ron, and Hermione and
detached Mrs. Norris from the torch bracket.
"Come with me, Argus,"
he said to Filch. "You, too, Mr. Potter, Mr. Weasley, Miss Granger."
Lockhart stepped forward
eagerly.
"My office is nearest,
Headmaster - just upstairs - please feel free -"
"Thank you, Gilderoy,"
said Dumbledore.
The silent crowd parted to let
them pass. Lockhart, looking excited and important, hurried after Dumbledore;
so did Professors McGonagall and Snape.
As they entered Lockhart's
darkened office there was a flurry of movement across the walls; Harry saw
several of the Lockharts in the pictures dodging out of sight, their hair in
rollers. The real Lockhart lit the candles on his desk and stood back.
Dumbledore lay Mrs. Norris on the polished surface and began to examine her.
Harry, Ron, and Hermione exchanged tense looks and sank into chairs outside the
pool of candlelight, watching.
The tip of Dumbledore's long,
crooked nose was barely an inch from Mrs. Norris's fur. He was looking at her
closely through his half-moon spectacles, his long fingers gently prodding and
poking. Professor McGonagall was bent almost as close, her eyes narrowed. Snape
loomed behind them, half in shadow, wearing a most peculiar expression: It was
as though he was trying hard not to smile. And Lockhart was hovering around all
of them, making suggestions.
"It was definitely a curse
that killed her - probably the Transmogrifian Torture - I've seen it used many
times, so unlucky I wasn't there, I know the very countercurse that would have
saved her..."
Lockhart's comments were
punctuated by Filch's dry, racking sobs. He was slumped in a chair by the desk,
unable to look at Mrs. Norris, his face in his hands. Much as he detested
Filch, Harry couldn't help feeling a bit sorry for him, though not nearly as
sorry as he felt for himself If Dumbledore believed Filch, he would be expelled
for sure.
Dumbledore was now muttering
strange words under his breath and tapping Mrs. Norris with his wand but
nothing happened. She continued to look as though she had been recently
stuffed.
"...I remember something very
similar happening in Ouagadogou," said Lockhart, "a series of
attacks, the full story's in my autobiography, I was able to provide the
townsfolk with various amulets, which cleared the matter up at once..."
The photographs of Lockhart on
the walls were all nodding in agreement as he talked. One of them had forgotten
to remove his hair net.
At last Dumbledore straightened
up.
"She's not dead,
Argus," he said softly.
Lockhart stopped abruptly in the
middle of counting the number of murders he had prevented. "Not dead?" choked Filch, looking through his
fingers at Mrs. Norris. "But why's she all - all stiff and frozen?"
"She has been
Petrified," said Dumbledore ("Ah! I thought so!" said Lockhart).
"But how, I cannot say..."
"Ask him!"
shrieked Filch, turning his blotched and tearstained face to Harry.
"No second year could have
done this," said Dumbledore firmly. "it would take Dark Magic of the
most advanced -" "He did it, he did it!" Filch spat, his pouchy
face purpling. "You saw what he wrote on the wall! He found - in my office
- he knows I'm a - I'm a -" Filch's face worked horribly. "He knows
I'm a Squib!" he finished.
"I never touched
Mrs. Norris!" Harry said loudly, uncomfortably aware of everyone looking
at him, including all the Lockharts on the walls. "And I don't even know
what a Squib is."
"Rubbish!" snarled
Filch. "He saw my Kwikspell letter!"
"If I might speak, Headmaster,"
said Snape from the shadows, and Harry's sense of foreboding increased; he was
sure nothing Snape had to say was going to do him any good.
"Potter and his friends may
have simply been in the wrong place at the wrong time," he said, a slight
sneer curling his mouth as though he doubted it. "But we do have a set of
suspicious circumstances here. Why was he in the upstairs corridor at all? Why
wasn't he at the Halloween feast?"
Harry, Ron and Hermione all
launched into an explanation about the deathday party. "...there were
hundreds of ghosts, they'll tell you we were there -"
"But why not join the feast
afterward?" said Snape, his black eyes glittering in the candlelight.
"Why go up to that corridor?"
Ron and Hermione looked at
Harry.
"Because - because -"
Harry said, his heart thumping very fast; something told him it would sound
very far-fetched if he told them he had been led there by a bodiless voice no
one but he could hear, "because we were tired and wanted to go to
bed," he said.
"Without any supper?"
said Snape, a triumphant smile flickering across his gaunt face. "I didn't
think ghosts provided food fit for living people at their parties."
"We weren't hungry,"
said Ron loudly as his stomach gave a huge rumble.
Snape's nasty smile widened.
"I suggest, Headmaster,
that Potter is not being entirely truthful," he said. "It might be a
good idea if he were deprived of certain privileges until he is ready to tell
us the whole story. I personally feel he should be taken off the Gryffindor Quidditch
team until he is ready to be honest."
"Really, Severus,"
said Professor McGonagall sharply, "I see no reason to stop the boy
playing Quidditch. This cat wasn't hit over the head with a broomstick. There
is no evidence at all that Potter has done anything wrong."
Dumbledore was giving Harry a
searching look. His twinkling light-blue gaze made Harry feel as though he were
being X-rayed.
"Innocent until proven
guilty, Severus," he said firmly.
Snape looked furious.
So did Filch.
"My cat has been
Petrified!" he shrieked, his eyes popping. "I want to see some punishment!" "We will be able to cure her, Argus," said
Dumbledore patiently. "Professor Sprout recently managed to procure some
Mandrakes. As soon as they have reached their full size, I will have a potion
made that will revive Mrs. Norris."
"I'll make it,"
Lockhart butted in. "I must have done it a hundred times. I could whip up
a Mandrake Restorative Draught in my sleep -"
"Excuse me," said
Snape icily. "But I believe I am the Potions master at this school."
There was a very awkward pause.
"You may go,"
Dumbledore said to Harry, Ron, and Hermione.
They went, as quickly as they
could without actually running. When they were a floor up from Lockhart's
office, they turned into an empty classroom and closed the door quietly behind
them. Harry squinted at his friends' darkened faces.
"D'you think I should have
told them about that voice I heard?"
"No," said Ron,
without hesitation. "Hearing voices no one else can hear isn't a good
sign, even in the wizarding world."
Something in Ron's voice made
Harry ask, "You do believe me, don't you?"
"'Course I do," said
Ron quickly. "But - you must admit it's weird..."
"I know it's weird,"
said Harry. "The whole thing's weird. What was that writing on the wall
about? The Chamber Has Been Opened...What's that supposed to mean?" "You know, it rings a sort of bell," said Ron
slowly. "I think someone told me a story about a secret chamber at
Hogwarts once...might've been Bill..."
"And what on earth's a
Squib?" said Harry.
To his surprise, Ron stifled a
snigger.
"Well - it's not funny
really - but as it's Filch," he said. "A Squib is someone who was
born into a wizarding family but hasn't got any magic powers. Kind of the
opposite of Muggle-born wizards, but Squibs are quite unusual. If Filch's
trying to learn magic from a Kwikspell course, I reckon he must be a Squib. It
would explain a lot. Like why he hates students so much." Ron gave a
satisfied smile. "He's bitter."
A clock chimed somewhere.
"Midnight," said
Harry. "We'd better get to bed before Snape comes along and tries to frame
us for something else."
For a few days, the school could
talk of little else but the attack on Mrs. Norris. Filch kept it fresh in
everyone's minds by pacing the spot where she had been attacked, as though he
thought the attacker might come back. Harry had seen him scrubbing the message
on the wall with Mrs. Skower's All-Purpose Magical Mess Remover, but to no
effect; the words still gleamed as brightly as ever on the stone. When Filch
wasn't guarding the scene of the crime, he was skulking red-eyed through the
corridors, lunging out at unsuspecting students and trying to put them in
detention for things like "breathing loudly' and "looking
happy."
Ginny Weasley seemed very
disturbed by Mrs. Norris's fate. According to Ron, she was a great cat lover.
"But you haven't really got
to know Mrs. Norris," Ron told her bracingly. "Honestly, we're much
better off without her." Ginny's lip trembled. "Stuff like this
doesn't often happen at Hogwarts," Ron assured her. "They'll catch
the maniac who did it and have him out of here in no time. I just hope he's got
time to Petrify Filch before he's expelled. I'm only joking -" Ron added
hastily as Ginny blanched.
The attack had also had an
effect on Hermione. It was quite usual for Hermione to spend a lot of time
reading, but she was now doing almost nothing else. Nor could Harry and Ron get
much response from her when they asked what she was up to, and not until the
following Wednesday did they find out.
Harry had been held back in
Potions, where Snape had made him stay behind to scrape tubeworms off the
desks. After a hurried lunch, he went upstairs to meet Ron in the library, and
saw Justin Finch-Fletchley, the Hufflepuff boy from Herbology, coming toward
him. Harry had just opened his mouth to say hello when Justin caught sight of
him, turned abruptly, and sped off in the opposite direction.
Harry found Ron at the back of
the library, measuring his History of Magic homework. Professor Binns had asked
for a three foot long composition on "The Medieval Assembly of European
Wizards."
"I don't believe it, I'm
still eight inches short said Ron furiously, letting go of his parchment, which
sprang back into a roll. "And Hermione's done four feet seven inches and
her writing's tiny."
"Where is she?" asked
Harry, grabbing the tape measure and unrolling his own homework.
"Somewhere over
there," said Ron, pointing along the shelves. "Looking for another
book. I think she's trying to read the whole library before Christmas."
Harry told Ron about Justin
Finch-Fletchley running away from him.
"Dunno why you care. I
thought he was a bit of an idiot," said Ron, scribbling away, making his
writing as large as possible. "All that junk about Lockhart being so great
-"
Hermione emerged from between the
bookshelves. She looked irritable and at last seemed ready to talk to them.
"All the copies of Hogwarts,
A History have been taken out," she said, sitting down next to Harry
and Ron. "And there's a two-week waiting list. I wish I hadn't left
my copy at home, but I couldn't fit it in my trunk with all the Lockhart
books."
"Why do you want it?"
said Harry. "The same reason everyone else wants it," said
Hermione, "to read up on the legend of the Chamber of Secrets."
"What's that?" said
Harry quickly.
"That's just it. I can't
remember," said Hermione, biting her lip. "And I can't find the story
anywhere else -"
"Hermione, let me read your
composition," said Ron desperately, checking his watch.
"No, I won't," said
Hermione, suddenly severe. "You've had ten days to finish it -"
"I only need another two
inches, come on -"
The bell rang. Ron and Hermione
led the way to History of Magic, bickering.
History of Magic was the dullest
subject on their schedule. Professor Binns, who taught it, was their only ghost
teacher, and the most exciting thing that ever happened in his classes was his
entering the room through the blackboard. Ancient and shriveled, many people
said he hadn't noticed he was dead. He had simply got up to teach one day and
left his body behind him in an armchair in front of the staff room fire; his
routine had not varied in the slightest since.
Today was as boring as ever.
Professor Binns opened his notes and began to read in a flat drone like an old
vacuum cleaner until nearly everyone in the class was in a deep stupor,
occasionally coming to long enough to copy down a name or date, then falling
asleep again. He had been speaking for half an hour when something happened
that had never happened before. Hermione put up her hand.
Professor Binns, glancing up in
the middle of a deadly dull lecture on the International Warlock Convention of
1289, looked amazed.
"Miss - er -?"
"Granger, Professor. I was
wondering if you could tell us anything about the Chamber of Secrets,"
said Hermione in a clear voice.
Dean Thomas, who had been
sitting with his mouth hanging open, gazing out of the window, jerked out of
his trance; Lavender Brown's head came up off her arms and Neville Longbottom's
elbow slipped off his desk.
Professor Binns blinked.
"My subject is History of
Magic," he said in his dry, wheezy voice. "I deal with facts,
Miss Granger, not myths and legends." He cleared his throat with a small
noise like chalk slipping and continued, "In September of that year, a
subcommittee of Sardinian sorcerers -"
He stuttered to a halt.
Hermione's hand was waving in the air again.
"Miss Grant?"
"Please, sir, don't legends
always have a basis in fact?"
Professor Binns was looking at
her in such amazement, Harry was sure no student had ever interrupted him
before, alive or dead.
"Well," said Professor
Binns slowly, "yes, one could argue that, I suppose." He peered at
Hermione as though he had never seen a student properly before. "However,
the legend of which you speak is such a very sensational, even ludicrous
tale -"
But the whole class was now
hanging on Professor Binns's every word. He looked dimly at them all, every
face turned to his. Harry could tell he was completely thrown by such an
unusual show of interest.
"Oh, very well," he
said slowly. "Let me see...the Chamber of Secrets...
"You all know, of course,
that Hogwarts was founded over a thousand years ago - the precise date is
uncertain - by the four greatest witches and wizards of the age. The four
school Houses are named after them: Godric Gryffindor, Helga Hufflepuff, Rowena
Ravenclaw, and Salazar Slytherin. They built this castle together, far from
prying Muggle eyes, for it was an age when magic was feared by common people,
and witches and wizards suffered much persecution."
He paused, gazed blearily around
the room, and continued.
"For a few years, the
founders worked in harmony together, seeking out youngsters who showed signs of
magic and bringing them to the castle to be educated. But then disagreements
sprang up between them. A rift began to grow between Slytherin and the others.
Slytherin wished to be more selective about the students admitted to
Hogwarts. He believed that magical learning should be kept within all-magic
families. He disliked taking students of Muggle parentage, believing them to be
untrustworthy. After a while, there was a serious argument on the subject
between Slytherin and Gryffindor, and Slytherin left the school."
Professor Binns paused again,
pursing his lips, looking like a wrinkled old tortoise. "Reliable historical sources tell us this much,"
he said. "But these honest facts have been obscured by the fanciful legend
of the Chamber of Secrets. The story goes that Slytherin had built a hidden
chamber in the castle, of which the other founders knew nothing.
"Slytherin, according to
the legend, sealed the Chamber of Secrets so that none would be able to open it
until his own true heir arrived at the school. The heir alone would be able to
unseal the Chamber of Secrets, unleash the horror within, and use it to purge
the school of all who were unworthy to study magic."
There was silence as he finished
telling the story, but it wasn't the usual, sleepy silence that filled
Professor Binns's classes. There was unease in the air as everyone continued to
watch him, hoping for more. Professor Binns looked faintly annoyed.
"The whole thing is arrant
nonsense, of course," he said. "Naturally, the school has been
searched for evidence of such a chamber, many times, by the most learned
witches and wizards. It does not exist. A tale told to frighten the gullible."
Hermione's hand was back in the
air.
"Sir - what exactly do you
mean by the 'horror within' the Chamber?"
"That is believed to be
some sort of monster, which the Heir of Slytherin alone can control," said
Professor Binns in his dry, reedy voice.
The class exchanged nervous
looks.
"I tell you, the thing does
not exist," said Professor Binns, shuffling his notes. "There is no
Chamber and no monster."
"But, sir," said
Seamus Finnigan, "if the Chamber can only be opened by Slytherin's true
heir, no one else would be able to find it, would they?" "Nonsense, O'Flaherty," said Professor Binns in
an aggravated tone. "If a long succession of Hogwarts headmasters and
headmistresses haven't found the thing -"
"But, Professor,"
piped up Parvati Patil, "you'd probably have to use Dark Magic to open it
-"
"Just because a wizard doesn't
use Dark Magic doesn't mean he can't, Miss Pennyfeather," snapped
Professor Binns. "I repeat, if the likes of Dumbledore -"
"But maybe you've got to be
related to Slytherin, so Dumbledore couldn't -" began Dean Thomas, but
Professor Binns had had enough.
"That will do," he
said sharply. "It is a myth! It does not exist! There is not a shred of
evidence that Slytherin ever built so much as a secret broom cupboard! I regret
telling you such a foolish story! We will return, if you please, to history,
to solid, believable, verifiable fact!" And within five minutes, the class had sunk back into its
usual torpor.
"I always knew Salazar
Slytherin was a twisted old loony," Ron told Harry and Hermione as they
fought their way through the teeming corridors at the end of the lesson to drop
off their bags before dinner. "But I never knew he started all this
pure-blood stuff. I wouldn't be in his house if you paid me. Honestly, if the
Sorting Hat had tried to put me in Slytherin, I'd've got the train straight
back home..."
Hermione nodded fervently, but
Harry didn't say anything. His stomach had just dropped unpleasantly.
Harry had never told Ron and
Hermione that the Sorting Hat had seriously considered putting him in
Slytherin. He could remember, as though it were yesterday, the small voice that
had spoken in his ear when he'd placed the hat on his head a year before:
You could be great, you know, it's all here in your head, and Slytherin would
help you on the way to greatness, no doubt about that... But Harry, who had already heard of Slytherin House's
reputation for turning out Dark wizards, had thought desperately, Not
Slytherin! and the hat had said, Oh, well, if you're sure...better be
Gryffindor...
As they were shunted along in
the throng, Colin Creevy went past.
"Hiya, Harry!"
"Hullo, Colin," said
Harry automatically.
"Harry - Harry - a boy in
my class has been saying you're -"
But Colin was so small he
couldn't fight against the tide of people bearing him toward the Great Hall;
they heard him squeak, "See you, Harry!" and he was gone.
"What's a boy in his class
saying about you?" Hermione wondered.
"That I'm Slytherin's heir,
I expect," said Harry, his stomach dropping another inch or so as he
suddenly remembered the way Justin Finch-Fletchley had run away from him at
lunchtime.
"People here'll believe
anything," said Ron in disgust.
The crowd thinned and they were
able to climb the next staircase without difficulty.
"D'you really think
there's a Chamber of Secrets?" Ron asked Hermione. "I don't know," she said, frowning.
"Dumbledore couldn't cure Mrs. Norris, and that makes me think that
whatever attacked her might not be - well - human."
As she spoke, they turned a
corner and found themselves at the end of the very corridor where the attack
had happened. They stopped and looked. The scene was just as it had been that
night, except that there was no stiff cat hanging from the torch bracket, and
an empty chair stood against the wall bearing the message "The Chamber of
Secrets has been Opened."
"That's where Filch has
been keeping guard," Ron muttered.
They looked at each other. The
corridor was deserted.
"Can't hurt to have a poke
around," said Harry, dropping his bag and getting to his hands and knees
so that he could crawl along, searching for clues.
"Scorch marks!" he
said. "Here - and here -"
"Come and look at
this!" said Hermione. "This is funny..."
Harry got up and crossed to the
window next to the message on the wall. Hermione was pointing at the topmost
pane, where around twenty spiders were scuttling, apparently fighting to get
through a small crack. A long, silvery thread was dangling like a rope, as
though they had all climbed it in their hurry to get outside.
"Have you ever seen spiders
act like that?" said Hermione wonderingly.
"No," said Harry,
"have you, Ron? Ron?"
He looked over his shoulder. Ron
was standing well back and seemed to be fighting the impulse to run.
"What's up?" said
Harry.
"I - don't - like -
spiders," said Ron tensely.
"I never knew that,"
said Hermione, looking at Ron in surprise. "You've used spiders in Potions
loads of times..."
"I don't mind them
dead," said Ron, who was carefully looking anywhere but at the window.
"I just don't like the way they move..."
Hermione giggled.
"It's not funny," said
Ron, fiercely. "If you must know, when I was three, Fred turned my - my
teddy bear into a great big filthy spider because I broke his toy
broomstick...You wouldn't like them either if you'd been holding your bear and
suddenly it had too many legs and..."
He broke off, shuddering.
Hermione was obviously still trying not to laugh. Feeling they had better get
off the subject, Harry said, "Remember all that water on the floor? Where
did that come from? Someone's mopped it up."
"It was about here,"
said Ron, recovering himself to walk a few paces past Filch's chair and
pointing. "Level with this door."
He reached for the brass
doorknob but suddenly withdrew his hand as though he'd been burned.
"What's the matter?"
said Harry.
"Can't go in there," said
Ron gruffly. "That's a girls' toilet."
"Oh, Ron, there won't be
anyone in there," said Hermione standing up and coming over. "That's
Moaning Myrtle's place. Come on, let's have a look."
And ignoring the large OUT of
ORDER sign, she opened the door.
It was the gloomiest, most
depressing bathroom Harry had ever set foot in. Under a large, cracked, and
spotted mirror were a row of chipped sinks. The floor was damp and reflected
the dull light given off by the stubs of a few candles, burning low in their holders;
the wooden doors to the stalls were flaking and scratched and one of them was
dangling off its hinges.
Hermione put her fingers to her
lips and set off toward the end stall. When she reached it she said,
"Hello, Myrtle, how are you?"
Harry and Ron went to look.
Moaning Myrtle was floating above the tank of the toilet, picking a spot on her
chin.
"This is a girls'
bathroom," she said, eyeing Ron and Harry suspiciously. "They're
not girls."
"No," Hermione agreed.
"I just wanted to show them how er - nice it is in here." She waved vaguely at the dirty old mirror and the damp
floor.
"Ask her if she saw
anything," Harry mouthed at Hermione.
"What are you
whispering?" said Myrtle, staring at him.
"Nothing," said Harry
quickly. "We wanted to ask -"
"I wish people would stop
talking behind my back!" said Myrtle, in a voice choked with tears.
"I do have feelings, you know, even if I am dead -"
"Myrtle, no one wants to
upset you," said Hermione. "Harry only -"
"No one wants to upset me!
That's a good one!" howled Myrtle. "My life was nothing but misery at
this place and now people come along ruining my death!"
"We wanted to ask you if
you've seen anything funny lately," said Hermione quickly. "Because a
cat was attacked right outside your front door on Halloween."
"Did you see anyone near
here that night?" said Harry.
"I wasn't paying
attention," said Myrtle dramatically. "Peeves upset me so much I came
in here and tried to kill myself. Then, of course, I remembered that I'm
- that I'm -"
"Already dead," said
Ron helpfully.
Myrtle gave a tragic sob, rose
up in the air, turned over, and dived headfirst into the toilet, splashing
water all over them and vanishing from sight, although from the direction of
her muffled sobs, she had come to rest somewhere in the U-bend.
Harry and Ron stood with their
mouths open, but Hermione shrugged wearily and said, "Honestly, that was
almost cheerful for Myrtle...Come on, let's go."
Harry had barely closed the door
on Myrtle's gurgling sobs when a loud voice made all three of them jump.
"RON!"
Percy Weasley had stopped dead
at the head of the stairs, prefect badge agleam, an expression of complete
shock on his face.
"That's a girls'
bathroom!" he gasped. "What were you -?"
"Just having a look
around," Ron shrugged. "Clues, you know -"
Percy swelled in a manner that
reminded Harry forcefully of Mrs. Weasley.
"Get - away - from - there
-" Perry said, striding toward them and starting to bustle them along,
flapping his arms. "Don't you care what this looks like? Coming
back here while everyone's at dinner -" "Why shouldn't we be here?" said Ron hotly,
stopping short and glaring at Percy. "Listen, we never laid a finger on
that cat!"
"That's what I told
Ginny," said Percy fiercely, "but she still seems to think you're
going to be expelled, I've never seen her so upset, crying her eyes out, you
might think of her, all the first years are thoroughly overexcited by
this business -"
"You don't care
about Ginny," said Ron, whose ears were now reddening. "You're
just worried I'm going to mess up your chances of being Head Boy -"
"Five points from
Gryffindor!" Percy said tersely, fingering his prefect badge. "And I
hope it teaches you a lesson! No more detective work, or I'll write to
Mum!" And he strode off, the back of his neck as red as Ron's ears.
Harry, Ron, and Hermione chose
seats as far as possible from Percy in the common room that night. Ron was
still in a very bad temper and kept blotting his Charms homework. When he
reached absently for his wand to remove the smudges, it ignited the parchment.
Fuming almost as much as his homework, Ron slammed The Standard Book of
Spells, Grade 2 shut. To Harry's surprise, Hermione followed suit.
"Who can it be,
though?" she said in a quiet voice, as though continuing a conversation
they had just been having. "Who'd want to frighten all the Squibs and
Muggle-borns out of Hogwart's?"
"Let's think," said
Ron in mock puzzlement. "Who do we know who thinks Muggle-borns are
scum?"
He looked at Hermione. Hermione
looked back, unconvinced.
"If you're talking about
Malfoy -"
"Of course I am!" said
Ron. "You heard him - 'You'll be next, Mudbloods!'- come on, you've only
got to look at his foul rat face to know it's him -"
"Malfoy, the Heir of
Slytherin?" said Hermione skeptically.
"Look at his family,"
said Harry, closing his books, too. "The whole lot of them have been in
Slytherin; he's always boasting about it. They could easily be Slytherin's
descendants. His father's definitely evil enough."
"They could've had the key
to the Chamber of Secrets for centuries!" said Ron. "Handing it down,
father to son ..."
"Well," said Hermione
cautiously, "I suppose it's possible..."
"But how do we prove
it?" said Harry darkly.
"There might be a
way," said Hermione slowly, dropping her voice still further with a quick
glance across the room at Percy. "Of course, it would be difficult. And
dangerous, very dangerous. We'd be breaking about fifty school rules, I expect
-"
"If, in a month or so, you
feel like explaining, you will let us know, won't you?" said Ron
irritably.
"All right," said
Hermione coldly. "What we'd need to do is to get inside the Slytherin
common room and ask Malfoy a few questions without him realizing it's us."
"But that's
impossible," Harry said as Ron laughed.
"No, it's not," said
Hermione. "All we'd need would be some Polyjuice Potion."
"What's that?" said
Ron and Harry together.
"Snape mentioned it in
class a few weeks ago -"
"D'you think we've got
nothing better to do in Potions than listen to Snape?" muttered Ron.
"It transforms you into
somebody else. Think about it! We could change into three of the Slytherins. No
one would know it was us. Malfoy would probably tell us anything. He's probably
boasting about it in the Slytherin common room right now, if only we could hear
him."
"This Polyjuice stuff
sounds a bit dodgy to me," said Ron, frowning. "What if we were stuck
looking like three of the Slytherins forever?"
"It wears off after a
while," said Hermione, waving her hand impatiently. "But getting hold
of the recipe will be very difficult. Snape said it was in a book called Moste
Potente Potions and it's bound to be in the Restricted Section of the
library." There was only one way to get out a book from the Restricted
Section: You needed a signed note of permission from a teacher. "Hard to
see why we'd want the book, really," said Ron, "if we weren't going
to try and make one of the potions." "I think," said Hermione,
"that if we made it sound as though we were just interested in the theory,
we might stand a chance...
"Oh, come on, no teacher's
going to fall for that," said Ron. "They'd have to be really
thick..." CHAPTER TEN THE ROGUE BLUDGER
Since the disastrous episode of
the pixies, Professor Lockhart had not brought live creatures to class.
Instead, he read passages from his books to them, and sometimes reenacted some
of the more dramatic bits. He usually picked Harry to help him with these
reconstructions; so far, Harry had been forced to play a simple Transylvanian
villager whom Lockhart had cured of a Babbling Curse, a yeti with a head cold,
and a vampire who had been unable to eat anything except lettuce since Lockhart
had dealt with him.
Harry was hauled to the front of
the class during their very next Defense Against the Dark Arts lesson, this
time acting a werewolf. If he hadn't had a very good reason for keeping
Lockhart in a good mood, he would have refused to do it.
"Nice loud howl, Harry -
exactly - and then, if you'll believe it, I pounced - like this - slammed him
to the floor - thus with one hand, I managed to hold him down - with my other,
I put my wand to his throat - I then screwed up my remaining strength and
performed the immensely complex Homorphus Charm- he let out a piteous moan - go
on, Harry - higher than that - good - the fur vanished - the fangs shrank - and
he turned back into a man. Simple, yet effective - and another village will
remember me forever as the hero who delivered them from the monthly terror of
werewolf attacks."
The bell rang and Lockhart got
to his feet.
"Homework - compose a poem
about my defeat of the Wagga Wagga Werewolf! Signed copies of Magical Me to the
author of the best one!"
The class began to leave. Harry
returned to the back of the room, where Ron and Hermione were waiting.
"Ready?" Harry
muttered.
"Wait till everyone's
gone," said Hermione nervously. "All right..."
She approached Lockhart's desk,
a piece of paper clutched tightly in her hand, Harry and Ron right behind her.
"Er - Professor
Lockhart?" Hermione stammered. "I wanted to - to get this book out of
the library. Just for background reading." She held out the piece of
paper, her hand shaking slightly. "But the thing is, it's in the
Restricted Section of the library, so I need a teacher to sign for it - I'm
sure it would help me understand what you say in Gadding with Ghouls about
slow-acting venoms."
"Ah, Gadding with
Ghouls!" said Lockhart, taking the note from Hermione and smiling widely
at her. "Possibly my very favorite book. You enjoyed it?"
"Oh, yes," said
Hermione eagerly. "So clever, the way you trapped that last one with the
tea-strainer -"
"Well, I'm sure no one will
mind me giving the best student of the year a little extra help," said
Lockhart warmly, and he pulled out an enormous peacock quill. "Yes, nice,
isn't it?" he said, misreading the revolted look on Ron's face. "I
usually save it for book-signings."
He scrawled an enormous loopy
signature on the note and handed it back to Hermione.
"So, Harry," said
Lockhart, while Hermione folded the note with fumbling fingers and slipped it
into her bag. "Tomorrow's the first Quidditch match of the season, I
believe? Gryffindor against Slytherin, is it not? I hear you're a useful
player. I was a Seeker, too. I was asked to try for the National Squad, but
preferred to dedicate my life to the eradication of the Dark Forces. Still, if
ever you feel the need for a little private training, don't hesitate to ask.
Always happy to pass on my expertise to less able players..."
Harry made an indistinct noise
in his throat and then hurried off after Ron and Hermione.
"I don't believe it,"
he said as the three of them examined the signature on the note. "He
didn't even look at the book we wanted."
"That's because he's a
brainless git," said Ron. "But who cares, we've got what we
needed-"
"He is not a brainless
git," said Hermione shrilly as they half ran toward the library.
"Just because he said you
were the best student of the year -"
They dropped their voices as
they entered the muffled stillness of the library. Madam Pince, the librarian,
was a thin, irritable woman who looked like an underfed vulture.
"Moste Potente Potions?"
she repeated suspiciously, trying to take the note from Hermione; but Hermione
wouldn't let go.
"I was wondering if I could
keep it," she said breathlessly.
"Oh, come on," said
Ron, wrenching it from her grasp and thrusting it at Madam Pince. "We'll get
you another autograph. Lockhart'll sign anything if it stands still long
enough."
Madam Pince held the note up to
the light, as though determined to detect a forgery, but it passed the test.
She stalked away between the lofty shelves and returned several minutes later
carrying a large and moldy-looking book. Hermione put it carefully into her bag
and they left, trying not to walk too quickly or look too guilty.
Five minutes later, they were
barricaded in Moaning Myrtle's out-of-order bathroom once again. Hermione had
overridden Ron's objections by pointing out that it was the last place anyone
in their right minds would go, so they were guaranteed some privacy. Moaning
Myrtle was crying noisily in her stall, but they were ignoring her, and she
them.
Hermione opened Moste Potente
Potions carefully, and the three of them bent over the damp-spotted pages. It
was clear from a glance why it belonged in the Restricted Section. Some of the
potions had effects almost too gruesome to think about, and there were some
very unpleasant illustrations, which included a man who seemed to have been
turned inside out and a witch sprouting several extra pairs of arms out of her
head.
"Here it is," said
Hermione excitedly as she found the page headed The Polyjuice Potion. It was
decorated with drawings of people halfway through transforming into other
people. Harry sincerely hoped the artist had imagined the looks of intense pain
on their faces.
"This is the most
complicated potion I've ever seen," said Hermione as they scanned the
recipe. "Lacewing flies, leeches, fluxweed, and knotgrass," she
murmured, running her finger down the list of ingredients. "Well, they're
easy enough, they're in the student store-cupboard, we can help ourselves...Oooh,
look, powdered horn of a bicorn - don't know where we're going to get that -
shredded skin of a boomslang -. that'll be tricky, too and of course a bit of
whoever we want to change into."
"Excuse me?" said Ron
sharply. "What d'you mean, a bit of whoever we're changing into? I'm
drinking nothing with Crabbe's toenails in it -"
Hermione continued as though she
hadn't heard him.
"We don't have to worry
about that yet, though, because we add those bits last..."
Ron turned, speechless, to
Harry, who had another worry.
"D'you realize how much we're
going to have to steal, Hermione? Shredded skin of a boomslang, that's
definitely not in the students' cupboard. What're we going to do, break into
Snape's private stores? I don't know if this is a good idea..."
Hermione shut the book with a
snap.
"Well, if you two are going
to chicken out, fine," she said. There were bright pink patches on her
cheeks and her eyes were brighter than usual. "I don't want to break
rules, you know. I think threatening Muggle-borns is far worse than brewing up
a difficult potion. But if you don't want to find out if it's Malfoy, I'll go
straight to Madam Pince now and hand the book back in.'
"I never thought Id see the
day when you'd be persuading us to break rules," said Ron. "All
right, we'll do it. But not toenails, okay?"
"How long will it take to
make, anyway?" said Harry as Hermione, looking happier, opened the book
again.
"Well, since the fluxweed
has got to be picked at the full moon and the lacewings have got to be stewed
for twenty-one days...I'd say it'd be ready in about a month, if we can get all
the ingredients."
"A month?" said Ron.
"Malfoy could have attacked half the Muggle-borns in the school by
then!" But Hermione's eyes narrowed dangerously again, and he added
swiftly, "But it's the best plan we've got, so full steam ahead, I
say."
However, while Hermione was
checking that the coast was clear for them to leave the bathroom, Ron muttered
to Harry, "It'll be a lot less hassle if you can just knock Malfoy off his
broom tomorrow."
Harry woke early on Saturday
morning and lay for a while thinking about the coming Quidditch match. He was
nervous, mainly at the thought of what Wood would say if Gryffindor lost, but
also at the idea of facing a team mounted on the fastest racing brooms gold
could buy. He had never wanted to beat Slytherin so badly. After half an hour
of lying there with his insides churning, he got up, dressed, and went down to
breakfast early, where he found the rest of the Gryffindor team huddled at the
long, empty table, all looking uptight and not speaking much.
As eleven o'clock approached,
the whole school started to make its way down to the Quidditch stadium. It was
a muggy sort of day with a hint of thunder in the air. Ron and Hermione came
hurrying over to wish Harry good luck as he entered the locker rooms. The team
pulled on their scarlet Gryffindor robes, then sat down to listen to Wood's
usual pre-match pep talk.
"Slytherin has better
brooms than us," he began. "No point denying it. But we've got better
people on our brooms. We've trained harder than they have, we've been flying in
all weathers -"("Too true," muttered George Weasley. "I
haven't been properly dry since August")"- and we're going to make
them rue the day they let that little bit of slime, Malfoy, buy his way onto
their team."
Chest heaving with emotion, Wood
turned to Harry.
"It'll be down to you,
Harry, to show them that a Seeker has to have something more than a rich
father. Get to that Snitch before Malfoy or die trying, Harry, because we've
got to win today, we've got to."
"So no pressure,
Harry" said Fred, winking at him.
As they walked out onto the
pitch, a roar of noise greeted them; mainly cheers, because Ravenclaw and
Hufflepuff were anxious to see Slytherin beaten, but the Slytherins in the
crowd made their boos and hisses heard, too. Madam Hooch, the Quidditch
teacher, asked Flint and Wood to shake hands, which they did, giving each other
threatening stares and gripping rather harder than was necessary.
"On my whistle," said
Madam Hooch. "Three...two...one..."
With a roar from the crowd to
speed them upward, the fourteen players rose toward the leaden sky. Harry flew
higher than any of them, squinting around for the Snitch.
"All right there,
Scarhead?" yelled Malfoy, shooting underneath him as though to show off
the speed of his broom.
Harry had no time to reply. At
that very moment, a heavy black Bludger came pelting toward him; he avoided it
so narrowly that he felt it ruffle his hair as it passed.
"Close one, Harry!"
said George, streaking past him with his club in his hand, ready to knock the
Bludger back toward a Slytherin. Harry saw George give the Bludger a powerful
whack in the direction of Adrian Pucey, but the Bludger changed direction in
midair and shot straight for Harry again.
Harry dropped quickly to avoid
it, and George managed to hit it hard toward Malfoy. Once again, the Bludger
swerved like a boomerang and shot at Harry's head.
Harry put on a burst of speed
and zoomed toward the other end of the pitch. He could hear the Bludger
whistling along behind him. What was going on? Bludgers never concentrated on
one player like this; it was their job to try and unseat as many people as
possible...
Fred Weasley was waiting for the
Bludger at the other end. Harry ducked as Fred swung at the Bludger with all
his might; the Bludger was knocked off course.
"Gotcha!" Fred yelled
happily, but he was wrong; as though it was magnetically attracted to Harry,
the Bludger pelted after him once more and Harry was forced to fly off at full
speed.
It had started to rain; Harry
felt heavy drops fall onto his face, splattering onto his glasses. He didn't
have a clue what was going on in the rest of the game until he heard Lee
Jordan, who was commentating, say, "Slytherin lead, sixty points to zero.'
The Slytherins' superior brooms
were clearly doing their jobs, and meanwhile the mad Bludger was doing all it
could to knock Harry out of the air. Fred and George were now flying so close
to him on either side that Harry could see nothing at all except their flailing
arms and had no chance to look for the Snitch, let alone catch it.
"Someone's - tampered -
with - this - Bludger -" Fred grunted, swinging his bat with all his might
at it as it launched a new attack on Harry.
"We need time out,"
said George, trying to signal to Wood and stop the Bludger breaking Harry's
nose at the same time.
Wood had obviously got the
message. Madam Hooch's whistle rang out and Harry, Fred, and George dived for
the ground, still trying to avoid the mad Bludger.
"What's going on?"
said Wood as the Gryffindor team huddled together, while Slytherins in the
crowd jeered. "We're being flattened. Fred, George, where were you when
that Bludger stopped Angelina scoring?"
"We were twenty feet above
her, stopping the other Bludger from murdering Harry, Oliver," said George
angrily. "Someone's fixed it - it won't leave Harry alone. It hasn't gone
for anyone else all game. The Slytherins must have done something to it."
"But the Bludgers have been
locked in Madam Hooch's office since our last practice, and there was nothing
wrong with them then..." said Wood, anxiously. Madam Hooch was walking
toward them. Over her shoulder, Harry could see the Slytherin team jeering and
pointing in his direction.
"Listen," said Harry
as she came nearer and nearer, "with you two flying around me all the time
the only way I'm going to catch the Snitch is if it flies up my sleeve. Go back
to the rest of the team and let me deal with the rogue one."
"Don't be thick," said
Fred. "It'll take your head off."
Wood was looking from Harry to
the Weasleys.
"Oliver, this is
insane," said Alicia Spinner angrily. "You can't let Harry deal with
that thing on his own. Let's ask for an inquiry..."
"If we stop now, we'll have
to forfeit the match!" said Harry. "And we're not losing to Slytherin
just because of a crazy Bludger! Come on, Oliver, tell them to leave me
alone!"
"This is all your
fault," George said angrily to Wood. "'Get the Snitch or die trying,'
what a stupid thing to tell him -"
Madam Hooch had joined them.
"Ready to resume
play?" she asked Wood.
Wood looked at the determined
look on Harry's face.
"All right," he said.
"Fred, George, you heard Harry - leave him alone and let him deal with the
Bludger on his own."
The rain was falling more
heavily now. On Madam Hooch's whistle, Harry kicked hard into the air and heard
the telltale whoosh of the Bludger behind him. Higher and higher Harry climbed;
he looped and swooped, spiraled, zigzagged, and rolled. Slightly dizzy, he
nevertheless kept his eyes wide open, rain was speckling his glasses and ran up
his nostrils as he hung upside down, avoiding another fierce dive from the
Bludger. He could hear laughter from the crowd; he knew he must look very
stupid, but the rogue Bludger was heavy and couldn't change direction as
quickly as Harry could; he began a kind of roller-coaster ride around the edges
of the stadium, squinting through the silver sheets of rain to the Gryffindor
goal posts, where Adrian Pucey was trying to get past Wood.
A whistling in Harry's ear told
him the Bludger had just missed him again; he turned right over and sped in the
opposite direction.
"Training for the ballet,
Potter?" yelled Malfoy as Harry was forced to do a stupid kind of twirl in
midair to dodge the Bludger, and he fled, the Bludger trailing a few feet
behind him; and then, glaring back at Malfoy in hatred, he saw it - the Golden
Snitch. It was hovering inches above Malfoy's left ear - and Malfoy, busy
laughing at Harry, hadn't seen it.
For an agonizing moment, Harry
hung in midair, not daring to speed toward Malfoy in case he looked up and saw
the Snitch.
WHAM.
He had stayed still a second too
long. The Bludger had hit him at last, smashed into his elbow, and Harry felt
his arm break. Dimly, dazed by the searing pain in his arm, he slid sideways on
his rain-drenched broom, one knee still crooked over it, his right arm dangling
useless at his side - the Bludger came pelting back for a second attack, this
time zooming at his face - Harry swerved out of the way, one idea firmly lodged
in his numb brain: get to Malfoy.
Through a haze of rain and pain
he dived for the shimmering, sneering face below him and saw its eyes widen
with fear: Malfoy thought Harry was attacking him.
"What the -" he
gasped, careening out of Harry's way.
Harry took his remaining hand
off his broom and made a wild snatch; he felt his fingers close on the cold
Snitch but was now only gripping the broom with his legs, and there was a yell
from the crowd below as he headed straight for the ground, trying hard not to
pass out.
With a splattering thud he hit
the mud and rolled off his broom. His arm was hanging at a very strange angle;
riddled with pain, he heard, as though from a distance, a good deal of
whistling and shouting. He focused on the Snitch clutched in his good hand.
"Aha," he said
vaguely. "We've won."
And he fainted.
He came around, rain falling on
his face, still lying on the field, with someone leaning over him. He saw a
glitter of teeth.
"Oh, no, not you," he
moaned.
"Doesn't know what he's
saying," said Lockhart loudly to the anxious crowd of Gryffindors pressing
around them. "Not to worry, Harry. I'm about to fix your arm."
"No!" said Harry.
"I'll keep it like this, thanks..."
He tried to sit up, but the pain
was terrible. He heard a familiar clicking noise nearby.
"I don't want a photo of
this, Colin," he said loudly.
"Lie back, Harry,"
said Lockhart soothingly. "It's a simple charm I've used countless times
-"
"Why can't I just go to the
hospital wing?" said Harry through clenched teeth.
"He should really,
Professor," said a muddy Wood, who couldn't help grinning even though his
Seeker was injured. "Great capture, Harry, really spectacular, your best
yet, I'd say -"
Through the thicket of legs
around him, Harry spotted Fred and George Weasley, wrestling the rogue Bludger
into a box. It was still putting up a terrific fight.
"Stand back," said
Lockhart, who was rolling up his jade-green sleeves.
"No - don't -" said
Harry weakly, but Lockhart was twirling his wand and a second later had
directed it straight at Harry's arm.
A strange and unpleasant
sensation started at Harry's shoulder and spread all the way down to his
fingertips. It felt as though his arm was being deflated. He didn't dare look
at what was happening. He had shut his eyes, his face turned away from his arm,
but his worst fears were realized as the people above him gasped and Colin
Creevey began clicking away madly. His arm didn't hurt anymore - nor did it
feel remotely like an arm.
"Ah," said Lockhart.
"Yes. Well, that can sometimes happen. But the point is, the bones are no
longer broken. That's the thing to bear in mind. So, Harry, just toddle up to
the hospital wing - ah, Mr. Weasley, Miss Granger, would you escort him? - and
Madam Pomfrey will be able to - er - tidy you up a bit."
As Harry got to his feet, he
felt strangely lopsided. Taking a deep breath he looked down at his right side.
What he saw nearly made him pass out again.
Poking out of the end of his
robes was what looked like a thick, flesh-colored rubber glove. He tried to
move his fingers. Nothing happened.
Lockhart hadn't mended Harry's
bones. He had removed them.
Madam Pomfrey wasn't at all
pleased.
"You should have come
straight to me!" she raged, holding up the sad, limp remainder of what,
half an hour before, had been a working arm. "I can mend bones in a second
- but growing them back -"
"You will be able to, won't
you?" said Harry desperately.
"I'll be able to,
certainly, but it will be painful," said Madam Pomfrey grimly, throwing
Harry a pair of pajamas. "You'll have to stay the night..."
Hermione waited outside the
curtain drawn around Harry's bed while Ron helped him into his pajamas. It took
a while to stuff the rubbery, boneless arm into a sleeve.
"How can you stick up for
Lockhart now, Hermione, eh?" Ron called through the curtain as he pulled
Harry's limp fingers through the cuff. "If Harry had wanted deboning he
would have asked."
"Anyone can make a
mistake," said Hermione. "And it doesn't hurt anymore, does it,
Harry?"
"No," said Harry,
getting into bed. "But it doesn't do anything else either."
As he swung himself onto the bed,
his arm flapped pointlessly.
Hermione and Madam Pomfrey came
around the curtain. Madam Pomfrey was holding a large bottle of something
labeled Skele-Gro.
"You're in for a rough
night," she said, pouring out a steaming beakerful and handing it to him.
"Regrowing bones is a nasty business."
So was taking the Skele-Gro. It
burned Harry's mouth and throat as it went down, making him cough and splutter.
Still tut-tutting about dangerous sports and inept teachers, Madam Pomfrey
retreated, leaving Ron and Hermione to help Harry gulp down some water.
"We won, though," said Ron, a grin breaking across his face.
"That was some catch you made. Malfoy's face...he looked ready to
kill..."
"I want to know how he
fixed that Bludger," said Hermione darkly. "We can add that to the
list of questions we'll ask him when we've taken the Polyjuice Potion,"
said Harry, sinking back onto his pillows. "I hope it tastes better than
this stuff..."
"If it's got bits of
Slytherins in it? You've got to be joking," said Ron.
The door of the hospital wing
burst open at that moment. Filthy and soaking wet, the rest of the Gryffindor
team had arrived to see Harry. "Unbelievable flying, Harry," said
George. "I've just seen Marcus Flint yelling at Malfoy. Something about
having the Snitch on top of his head and not noticing. Malfoy didn't seem too
happy." They had brought cakes, sweets, and bottles of pumpkin juice; they
gathered around Harry's bed and were just getting started on what promised to
be a good party when Madam Pomfrey came storming over, shouting, "This boy
needs rest, he's got thirty-three bones to regrow! Out! OUT!" And Harry
was left alone, with nothing to distract him from the stabbing pains in his
limp arm.
Hours and hours later, Harry
woke quite suddenly in the pitch blackness and gave a small yelp of pain: His
arm now felt full of large splinters. For a second, he thought that was what
had woken him. Then, with a thrill of horror, he realized that someone was
sponging his forehead in the dark.
"Get off!" he said
loudly, and then, "Dobby!"
The house-elf's goggling tennis
ball eyes were peering at Harry through the darkness. A single tear was running
down his long, pointed nose.
"Harry Potter came back to
school," he whispered miserably. "Dobby warned and warned Harry
Potter. Ah sir, why didn't you heed Dobby? Why didn't Harry Potter go back home
when he missed the train?"
Harry heaved himself up on his
pillows and pushed Dobby's sponge away.
"What're you doing
here?" he said. "And how did you know I missed the train?"
Dobby's lip trembled and Harry
was seized by a sudden suspicion.
"It was you!" he said
slowly. "You stopped the barrier from letting us through!"
"Indeed yes, sir,"
said Dobby, nodding his head vigorously, ears flapping. "Dobby hid and
watched for Harry Potter and sealed the gateway and Dobby had to iron his hands
afterward" - he showed Harry ten long, bandaged fingers - "but Dobby
didn't care, sir, for he thought Harry Potter was safe, and never did Dobby
dream that Harry Potter would get to school another way!"
He was rocking backward and
forward, shaking his ugly head.
"Dobby was so shocked when
he heard Harry Potter was back at Hogwarts, he let his master's dinner burn!
Such a flogging Dobby never had, sir..."
Harry slumped back onto his
pillows.
"You nearly got Ron and me
expelled," he said fiercely. "You'd better get lost before my bones
come back, Dobby, or I might strangle you."
Dobby smiled weakly.
"Dobby is used to death
threats, sir. Dobby gets them five times a day at home."
He blew his nose on a corner of
the filthy pillowcase he wore, looking so pathetic that Harry felt his anger
ebb away in spite of himself.
"Why d'you wear that thing,
Dobby?" he asked curiously.
"This, sir?" said
Dobby, plucking at the pillowcase. "'Tis a mark of the house-elf's
enslavement, sir. Dobby can only be freed if his masters present him with
clothes, sir. The family is careful not to pass Dobby even a sock, sir, for
then he would be free to leave their house forever."
Dobby mopped his bulging eyes
and said suddenly, "Harry Potter must go home! Dobby thought his Bludger
would be enough to make -"
"Your Bludger?" said
Harry, anger rising once more. "What d'you mean, your Bludger? You made
that Bludger try and kill me?"
"Not kill you, sir, never
kill you!" said Dobby, shocked. "Dobby wants to save Harry Potter's
life! Better sent home, grievously injured, than remain here sir! Dobby only
wanted Harry Potter hurt enough to be sent home!"
"Oh, is that all?"
said Harry angrily. "I don't suppose you're going to tell me why you
wanted me sent home in pieces?"
"Ah, if Harry Potter only
knew!" Dobby groaned, more tears dripping onto his ragged pillowcase.
"If he knew what he means to us, to the lowly, the enslaved, we dregs of
the magical world! Dobby remembers how it was when He-Who-Must-Not-Be-Named was
at the height of his powers, sir! We house-elves were treated like vermin, sir!
Of course, Dobby is still treated like that, sir," he admitted, drying his
face on the pillowcase. "But mostly, sir, life has improved for my kind
since you triumphed over He-Who-Must-Not-Be-Named. Harry Potter survived, and
the Dark Lord's power was broken, and it was a new dawn, sir, and Harry Potter
shone like a beacon of hope for those of us who thought the Dark days would
never end, sit...And now, at Hogwarts, terrible things are to happen, are perhaps
happening already, and Dobby cannot let Harry Potter stay here now that history
is to repeat itself, now that the Chamber of Secrets is open once more."
Dobby froze, horrorstruck, then
grabbed Harry's water jug from his bedside table and cracked it over his own
head, toppling out of sight. A second later, he crawled back onto the bed,
cross-eyed, muttering, "Bad Dobby, very bad Dobby..."
"So there is a Chamber of
Secrets?" Harry whispered. "And did you say it's been opened before?
Tell me, Dobby!"
He seized the elf's bony wrist
as Dobby's hand inched toward the water jug. "But I'm not Muggle-born -
how can I be in danger from the Chamber?"
"Ah, sir, ask no more, ask
no more of poor Dobby," stammered the elf, his eyes huge in the dark.
"Dark deeds are planned in this place, but Harry Potter must not be here
when they happen - go home, Harry Potter, go home. Harry Potter must not meddle
in this, sir, 'tis too dangerous -"
"Who is it, Dobby?"
Harry said, keeping a firm hold on Dobby's wrist to stop him from hitting
himself with the water jug again. "Who's opened it? Who opened it last
time?"
"Dobby can't, sir, Dobby
can't, Dobby mustn't tell!" squealed the elf. "Go home, Harry Potter,
go home!"
"I'm not going
anywhere!" said Harry fiercely. "One of my best friends is
Muggle-born; she'll be first in line if the Chamber really has been opened
-"
"Harry Potter risks his own
life for his friends!" moaned Dobby in a kind of miserable ecstasy.
"So noble! So valiant! But he must save himself, he must, Harry Potter
must not -"
Dobby suddenly froze, his bat
ears quivering. Harry heard it, too. There were footsteps coming down the
passageway outside.
"Dobby must go!"
breathed the elf, terrified. There was a loud crack, and Harry's fist was suddenly
clenched on thin air. He slumped back into bed, his eyes on the dark doorway to
the hospital wing as the footsteps drew nearer.
Next moment, Dumbledore was
backing into the dormitory, wearing a long woolly dressing gown and a nightcap.
He was carrying one end of what looked like a statue. Professor McGonagall
appeared a second later, carrying its feet. Together, they heaved it onto a
bed.
"Get Madam Pomfrey,"
whispered Dumbledore, and Professor McGonagall hurried past the end of Harry's
bed out of sight. Harry lay quite still, pretending to be asleep. He heard
urgent voices, and then Professor McGonagall swept back into view, closely
followed by Madam Pomfrey, who was pulling a cardigan on over her nightdress.
He heard a sharp intake of breath.
"What happened?" Madam
Pomfrey whispered to Dumbledore, bending over the statue on the bed.
"Another attack," said
Dumbledore. "Minerva found him on the stairs."
"There was a bunch of
grapes next to him," said Professor McGonagall. "We think he was
trying to sneak up here to visit Potter."
Harry's stomach gave a horrible
lurch. Slowly and carefully, he raised himself a few inches so he could look at
the statue on the bed. A ray of moonlight lay across its staring face.
It was Colin Creevey. His eyes
were wide and his hands were stuck up in front of him, holding his camera.
"Petrified?" whispered
Madam Pomfrey.
"Yes," said Professor
McGonagall. "But I shudder to think ...If Albus hadn't been on the way
downstairs for hot chocolate - who knows what might have -"
The three of them stared down at
Colin. Then Dumbledore leaned forward and wrenched the camera out of Colin's
rigid grip.
"You don't think he managed
to get a picture of his attacker?" said Professor McGonagall eagerly.
Dumbledore didn't answer. He
opened the back of the camera.
"Good gracious!" said
Madam Pomfrey.
A jet of steam had hissed out of
the camera. Harry, three beds away, caught the acrid smell of burnt plastic.
"Melted," said Madam
Pomfrey wonderingly. "All melted..."
"What does this mean,
Albus?" Professor McGonagall asked urgently.
"It means," said
Dumbledore, "that the Chamber of Secrets is indeed open again."
Madam Pomfrey clapped a hand to
her mouth. Professor McGonagall stared at Dumbledore.
"But,
Albus...surely...who?"
"The question is not
who," said Dumbledore, his eyes on Colin. "The question is,
how..." And from what Harry could see of Professor McGonagall's shadowy
face, she didn't understand this any better than he did. CHAPTER ELEVEN THE DUELING CLUB
Harry woke up on Sunday morning
to find the dormitory blazing with winter sunlight and his arm reboned but very
stiff. He sat up quickly and looked over at Colin's bed, but it had been
blocked from view by the high curtains Harry had changed behind yesterday.
Seeing that he was awake, Madam Pomfrey came bustling over with a breakfast
tray and then began bending and stretching his arm and fingers.
"All in order," she
said as he clumsily fed himself porridge left-handed. "When you've
finished eating, you may leave."
Harry dressed as quickly as he
could and hurried off to Gryffindor Tower, desperate to tell Ron and Hermione
about Colin and Dobby, but they weren't there. Harry left to look for them,
wondering where they could have got to and feeling slightly hurt that they
weren't interested in whether he had his bones back or not.
As Harry passed the library,
Percy Weasley strolled out of it, looking in far better spirits than last time
they'd met.
"Oh, hello, Harry," he
said. "Excellent flying yesterday, really excellent. Gryffindor has just
taken the lead for the House Cup - you earned fifty points!"
"You haven't seen Ron or
Hermione, have you?" said Harry.
"No, I haven't," said
Percy, his smile fading. "I hope Ron's not in another girls' toilet
..."
Harry forced a laugh, watched
Percy walk out of sight, and then headed straight for Moaning Myrtle's
bathroom. He couldn't see why Ron and Hermione would be in there again, but
after making sure that neither Filch nor any prefects were around, he opened
the door and heard their voices coming from a locked stall.
"It's me," he said,
closing the door behind him. There was a clunk, a splash, and a gasp from
within the stall and he saw Hermione's eye peering through the keyhole.
'Harry!" she said.
"You gave us such a fright - come in. How's your arm?"
"Fine," said Harry,
squeezing into the stall. An old cauldron was perched on the toilet, and a
crackling from under the rim told Harry they had lit a fire beneath it.
Conjuring up portable, waterproof fires was a specialty of Hermione's.
"We'd've come to meet you,
but we decided to get started on the Polyjuice Potion," Ron explained as
Harry, with difficulty, locked the stall again. "We've decided this is the
safest place to hide it."
Harry started to tell them about
Colin, but Hermione interrupted.
"We already know - we heard
Professor McGonagall telling Professor Flitwick this morning. That's why we
decided we'd better get going -"
"The sooner we get a
confession out of Malfoy, the better," snarled Ron. "D'you know what
I think? He was in such a foul temper after the Quidditch match, he took it out
on Colin."
"There's something
else," said Harry, watching Hermione tearing bundles of knotgrass and
throwing them into the potion. "Dobby came to visit me in the middle of
the night."
Ron and Hermione looked up,
amazed. Harry told them everything Dobby had told him - or hadn't told him.
Hermione and Ron listened with their mouths open. "The Chamber of
Secrets has been opened before?" Hermione said.
"This settles it,"
said Ron in a triumphant voice. "Lucius Malfoy must've opened the Chamber
when he was at school here and now he's told dear old Draco how to do it. It's
obvious. Wish Dobby'd told you what kind of monster's in there, though. I want
to know how come nobody's noticed it sneaking around the school."
"Maybe it can make itself
invisible," said Hermione, prodding leeches to the bottom of the cauldron.
"Or maybe it can disguise itself - pretend to be a suit of armor or
something - I've read about Chameleon Ghouls -"
"You read too much,
Hermione," said Ron, pouring dead lacewings on top of the leeches. He
crumpled up the empty lacewing bag and looked at Harry.
"So Dobby stopped us from
getting on the train and broke your arm." He shook his head. "You
know what, Harry? If he doesn't stop trying to save your life he's going to kill
you."
The news that Colin Creevey had
been attacked and was now lying as though dead in the hospital wing had spread
through the entire school by Monday morning. The air was suddenly thick with
rumor and suspicion. The first years were now moving around the castle in
tight-knit groups, as though scared they would be attacked if they ventured
forth alone.
Ginny Weasley, who sat next to
Colin Creevey in Charms, was distraught, but Harry felt that Fred and George
were going the wrong way about cheering her up. They were taking turns covering
themselves with fur or boils and jumping out at her from behind statues. They
only stopped when Percy, apoplectic with rage, told them he was going to write
to Mrs. Weasley and tell her Ginny was having nightmares.
Meanwhile, hidden from the
teachers, a roaring trade in talismans, amulets, and other protective devices
was sweeping the school. Neville Longbottom bought a large, evil-smelling green
onion, a pointed purple crystal, and a rotting newt tail before the other Gryffindor
boys pointed out that he was in no danger; he was a pure-blood, and therefore
unlikely to be attacked.
"They went for Filch
first," Neville said, his round face fearful. "And everyone knows I'm
almost a Squib."
In the second week of December
Professor McGonagall came around as usual, collecting names of those who would
be staying at school for Christmas. Harry, Ron, and Hermione signed her list;
they had heard that Malfoy was staying, which struck them as very suspicious.
The holidays would be the perfect time to use the Polyjuice Potion and try to
worm a confession out of him.
Unfortunately, the potion was
only half finished. They still needed the bicorn horn and the boomslang skin,
and the only place they were going to get them was from Snape's private stores.
Harry privately felt he'd rather face Slytherin's legendary monster than let
Snape catch him robbing his office.
"What we need," said
Hermione briskly as Thursday afternoon's double Potions lesson loomed nearer,
"is a diversion. Then one of us can sneak into Snape's office and take
what we need." Harry and Ron looked at her nervously.
"I think I'd better do the
actual stealing," Hermione continued in a matter-of-fact tone. "You
two will be expelled if you get into any more trouble, and I've got a clean
record. So all you need to do is cause enough mayhem to keep Snape busy for
five minutes or so."
Harry smiled feebly.
Deliberately causing mayhem in Snape's Potions class was about as safe as
poking a sleeping dragon in the eye.
Potions lessons took place in
one of the large dungeons. Thursday afternoon's lesson proceeded in the usual
way. Twenty cauldrons stood steaming between the wooden desks, on which stood
brass scales and jars of ingredients. Snape prowled through the fumes, making
waspish remarks about the Gryffindors' work while the Slytherins sniggered
appreciatively. Draco Malfoy, who was Snape's favorite student, kept flicking
puffer-fish eyes at Ron and Harry, who knew that if they retaliated they would
get detention faster than you could say "Unfair."
Harry's Swelling Solution was
far too runny, but he had his mind on more important things. He was waiting for
Hermione's signal, and he hardly listened as Snape paused to sneer at his
watery potion. When Snape turned and walked off to bully Neville, Hermione
caught Harry's eye and nodded.
Harry ducked swiftly down behind
his cauldron, pulled one of Fred's Filibuster fireworks out of his pocket, and
gave it a quick prod with his wand. The firework began to fizz and sputter.
Knowing he had only seconds, Harry straightened up, took aim, and lobbed it
into the air; it landed right on target in Goyle's cauldron.
Goyle's potion exploded,
showering the whole class. People shrieked as splashes of the Swelling Solution
hit them. Malfoy got a faceful and his nose began to swell like a balloon;
Goyle blundered around, his hands over his eyes, which had expanded to the size
of a dinner plate - Snape was trying to restore calm and find out what had
happened. Through the confusion, Harry saw Hermione slip quietly into Snape's
office.
"Silence! SILENCE!"
Snape roared. "Anyone who has been splashed, come here for a Deflating
Draft - when I find out who did this -"
Harry tried not to laugh as he
watched Malfoy hurry forward, his head drooping with the weight of a nose like
a small melon. As half the class lumbered up to Snape's desk, some weighted
down with arms like clubs, others unable to talk through gigantic puffed-up
lips, Harry saw Hermione slide back into the dungeon, the front of her robes
bulging.
When everyone had taken a swig
of antidote and the various swellings had subsided, Snape swept over to Goyle's
cauldron and scooped out the twisted black remains of the firework. There was a
sudden hush.
"If I ever find out who
threw this," Snape whispered, "I shall make sure that person is
expelled."
Harry arranged his face into
what he hoped was a puzzled expression. Snape was looking right at him, and the
bell that rang ten minutes later could not have been more welcome.
"He knew it was me,"
Harry told Ron and Hermione as they hurried back to Moaning Myrtle's bathroom.
"I could tell."
Hermione threw the new
ingredients into the cauldron and began to stir feverishly.
"It'll be ready in two
weeks," she said happily.
"Snape can't prove it was
you," said Ron reassuringly to Harry. "What can he do?"
"Knowing Snape, something
foul," said Harry as the potion frothed and bubbled.
A week later, Harry, Ron, and
Hermione were walking across the entrance hall when they saw a small knot of
people gathered around the notice board, reading a piece of parchment that had
just been pinned up. Seamus Finnigan and Dean Thomas beckoned them over,
looking excited.
"They're starting a Dueling
Club!" said Seamus. "First meeting tonight! I wouldn't mind dueling
lessons; they might come in handy one of these days..."
"What, you reckon
Slytherin's monster can duel?" said Ron, but he, too, read the sign with
interest.
"Could be useful," he
said to Harry and Hermione as they went into dinner. "Shall we go?"
Harry and Hermione were all for
it, so at eight o'clock that evening they hurried back to the Great Hall. The
long dining tables had vanished and a golden stage had appeared along one wall,
lit by thousands of candles floating overhead. The ceiling was velvety black
once more and most of the school eemed to be packed beneath it, all carrying
their wands and looking excited.
"I wonder who'll be
teaching us?" said Hermione as they edged into the chattering crowd.
"Someone told me Flitwick was a dueling champion when he was young - maybe
it'll be him."
"As long as it's not
-" Harry began, but he ended on a groan: Gilderoy Lockhart was walking
onto the stage, resplendent in robes of deep plum and accompanied by none other
than Snape, wearing his usual black.
Lockhart waved an arm for
silence and called ' "Gather round, gather round! Can everyone see me? Can
you all hear me? Excellent!
"Now, Professor Dumbledore
has granted me permission to start this little dueling club, to train you all
in case you ever need to defend yourselves as I myself have done on countless
occasions - for full details, see my published works.
"Let me introduce my
assistant, Professor Snape," said Lockhart, flashing a wide smile.
"He tells me he knows a tiny little bit about dueling himself and has
sportingly agreed to help me with a short demonstration before we begin. Now, I
don't want any of you youngsters to worry - you'll still have your Potions
master when I'm through with him, never fear!"
"Wouldn't it be good if
they finished each other off?" Ron muttered in Harry's ear.
Snape's upper lip was curling.
Harry wondered why Lockhart was still smiling; if Snape had been looking at him
like that he'd have been running as fast as he could in the opposite direction.
Lockhart and Snape turned to
face each other and bowed; at least, Lockhart did, with much twirling of his
hands, whereas Snape jerked his head irritably. Then they raised their wands
like swords in front of them.
"As you see, we are holding
our wands in the accepted combative position," Lockhart told the silent crowd.
"On the count of three, we will cast our first spells. Neither of us will
be aiming to kill, of course."
"I wouldn't bet on
that," Harry murmured, watching Snape baring his teeth.
"One - two - three -"
Both of them swung their wands
above their heads and pointed them at their opponent; Snape cried:
"Expelliarmus!" There was a dazzling flash of scarlet light and
Lockhart was blasted off his feet: He flew backward off the stage, smashed into
the wall, and slid down it to sprawl on the floor.
Malfoy and some of the other
Slytherins cheered. Hermione was dancing on tiptoes. "Do you think he's
all right?" she squealed through her fingers.
"Who cares?" said
Harry and Ron together.
Lockhart was getting unsteadily
to his feet. His hat had fallen off and his wavy hair was standing on end.
"Well, there you have
it!" he said, tottering back onto the platform. "That was a Disarming
Charm - as you see, I've lost my wand - ah, thank you, Miss Brown - yes, an
excellent idea to show them that, Professor Snape, but if you don't mind my
saying so, it was very obvious what you were about to do. If I had wanted to
stop you it would have been only too easy - however, I felt it would be
instructive to let them see..."
Snape was looking murderous.
Possibly Lockhart had noticed, because he said, "Enough demonstrating! I'm
going to come amongst you now and put you all into pairs. Professor Snape, if
you'd like to help me -"
They moved through the crowd,
matching up partners. Lockhart teamed Neville with Justin Finch-Fletchley, but
Snape reached Harry and Ron first.
"Time to split up the dream
team, I think," he sneered. "Weasley, you can partner Finnigan.
Potter -"
Harry moved automatically toward
Hermione.
"I don't think so,"
said Snape, smiling coldly. "Mr. Malfoy, come over here. Let's see what
you make of the famous Potter. And you, Miss Granger - you can partner Miss
Bulstrode."
Malfoy strutted over, smirking.
Behind him walked a Slytherin girl who reminded Harry of a picture he'd seen in
Holidays with Hags. She was large and square and her heavy jaw jutted
aggressively. Hermione gave her a weak smile that she did not return.
"Face your partners!"
called Lockhart, back on the platform. "And bow!"
Hrry and Malfoy barely inclined
their heads, not taking their eyes off each other.
"Wands at the ready!"
shouted Lockhart. "When I count to three, cast your charms to disarm your
opponents - only to disarm them - we don't want any accidents - one ... two
...three -"
Harry swung his wand high, but
Malfoy had already started on "two": His spell hit Harry so hard he
felt as though he'd been hit over the head with a saucepan. He stumbled, but
everything still seemed to be working, and wasting no more time, Harry pointed
his wand straight at Malfoy and shouted, "Rictusempra!"
A jet of silver light hit Malfoy
in the stomach and he doubled up, wheezing.
"I said disarm only!"
Lockhart shouted in alarm over the heads of the battling crowd, as Malfoy sank
to his knees; Harry had hit him with a Tickling Charm, and he could barely move
for laughing. Harry hung back, with a vague feeling it would be unsporting to
bewitch Malfoy while he was on the floor, but this was a mistake; gasping for
breath, Malfoy pointed his wand at Harry's knees, choked, "Tarantallegra!"
and the next second Harry's legs began to jerk around out of his control in a
kind of quickstep. "Stop! Stop!" screamed Lockhart, but Snape took
charge. "Finite Incantatem!" he shouted; Harry's feet stopped
dancing, Malfoy stopped laughing, and they were able to look up.
A haze of greenish smoke was hovering
over the scene. Both Neville and Justin were lying on the floor, panting; Ron
was holding up an ashen-faced Seamus, apologizing for whatever his broken wand
had done; but Hermione and Millicent Bulstrode were still moving; Millicent had
Hermione in a headlock and Hermione was whimpering in pain; both their wands
lay forgotten on the floor. Harry leapt forward and pulled Millicent off. It
was difficult: She was a lot bigger than he was.
"Dear, dear," said
Lockhart, skittering through the crowd, looking at the aftermath of the duels.
"Up you go, Macmillan..."
"Careful there, Miss
Fawcett... Pinch it hard, it'll stop bleeding in a second,"
"I think I'd better teach
you how to block unfriendly spells," said Lockhart, standing flustered in
the midst of the hall. He glanced at Snape, whose black eyes glinted, and
looked quickly away. "Let's have a volunteer pair - Longbottom and
Finch-Fletchley, how about you -"
"A bad idea, Professor
Lockhart," said Snape, gliding over like a large and malevolent bat.
"Longbottom causes devastation with the simplest spells. We'll be sending
what's left of Finch-Fletchley up to the hospital wing in a matchbox."
Neville's round, pink face went pinker. "How about Malfoy and
Potter?" said Snape with a twisted smile.
"Excellent idea!" said
Lockhart, gesturing Harry and Malfoy into the middle of the hall as the crowd
backed away to give them room.
"Now, Harry," said
Lockhart. "When Draco points his wand at you, you do this."
He raised his own wand,
attempted a complicated sort of wiggling action, and dropped it. Snape smirked
as Lockhart quickly picked it up, saying, "Whoops - my wand is a little
overexcited -"
Snape moved closer to Malfoy,
bent down, and whispered something in his ear. Malfoy smirked, too. Harry
looked up nervously at Lockhart and said, "Professor, could you show me
that blocking thing again?"
"Scared?" muttered
Malfoy, so that Lockhart couldn't hear him.
"You wish," said Harry
out of the corner of his mouth.
Lockhart cuffed Harry merrily on
the shoulder. "Just do what I did, Harry!"
"What, drop my wand?"
But Lockhart wasn't listening.
"Three - two - one -
go!" he shouted.
Malfoy raised his wand quickly
and bellowed, "Serpensortia!" The end of his wand exploded. Harry watched, aghast, as a
long black snake shot out of it, fell heavily onto the floor between them, and
raised itself, ready to strike. There were screams as the crowd backed swiftly
away, clearing the floor.
"Don't move, Potter,"
said Snape lazily, clearly enjoying the sight of Harry standing motionless, eye
to eye with the angry snake. "I'll get rid of it....."
"Allow
me!" shouted Lockhart. He brandished his wand at the snake and there was a
loud bang; the snake, instead of vanishing, flew ten feet into the air and fell
back to the floor with a loud smack. Enraged, hissing furiously, it slithered
straight toward Justin Finch-Fletchley and raised itself again, fangs exposed,
poised to strike.
Harry wasn't sure what made him
do it. He wasn't even aware of deciding to do it. All he knew was that his legs
were carrying him forward as though he was on casters and that he had shouted
stupidly at the snake, "Leave him alone!" And miraculously -
inexplicably - the snake slumped to the floor, docile as a thick, black garden
hose, its eyes now on Harry. Harry felt the fear drain out of him. He knew the
snake wouldn't attack anyone now, though how he knew it, he couldn't have
explained.
He looked up at Justin,
grinning, expecting to see Justin looking relieved, or puzzled, or even
grateful - but certainly not angry and scared.
"What do you think you're
playing at?" he shouted, and before Harry could say anything, Justin had
turned and stormed out of the hall.
Snape stepped forward, waved his
wand, and the snake vanished in a small puff of black smoke. Snape, too, was
looking at Harry in an unexpected way: It was a shrewd and calculating look,
and Harry didn't like it. He was also dimly aware of an ominous muttering all
around the walls. Then he felt a tugging on the back of his robes.
"Come on," said Ron's
voice in his ear. "Move - come on -"
Ron steered him out of the hall,
Hermione hurrying alongside them. As they went through the doors, the people on
either side drew away as though they were frightened of catching something.
Harry didn't have a clue what was going on, and neither Ron nor Hermione
explained anything until they had dragged him all the way up to the empty
Gryffindor common room.
Then Ron pushed Harry into an
armchair and said, "You're a Parselmouth. Why didn't you tell us?"
"I'm a what?" said
Harry.
"A Parselmouth!" said
Ron. "You can talk to snakes!"
"I know," said Harry.
"I mean, that's only the second time I've ever done it. I accidentally set
a boa constrictor on my cousin Dudley at the zoo once - long story - but it was
telling me it had never seen Brazil and I sort of set it free without meaning
to that was before I knew I was a wizard -"
"A boa constrictor told you
it had never seen Brazil?" Ron repeated faintly.
"So?" said Harry.
"I bet loads of people here can do it."
"Oh, no they can't,"
said Ron. "It's not a very common gift. Harry, this is bad."
"What's bad?" said
Harry, starting to feel quite angry. "What's wrong with everyone? Listen,
if I hadn't told that snake not to attack Justin -"
"Oh, that's what you said
to it?"
"What d'you mean? You were
there - you heard me -"
"I heard you speaking
Parseltongue," said Ron. "Snake language. You could have been saying
anything - no wonder Justin panicked, you sounded like you were egging the
snake on or something - it was creepy, you know -"
Harry gaped at him.
"I spoke a different
language? But - I didn't realize - how can I speak a language without knowing I
can speak it?"
Ron shook his head. Both he and
Hermione were looking as though someone had died. Harry couldn't see what was
so terrible.
"D'you want to tell me
what's wrong with stopping a massive snake biting off Justin's head?" he
said. "What does it matter how I did it as long as Justin doesn't have to
join the Headless Hunt?"
"It matters," said
Hermione, speaking at last in a hushed voice, "because being able to talk
to snakes was what Salazar Slytherin was famous for. That's why the symbol of
Slytherin House is a serpent."
Harry's mouth fell open.
"Exactly," said Ron.
"And now the whole school's going to think you're his
great-great-great-great-grandson or something -"
"But I'm not," said
Harry, with a panic he couldn't quite explain.
"You'll find that hard to
prove," said Hermione. "He lived about a thousand years ago; for all
we know, you could be."
Harry lay awake for hours that
night. Through a gap in the curtains around his four-poster he watched snow
starting to drift past the tower window and wondered...
Could he be a descendant of
Salazar Slithering? He didn't know anything about his father's family, after
all. The Dursleys had always forbidden questions about his wizarding relatives.
Quietly, Harry tried to say
something in Parseltongue. The words wouldn't come. It seemed he had to be
face-to-face with a snake to do it.
But I'm in Gryffindor, Harry
thought. The Sorting Hat wouldn't have put me in here if I had Slytherin blood...
Ah, said a nasty little voice in
his brain, but the Sorting Hat wanted to put you in Slytherin, don't you
remember?
Harry turned over. He'd see
Justin the next day in Herbology and he'd explain that he'd been calling the
snake off, not egging it on, which (he thought angrily, pummeling his pillow)
any fool should have realized.
By next morning, however, the
snow that had begun in the night had turned into a blizzard so thick that the
last Herbology lesson of the term was canceled: Professor Sprout wanted to fit
socks and scarves on the Mandrakes, a tricky operation she would entrust to no
one else, now that it was so important for the Mandrakes to grow quickly and
revive Mrs. Norris and Colin Creevey.
Harry fretted about this next to
the fire in the Gryffindor common room, while Ron and Hermione used their time
off to play a game of wizard chess.
"For heaven's sake,
Harry," said Hermione, exasperated, as one of Ron's bishops wrestled her
knight off his horse and dragged him off the board. "Go and find Justin if
it's so important to you."
So Harry got up and left through
the portrait hole, wondering where Justin might be.
The castle was darker than it
usually was in daytime because of the thick, swirling gray snow at every
window. Shivering, Harry walked past classrooms where lessons were taking
place, catching snatches of what was happening within. Professor McGonagall was
shouting at someone who, by the sound of it, had turned his friend into a
badger. Resisting the urge to take a look, Harry walked on by, thinking that
Justin might be using his free time to catch up on some work, and deciding to
check the library first.
A group of the Hufliepuffs who
should have been in Herbology were indeed sitting at the back of the library,
but they didn't seem to be working. Between the long lines of high bookshelves,
Harry could see that their heads were close together and they were having what
looked like an absorbing conversation. He couldn't see whether Justin was among
them. He was walking toward them when something of what they were saying met
his ears, and he paused to listen, hidden in the Invisibility section.
"So anyway," a stout
boy was saying, "I told Justin to hide up in our dormitory. I mean to say,
if Potter's marked him down as his next victim, it's best if he keeps a low
profile for a while. Of course, Justin's been waiting for something like this
to happen ever since he let slip to Potter he was Muggle-born. Justin actually
told him he'd been down for Eton. That's not the kind of thing you bandy about
with Slytherin's heir on the loose, is it?"
"You definitely think it is
Potter, then, Ernie?" said a girl with blonde pigtails anxiously.
"Hannah," said the
stout boy solemnly, "he's a Parselmouth. Everyone knows that's the mark of
a Dark wizard. Have you ever heard of a decent one who could talk to snakes?
They called Slytherin himself Serpent-tongue."
There was some heavy murmuring
at this, and Ernie went on, "Remember what was written on the wall?
Enemies of the Heir, Beware. Potter had some sort of run-in with Filch. Next
thing we know, Flich's cat's attacked. That first year, Creevey, was annoying
Potter at the Quidditch match, taking pictures of him while he was lying in the
mud. Next thing we know - Creevey's been attacked."
"He always seems so nice,
though," said Hannah uncertainly, "and, well, he's the one who made
You-Know-Who disappear. He can't be all bad, can he?"
Ernie lowered his voice
mysteriously, the Hufflepuffs bent closer, and Harry edged nearer so that he
could catch Ernie's words.
"No one knows how he
survived that attack by You-Know-Who. I mean to say, he was only a baby when it
happened. He should have been blasted into smithereens. Only a really powerful
Dark wizard could have survived a curse like that." He dropped his voice
until it was barely more than a whisper, and said, "That's probably why
You- Know-Who wanted to kill him in the first place. Didn't want another Dark
Lord competing with him. I wonder what other powers Potter's been hiding?"
Harry couldn't take anymore.
Clearing his throat loudly, he stepped out from behind the bookshelves. If he
hadn't been feeling so angry, he would have found the sight that greeted him
funny: Every one of the Hufflepuffs looked as though they had been Petrified by
the sight of him, and the color was draining out of Ernie's face.
"Hello," said Harry.
"I'm looking for Justin Finch-Fletchley."
The Hufflepuffs' worst fears had
clearly been confirmed. They all looked fearfully at Ernie.
"What do you want with
him?" said Ernie in a quavering voice.
"I wanted to tell him what
really happened with that snake at the Dueling Club," said Harry.
Ernie bit his white lips and
then, taking a deep breath, said, "We were all there. We saw what
happened."
"Then you noticed that
after I spoke to it, the snake backed off?" said Harry.
"All I saw," said
Ernie stubbornly, though he was trembling as he spoke, "was you speaking
Parseltongue and chasing the snake toward Justin."
"I didn't chase it at
him!" Harry said, his voice shaking with anger. "It didn't even touch
him!"
"It was a very near
miss," said Ernie. "And in case you're getting ideas," he added
hastily, "I might tell you that you can trace my family back through nine
generations of witches and warlocks and my blood's as pure as anyone's, so
-"
"- I don't care what sort
of blood you've got!" said Harry fiercely. "Why would I want to
attack Muggle-borns?"
"I've heard you hate those
Muggles you live with," said Ernie swiftly.
"It's not possible to live
with the Dursleys and not hate them," said Harry. "I'd like to see
you try it."
He turned on his heel and
stormed out of the library, earning himself a reproving glare from Madam Pince,
who was polishing the gilded cover of a large spellbook.
Harry blundered up the corridor,
barely noticing where he was going, he was in such a fury. The result was that
he walked into something very large and solid, which knocked him backward onto
the floor.
"Oh, hello, Hagrid,"
Harry said, looking up.
Hagrid's face was entirely
hidden by a woolly, snow-covered balaclava, but it couldn't possibly be anyone
else, as he filled most of the corridor in his moleskin overcoat. A dead
rooster was hanging from one of his massive, gloved hands.
"All righ', Harry?" he
said, pulling up the balaclava so he could speak. "Why aren't yeh in
class?"
"Canceled," said
Harry, getting up. "What're you doing in here?"
Hagrid held up the limp rooster.
"Second one killed this
term," he explained. "It's either foxes or a Blood-Suckin Bugbear,
an' I need the Headmaster's permission ter put a charm around the hen
coop."
He peered more closely at Harry
from under his thick, snowflecked eyebrows.
"Yeh sure yeh're all righ'?
Yeh look all hot an' bothered -"
Harry couldn't bring himself to
repeat what Ernie and the rest of the Hufflepuffs had been saying about him.
"It's nothing," he
said. "Id better get going, Hagrid, it's Transfiguration next and I've got
to pick up my books."
He walked off, his mind still
full of what Ernie had said about him.
"Justin's been waiting for
something like this to happen ever since he let slip to Potter he was
Muggle-born..."
Harry stamped up the stairs and
turned along another corridor, which was particularly dark; the torches had
been extinguished by a strong, icy draft that was blowing through a loose
windowpane. He was halfway down the passage when he tripped headlong over
something lying on the floor.
He turned to squint at what he'd
fallen over and felt as though his stomach had dissolved.
Justin Finch-Fletchley was lying
on the floor, rigid and cold, a look of shock frozen on his face, his eyes
staring blankly at the ceiling. And that wasn't all. Next to him was another
figure, the strangest sight Harry had ever seen.
It was Nearly Headless Nick, no
longer pearly-white and transparent, but black and smoky, floating immobile and
horizontal, six inches off the floor. His head was half off and his face wore
an expression of shock identical to Justin's.
Harry got to his feet, his
breathing fast and shallow, his heart doing a kind of drumroll against his
ribs. He lookedwildly up and down the deserted corridor and saw a line of
spiders scuttling as fast as they could away from the bodies. The only sounds
were the muffled voices of teachers from the classes on either side.
He could run, and no one would
ever know he had been there. But he couldn't just leave them lying here...He had
to get help...Would anyone believe he hadn't had anything to do with this?
As he stood there, panicking, a
door right next to him opened with a bang. Peeves the Poltergeist came shooting
out.
"Why, it's potty wee
Potter!" cackled Peeves, knocking Harry's glasses askew as he bounced past
him. "What's Potter up to? Why's Potter lurking -"
Peeves stopped, halfway through
a midair somersault. Upside down, he spotted Justin and Nearly Headless Nick.
He flipped the right way up, filled his lungs and, before Harry could stop him,
screamed, "ATTACK! ATTACK! ANOTHER ATTACK! NO MORTAL OR GHOST IS SAFE! RUN
FOR YOUR LIVES! ATTAAAACK!"
Crash - crash - crash - door
after door flew open along the corridor and people flooded out. For several
long minutes, there was a scene of such confusion that Justin was in danger of
being squashed and people kept standing in Nearly Headless Nick. Harry found
himself pinned against the wall as the teachers shouted for quiet. Professor
McGonagall came running, followed by her own class, one of whom still had
black-and-white-striped hair. She used her wand to set off a loud bang, which
restored silence, and ordered everyone back into their classes. No sooner had
the scene cleared somewhat than Ernie the Hufflepuff arrived, panting, on the
scene.
"Caught in the act!"
Ernie yelled, his face stark white, pointing his finger dramatically at Harry.
"That will do,
Macmillan!" said Professor McGonagall sharply.
Peeves was bobbing overhead, now
grinning wickedly, surveying the scene; Peeves always loved chaos. As the
teachers bent over Justin and Nearly Headless Nick, examining them, Peeves
broke into song:
"Oh, Potter, you rotter,
oh, what have you done, You're killing off' students, you think it's good fun
-"
"That's enough
Peeves!" barked Professor McGonagall, and Peeves zoomed away backward,
with his tongue out at Harry.
Justin was carried up to the
hospital wing by Professor Flitwick and Professor Sinistra of the Astronomy
department, but nobody seemed to know what to do for Nearly Headless Nick. In
the end, Professor McGonagall conjured a large fan out of thin air, which she
gave to Ernie with instructions to waft Nearly Headless Nick up the stairs.
This Ernie did, fanning Nick along like a silent black hovercraft. This left
Harry and Professor McGonagall alone together.
"This way, Potter,"
she said.
"Professor," said
Harry at once, "I swear I didn't -"
"This is out of my hands,
Potter," said Professor McGonagall curtly.
They marched in silence around a
corner and she stopped before a large and extremely ugly stone gargoyle.
"Lemon drop!" she
said. This was evidently a password, because the gargoyle sprang suddenly to
life and hopped aside as the wall behind him split in two. Even full of
dread for what was coming, Harry couldn't fail to be
amazed. Behind the wall was a spiral staircase that was moving smoothly upward,
like an escalator. As he and Professor McGonagall stepped onto it, Harry heard
the wall thud closed behind them. They rose upward in circles, higher and
higher, until at last, slightly dizzy, Harry saw a gleaming oak door ahead,
with a brass knocker in the shape of a griffin.
He knew now where he was being
taken. This must be where Dumbledore lived.
CHAPTER TWELVE THE POLYJUICE POTION
They stepped off the stone
staircase at the top, and Professor McGonagall rapped on the door. It opened
silently and they entered. Professor McGonagall told Harry to wait and left him
there, alone.
Harry looked around. One thing
was certain: of all the teachers' offices Harry had visited so far this year,
Dumbledore's was by far the most interesting. If he hadn't been scared out of
his wits that he was about to be thrown out of school, he would have been very
pleased to have a chance to look around it.
It was a large and beautiful
circular room, full of funny little noises. A number of curious silver
instruments stood on spindle legged tables, whirring and emitting little puffs
of smoke. The walls were covered with portraits of old headmasters and headmistresses,
all of whom were snoozing gently in their frames. There was also an enormous,
claw-footed desk, and, sitting on a shelf behind it, a shabby, tattered
wizard's hat - the Sorting Hat.
Harry hesitated. He cast a wary
eye around the sleeping witches and wizards on the walls. Surely it couldn't
hurt if he took the hat down and tried it on again? Just to see...just to make
sure it had put him in the right House.
He walked quietly around the
desk, lifted the hat from its shelf, and lowered it slowly onto his head. It
was much too large and slipped down over his eyes, just as it had done the last
time he'd put it on. Harry stared at the black inside of the hat, waiting. Then
a small voice said in his ear, "Bee in your bonnet, Harry Potter?"
"Er, yes," Harry
muttered. "Er - sorry to bother you - I wanted to ask -"
"You've been wondering
whether I put you in the right House," said the hat smartly. "Yes...
you were particularly difficult to place. But I stand by what I said before
-" Harry's heart leapt - "you would have done well in Slytherin
-"
Harry's stomach plummeted. He
grabbed the point of the hat and pulled it off. It hung limply in his hand,
grubby and faded. Harry pushed it back onto its shelf, feeling sick.
"You're wrong," he
said aloud to the still and silent hat. It didn't move. Harry backed away,
watching it. Then a strange, gagging noise behind him made him wheel around.
He wasn't alone after all.
Standing on a golden perch behind the door was a decrepit-looking bird that
resembled a half-plucked turkey. Harry stared at it and the bird looked
balefully back, making its gagging noise again. Harry thought it looked very
ill. Its eyes were dull and, even as Harry watched, a couple more feathers fell
out of its tail.
Harry was just thinking that all
he needed was for Dumbledore's pet bird to die while he was alone in the office
with it, when the bird burst into flames.
Harry yelled in shock and backed
away into the desk. He looked feverishly around in case there was a glass of
water somewhere but couldn't see one; the bird, meanwhile, had become a
fireball; it gave one loud shriek and next second there was nothing but a
smouldering pile of ash on the floor.
The office door opened.
Dumbledore came in, looking very somber.
"Professor," Harry
gasped. "Your bird - I couldn't do anything - he just caught fire -"
To Harry's astonishment,
Dumbledore smiled.
"About time, too," he
said. "He's been looking dreadful for days; I've been telling him to get a
move on."
He chuckled at the stunned look
on Harry's face.
"Fawkes is a phoenix,
Harry. Phoenixes burst into flame when it is time for them to die and are
reborn from the ashes. Watch him..."
Harry looked down in time to see
a tiny, wrinkled, newborn bird poke its head out of the ashes. It was quite as
ugly as the old one.
"It's a shame you had to
see him on a Burning Day," said Dumbledore, seating himself behind his
desk. "He's really very handsome most of the time, wonderful red and gold
plumage. Fascinating creatures, phoenixes. They can carry immensely heavy loads,
their tears have healing powers, and they make highly faithful pets."
In the shock of Fawkes catching
fire, Harry had forgotten what he was there for, but it all came back to him as
Dumbledore settled himself in the high chair behind the desk and fixed Harry
with his penetrating, light-blue stare.
Before Dumbledore could speak
another word, however, the door of the office flew open with an almighty bang
and Hagrid burst in, a wild look in his eyes, his balaclava perched on top of
his shaggy black head and the dead rooster still swinging from his hand.
"It wasn' Harry, Professor
Dumbledore!" said Hagrid urgently. "I was talkin' ter him seconds
before that kid was found, he never had time, sir -"
Dumbledore tried to say
something, but Hagrid went ranting on, waving the rooster around in his
agitation, sending feathers everywhere.
" it can't've bin him, I'll
swear it in front o' the Ministry o' Magic if I have to."
"Hagrid, I -"
"- yeh've got the wrong
boy, sir, I know Harry never -"
"Hagrid!" said
Dumbledore loudly. "I do not think that Harry attacked those people."
"Oh," said Hagrid, the
rooster falling limply at his side. "Right. I'll wait outside then,
Headmaster."
And he stomped out looking
embarrassed.
"You don't think it was me,
Professor?" Harry repeated hopefully as Dumbledore brushed rooster
feathers off his desk.
"No, Harry, I don't,"
said Dumbledore, though his face was somber again. "But I still want to
talk to you."
Harry waited nervously while
Dumbledore considered him, the tips of his long fingers together.
"I must ask you, Harry,
whether there is anything you'd like to tell me," he said gently.
"Anything at all."
Harry didn't know what to say.
He thought of Malfoy shouting, "You'll be next, Mudbloods!" and of
the Polyjuice Potion simmering away in Moaning Myrtle's bathroom. Then he
thought of the disembodied voice he had heard twice and remembered what Ron had
said: "Hearing voices no one else can hear isn't a good sign, even in the
wizarding world." He thought, too, about what everyone was saying about
him, and his growing dread that he was somehow connected with Salazar
Slytherin...
"No," said Harry.
"There isn't anything, Professor..."
The double attack on Justin and
Nearly Headless Nick turned what had hitherto been nervousness into real panic.
Curiously, it was Nearly Headless Nick's fate that seemed to worry people most.
What could possibly do that to a ghost? people asked each other; what terrible
power could harm someone who was already dead? There was almost a stampede to
book seats on the Hogwarts Express so that students could go home for
Christmas.
"At this rate, we'll be the
only ones left," Ron told Harry and Hermione. "Us, Malfoy, Crabbe,
and Goyle. What a jolly holiday it's going to be."
Crabbe and Goyle, who always did
whatever Malfoy did, had signed up to stay over the holidays, too. But Harry
was glad that most people were leaving. He was tired of people skirting around
him in the corridors, as though he was about to sprout fangs or spit poison;
tired of all the muttering, pointing, and hissing as he passed.
Fred and George, however, found
all this very funny. They went out of their way to march ahead of Harry down
the corridors, shouting, "Make way for the Heir of Slytherin, seriously
evil wizard coming through..."
Percy was deeply disapproving of
this behavior.
"It is not a laughing
matter," he said coldly.
"Oh, get out of the way,
Percy," said Fred. "Harry's in a hurry."
"Yeah, he's off to the
Chamber of Secrets for a cup of tea with his fanged servant," said George,
chortling.
Ginny didn't find it amusing
either.
"Oh, don't," she
wailed every time Fred asked Harry loudly who he was planning to attack next,
or when George pretended to ward Harry off with a large clove of garlic when
they met.
Harry didn't mind; it made him
feel better that Fred and George, at least, thought the idea of his being
Slytherin's heir was quite ludicrous. But their antics seemed to be aggravating
Draco Malfoy, who looked increasingly sour each time he saw them at it.
"It's because he's bursting
to say it's really him," said Ron knowingly. "You know how he hates
anyone beating him at anything, and you're getting all the credit for his dirty
work."
"Not for long," said
Hermione in a satisfied tone. "The Polyjuice Potion's nearly ready. We'll
be getting the truth out of him any day now."
At last the term ended, and a
silence deep as the snow on the grounds descended on the castle. Harry found it
peaceful, rather than gloomy, and enjoyed the fact that he, Hermione, and the
Weasleys had the run of Gryffindor Tower, which meant they could play Exploding
Snap loudly without bothering anyone, and practice dueling in private. Fred,
George, and Ginny had chosen to stay at school rather than visit Bill in Egypt
with Mr. and Mrs. Weasley. Percy, who disapproved of what he termed their
childish behavior, didn't spend much time in the Gryffindor common room. He had
already told them pompously that he was only staying over Christmas because it
was his duty as a prefect to support the teachers during this troubled time.
Christmas morning dawned, cold
and white. Harry and Ron, the only ones left in their dormitory, were woken
very early by Hermione, who burst in, fully dressed and carrying presents for
them both.
"Wake up," she said
loudly, pulling back the curtains at the window.
"Hermione - you're not
supposed to be in here -" said Ron, shielding his eyes against the light.
"Merry Christmas to you,
too," said Hermione, throwing him his present. "I've been up for
nearly an hour, adding more lacewings to the potion. It's ready."
Harry sat up, suddenly wide
awake.
"Are you sure?"
"Positive," said
Hermione, shifting Scabbers the rat so that she could sit down on the end of
Ron's four-poster. "If we're going to do it, I say it should be
tonight."
At that moment, Hedwig swooped
into the room, carrying a very small package in her beak.
"Hello," said Harry
happily as she landed on his bed. "Are you speaking to me again?"
She nibbled his ear in an
affectionate sort of way, which was a far better present than the one that she
had brought him, which turned out to be from the Dursleys. They had sent Harry
a toothpick and a note telling him to find out whether he'd be able to stay at
Hogwarts for the summer vacation, too.
The rest of Harry's Christmas
presents were far more satisfactory. Hagrid had sent him a large tin of treacle
fudge, which Harry decided to soften by the fire before eating; Ron had given
him a book called Flying with the Cannons, a book of interesting facts about
his favorite Quidditch team, and Hermione had bought him a luxurious
eagle-feather quill. Harry opened the last present to find a new, hand-knitted
sweater from Mrs. Weasley and a large plum cake. He read her card with a fresh
surge of guilt, thinking about Mr. Weasley's car (which hadn't been seen since
its crash with the Whomping Willow), and the bout of rule-breaking he and Ron
were planning next.
No one, not even someone
dreading taking Polyjuice Potion later, could fail to enjoy Christmas dinner at
Hogwarts.
The Great Hall looked
magnificent. Not only were there a dozen frost-covered Christmas trees and
thick streamers of holly and mistletoe crisscrossing the ceiling, but enchanted
snow was falling, warm and dry, from the ceiling. Dumbledore led them in a few
of his favorite carols, Hagrid booming more and more loudly with every goblet
of eggnog he consumed. Percy, who hadn't noticed that Fred had bewitched his
prefect badge so that it now read "Pinhead," kept asking them all
what they were sniggering at. Harry didn't even care that Draco Malfoy was
making loud, snide remark about his new sweater from the Slytherin table. With
a bit of luck, Malfoy would be getting his comeuppance in a few hours' time.
Harry and Ron had barely
finished their third helpings of Christmas pudding when Hermione ushered them
out of the hall to finalize their plans for the evening.
"We still need a bit of the
people you're changing into," said Hermione matter-of-factly, as though
she were sending them to the supermarket for laundry detergent. "And
obviously, it'll be best if you can get something of Crabbe's and Goyle's;
they're Malfoys best friends, he'll tell them anything. And we also need to
make sure the real Crabbe and Goyle can't burst in on us while we're
interrogating him.
"I've got it all worked
out," she went on smoothly, ignoring Harry's and Ron's stupefied faces.
She held up two plump chocolate cakes. "I've filled these with a simple
Sleeping Draught. All you have to do is make sure Crabbe and Goyle find them.
You know how greedy they are, they're bound to eat them. Once they're asleep,
pull out a few of their hairs and hide them in a broom closet."
Harry and Ron looked
incredulously at each other.
"Hermione, I don't think
-"
"That could go seriously
wrong -"
But Hermione had a steely glint
in her eye not unlike the one Professor McGonagall sometimes had.
"The potion will be useless
without Crabbe's and Goyle's hair," she said sternly. "You do want to
investigate Malfoy, don't you?"
"Oh, all right, all
right," said Harry. "But what about you? Whose hair are you ripping
out?"
"I've already got
mine!" said Hermione brightly, pulling a tiny bottle out of her pocket and
showing them the single hair inside it. "Remember Millicent Bulstrode
wrestling with me at the Dueling Club? She left this on my robes when she was
trying to strangle me! And she's gone home for Christmas - so I'll just have to
tell the Slytherins I've decided to come back."
When Hermione had bustled off to
check on the Polyjuice Potion again, Ron turned to Harry with a doom-laden
expression.
"Have you ever heard of a
plan where so many things could go wrong?"
But to Harry's and Ron's utter
amazement, stage one of the operation went just as smoothly as Hermione had
said. They lurked in the deserted entrance hall after Christmas tea, waiting
for Crabbe and Goyle who had remained alone at the Slytherin table, shoveling
down fourth helpings of trifle. Harry had perched the chocolate cakes on the
end of the banisters. When they spotted Crabbe and Goyle coming out of the
Great Hall, Harry and Ron hid quickly behind a suit of armor next to the front
door.
"How thick can you
get?" Ron whispered ecstatically as Crabbe gleefully pointed out the cakes
to Goyle and grabbed them. Grinning stupidly, they stuffed the cakes whole into
their large mouths. For a moment, both of them chewed greedily, looks of
triumph on their faces. Then, without the smallest change of expression, they
both keeled over backward onto the floor.
By far the hardest part was
hiding them in the closet across the hall. Once they were safely stowed among
the buckets and mops, Harry yanked out a couple of the bristles that covered
Goyle's forehead and Ron pulled out several of Crabbe's hairs. They also stole
their shoes, because their own were far too small for Crabbe- and Goyle-size
feet. Then, still stunned at what they had just done, they sprinted up to
Moaning Myrtle's bathroom.
They could hardly see for the
thick black smoke issuing from the stall in which Hermione was stirring the
cauldron. Pulling their robes up over their faces, Harry and Ron knocked softly
on the door.
"Hermione?"
They heard the scrape of the
lock and Hermione emerged, shiny-faced and looking anxious. Behind her they
heard the gloop gloop of the bubbling, glutinous potion. Three glass tumblers
stood ready on the toilet seat.
"Did you get them?"
Hermione asked breathlessly.
Harry showed her Goyle's hair.
"Good. And I sneaked these
spare robes out of the laundry," Hermione said, holding up a small sack.
"You'll need bigger sizes once you're Crabbe and Goyle."
The three of them stared into
the cauldron. Close up, the potion looked like thick, dark mud, bubbling
sluggishly.
"I'm sure I've done
everything right," said Hermione, nervously rereading the splotched page
of Moste Potente Potions. "It looks like the book says it should ... once
we've drunk it, we'll have exactly an hour before we change back into
ourselves."
"Now what?" Ron
whispered.
"We separate it into three
glasses and add the hairs."
Hermione ladled large dollops of
the potion into each of the glasses. Then, her hand trembling, she shook Millicent
Bulstrode's hair out of its bottle into the first glass.
The potion hissed loudly like a
boiling kettle and frothed madly. A second later, it had turned a sick sort of
yellow.
"Urgh - essence of
Millicent Bulstrode," said Ron, eyeing it with loathing. "Bet it
tastes disgusting."
"Add yours, then,"
said Hermione.
Harry dropped Goyle's hair into
the middle glass and Ron put Crabbe's into the last one. Both glasses hissed
and frothed: Goyle's turned the khaki color of a booger, Crabbe's a dark, murky
brown.
"Hang on," said Harry
as Ron and Hermione reached for their glasses. "We'd better not all drink
them in here ... Once we turn into Crabbe and Goyle we won't fit. And Millicent
Bulstrode's no pixie."
"Good thinking," said
Ron, unlocking the door. "We'll take separate stalls."
Careful not to spill a drop of
his Polyjuice Potion, Harry slipped into the middle stall.
"Ready?" he called.
"Ready," came Ron's
and Hermione's voices.
"One - two - three -"
Pinching his nose, Harry drank
the potion down in two large gulps. It tasted like overcooked cabbage.
Immediately, his insides started
writhing as though he'd just swallowed live snakes - doubled up, he wondered
whether he was going to be sick - then a burning sensation spread rapidly from
his stomach to the very ends of his fingers and toes - next, bringing him
gasping to all fours, came a horrible melting feeling, as the skin all over his
body bubbled like hot wax - and before his eyes, his hands began to grow, the
fingers thickened, the nails broadened, the knuckles were bulging like bolts -
his shoulders stretched painfully and a prickling on his forehead told him that
hair was creeping down toward his eyebrows - his robes ripped as his chest
expanded like a barrel bursting its hoops - his feet were agony in shoes four
sizes too small.
As suddenly as it had started,
everything stopped. Harry lay facedown on the stone-cold floor, listening to
Myrtle gurgling morosely in the end toilet. With difficulty, he kicked off his
shoes and stood up. So this was what it felt like, being Goyle. His large hand
trembling, he pulled off his old robes, which were hanging a foot above his
ankles, pulled on the spare ones, and laced up Goyle's boatlike shoes. He
reached up to brush his hair out of his eyes and met only the short growth of
wiry bristles, low on his forehead. Then he realized that his glasses were
clouding his eyes because Goyle obviously didn't need them - he took them off
and called, "Are you two okay?" Goyle's low rasp of a voice issued
from his mouth.
"Yeah," came the deep
grunt of Crabbe from his right.
Harry unlocked his door and
stepped in front of the cracked mirror. Goyle stared back at him out of dull,
deepset eyes. Harry scratched his ear. So did Goyle.
Ron's door opened. They stared
at each other. Except that he looked pale and shocked, Ron was
indistinguishable from Crabbe, from the pudding-bowl haircut to the long,
gorilla arms.
"This is
unbelievable," said Ron, approaching the mirror and prodding Crabbe's flat
nose. "Unbelievable."
"We'd better get going,"
said Harry, loosening the watch that was cutting into Goyle's thick wrist.
"We've still got to find out where the Slytherin common room is. I only
hope we can find someone to follow..."
Ron, who had been gazing at
Harry, said, "You don't know how bizarre it is to see Goyle
thinking." He banged on Hermione's door. "C'mon, we need to go
-"
A high-pitched voice answered
him.
"I - I don't think I'm
going to come after all. You go on without me."
"Hermione, we know
Millicent Bulstrode's ugly, no one's going to know it's you -"
"No - really - I don't
think I'll come. You two hurry up, you're wasting time -"
Harry looked at Ron, bewildered.
"That looks more like
Goyle," said Ron. "That's how he looks every time a teacher asks him
a question."
"Hermione, are you okay?"
said Harry through the door.
"Fine - I'm fine - go on
-"
Harry looked at his watch. Five
of their precious sixty minutes had already passed.
"We'll meet you back here,
all right?" he said.
Harry and Ron opened the door of
the bathroom carefully, checked that the coast was clear, and set off.
"Don't swing your arms like
that," Harry muttered to Ron.
"Eh?"
"Crabbe holds them sort of
stiff..."
"How's this?"
"Yeah, that's better..."
They went down the marble
staircase. All they needed now was a Slytherin that they could follow to the
Slytherin common room, but there was nobody around.
"Any ideas?" muttered
Harry.
"The Slytherins always come
up to breakfast from over there," said Ron, nodding at the entrance to the
dungeons. The words had barely left his mouth when a girl with long, curly hair
emerged from the entrance.
"Excuse me," said Ron,
hurrying up to her. "We've forgotten the way to our common room."
"I beg your pardon?"
said the girl stiffly. "Our common room? I'm a Ravenclaw."
She walked away, looking suspiciously
back at them.
Harry and Ron hurried down the
stone steps into the darkness, their footsteps echoing particularly loudly as
Crabbe's and Goyle's huge feet hit the floor, feeling that this wasn't going to
be as easy as they had hoped.
The labyrinthine passages were
deserted. They walked deeper and deeper under the school, constantly checking
their watches to see how much time they had left. After a quarter of an hour,
just when they were getting desperate, they heard a sudden movement ahead.
"Ha!" said Ron
excitedly. "There's one of them now!"
The figure was emerging from a
side room. As they hurried nearer, however, their hearts sank. It wasn't a
Slytherin, it was Percy.
"What're you doing down
here?" said Ron in surprise.
Percy looked affronted.
"That," he said
stiffly, "is none of your business. It's Crabbe, isn't it?"
"Wh - oh, yeah," said
Ron.
"Well, get off to your
dormitories," said Percy sternly. "It's not safe to go wandering
around dark corridors these days."
"You are," Ron pointed
out.
"I," said Percy,
drawing himself up, "am a prefect. Nothing's about to attack me."
A voice suddenly echoed behind
Harry and Ron. Draco Malfoy was strolling toward them, and for the first time
in his life, Harry was pleased to see him.
"There you are," he
drawled, looking at them. "Have you two been pigging out in the Great Hall
all this time? I've been looking for you; I want to show you something really
funny."
Malfoy glanced witheringly at
Percy.
"And what're you doing down
here, Weasley?" he sneered.
Percy looked outraged.
"You want to show a bit
more respect to a school prefect!" he said. "I don't like your
attitude!"
Malfoy sneered and motioned for
Harry and Ron to follow him. Harry almost said something apologetic to Percy
but caught himself just in time. He and Ron hurried after Malfoy, who said as
they turned into the next passage, "That Peter Weasley -"
"Percy," Ron corrected
him automatically.
"Whatever," said
Malfoy. "I've noticed him sneaking around a lot lately. And I bet I know
what he's up to. He thinks he's going to catch Slytherin's heir
single-handed."
He gave a short, derisive laugh.
Harry and Ron exchanged excited looks.
Malfoy paused by a stretch of
bare, damp stone wall.
"What's the new password
again?" he said to Harry.
"Er -" said Harry.
"Oh, yeah -
pure-blood!" said Malfoy, not listening, and a stone door concealed in the
wall slid open. Malfoy marched through it, and Harry and Ron followed him.
The Slytherin common room was a
long, low underground room with rough stone walls and ceiling from which round,
greenish lamps were hanging on chains. A fire was crackling under an
elaborately carved mantelpiece ahead of them, and several Slytherins were
silhouetted around it in high-backed chairs.
"Wait here," said
Malfoy to Harry and Ron, motioning them to a pair of empty chairs set back from
the fire. "I'll go and get it my father's just sent it to me -"
Wondering what Malfoy was going
to show them, Harry and Ron sat down, doing their best to look at home.
Malfoy came back a minute later,
holding what looked like a newspaper clipping. He thrust it under Ron's nose.
"That'll give you a
laugh," he said.
Harry saw Ron's eyes widen in
shock. He read the clipping quickly, gave a very forced laugh, and handed it to
Harry.
It had been clipped out of the Daily
Prophet, and it said:
INQUIRY AT THE MINISTRY OF MAGIC
Arthur Weasley, Head of the Misuse of Muggle Artifacts Office, was today fined fifty
Galleons for bewitching a Muggle car.
Mr. Lucius Malfoy, a governor of Hogwarts School of Witchcraft and Wizardry, where
the enchanted car crashed earlier this year, called today for Mr. Weasley's
resignation. "Weasley has brought the Ministry into disrepute," Mr.
Malfoy told our reporter. "He is clearly unfit to draw up our laws and his
ridiculous Muggle Protection Act should be scrapped immediately."
Mr. Weasley was unavailable for comment, although his wife told reporters to clear
off or she'd set the family ghoul on them.
"Well?" said Malfoy
impatiently as Harry handed the clipping back to him. "Don't you think
it's funny?"
"Ha, ha," said Harry
bleakly.
"Arthur Weasley loves
Muggles so much he should snap his wand in half and go and join them,"
said Malfoy scornfully. "You'd never know the Weasleys were pure-bloods,
the way they behave."
Ron's - or rather, Crabbe's -
face was contorted with fury.
"What's up with you,
Crabbe?" snapped Malfoy.
"Stomachache," Ron
grunted.
"Well, go up to the
hospital wing and give all those Mudbloods a kick from me," said Malfoy,
snickering. "You know, I'm surprised the Daily Prophet hasn't reported all
these attacks yet," he went on thoughtfully. "I suppose Dumbledore's
trying to hush it all up. He'll be sacked if it doesn't stop soon. Father's
always said old Dumbledore's the worst thing that's ever happened to this
place. He loves Muggle-borns. A decent headmaster would never've let slime like
that Creevey in."
Malfoy started taking pictures
with an imaginary camera and did a cruel but accurate impression of Colin:
" 'Potter, can I have your picture, Potter? Can I have your autograph? Can
I lick your shoes, please, Potter?' "
He dropped his hands and looked
at Harry and Ron.
"What's the matter with you
two?"
Far too late, Harry and Ron
forced themselves to laugh, but Malfoy seemed satisfied; perhaps Crabbe and
Goyle were always slow on the uptake.
"Saint Potter, the
Mudbloods' friend," said Malfoy slowly. "He's another one with no
proper wizard feeling, or he wouldn't go around with that jumped up Granger
Mudblood. And people think he's Slytherin's heir!"
Harry and Ron waited with bated
breath: Malfoy was surely seconds away from telling them it was him - but then
"I wish I knew who it is," said Malfoy petulantly. "I could help
them."
Ron's jaw dropped so that Crabbe
looked even more clueless than usual. Fortunately, Malfoy didn't notice, and
Harry, thinking fast, said, "You must have some idea who's behind it
all..."
"You know I haven't, Goyle,
how many times do I have to tell you?" snapped Malfoy. "And Father
won't tell me anything about the last time the Chamber was opened either. Of
course, it was fifty years ago, so it was before his time, but he knows all
about it, and he says that it was all kept quiet and it'll look suspicious if I
know too much about it. But I know one thing - last time the Chamber of Secrets
was opened, a Mudblood died. So I bet it's a matter of time before one of
them's killed this time...I hope it's Granger," he said with relish.
Ron was clenching Crabbe's
gigantic fists. Feeling that it would be a bit of a giveaway if Ron punched
Malfoy, Harry shot him a warning look and said, "D'you know if the person
who opened the Chamber last time was caught?"
"Oh, yeah...whoever it was
was expelled," said Malfoy. "They're probably still in Azkaban."
"Azkaban?" said Harry,
puzzled.
"Azkaban - the wizard
prison, Goyle," said Malfoy, looking at him in disbelief "Honestly,
if you were any slower, you'd be going backward."
He shifted restlessly in his
chair and said, "Father says to keep my head down and let the Heir of
Slytherin get on with it. He says the school needs ridding of all the Mudblood
filth, but not to get mixed up in it. Of course, he's got a lot on his plate at
the moment. You know the Ministry of Magic raided our manor last week?"
Harry tried to force Goyle's
dull face into a look of concern.
"Yeah..." said Malfoy. "Luckily,
they didn't find much. Father's got some very valuable Dark Arts stuff. But
luckily, we've got our own secret chamber under the drawing-room floor -"
"Ho!" said Ron.
Malfoy looked at him. So did
Harry. Ron blushed. Even his hair was turning red. His nose was also slowly
lengthening - their hour was up, Ron was turning back into himself, and from
the look of horror he was suddenly giving Harry, he must be, too.
They both jumped to their feet.
"Medicine for my
stomach," Ron grunted, and without further ado they sprinted the length of
the Slytherin common room, hurled themselves at the stone wall, and dashed up
the passage, hoping against hope that Malfoy hadn't noticed anything. Harry
could feel his feet slipping around in Goyle's huge shoes and had to hoist up
his robes as he shrank; they crashed up the steps into the dark entrance hall,
which was full of a muffled pounding coming from the closet where they'd locked
Crabbe and Goyle. Leaving their shoes outside the closet door, they sprinted in
their socks up the marble staircase toward Moaning Myrtle's bathroom.
"Well, it wasn't a complete
waste of time," Ron panted, closing the bathroom door behind them. "I
know we still haven't found out who's doing the attacks, but I'm going to write
to Dad tomorrow and tell him to check under the Malfoys' drawing room."
Harry checked his face in the
cracked mirror. He was back to normal. He put his glasses on as Ron hammered on
the door of Hermione's stall.
"Hermione, come out, we've
got loads to tell you -"
"Go away!" Hermione
squeaked.
Harry and Ron looked at each
other.
"What's the matter?"
said Ron. "You must be back to normal by now, we are."
But Moaning Myrtle glided
suddenly through the stall door. Harry had never seen her looking so happy.
"Ooooooh, wait till you
see," she said. "It's awful -"
They heard the lock slide back
and Hermione emerged, sobbing, her robes pulled up over her head.
"What's up?" said Ron
uncertainly. "Have you still got Millicent's nose or something?"
Hermione let her robes fall and
Ron backed into the sink.
Her face was covered in black
fur. Her eyes had turned yellow and there were long, pointed ears poking
through her hair.
"It was a c-cat hair!"
she howled. "M-Millicent Bulstrode m-must have a cat! And the p-potion
isn't supposed to be used for animal transformations!"
"Uh-oh," said Ron.
"You'll be teased something
dreadful," said Myrtle happily.
"It's okay, Hermione,"
said Harry quickly. "We'll take you up to the hospital wing. Madam Pomfrey
never asks too many questions..."
It took a long time to persuade
Hermione to leave the bathroom. Moaning Myrtle sped them on their way with a
hearty guffaw. "Wait till everyone finds out you've got a tail!" CHAPTER THIRTEEN THE VERY SECRET DIARY
Hermione remained in the
hospital wing for several weeks. There was a flurry of rumor about her
disappearance when the rest of the school arrived back from their Christmas
holidays, because of course everyone thought that she had been attacked. So
many students filed past the hospital wing trying to catch a glimpse of her
that Madam Pomfrey took out her curtains again and placed them around
Hermione's bed, to spare her the shame of being seen with a furry face.
Harry and Ron went to visit her
every evening. When the new term started, they brought her each day's homework.
"If I'd sprouted whiskers,
I'd take a break from work," said Ron, tipping a stack of books onto
Hermione's bedside table one evening.
"Don't be silly, Ron, I've
got to keep up," said Hermione briskly. Her spirits were greatly improved
by the fact that all the hair had gone from her face and her eyes were turning
slowly back to brown. "I don't suppose you've got any new leads?" she
added in a whisper, so that Madam Pomfrey couldn't hear her.
"Nothing," said Harry
gloomily.
"I was so sure it was
Malfoy," said Ron, for about the hundredth time.
"What's that?" asked
Harry, pointing to something gold sticking out from under Hermione's pillow.
"Just a get well
card," said Hermione hastily, trying to poke it out of sight, but Ron was
too quick for her. He pulled it out, flicked it open, and read aloud:
"To Miss Granger, wishing
you a speedy recovery, from your concerned teacher, Professor Gilderoy
Lockhart, Order of Merlin, Third Class, Honorary Member of the Dark Force
Defense League, and five-time winner of Witch Weekly's Most Charming Smile
Award."
Ron looked up at Hermione,
disgusted.
"You sleep with this under
your pillow?"
But Hermione was spared
answering by Madam Pomfrey sweeping over with her evening dose of medicine.
"Is Lockhart the smarmiest
bloke you've ever met, or what?" Ron said to Harry as they left the
infirmary and started up the stairs toward Gryffindor Tower.
Snape had given them so much
homework, Harry thought he was likely to be in the sixth year before he
finished it. Ron was just saying he wished he had asked Hermione how many rat
tails you were supposed to add to a Hair Raising Potion when an angry outburst
from the floor above reached their ears.
"That's Filch," Harry
muttered as they hurried up the stairs and paused, out of sight, listening
hard.
"You don't think someone
else's been attacked?" said Ron tensely.
They stood still, their heads
inclined toward Flich's voice, which sounded quite hysterical.
"even more work for me!
Mopping all night, like I haven't got enough to do! No, this is the final
straw, I'm going to Dumbledore -"
His footsteps receded along the
out-of-sight corridor and they heard a distant door slam.
They poked their heads around
the corner. Filch had clearly been manning his usual lookout post: They were once
again on the spot where Mrs. Norris had been attacked. They saw at a glance
what Filch had been shouting about. A great flood of water stretched over half
the corridor, and it looked as though it was still seeping from under the door
of Moaning Myrtle's bathroom. Now that Filch had stopped shouting, they could
hear Myrtle's wails echoing off the bathroom walls.
"Now what's up with
her?" said Ron.
"Let's go and see,"
said Harry, and holding their robes over their ankles they stepped through the
great wash of water to the door bearing its OUT OF ORDER sign, ignored it as
always, and entered.
Moaning Myrtle was crying, if
possible, louder and harder than ever before. She seemed to be hiding down her
usual toilet. It was dark in the bathroom because the candles had been
extinguished in the great rush of water that had left both walls and floor
soaking wet.
"What's up, Myrtle?"
said Harry.
"Who's that?" glugged
Myrtle miserably. "Come to throw something else at me?"
Harry waded across to her stall
and said, "Why would I throw something at you?"
"Don't ask me," Myrtle
shouted, emerging with a wave of yet more water, which splashed onto the
already sopping floor. "Here I am, minding my own business, and someone
thinks it's funny to throw a book at me..."
"But it can't hurt you if
someone throws something at you," said Harry, reasonably. "I mean,
it'd just go right through you, wouldn't it?"
He had said the wrong thing.
Myrtle puffed herself up and shrieked, "Let's all throw books at Myrtle,
because she can't feel it! Ten points if you can get it through her stomach!
Fifty points if it goes through her head! Well, ha, ha, ha! What a lovely game,
I don't think!"
"Who threw it at you,
anyway?" asked Harry.
"I don't know... I was just
sitting in the U-bend, thinking about death, and it fell right through the top
of my head," said Myrtle, glaring at them. "It's over there, it got
washed out..."
Harry and Ron looked under the
sink where Myrtle was pointing. A small, thin book lay there. It had a shabby
black cover and was as wet as everything else in the bathroom. Harry stepped
forward to pick it up, but Ron suddenly flung out an arm to hold him back.
"What?" said Harry.
"Are you crazy?" said
Ron. "It could be dangerous."
"Dangerous?" said
Harry, laughing. "Come off it, how could it be dangerous?"
"You'd be surprised,"
said Ron, who was looking apprehensively at the book. "Some of the books
the Ministry's confiscated Dad's told me - there was one that burned your eyes
out. And everyone who read Sonnets of a Sorcerer spoke in limericks for the
rest of their lives. And some old witch in Bath had a book that you could never
stop reading! You just had to wander around with your nose in it, trying to do
everything one-handed. And -"
"All right, I've got the
point," said Harry.
The little book lay on the
floor, nondescript and soggy.
"Well, we won't find out
unless we look at it," he said, and he ducked around Ron and picked it up
off the floor.
Harry saw at once that it was a
diary, and the faded year on the cover told him it was fifty years old. He
opened it eagerly. On the first page he could just make out the name "T M.
Riddle" in smudged ink.
"Hang on," said Ron,
who had approached cautiously and was looking over Harry's shoulder. "I
know that name...T. M. Riddle got an award for special services to the school
fifty years ago."
"How on earth d'you know
that?" said Harry in amazement.
"Because Filch made me
polish his shield about fifty times in detention," said Ron resentfully.
"That was the one I burped slugs all over. If you'd wiped slime off a name
for an hour, you'd remember it, too."
Harry peeled the wet pages
apart. They were completely blank. There wasn't the faintest trace of writing
on any of them, not even Auntie Mabel's birthday, or dentist, half-past three.
"He never wrote in it,"
said Harry, disappointed.
"I wonder why someone
wanted to flush it away?" said Ron curiously.
Harry turned to the back cover
of the book and saw the printed name of a variety store on Vauxhall Road,
London.
"He must've been
Muggle-born," said Harry thoughtfully. "To have bought a diary from
Vauxhall Road..."
"Well, it's not much use to
you," said Ron. He dropped his voice. "Fifty points if you can get it
through Myrtle's nose."
Harry, however, pocketed it.
Hermione left the hospital wing,
de-whiskered, tail-less, and furfree, at the beginning of February. On her
first evening back in Gryffindor Tower, Harry showed her T. M. Riddle's diary
and told her the story of how they had found it.
"Oooh, it might have hidden
powers," said Hermione enthusiastically, taking the diary and looking at
it closely.
"If it has, it's hiding
them very well," said Ron. "Maybe it's shy. I don't know why you
don't chuck it, Harry."
"I wish I knew why someone
did try to chuck it," said Harry. "I wouldn't mind knowing how Riddle
got an award for special services to Hogwarts either."
"Could've been
anything," said Ron. "Maybe he got thirty O.W.L.s or saved a teacher
from the giant squid. Maybe he murdered Myrtle; that would've done everyone a
favor ..."
But Harry could tell from the arrested
look on Hermione's face that she was thinking what he was thinking.
"What?" said Ron,
looking from one to the other.
"Well, the Chamber of
Secrets was opened fifty years ago, wasn't it?" he said. "That's what
Malfoy said."
"Yeah..." said Ron
slowly.
"And this diary is fifty
years old," said Hermione, tapping it excitedly.
"So?"
"Oh, Ron, wake up,"
snapped Hermione. "We know the person who opened the Chamber last time was
expelled fifty years ago. We know T. M. Riddle got an award for special
services to the school fifty years ago. Well, what if Riddle got his special
award for catching the Heir of Slytherin? His diary would probably tell us
everything - where the Chamber is, and how to open it, and what sort of
creature lives in it - the person who's behind the attacks this time wouldn't
want that lying around, would they?"
"That's a brilliant theory,
Hermione," said Ron, "with just one tiny little flaw. There's nothing
written in his diary."
But Hermione was pulling her
wand out of her bag. "It might be invisible ink!" she whispered.
She tapped the diary three times
and said, "Aparecium!"
Nothing happened. Undaunted,
Hermione shoved her hand back into her bag and pulled out what appeared to be a
bright red eraser.
"It's a Revealer, I got it
in Diagon Alley," she said.
She rubbed hard on January
first. Nothing happened.
"I'm telling you, there's
nothing to find in there," said Ron. "Riddle just got a diary for
Christmas and couldn't be bothered filling it in."
Harry couldn't explain, even to
himself, why he didn't just throw Riddle's diary away. The fact was that even
though he knew the diary was blank, he kept absentmindedly picking it up and
turning the pages, as though it were a story he wanted to finish. And while
Harry was sure he had never heard the name T. M. Riddle before, it still seemed
to mean something to him, almost as though Riddle was a friend he'd had when he
was very small, and had half-forgotten. But this was absurd. He'd never had
friends before Hogwarts, Dudley had made sure of that.
Nevertheless, Harry was
determined to find out more about Riddle, so next day at break, he headed for
the trophy room to examine Riddle's special award, accompanied by an interested
Hermione and a thoroughly unconvinced Ron, who told them he'd seen enough of the
trophy room to last him a lifetime.
Riddle's burnished gold shield
was tucked away in a corner cabinet. It didn't carry details of why it had been
given to him ("Good thing, too, or it'd be even bigger and I'd still be
polishing it," said Ron). However, they did find Riddle's name on an old
Medal for Magical Merit, and on a list of old Head Boys.
"He sounds like
Percy," said Ron, wrinkling his nose in disgust. "Prefect, Head Boy
...probably top of every class -"
"You say that like it's a
bad thing," said Hermione in a slightly hurt voice.
The sun had now begun to shine
weakly on Hogwarts again. Inside the castle, the mood had grown more hopeful.
There had been no more attacks since those on Justin and Nearly Headless Nick,
and Madam Pomfrey was pleased to report that the Mandrakes were becoming moody
and secretive, meaning that they were fast leaving childhood.
"The moment their acne
clears up, they'll be ready for repotting again," Harry heard her telling
Filch kindly one afternoon. "And after that, it won't be long until we're
cutting them up and stewing them. You'll have Mrs. Norris back in no
time."
Perhaps the Heir of Slytherin
had lost his or her nerve, thought Harry. It must be getting riskier and
riskier to open the Chamber of Secrets, with the school so alert and
suspicious. Perhaps the monster, whatever it was, was even now settling itself
down to hibernate for another fifty years...
Ernie Macmillan of Hufflepuff
didn't take this cheerful view. He was still convinced that Harry was the
guilty one, that he had "given himself away" at the Dueling Club.
Peeves wasn't helping matters; he kept popping up in the crowded corridors
singing "Oh, Potter, you rotter..." now with a dance routine to match.
Gilderoy Lockhart seemed to
think he himself had made the attacks stop. Harry overheard him telling
Professor McGonagall so while the Gryffindors were lining up for
Transfiguration. "I don't think there'll be any more trouble,
Minerva," he said, tapping his nose knowingly and winking. "I think
the Chamber has been locked for good this time. The culprit must have known it
was only a matter of time before I caught him. Rather sensible to stop now,
before I came down hard on him.
"You know, what the school
needs now is a morale-booster. Wash away the memories of last term! I won't say
any more just now, but I think I know just the thing..."
He tapped his nose again and
strode off.
Lockhart's idea of a
morale-booster became clear at breakfast time on February fourteenth. Harry
hadn't had much sleep because of a late-running Quidditch practice the night
before, and he hurried down to the Great Hall, slightly late. He thought, for a
moment, that he'd walked through the wrong doors.
The walls were all covered with
large, lurid pink flowers. Worse still, heart-shaped confetti was falling from
the pale blue ceiling. Harry went over to the Gryffindor table, where Ron was
sitting looking sickened, and Hermione seemed to have been overcome with
giggles.
"What's going on?"
Harry asked them, sitting down and wiping confetti off his bacon.
Ron pointed to the teachers'
table, apparently too disgusted to speak. Lockhart, wearing lurid pink robes to
match the decorations, was waving for silence. The teachers on either side of
him were looking stony-faced. From where he sat, Harry could see a muscle going
in Professor McGonagall's cheek. Snape looked as though someone had just fed
him a large beaker of Skele-Gro.
"Happy Valentine's
Day!" Lockhart shouted. "And may I thank the forty-six people who
have so far sent me cards! Yes, I have taken the liberty of arranging this
little surprise for you all - and it doesn't end here!"
Lockhart clapped his hands and
through the doors to the entrance hall marched a dozen surly-looking dwarfs.
Not just any dwarfs, however. Lockhart had them all wearing golden wings and
carrying harps.
"My friendly, card-carrying
cupids!" beamed Lockhart. "They will be roving around the school
today delivering your valentines! And the fun doesn't stop here! I'm sure my
colleagues will want to enter into the spirit of the occasion! Why not ask
Professor Snape to show you how to whip up a Love Potion! And while you're at
it, Professor Flitwick knows more about Entrancing Enchantments than any wizard
I've ever met, the sly old dog!"
Professor Flitwick buried his
face in his hands. Snape was looking as though the first person to ask him for
a Love Potion would be force-fed poison.
"Please, Hermione, tell me
you weren't one of the forty-six, said Ron as they left the Great Hall for
their first lesson. Hermione suddenly became very interested in searching her
bag for her schedule and didn't answer.
All day long, the dwarfs kept
barging into their classes to deliver valentines, to the annoyance of the
teachers, and late that afternoon as the Gryffindors were walking upstairs for
Charms, one of the dwarfs caught up with Harry.
"Oy, you! 'Arry
Potter!" shouted a particularly grim-looking dwarf, elbowing people out of
the way to get to Harry.
Hot all over at the thought of
being given a valentine in front of a line of first years, which happened to
include Ginny Weasley, Harry tried to escape. The dwarf, however, cut his way
through the crowd by kicking people's shins, and reached him before he'd gone
two paces.
"I've got a musical message
to deliver to 'Arry Potter in person," he said, twanging his harp in a
threatening sort of way.
"Not here," Harry
hissed, trying to escape.
"Stay still!" grunted
the dwarf, grabbing hold of Harry's bag and pulling him back.
"Let me go!" Harry
snarled, tugging.
With a loud ripping noise, his
bag split in two. His books, wand, parchment, and quill spilled onto the floor
and his ink bottle smashed over everything.
Harry scrambled around, trying
to pick it all up before the dwarf started singing, causing something of a
holdup in the corridor.
"What's going on
here?" came the cold, drawling voice of Draco Malfoy. Harry started
stuffing everything feverishly into his ripped bag, desperate to get away
before Malfoy could hear his musical valentine.
"What's all this
commotion?" said another familiar voice as Percy Weasley arrived.
Losing his head, Harry tried to
make a run for it, but the dwarf seized him around the knees and brought him
crashing to the floor.
"Right," he said,
sitting on Harry's ankles. "Here is your singing valentine: His eyes are as green as a fresh pickled toad, His hair is as dark as a blackboard, I wish he was mine, he's really divine, The hero who conquered the Dark Lord
Harry would have given all the
gold in Gringotts to evaporate on the spot. Trying valiantly to laugh along
with everyone else, he got up, his feet numb from the weight of the dwarf, as
Percy Weasley did his best to disperse the crowd, some of whom were crying with
mirth.
"Off you go, off you go,
the bell rang five minutes ago, off to class, now," he said, shooing some
of the younger students away. "And you, Malfoy -"
Harry, glancing over, saw Malfoy
stoop and snatch up something. Leering, he showed it to Crabbe and Goyle, and
Harry realized that he'd got Riddle's diary.
"Give that back," said
Harry quietly.
"Wonder what Potter's
written in this?" said Malfoy, who obviously hadn't noticed the year on
the cover and thought he had Harry's own diary. A hush fell over the onlookers.
Ginny was staring from the diary to Harry, looking terrified.
"Hand it over,
Malfoy," said Percy sternly.
"When I've had a
look," said Malfoy, waving the diary tauntingly at Harry.
Percy said, "As a school
prefect -" but Harry had lost his temper. He pulled out his wand and
shouted, "Expelliarmus!" and just as Snape had disarmed
Lockhart, so Malfoy found the diary shooting out of his hand into the air. Ron,
grinning broadly, caught it.
"Harry!" said Percy
loudly. "No magic in the corridors. I'll have to report this, you
know!"
But Harry didn't care, he was
one-up on Malfoy, and that was worth five points from Gryffindor any day.
Malfoy was looking furious, and as Ginny passed him to enter her classroom, he
yelled spitefully after her, "I don't think Potter liked your valentine
much!"
Ginny covered her face with her
hands and ran into class. Snarling, Ron pulled out his wand, too, but Harry
pulled him away. Ron didn't need to spend the whole of Charms belching slugs.
It wasn't until they had reached
Professor Flitwick's class that Harry noticed something rather odd about
Riddle's diary. All his other books were drenched in scarlet ink. The diary,
however, was as clean as it had been before the ink bottle had smashed all over
it. He tried to point this out to Ron, but Ron was having trouble with his wand
again; large purple bubbles were blossoming out of the end, and he wasn't much
interested in anything else.
Harry went to bed before anyone
else in his dormitory that night. This was partly because he didn't think he
could stand Fred and George singing, "His eyes are as green as a fresh
pickled toad" one more time, and partly because he wanted to examine
Riddle's diary again, and knew that Ron thought he was wasting his time.
Harry sat on his four-poster and
flicked through the blank pages, not one of which had a trace of scarlet ink on
it. Then he pulled a new bottle out of his bedside cabinet, dipped his quill
into it, and dropped a blot onto the first page of the diary.
The ink shone brightly on the
paper for a second and then, as though it was being sucked into the page,
vanished. Excited, Harry loaded up his quill a second time and wrote, "My
name is Harry Potter."
The words shone momentarily on
the page and they, too, sank without trace. Then, at last, something happened.
Oozing back out of the page, in
his very own ink, came words Harry had never written.
"Hello, Harry Potter. My
name is Tom Riddle. How did you come by my diary?"
These words, too, faded away,
but not before Harry had started to scribble back.
"Someone tried to flush it
down a toilet."
He waited eagerly for Riddle's
reply.
"Lucky that I recorded my
memories in some more lasting way than ink. But I always knew that there would
be those who would not want this diary read."
"What do you mean?"
Harry scrawled, blotting the page in his excitement.
'I mean that this diary holds
memories of terrible things. Things that were covered up. Things that happened
at Hogwarts School of Witchcraft and Wizardry."
"That's where I am
now," Harry wrote quickly. "I'm at Hogwarts, and horrible stuff's
been happening. Do you know anything about the Chamber of Secrets?"
His heart was hammering.
Riddle's reply came quickly, his writing becoming untidier, as though he was
hurrying to tell all he knew.
"Of course I know about the
Chamber of Secrets. In my day, they told us it was a legend, that it did not
exist. But this was a lie. In my fifth year, the Chamber was opened and the
monster attacked several students, finally killing one. I caught the person
who'd opened the Chamber and he was expelled. But the Headmaster, Professor
Dippet, ashamed that such a thing had happened at Hogwarts, forbade me to tell
the truth. A story was given out that the girl had died in a freak accident.
They gave me a nice, shiny, engraved trophy for my trouble and warned me to
keep my mouth shut. But I knew it could happen again. The monster lived on, and
the one who had the power to release it was not imprisoned."
Harry nearly upset his ink
bottle in his hurry to write back.
"It's happening again now.
There have been three attacks and no one seems to know who's behind them. Who
was it last time?"
"I can show you, if you
like, "came Riddle's reply. "You don't have to take my word for it. I
can take you inside my memory of the night when I caught him."
Harry hesitated, his quill
suspended over the diary. What did Riddle mean? How could he be taken inside
somebody else's memory? He glanced nervously at the door to the dormitory,
which was growing dark. When he looked back at the diary, he saw fresh words
forming.
"Let me show you."
Harry paused for a fraction of a
second and then wrote two letters.
OK
The pages of the diary began to
blow as though caught in a high wind, stopping halfway through the month of
June. Mouth hanging open, Harry saw that the little square for June thirteenth
seemed to have turned into a miniscule television screen. His hands trembling
slightly, he raised the book to press his eye against the little window, and
before he knew what was happening, he was tilting forward; the window was
widening, he felt his body leave his bed, and he was pitched headfirst through
the opening in the page, into a whirl of color and shadow.
He felt his feet hit solid
ground, and stood, shaking, as the blurred shapes around him came suddenly into
focus.
He knew immediately where he
was. This circular room with the sleeping portraits was Dumbledore's office -
but it wasn't Dumbledore who was sitting behind the desk. A wizened,
frail-looking wizard, bald except for a few wisps of white hair, was reading a
letter by candlelight. Harry had never seen this man before.
"I'm sorry," he said
shakily. "I didn't mean to butt in -"
But the wizard didn't look up.
He continued to read, frowning slightly. Harry drew nearer to his desk and
stammered, "Er - I'll just go, shall I?"
Still the wizard ignored him. He
didn't seem even to have heard him. Thinking that the wizard might be deaf,
Harry raised his voice.
"Sorry I disturbed you.
I'll go now," he half-shouted.
The wizard folded up the letter
with a sigh, stood up, walked past Harry without glancing at him, and went to
draw the curtains at his window.
The sky outside the window was
ruby-red; it seemed to be sunset. The wizard went back to the desk, sat down,
and twiddled his thumbs, watching the door.
Harry looked around the office.
No Fawkes the phoenix - no whirring silver contraptions. This was Hogwarts as
Riddle had known it, meaning that this unknown wizard was Headmaster, not
Dumbledore, and he, Harry, was little more than a phantom, completely invisible
to the people of fifty years ago.
There was a knock on the office
door.
"Enter," said the old
wizard in a feeble voice.
A boy of about sixteen entered,
taking off his pointed hat. A silver prefect's badge was glinting on his chest.
He was much taller than Harry, but he, too, had jet-black hair.
"Ah, Riddle," said the
Headmaster.
"You wanted to see me,
Professor Dippet?" said Riddle. He looked nervous.
"Sit down," said
Dippet. "I've just been reading the letter you sent me."
"Oh," said Riddle. He
sat down, gripping his hands together very tightly.
"My dear boy," said
Dipper kindly, "I cannot possibly let you stay at school over the summer.
Surely you want to go home for the holidays?"
"No," said Riddle at
once. "I'd much rather stay at Hogwarts than go back to that - to that
-"
"You live in a Muggle
orphanage during the holidays, I believe?" said Dippet curiously.
"Yes, sir," said
Riddle, reddening slightly.
"You are Muggle-born?"
"Half-blood, sir,"
said Riddle. "Muggle father, witch mother."
"And are both your parents
-?"
"My mother died just after
I was born, sir. They told me at the orphanage she lived just long enough to
name me - Tom after my father, Marvolo after my grandfather."
Dipper clucked his tongue
sympathetically.
"The thing is, Tom,"
he sighed, "Special arrangements might have been made for you, but in the
current circumstances..."
"You mean all these
attacks, sir?" said Riddle, and Harry's heart leapt, and he moved closer,
scared of missing anything.
"Precisely," said the
headmaster. "My dear boy, you must see how foolish it would be of me to
allow you to remain at the castle when term ends. Particularly in light of the
recent tragedy... the death of that poor little girl... You will be safer by far at
your orphanage. As a matter of fact, the Ministry of Magic is even now talking
about closing the school. We are no nearer locating the - er - source of all
this unpleasantness..."
Riddle's eyes had widened.
"Sir - if the person was
caught - if it all stopped -"
"What do you mean?"
said Dippet with a squeak in his voice, sitting up in his chair. "Riddle,
do you mean you know something about these attacks?"
"No, sir," said Riddle
quickly.
But Harry was sure it was the
same sort of "no" that he himself had given Dumbledore.
Dippet sank back, looking
faintly disappointed.
"You may go, Tom..."
Riddle slid off his chair and
slouched out of the room. Harry followed him.
Down the moving spiral staircase
they went, emerging next to the gargoyle in the darkening corridor. Riddle
stopped, and so did Harry, watching him. Harry could tell that Riddle was doing
some serious thinking. He was biting his lip, his forehead furrowed.
Then, as though he had suddenly
reached a decision, he hurried off, Harry gliding noiselessly behind him. They
didn't see another person until they reached the entrance hall, when a tall
wizard with long, sweeping auburn hair and a beard called to Riddle from the
marble staircase.
"What are you doing,
wandering around this late, Tom?"
Harry gaped at the wizard. He
was none other than a fifty-year-younger Dumbledore.
"I had to see the
headmaster, sir," said Riddle.
"Well, hurry off to
bed," said Dumbledore, giving Riddle exactly the kind of penetrating stare
Harry knew so well. "Best not to roam the corridors these days. Not
since..."
He sighed heavily, bade Riddle
good night, and strode off. Riddle watched him walk out of sight and then,
moving quickly, headed straight down the stone steps to the dungeons, with
Harry in hot pursuit.
But to Harry's disappointment,
Riddle led him not into a hidden passageway or a secret tunnel but to the very
dungeon in which Harry had Potions with Snape. The torches hadn't been lit, and
when Riddle pushed the door almost closed, Harry could only just see him,
standing stock-still by the door, watching the passage outside.
It felt to Harry that they were
there for at least an hour. All he could see was the figure of Riddle at the
door, staring through the crack, waiting like a statue. And just when Harry had
stopped feeling expectant and tense and started wishing he could return to the
present, he heard something move beyond the door.
Someone was creeping along the
passage. He heard whoever it was pass the dungeon where he and Riddle were
hidden. Riddle, quiet as a shadow, edged through the door and followed, Harry
tiptoeing behind him, forgetting that he couldn't be heard.
For perhaps five minutes they
followed the footsteps, until Riddle stopped suddenly, his head inclined in the
direction of new noises. Harry heard a door creak open, and then someone
speaking in a hoarse whisper.
"C'mon...gotta get yeh outta
here...C'mon now...in the box..."
There was something familiar
about that voice...
Riddle suddenly jumped around
the corner. Harry stepped out behind him. He could see the dark outline of a
huge boy who was crouching in front of an open door, a very large box next to
it.
"Evening, Rubeus,"
said Riddle sharply.
The boy slammed the door shut
and stood up.
"What yer doin' down here,
Tom?"
Riddle stepped closer.
"It's all over," he
said. "I'm going to have to turn you in, Rubeus. They're talking about
closing Hogwarts if the attacks don't stop."
"'N at d'yeh -"
"I don't think you meant to
kill anyone. But monsters don't make good pets. I suppose you just let it out
for exercise and -"
"It never killed no
one!" said the large boy, backing against the closed door. From behind
him, Harry could hear a funny rustling and clicking.
"Come on, Rubeus,"
said Riddle, moving yet closer. "The dead girl's parents will be here
tomorrow. The least Hogwarts can do is make sure that the thing that killed
their daughter is slaughtered..."
"It wasn't him!"
roared the boy, his voice echoing in the dark passage. "He wouldn'! He
never!"
"Stand aside," said
Riddle, drawing out his wand.
His spell lit the corridor with
a sudden flaming light. The door behind the large boy flew open with such force
it knocked him into the wall opposite. And out of it came something that made
Harry let out a long, piercing scream unheard by anyone.
A vast, low-slung, hairy body
and a tangle of black legs; a gleam of many eyes and a pair of razor-sharp
pincers - Riddle raised his wand again, but he was too late. The thing bowled
him over as it scuttled away, tearing up the corridor and out of sight. Riddle
scrambled to his feet, looking after it; he raised his wand, but the huge boy
leapt on him, seized his wand, and threw him back down, yelling,
"NOOOOOO!"
The scene whirled, the darkness
became complete; Harry felt himself falling and, with a crash, he landed
spread-eagled on his four-poster in the Gryffindor dormitory, Riddle's diary
lying open on his stomach.
Before he had had time to regain
his breath, the dormitory door opened and Ron came in.
"There you are," he
said.
Harry sat up. He was sweating
and shaking.
"What's up?" said Ron,
looking at him with concern.
"It was Hagrid, Ron. Hagrid
opened the Chamber of Secrets fifty years ago." CHAPTER FOURTEEN CORNELIUS FUDGE
Harry, Ron, and Hermione had
always known that Hagrid had an unfortunate liking for large and monstrous
creatures. During their first year at Hogwarts he had tried to raise a dragon
in his little wooden house, and it would be a long time before they forgot the
giant, three-headed dog he'd christened "Fluffy." And if, as a boy,
Hagrid had heard that a monster was hidden somewhere in the castle, Harry was
sure he'd have gone to any lengths for a glimpse of it. He'd probably thought
it was a shame that the monster had been cooped up so long, and thought it
deserved the chance to stretch its many legs; Harry could just imagine the
thirteen-year-old Hagrid trying to fit a leash and collar on it. But he was
equally certain that Hagrid would never have meant to kill anybody.
Harry half wished he hadn't
found out how to work Riddle's diary. Again and again Ron and Hermione made him
recount what he'd seen, until he was heartily sick of telling them and sick of
the long, circular conversations that followed.
"Riddle might have
got the wrong person," said Hermione. "Maybe it was some other
monster that was attacking people..."
"How many monsters d'you
think this place can hold?" Ron asked dully.
"We always knew Hagrid had
been expelled," said Harry miserably. "And the attacks must've
stopped after Hagrid was kicked out. Otherwise, Riddle wouldn't have got his
award."
Ron tried a different tack.
"Riddle does sound
like Percy - who asked him to squeal on Hagrid, anyway?"
"But the monster had killed
someone, Ron," said Hermione.
"And Riddle was going to go
back to some Muggle orphanage if they closed Hogwarts," said Harry.
"I don't blame him for wanting to stay here..." "You met Hagrid down Knockturn Alley, didn't you,
Harry?"
"He was buying a
Flesh-Eating Slug Repellent," said Harry quickly.
The three of them fell silent.
After a long pause, Hermione voiced the knottiest question of all in a hesitant
voice.
"Do you think we should go
and ask Hagrid about it all?" "That'd be
a cheerful visit," said Ron. "'Hello, Hagrid. Tell us, have you been
setting anything mad and hairy loose in the castle lately?'"
In the end, they decided that
they would not say anything to Hagrid unless there was another attack, and as
more and more days went by with no whisper from the disembodied voice, they
became hopeful that they would never need to talk to him about why he had been
expelled. It was now nearly four months since Justin and Nearly Headless Nick
had been Petrified, and nearly everybody seemed to think that the attacker,
whoever it was, had retired for good. Peeves had finally got bored of his
"Oh, Potter, you rotter" song, Ernie Macmillan asked Harry quite
politely to pass a bucket of leaping toadstools in Herbology one day, and in
March several of the Mandrakes threw a loud and raucous party in greenhouse
three. This made Professor Sprout very happy.
"The moment they start
trying to move into each other's pots, we'll know they're fully mature,"
she told Harry. "Then we'll be able to revive those poor people in the
hospital wing."
The second years were given
something new to think about during their Easter holidays. The time had come to
choose their subjects for the third year, a matter that Hermione, at least,
took very seriously.
"...it could affect our whole
future," she told Harry and Ron as they pored over lists of new subjects,
marking them with checks.
"I just want to give up
Potions," said Harry.
"We can't," said Ron
gloomily. "We keep all our old subjects, or I'd've ditched Defense Against
the Dark Arts."
"But that's very
important!" said Hermione, shocked.
"Not the way Lockhart
teaches it," said Ron. "I haven't learned anything from him except
not to set pixies loose."
Neville Longbottom had been sent
letters from all the witches and wizards in his family, all giving him
different advice on what to choose. Confused and worried, he sat reading the
subject lists with his tongue poking out, asking people whether they thought
Arithmancy sounded more difficult than the study of Ancient Runes. Dean Thomas,
who, like Harry, had grown up with Muggles, ended up closing his eyes and
jabbing his wand at the list, then picking the subjects it landed on. Hermione
took nobody's advice but signed up for everything.
Harry smiled grimly to himself
at the thought of what Uncle Vernon and Aunt Petunia would say if he tried to
discuss his career in wizardry with them. Not that he didn't get any guidance:
Percy Weasley was eager to share his experience.
"Depends where you want to
go, Harry," he said. "It's never too early to think about the future,
so I'd recommend Divination. People say Muggle Studies is a soft option, but I
personally think wizards should have a thorough understanding of the
non-magical community, particularly if they're thinking of working in close
contact with them - look at my father, he has to deal with Muggle business all
the time. My brother Charlie was always more of an outdoor type, so he went for
Care of Magical Creatures. Play to your strengths, Harry."
But the only thing Harry felt he
was really good at was Quidditch. In the end, he chose the same new subjects as
Ron, feeling that if he was lousy at them, at least he'd have someone friendly
to help him.
Gryffindor's next Quidditch
match would be against Hufflepuff. Wood was insisting on team practices every
night after dinner, so that Harry barely had time for anything but Quidditch
and homework. However, the training sessions were getting better, or at least
drier, and the evening before Saturday's match he went up to his dormitory to
drop off his broomstick feeling Gryffindor's chances for the Quidditch cup had
never been better.
But his cheerful mood didn't
last long. At the top of the stairs to the dormitory, he met Neville
Longbottom, who was looking frantic.
"Harry - I don't know who
did it - I just found -"
Watching Harry fearfully, Neville
pushed open the door.
The contents of Harry's trunk
had been thrown everywhere. His cloak lay ripped on the floor. The bedclothes
had been pulled off his four-poster and the drawer had been pulled out of his
bedside cabinet, the contents strewn over the mattress.
Harry walked over to the bed,
open-mouthed, treading on a few loose pages of Travels with Trolls. As he and
Neville pulled the blankets back onto his bed, Ron, Dean, and Seamus came in.
Dean swore loudly.
"What happened,
Harry?"
"No idea," said Harry.
But Ron was examining Harry's robes. All the pockets were hanging out.
"Someone's been looking for
something," said Ron. "Is there anything missing?"
Harry started to pick up all his
things and throw them into his trunk. It was only as he threw the last of the
Lockhart books back into it that he realized what wasn't there.
"Riddle's diary's
gone," he said in an undertone to Ron.
"What?"
Harry jerked his head toward the
dormitory door and Ron followed him out. They hurried down to the Gryffindor
common room, which was half-empty, and joined Hermione, who was sitting alone,
reading a book called Ancient Runes Made Easy. Hermione looked aghast at the news.
"But - only a Gryffindor
could have stolen - nobody else knows our password -"
"Exactly," said Harry.
They woke the next day to
brilliant sunshine and a light, refreshing breeze.
"Perfect Quidditch
conditions!" said Wood enthusiastically at the Gryffindor table, loading
the team's plates with scrambled eggs. "Harry, buck up there, you need a
decent breakfast."
Harry had been staring down the
packed Gryffindor table, wondering if the new owner of Riddle's diary was right
in front of his eyes. Hermione had been urging him to report the robbery, but
Harry didn't like the idea. He'd have to tell a teacher all about the diary,
and how many people knew why Hagrid had been expelled fifty years ago? He
didn't want to be the one who brought it all up again.
As he left the Great Hall with
Ron and Hermione to go and collect his Quidditch things, another very serious
worry was added to Harry's growing list. He had just set foot on the marble
staircase when he heard it yet again.
"Kill this time...let me
rip...tear..."
He shouted aloud and Ron and
Hermione both jumped away from him in alarm.
"The voice!" said
Harry, -looking over his shoulder. "I just heard it again - didn't
you?"
Ron shook his head, wide-eyed.
Hermione, however, clapped a hand to her forehead.
"Harry - I think I've just
understood something! I've got to go to the library!"
And she sprinted away, up the
stairs.
"What does she
understand?" said Harry distractedly, still looking around, trying to tell
where the voice had come from.
"Loads more than I
do," said Ron, shaking his head.
"But why's she got to go to
the library?"
"Because that's what
Hermione does," said Ron, shrugging. "When in doubt, go to the
library."
Harry stood, irresolute, trying
to catch the voice again, but people were now emerging from the Great Hall
behind him, talking loudly, exiting through the front doors on their way to the
Quidditch pitch.
"You'd better get
moving," said Ron. "It's nearly eleven - the match -"
Harry raced up to Gryffindor
Tower, collected his Nimbus Two Thousand, and joined the large crowd swarming
across the grounds, but his mind was still in the castle along with the bodiless
voice, and as he pulled on his scarlet robes in the locker room, his only
comfort was that everyone was now outside to watch the game.
The teams walked onto the field
to tumultuous applause. Oliver Wood took off for a warm-up flight around the
goal posts; Madam Hooch released the balls. The Hufflepuffs, who played in
canary yellow, were standing in a huddle, having a last-minute discussion of
tactics.
Harry was just mounting his
broom when Professor McGonagall came half marching, half running across the
pitch, carrying an enormous purple megaphone.
Harry's heart dropped like a
stone.
"This match has been
cancelled," Professor McGonagall called through the megaphone, addressing
the packed stadium. There were boos and shouts. Oliver Wood, looking devastated,
landed and ran toward Professor McGonagall without getting off his broomstick.
"But, Professor!" he
shouted. "We've got to play - the cup - Gryffindor -" Professor McGonagall ignored him and continued to shout
through her megaphone:
"All students are to make
their way back to the House common rooms, where their Heads of Houses will give
them further information. As quickly as you can, please!"
Then she lowered the megaphone
and beckoned Harry over to her.
"Potter, I think you'd
better come with me..."
Wondering how she could possibly
suspect him this time, Harry saw Ron detach himself from the complaining crowd;
he came running up to them as they set off toward the castle. To Harry's
surprise, Professor McGonagall didn't object.
"Yes, perhaps you'd better
come, too, Weasley..."
Some of the students swarming
around them were grumbling about the match being canceled; others looked
worried. Harry and Ron followed Professor McGonagall back into the school and
up the marble staircase. But they weren't taken to anybody's office this time.
"This will be a bit of a
shock," said Professor McGonagall in a surprisingly gentle voice as they
approached the infirmary. "There has been another attack ... another double
attack." Harry's insides did a horrible somersault. Professor
McGonagall pushed the door open and he and Ron entered. Madam Pomfrey was
bending over a fifth-year girl with long, curly hair. Harry recognized her as
the Ravenclaw they'd accidentally asked for directions to the Slytherin common
room. And on the bed next to her was -
"Hermione!" Ron
groaned.
Hermione lay utterly still, her
eyes open and glassy.
"They were found near the
library," said Professor McGonagall. "I don't suppose either of you
can explain this? It was on the floor next to them..."
She was holding up a small,
circular mirror.
Harry and Ron shook their heads,
both staring at Hermione.
"I will escort you back to
Gryffindor Tower," said Professor McGonagall heavily. "I need to
address the students in any case."
"All students will return
to their House common rooms by six o'clock in the evening. No student is to
leave the dormitories after that time. You will be escorted to each lesson by a
teacher. No student is to use the bathroom unaccompanied by a teacher. All
further Quidditch training and matches are to be postponed. There will be no
more evening activities."
The Gryffindors packed inside
the common room listened to Professor McGonagall in silence. She rolled up the
parchment from which she had been reading and said in a somewhat choked voice,
"I need hardly add that I have rarely been so distressed. It is likely
that the school will be closed unless the culprit behind these attacks is
caught. I would urge anyone who thinks they might know anything about them to
come forward."
She climbed somewhat awkwardly
out of the portrait hole, and the Gryffindors began talking immediately.
"That's two Gryffindors
down, not counting a Gryffindor ghost, one Ravenclaw, and one Hufflepuff,
" said the Weasley twins' friend Lee Jordan, counting on his fingers.
"Haven't any of the teachers noticed that the Slytherins are all safe?
Isn't it obvious all this stuff's coming from Slytherin? The Heir of Slytherin,
the monster of Slytherin - why don't they just chuck all the Slytherins
out?" he roared, to nods and scattered applause.
Percy Weasley was sitting in a
chair behind Lee, but for once he didn't seem keen to make his views heard. He
was looking pale and stunned.
"Percy's in shock,"
George told Harry quietly. "That Ravenclaw girl - Penelope Clearwater -
she's a prefect. I don't think he thought the monster would dare attack a
prefect."
But Harry was only
half-listening. He didn't seem to be able to get rid of the picture of
Hermione, lying on the hospital bed as though carved out of stone. And if the
culprit wasn't caught soon, he was looking at a lifetime back with the
Dursleys. Tom Riddle had turned Hagrid in because he was faced with the
prospect of a Muggle orphanage if the school closed. Harry now knew exactly how
he had felt.
"What're we going to
do?" said Ron quietly in Harry's ear. "D'you think they suspect
Hagrid?"
"We've got to go and talk
to him," said Harry, making up his mind. "I can't believe it's him
this time, but if he set the monster loose last time he'll know how to get
inside the Chamber of Secrets, and that's a start."
"But McGonagall said we've
got to stay in our tower unless we're in class -"
"I think," said Harry,
more quietly still, "it's time to get my dad's old cloak out again."
Harry had inherited just one
thing from his father: a long and silvery Invisibility Cloak. It was their only
chance of sneaking out of the school to visit Hagrid without anyone knowing
about it. They went to bed at the usual time, waited until Neville, Dean, and
Seamus had stopped discussing the Chamber of Secrets and finally fallen asleep,
then got up, dressed again, and threw the cloak over themselves.
The journey through the dark and
deserted castle corridors wasn't enjoyable. Harry, who had wandered the castle
at night several times before, had never seen it so crowded after sunset.
Teachers, prefects, and ghosts were marching the corridors in pairs, staring
around for any unusual activity. Their Invisibility Cloak didn't stop them
making any noise, and there was a particularly tense moment when Ron stubbed his
toe only yards from the spot where Snape stood standing guard. Thankfully,
Snape sneezed at almost exactly the moment Ron swore. It was with relief that
they reached the oak front doors and eased them open.
It was a clear, starry night.
They hurried toward the lit windows of Hagrid's house and pulled off the cloak
only when they were right outside his front door.
Seconds after they had knocked,
Hagrid flung it open. They found themselves face-to-face with him aiming a
crossbow at them. Fang the boarhound barked loudly behind him.
"Oh," he said,
lowering the weapon and staring at them. "What're you two doin'
here?"
"What's that for?"
said Harry, pointing at the crossbow as they stepped inside.
"Nothin' - nothin' -"
Hagrid muttered. "I've bin expectin' -
doesn' matter - Sit down - I'll make tea -"
He hardly seemed to know what he
was doing. He nearly extinguished the fire, spilling water from the kettle on
it, and then smashed the teapot with a nervous jerk of his massive hand.
"Are you okay,
Hagrid?" said Harry. "Did you hear about Hermione?"
"Oh, I heard, all
righ'," said Hagrid, a slight break in his voice.
He kept glancing nervously at
the windows. He poured them both large mugs of boiling water (he had forgotten
to add tea bags) and was just putting a slab of fruitcake on a plate when there
was a loud knock on the door.
Hagrid dropped the fruitcake.
Harry and Ron exchanged panicstricken looks, then threw the Invisibility Cloak
back over themselves and retreated into a corner. Hagrid checked that they were
hidden, seized his crossbow, and flung open his door once more.
"Good evening,
Hagrid."
It was Dumbledore. He entered,
looking deadly serious, and was followed by a second, very odd-looking man.
The stranger had rumpled gray
hair and an anxious expression, and was wearing a strange mixture of clothes: a
pinstriped suit, a scarlet tie, a long black cloak, and pointed purple boots.
Under his arm he carried a lime-green bowler.
"That's Dad's boss!"
Ron breathed. "Cornelius Fudge, the Minister of Magic!"
Harry elbowed Ron hard to make
him shut up.
Hagrid had gone pale and sweaty.
He dropped into one of his chairs and looked from Dumbledore to Cornelius
Fudge.
"Bad business,
Hagrid," said Fudge in rather clipped tones. "Very bad business. Had
to come. Four attacks on Muggle-borns. Things've gone far enough. Ministry's
got to act."
"I never," said
Hagrid, looking imploringly at Dumbledore. "You know I never, Professor
Dumbledore, sir -"
"I want it understood,
Cornelius, that Hagrid has my full confidence," said Dumbledore, frowning
at Fudge.
"Look, Albus," said
Fudge, uncomfortably. "Hagrid's record's against him. Ministry's got to do
something - the school governors have been in touch -"
"Yet again, Cornelius, I
tell you that taking Hagrid away will not help in the slightest," said
Dumbledore. His blue eyes were full of a fire Harry had never seen before.
"Look at it from my point
of view," said Fudge, fidgeting with his bowler. "I'm under a lot of
pressure. Got to be seen to be doing something. If it turns out it wasn't
Hagrid, he'll be back and no more said. But I've got to take him. Got to.
Wouldn't be doing my duty -"
"Take me?" said
Hagrid, who was trembling. "Take me where?"
"For a short stretch
only," said Fudge, not meeting Hagrid's eyes. "Not a punishment, Hagrid,
more a precaution. If someone else is caught, you'll be let out with a full
apology -"
"Not Azkaban?" croaked
Hagrid.
Before Fudge could answer, there
was another loud rap on the door.
Dumbledore answered it. It was
Harry's turn for an elbow in the ribs; he'd let out an audible gasp.
Mr. Lucius Malfoy strode into
Hagrid's hut, swathed in a long black traveling cloak, smiling a cold and
satisfied smile. Fang started to growl.
"Already here, Fudge,"
he said approvingly. "Good, good..."
"What're you doin'
here?" said Hagrid furiously. "Get outta my house!"
"My dear man, please
believe me, I have no pleasure at all in being inside your - er - d'you call
this a house?" said Lucius Malfoy, sneering as he looked around the small
cabin. "I simply called at the school and was told that the headmaster was
here."
"And what exactly did you
want with me, Lucius?" said Dumbledore. He spoke politely, but the fire
was still blazing in his blue eyes.
"Dreadful thing,
Dumbledore," said Malfoy lazily, taking out a long roll of parchment,
"but the governors feel it's time for you to step aside. This is an Order
of Suspension - you'll find all twelve signatures on it. I'm afraid we feel
you're losing your touch. How many attacks have there been now? Two more this
afternoon, wasn't it? At this rate, there'll be no Muggle-borns left at
Hogwarts, and we all know what an awful loss that would be to the school."
"Oh, now, see here,
Lucius," said Fudge, looking alarmed, "Dumbledore suspended - no, no
- last thing we want just now."
"The appointment - or
suspension - of the headmaster is a matter for the governors, Fudge," said
Mr. Malfoy smoothly. "And as Dumbledore has failed to stop these attacks
-"
"See here, Malfoy, if
Dumbledore can't stop them," said Fudge, whose upper lip was sweating now,
"I mean to say, who can?"
"That remains to be
seen," said Mr. Malfoy with a nasty smile. "But as all twelve of us
have voted -"
Hagrid leapt to his feet, his
shaggy black head grazing the ceiling.
'An' how many did yeh have ter
threaten an' blackmail before they agreed, Malfoy, eh?" he roared.
"Dear, dear, you know, that
temper of yours will lead you into trouble one of these days, Hagrid,"
said Mr. Malfoy. "I would advise you not to shout at the Azkaban guards
like that. They won't like it at all."
"Yeh can' take
Dumbledore!" yelled Hagrid, making Fang the boarhound cower and whimper in
his basket. "Take him away, an' the Muggle-borns won' stand a chance!
There'll be killin' next!"
"Calm yourself,
Hagrid," said Dumbledore sharply. He looked at Lucius Malfoy.
"If the governors want my
removal, Lucius, I shall of course step aside -"
"But -" stuttered
Fudge.
"No!" growled Hagrid.
Dumbledore had not taken his
bright blue eyes off Lucius Malfoy's cold gray ones.
"However," said
Dumbledore, speaking very slowly and clearly so that none of them could miss a
word, "you will find that I will only truly have left this school when
none here are loyal to me...Help will always be given at Hogwarts to those who
ask for it."
For a second, Harry was almost
sure Dumbledore's eyes flickered toward the corner where he and Ron were
hidden.
"Admirable
sentiments," said Malfoy, bowing. "We shall all miss your - er -
highly individual way of running things, Albus, and only hope your successor
willl manage to prevent any - ah - killins."
He strode to the cabin door,
opened it, and bowed Dumbledore out. Fudge, fiddling with his bowler, waited
for Hagrid to go ahead of him, but Hagrid stood his ground, took a deep breath,
and said carefully, "If anyone wanted ter find out some stuff, all they'd
have ter do would be ter follow the spiders. That'd lead 'em right. That's all
I'm sayin'."
Fudge stared at him in
amazement.
"All right, I'm comin',
said Hagrid, pulling on his moleskin overcoat. But as he was about to follow
Fudge through the door, he stopped
again and said loudly, "An' someone'll need ter feed Fang while I'm
away."
The door banged shut and Ron
pulled off the Invisibility Cloak.
"We're in trouble
now," Ron said hoarsely. "No Dumbledore. They might as well close the
school tonight. There'll be an attack a day with him gone."
Fang started howling, scratching
at the closed door. CAPTER FIFTEEN ARAGOG
Summer was creeping over the
grounds around the castle; sky and lake alike turned periwinkle blue and
flowers large as cabbages burst into bloom in the greenhouses. But with no
Hagrid visible from the castle windows, striding the grounds with Fang at his
heels, the scene didn't look right to Harry; no better, in fact, than the
inside of the castle, where things were so horribly wrong.
Harry and Ron had tried to visit
Hermione, but visitors were now barred from the hospital wing.
"We're taking no more
chances," Madam Pomfrey told them severely through a crack in the
infirmary door. "No, I'm sorry, there's every chance the attacker might
come back to finish these people off..."
With Dumbledore gone, fear had
spread as never before, so that the sun warming the castle walls outside seemed
to stop at the mullioned windows. There was barely a face to be seen in the
school that didn't look worried and tense, and any laughter that rang through
the corridors sounded shrill and unnatural and was quickly stifled.
Harry constantly repeated
Dumbledore's final words to himself "I will only truly have left this
school when none here are loyal to me...Help will always be given at Hogwarts to
those who ask for it." But what good were these words? Who exactly
were they supposed to ask for help, when everyone was just as confused and
scared as they were?
Hagrid's hint about the spiders
was far easier to understand. The trouble was, there didn't seem to be a single
spider left in the castle to follow. Harry looked everywhere he went, helped
(rather reluctantly) by Ron. They were hampered, of course, by the fact that
they weren't allowed to wander off on their own but had to move around the
castle in a pack with the other Gryffindors. Most of their fellow students
seemed glad that they were being shepherded from class to class by teachers,
but Harry found it very irksome.
One person, however, seemed to be
thoroughly enjoying the atmosphere of terror and suspicion. Draco Malfoy was
strutting around the school as though he had just been appointed Head Boy.
Harry didn't realize what he was so pleased about until the Potions lesson
about two weeks after Dumbledore and Hagrid had left, when, sitting right
behind Malfoy, Harry overheard him gloating to Crabbe and Goyle.
"I always thought Father
might be the one who got rid of Dumbledore," he said, not troubling to
keep his voice down. "I told you he thinks Dumbledore's the worst
headmaster the school's ever had. Maybe we'll get a decent headmaster now.
Someone who won't want the Chamber of Secrets closed. McGonagall won't last
long, she's only filling in..."
Snape swept past Harry, making
no comment about Hermione's empty seat and cauldron.
"Sir," said Malfoy
loudly. "Sir, why don't you apply for the headmaster's job?"
"Now, now, Malfoy,"
said Snape, though he couldn't suppress a thin-lipped smile. "Professor
Dumbledore has only been suspended by the governors. I daresay he'll be back
with us soon enough."
"Yeah, right," said
Malfoy, smirking. "I expect you'd have Father's vote, sir, if you wanted
to apply for the job - I'll tell Father you're the best teacher here,
sir -"
Snape smirked as he swept off
around the dungeon, fortunately not spotting Seamus Finnigan, who was
pretending to vomit into his cauldron.
"I'm quite surprised the
Mudbloods haven't all packed their bags by now," Malfoy went on. "Bet
you five Galleons the next one dies. Pity it wasn't Granger -"
The bell rang at that moment,
which was lucky; at Malfoy's last words, Ron had leapt off his stool, and in
the scramble to collect bags and books, his attempts to reach Malfoy went
unnoticed.
"Let me at him," Ron
growled as Harry and Dean hung onto his arms. "I don't care, I don't need
my wand, I'm going to kill him with my bare hands -"
"Hurry up, I've got to take
you all to Herbology," barked Snape over the class's heads, and off they
marched, with Harry, Ron, and Dean bringing up the rear, Ron still trying to
get loose. It was only safe to let go of him when Snape had seen them out of
the castle and they were making their way across the vegetable patch toward the
greenhouses.
The Herbology class was very
subdued; there were now two missing from their number, Justin and Hermione.
Professor Sprout set them all to
work pruning the Abyssinian Shrivelfigs. Harry went to tip an armful of
withered stalks onto the compost heap and found himself face-to-face with Ernie
Macmillan. Ernie took a deep breath and said, very formally, "I just want
to say, Harry, that I'm sorry I ever suspected you. I know you'd never attack
Hermione Granger, and I apologize for all the stuff I said. We're all in the
same boat now, and, well -"
He held out a pudgy hand, and
Harry shook it.
Ernie and his friend Hannah came
to work at the same Shrivelfig as Harry and Ron.
"That Draco Malfoy
character," said Ernie, breaking off dead twigs, "he seems very
pleased about all this, doesn't he? D'you know, I think he might be
Slytherin's heir."
"That's clever of
you," said Ron, who didn't seem to have forgiven Ernie as readily as
Harry. "Do you think it's Malfoy, Harry?" Ernie asked.
"No," said Harry, so
firmly that Ernie and Hannah stared.
A second later, Harry spotted
something.
Several large spiders were
scuttling over the ground on the other side of the glass, moving in an
unnaturally straight line as though taking the shortest route to a prearranged
meeting. Harry hit Ron over the hand with his pruning shears.
"Ouch! What're you
-"
Harry pointed out the spiders,
following their progress with his eyes screwed up against the sun.
"Oh, yeah," said Ron,
trying, and failing, to look pleased. "But we can't follow them now
-"
Ernie and Hannah were listening
curiously.
Harry's eyes narrowed as he
focused on the spiders. If they pursued their fixed course, there could be no
doubt about where they would end up.
"Looks like they're heading
for the Forbidden Forest..."
And Ron looked even unhappier
about that.
At the end of the lesson
Professor Sprout escorted the class to their Defense Against the Dark Arts
lesson. Harry and Ron lagged behind the others so they could talk out of
earshot.
"We'll have to use the
Invisibility Cloak again," Harry told Ron. "We can take Fang with us.
He's used to going into the forest with Hagrid, he might be some help."
"Right," said Ron, who
was twirling his wand nervously in his fingers. "Er - aren't there -
aren't there supposed to be werewolves in the forest?" he added as they
took their usual places at the back of Lockhart's classroom.
Preferring not to answer that
question, Harry said, "There are good things in there, too. The centaurs
are all right, and the unicorns..."
Ron had never been into the
Forbidden Forest before. Harry had entered it only once and had hoped never to
do so again.
Lockhart bounded into the room
and the class stared at him. Every other teacher in the place was looking
grimmer than usual, but Lockhart appeared nothing short of buoyant.
"Come now," he cried,
beaming around him. "Why all these long faces?"
People swapped exasperated
looks, but nobody answered.
"Don't you people
realize," said Lockhart, speaking slowly, as though they were all a bit
dim, "the danger has passed! The culprit has been taken away -"
"Says who?" said Dean
Thomas loudly.
"My dear young man, the
Minister of Magic wouldn't have taken Hagrid if he hadn't been one hundred
percent sure that he was guilty," said Lockhart, in the tone of someone
explaining that one and one made two.
"Oh, yes he would,"
said Ron, even more loudly than Dean.
"I flatter myself I know a touch
more about Hagrid's arrest than you do, Mr. Weasley," said Lockhart in a
self-satisfied tone.
Ron started to say that he
didn't think so, somehow, but stopped in midsentence when Harry kicked him hard
under the desk.
"We weren't there,
remember?" Harry muttered.
But Lockhart's disgusting
cheeriness, his hints that he had always thought Hagrid was no good, his
confidence that the whole business was now at an end, irritated Harry so much
that he yearned to throw Gadding with Ghouls right in Lockhart's stupid
face. Instead he contented himself with scrawling a note to Ron: Let's do it
tonight. Ron read the message, swallowed hard, and looked sideways
at the empty seat usually filled by Hermione. The sight seemed to stiffen his
resolve, and he nodded.
The Gryffindor common room was
always very crowded these days, because from six o'clock onward the Gryffindors
had nowhere else to go. They also had plenty to talk about, with the result
that the common room often didn't empty until past midnight.
Harry went to get the
Invisibility Cloak out of his trunk right after dinner, and spent the evening
sitting on it, waiting for the room to clear. Fred and George challenged Harry
and Ron to a few games of Exploding Snap, and Ginny sat watching them, very
subdued in Hermione's usual chair. Harry and Ron kept losing on purpose, trying
to finish the games quickly, but even so, it was well past midnight when Fred,
George, and Ginny finally went to bed.
Harry and Ron waited for the
distant sounds of two dormitory doors closing before seizing the cloak,
throwing it over themselves, and climbing through the portrait hole.
It was another difficult journey
through the castle, dodging all the teachers. At last they reached the entrance
hall, slid back the lock on the oak front doors, squeezed between them, trying
to stop any creaking, and stepped out into the moonlit grounds.
"'Course," said Ron
abruptly as they strode across the black grass, "we might get to the
forest and find there's nothing to follow. Those spiders might not've been
going there at all. I know it looked like they were moving in that sort of
general direction, but..."
His voice trailed away
hopefully.
They reached Hagrid's house, sad
and sorry-looking with its blank windows. When Harry pushed the door open, Fang
went mad with joy at the sight of them. Worried he might wake everyone at the
castle with his deep, booming barks, they hastily fed him treacle fudge from a
tin on the mantelpiece, which glued his teeth together.
Harry left the Invisibility
Cloak on Hagrid's table. There would be no need for it in the pitch-dark
forest.
"C'mon, Fang, we're going
for a walk," said Harry, patting his leg, and Fang bounded happily out of
the house behind them, dashed to the edge of the forest, and lifted his leg
against a large sycamore tree.
Harry took out his wand,
murmured, "Lumos!" and a tiny light appeared at the end of it,
just enough to let them watch the path for signs of spiders.
"Good thinking," said
Ron. "I'd light mine, too, but you know - it'd probably blow up or
something..."
Harry tapped Ron on the
shoulder, pointing at the grass. Two solitary spiders were hurrying away from
the wandlight into the shade of the trees.
"Okay," Ron sighed as
though resigned to the worst, "I'm ready. Let's go."
So, with Fang scampering around
them, sniffing tree roots and leaves, they entered the forest. By the glow of
Harry's wand, they followed the steady trickle of spiders moving along the
path. They walked behind them for about twenty minutes, not speaking, listening
hard for noises other than breaking twigs and rustling leaves. Then, when the
trees had become thicker than ever, so that the stars overhead were no longer
visible, and Harry's wand shone alone in the sea of dark, they saw their spider
guides leaving the path.
Harry paused, trying to see
where the spiders were going, but everything outside his little sphere of light
was pitch-black. He had never been this deep into the forest before. He could
vividly remember Hagrid advising him not to leave the forest path last time
he'd been in here. But Hagrid was miles away now, probably sitting in a cell in
Azkaban, and he had also said to follow the spiders.
Something wet touched Harry's
hand and he jumped backward, crushing Ron's foot, but it was only Fang's nose.
"What d'you reckon?"
Harry said to Ron, whose eyes he could just make out, reflecting the light from
his wand.
"We've come this far,"
said Ron.
So they followed the darting
shadows of the spiders into the trees. They couldn't move very quickly now; there
were tree roots and stumps in their way, barely visible in the near blackness.
Harry could feel Fang's hot breath on his hand. More than once, they had to
stop, so that Harry could crouch down and find the spiders in the wandlight.
They walked for what seemed like
at least half an hour, their robes snagging on low-slung branches and brambles.
After a while, they noticed that the ground seemed to be sloping downward,
though the trees were as thick as ever.
Then Fang suddenly let loose a
great, echoing bark, making both Harry and Ron jump out of their skins.
"What?" said Ron
loudly, looking around into the pitch-dark, and gripping Harry's elbow very
hard.
"There's something moving
over there," Harry breathed. "Listen...sounds like something
big..."
They listened. Some distance to
their right, the something big was snapping branches as it carved a path
through the trees.
"Oh, no," said Ron.
"Oh, no, oh, no, oh -"
"Shut up," said Harry
frantically. "It'll hear you."
"Hear me?" said
Ron in an unnaturally high voice. "It's already heard Fang!"
The darkness seemed to be
pressing on their eyeballs as they stood, terrified, waiting. There was a
strange rumbling noise and then silence.
"What d'you think it's
doing?" said Harry.
"Probably getting ready to
pounce," said Ron.
They waited, shivering, hardly
daring to move.
"D'you think it's
gone?" Harry whispered.
"Dunno -"
Then, to their right, came a
sudden blaze of light, so bright in the darkness that both of them flung up
their hands to shield their eyes. Fang yelped and tried to run, but got lodged
in a tangle of thorns and yelped even louder.
"Harry!" Ron shouted,
his voice breaking with relief "Harry, it's our car!"
"What?"
"Come on!"
Harry blundered after Ron toward
the light, stumbling and tripping, and a moment later they had emerged into a
clearing.
Mr. Weasley's car was standing,
empty, in the middle of a circle of thick trees under a roof of dense branches,
its headlights ablaze. As Ron walked, open-mouthed, toward it, it moved slowly
toward him, exactly like a large, turquoise dog greeting its owner.
"It's been here all the
time!" said Ron delightedly, walking around the car. "Look at it. The
forest's turned it wild..."
The sides of the car were
scratched and smeared with mud. Apparently it had taken to trundling around the
forest on its own. Fang didn't seem at all keen on it; he kept close to Harry,
who could feel him quivering. His breathing slowing down again, Harry stuffed
his wand back into his robes.
"And we thought it was
going to attack us!" said Ron, leaning against the car and patting it.
"I wondered where it had gone!"
Harry squinted around on the
floodlit ground for signs of more spiders, but they had all scuttled away from
the glare of the headlights.
"We've lost the
trail," he said. "C'mon, let's go and find them."
Ron didn't speak. He didn't
move. His eyes were fixed on a point some ten feet above the forest floor,
right behind Harry. His face was livid with terror.
Harry didn't even have time to
turn around. There was a loud clicking noise and suddenly he felt something
long and hairy seize him around the middle and lift him off the ground, so that
he was hanging facedown. Struggling, terrified, he heard more clicking, and saw
Ron's legs leave the ground, too, heard Fang whimpering and howling - next
moment, he was being swept away into the dark trees.
Head hanging, Harry saw that
what had hold of him was marching on six immensely long, hairy legs, the front
two clutching him tightly below a pair of shining black pincers. Behind him, he
could hear another of the creatures, no doubt carrying Ron. They were moving
into the very heart of the forest. Harry could hear Fang fighting to free
himself from a third monster, whining loudly, but Harry couldn't have yelled
even if he had wanted to; he seemed to have left his voice back with the car in
the clearing.
He never knew how long he was in
the creature's clutches; he only knew that the darkness suddenly lifted enough
for him to see that the leaf-strewn ground was now swarming with
spiders. Craning his neck sideways, he
realized that they had reached the ridge of a vast hollow, a hollow that had
been cleared of trees, so that the stars shone brightly onto the worst scene he
had ever laid eyes on.
Spiders. Not tiny spiders like
those surging over the leaves below. Spiders the size of carthorses,
eight-eyed, eight-legged, black, hairy, gigantic. The massive specimen that was
carrying Harry made its way down the steep slope toward a misty, domed web in
the very center of the hollow, while its fellows closed in all around it,
clicking their pincers excitedly at the sight of its load.
Harry fell to the ground on all
fours as the spider released him. Ron and Fang thudded down next to him. Fang
wasn't howling anymore, but cowering silently on the spot. Ron looked exactly
like Harry felt. His mouth was stretched wide in a kind of silent scream and
his eyes were popping.
Harry suddenly realized that the
spider that had dropped him was saying something. It had been hard to tell,
because he clicked his pincers with every word he spoke.
"Aragog!" it called.
"Aragog!"
And from the middle of the
misty, domed web, a spider the size of a small elephant emerged, very slowly.
There was gray in the black of his body and legs, and each of the eyes on his
ugly, pincered head was milky white. He was blind.
"What is it?" he said,
clicking his pincers rapidly.
"Men," clicked the
spider who had caught Harry.
"Is it Hagrid?" said
Aragog, moving closer, his eight milky eyes wandering vaguely.
"Strangers," clicked
the spider who had brought Ron.
"Kill them," clicked
Aragog fretfully. "I was sleeping..."
"We're friends of
Hagrid's," Harry shouted. His heart seemed to have left his chest to pound
in his throat.
Click, click, click went the
pincers of the spiders all around the hollow.
Aragog paused.
"Hagrid has never sent men
into our hollow before," he said slowly.
"Hagrid's in trouble,"
said Harry, breathing very fast. "That's why we've come."
"In trouble?" said the
aged spider, and Harry thought he heard concern beneath the clicking pincers. "But
why has he sent you?"
Harry thought of getting to his
feet but decided against it; he didn't think his legs would support him. So he
spoke from the ground, as calmly as he could.
"They think, up at the
school, that Hagrid's been setting a - a - something on students. They've taken
him to Azkaban."
Aragog clicked his pincers
furiously, and all around the hollow the sound was echoed by the crowd of
spiders; it was like applause, except applause didn't usually make Harry feel
sick with fear.
"But that was years
ago," said Aragog fretfully. "Years and years ago. I remember it
well. That's why they made him leave the school. They believed that I
was the monster that dwells in what they call the Chamber of Secrets. They
thought that Hagrid had opened the Chamber and set me free." "And you...you didn't come from the Chamber of
Secrets?" said Harry, who could feel cold sweat on his forehead.
"I!" said Aragog,
clicking angrily. "I was not born in the castle. I come from a distant
land. A traveler gave me to Hagrid when I was an egg. Hagrid was only a boy,
but he cared for me, hidden in a cupboard in the castle, feeding me on scraps
from the table. Hagrid is my good friend, and a good man. When I was
discovered, and blamed for the death of a girl, he protected me. I have lived
here in the forest ever since, where Hagrid still visits me. He even found me a
wife, Mosag, and you see how our family has grown, all through Hagrid's
goodness..."
Harry summoned what remained of
his courage.
"So you never - never
attacked anyone?"
"Never," croaked the
old spider. "It would have been my instinct, but out of respect for
Hagrid, I never harmed a human. The body of the girl who was killed was
discovered in a bathroom. I never saw any part of the castle but the cupboard in
which I grew up. Our kind like the dark and the quiet..."
"But then...Do you know what did
kill that girl?" said Harry. "Because whatever it is, it's back and
attacking people again -"
His words were drowned by a loud
outbreak of clicking and the rustling of many long legs shifting angrily; large
black shapes shifted all around him.
"The thing that lives in
the castle," said Aragog, "is an ancient creature we spiders fear
above all others. Well do I remember how I pleaded with Hagrid to let me go,
when I sensed the beast moving about the school."
"What is it?" said
Harry urgently.
More loud clicking, more
rustling; the spiders seemed to be closing in.
"We do not speak of
it!" said Aragog fiercely. "We do not name it! I never even told
Hagrid the name of that dread creature, though he asked me, many times."
Harry didn't want to press the
subject, not with the spiders pressing closer on all sides. Aragog seemed to be
tired of talking. He was backing slowly into his domed web, but his fellow
spiders continued to inch slowly toward Harry and Ron.
"We'll just go, then,"
Harry called desperately to Aragog, hearing leaves rustling behind him.
"Go?" said Aragog
slowly. "I think not..."
"But - but -"
"My sons and daughters do
not harm Hagrid, on my command. But I cannot deny them fresh meat, when it
wanders so willingly into our midst. Good-bye, friend of Hagrid."
Harry spun around. Feet away,
towering above him, was a solid wall of spiders, clicking, their many eyes
gleaming in their ugly black heads.
Even as he reached for his wand,
Harry knew it was no good, there were too many of them, but as he tried to
stand, ready to die fighting, a loud, long note sounded, and a blaze of light
flamed through the hollow.
Mr. Weasley's car was thundering
down the slope, headlights glaring, its horn screeching, knocking spiders
aside; several were thrown onto their backs, their endless legs waving in the
air. The car screeched to a halt in front of Harry and Ron and the doors flew
open.
"Get Fang!" Harry
yelled, diving into the front seat; Ron seized the boarhound around the middle
and threw him, yelping, into the back of the car - the doors slammed shut - Ron
didn't touch the accelerator but the car didn't need him; the engine roared and
they were off, hitting more spiders. They sped up the slope, out of the hollow,
and they were soon crashing through the forest, branches whipping the windows
as the car wound its way cleverly through the widest gaps, following a path it
obviously knew.
Harry looked sideways at Ron.
His mouth was still open in the silent scream, but his eyes weren't popping
anymore.
"Are you okay?"
Ron stared straight ahead,
unable to speak.
They smashed their way through
the undergrowth, Fang howling loudly in the back seat, and Harry saw the side
mirror snap off as they squeezed past a large oak. After ten noisy, rocky
minutes, the trees thinned, and Harry could again see patches of sky.
The car stopped so suddenly that
they were nearly thrown into the windshield. They had reached the edge of the
forest. Fang flung himself at the window in his anxiety to get out, and when
Harry opened the door, he shot off through the trees to Hagrid's house, tail
between his legs. Harry got out too, and after a minute or so, Ron seemed to
regain the feeling in his limbs and followed, still stiff-necked and staring.
Harry gave the car a grateful pat as it reversed back into the forest and
disappeared from view.
Harry went back into Hagrid's
cabin to get the Invisibility Cloak. Fang was trembling under a blanket in his
basket. When Harry got outside again, he found Ron being violent sick in the
pumpkin patch.
"Follow the spiders,"
said Ron weakly, wiping his mouth on his sleeve. "I'll never forgive
Hagrid. We're lucky to be alive."
"I bet he thought Aragog
wouldn't hurt friends of his," said Harry.
"That's exactly Hagrid's
problem!" said Ron, thumping the wall of the cabin. "He always thinks
monsters aren't as bad as they're made out, and look where it's got him! A cell
in Azkaban!" He was shivering uncontrollably now. "What was the point
of sending us in there? What have we found out, I'd like to know?"
"That Hagrid never opened
the Chamber of Secrets," said Harry, throwing the cloak over Ron and
prodding him in the arm to make him walk. "He was innocent."
Ron gave a loud snort.
Evidently, hatching Aragog in a cupboard wasn't his idea of being innocent.
As the castle loomed nearer
Harry twitched the cloak to make sure their feet were hidden, then pushed the
creaking front doors ajar. They walked carefully back across the entrance hall
and up the marble staircase, holding their breath as they passed corridors
where watchful sentries were walking. At last they reached the safety of the
Gryffindor common room, where the fire had burned itself into glowing ash. They
took off the cloak and climbed the winding stair to their dormitory.
Ron fell onto his bed without
bothering to get undressed. Harry, however, didn't feel very sleepy. He sat on
the edge of his fourposter, thinking hard about everything Aragog had said.
The creature that was lurking
somewhere in the castle, he thought, sounded like a sort of monster Voldemort
-even other monsters didn't want to name it. But he and Ron were no closer to
finding out what it was, or how it petrified its victims. Even Hagrid had never
known what was in the Chamber of Secrets.
Harry swung his legs up onto his
bed and leaned back against his pillows, watching the moon glinting at him
through the tower window.
He couldn't see what else they
could do. They had hit dead ends everywhere. Riddle had caught the wrong
person, the Heir of Slytherin had got off, and no one could tell whether it was
the same person, or a different one, who had opened the Chamber this time.
There was nobody else to ask. Harry lay down, still thinking about what Aragog
had said.
He was becoming drowsy when what
seemed like their very last hope occurred to him, and he suddenly sat bolt
upright.
"Ron," he hissed
through the dark, "Ron -"
Ron woke with a yelp like
Fang's, stared wildly around, and saw Harry.
"Ron - that girl who died.
Aragog said she was found in a bathroom," said Harry, ignoring Neville's
snuffling snores from the corner. "What if she never left the bathroom?
What if she's still there?"
Ron rubbed his eyes, frowning
through the moonlight. And then he understood, too.
"You don't think -
not Moaning Myrtle?" CHAPTER SIXTEEN THE CHAMBER OF SECRETS
"All those times we were in
that bathroom, and she was just three toilets away," said Ron bitterly at
breakfast next day, "and we could've asked her, and now..."
It had been hard enough trying
to look for spiders. Escaping their teachers long enough to sneak into a girls'
bathroom, the girls' bathroom, moreover, right next to the scene of the first
attack, was going to be almost impossible.
But something happened in their
first lesson, Transfiguration, that drove the Chamber of Secrets out of their
minds for the first time in weeks. Ten minutes into the class, Professor
McGonagall told them that their exams would start on the first of June, one
week from today.
"Exams?" howled
Seamus Finnigan. "We're still getting exams?"
There was a loud bang behind
Harry as Neville Longbottom's wand slipped, vanishing one of the legs on his
desk. Professor McGonagall restored it with a wave of her own wand, and turned,
frowning, to Seamus.
"The whole point of keeping
the school open at this time is for you to receive your education," she
said sternly. "The exams will therefore take place as usual, and I trust
you are all studying hard."
Studying hard! It had never
occurred to Harry that there would be exams with the castle in this state.
There was a great deal of mutinous muttering around the room, which made
Professor McGonagall scowl even more darkly.
"Professor Dumbledore's
instructions were to keep the school running as normally as possible, she said.
"And that, I need hardly point out, means finding out how much you have
learned this year."
Harry looked down at the pair of
white rabbits he was supposed to be turning into slippers. What had he learned
so far this year? He couldn't seem to think of anything that would be useful in
an exam.
Ron looked as though he'd just
been told he had to go and live in the Forbidden Forest.
"Can you imagine me taking
exams with this?" he asked Harry, holding up his wand, which had just
started whistling loudly.
Three days before their first
exam, Professor McGonagall made another announcement at breakfast.
"I have good news,"
she said, and the Great Hall, instead of falling silent, erupted.
"Dumbledore's coming
back!" several people yelled joyfully.
"You've caught the Heir of
Slytherin!" squealed a girl at the Ravenclaw table.
"Quidditch matches are back
on!" roared Wood excitedly.
When the hubbub had subsided,
Professor McGonagall said, "Professor Sprout has informed me that the
Mandrakes are ready for cutting at last. Tonight, we will be able to revive
those people who have been Petrified. I need hardly remind you all that one of
them may well be able to tell us who, or what, attacked them. I am hopeful that
this dreadful year will end with our catching the culprit."
There was an explosion of
cheering. Harry looked over at the Slytherin table and wasn't at all surprised
to see that Draco Malfoy hadn't joined in. Ron, however, was looking happier
than he'd looked in days.
"It won't matter that we
never asked Myrtle, then!" he said to Harry. "Hermione'll probably
have all the answers when they wake her up! Mind you, she'll go crazy when she
finds out we've got exams in three days' time. She hasn't studied. It might be
kinder to leave her where she is till they're over."
Just then, Ginny Weasley came
over and sat down next to Ron. She looked tense and nervous, and Harry noticed
that her hands were twisting in her lap.
"What's up?" said Ron,
helping himself to more porridge.
Ginny didn't say anything, but
glanced up and down the Gryffindor table with a scared look on her face that
reminded Harry of someone, though he couldn't think who.
"Spit it out," said
Ron, watching her.
Harry suddenly realized who
Ginny looked like. She was rocking backward and forward slightly in her chair,
exactly like Dobby did when he was teetering on the edge of revealing forbidden
information.
"I've got to tell you
something," Ginny mumbled, carefully not looking at Harry.
"What is it?" said
Harry.
Ginny looked as though she
couldn't find the right words.
"What?"
said Ron.
Ginny opened her mouth, but no
sound came out. Harry leaned forward and spoke quietly, so that only Ginny and
Ron could hear him. "Is it something about the Chamber of Secrets? Have
you seen something? Someone acting oddly?"
Ginny drew a deep breath and, at
that precise moment, Percy Weasley appeared, looking tired and wan.
"If you've finished eating,
I'll take that seat, Ginny. I'm starving, I've only just come off patrol
duty."
Ginny jumped up as though her
chair had just been electrified, gave Percy a fleeting, frightened look, and
scampered away. Percy sat down and grabbed a mug from the center of the table.
"Percy!" said Ron
angrily. "She was just about to tell us something important!"
Halfway through a gulp of tea,
Percy choked.
"What sort of thing?"
he said, coughing.
"I just asked her if she'd
seen anything odd, and she started to say
"Oh - that - that's nothing
to do with the Chamber of Secrets," said Percy at once.
"How do you know?"
said Ron, his eyebrows raised.
"Well, er, if you must
know, Ginny, er, walked in on me the other day when I was - well, never mind -
the point is, she spotted me doing something and I, um, I asked her not to
mention it to anybody. I must say, I did think she'd keep her word. It's
nothing, really, I'd just rather -"
Harry had never seen Percy look
so uncomfortable.
"What were you doing,
Percy?" said Ron, grinning. "Go on, tell us, we won't laugh."
Percy didn't smile back.
"Pass me those rolls,
Harry, I'm starving."
Harry knew the whole mystery
might be solved tomorrow without their help, but he wasn't about to pass up a
chance to speak to Myrtle if it turned up - and to his delight it did,
midmorning, when they were being led to History of Magic by Gilderoy Lockhart.
Lockhart, who had so often
assured them that all danger had passed, only to be proved wrong right away,
was now wholeheartedly convinced that it was hardly worth the trouble to see
them safely down the corridors. His hair wasn't as sleek as usual; it seemed he
had been up most of the night, patrolling the fourth floor.
"Mark my words," he
said, ushering them around a corner. "The first words out of those poor
Petrified people's mouths will be 'It was Hagrid.' Frankly, I'm
astounded Professor McGonagall thinks all these security measures are
necessary."
"I agree, sir," said
Harry, making Ron drop his books in surprise.
"Thank you, Harry, said
Lockhart graciously while they waited for a long line of Hufflepuffs to pass.
"I mean, we teachers have quite enough to be getting on with, without
walking students to classes and standing guard all night..."
"That's right," said
Ron, catching on. "Why don't you leave us here, sir, we've only got one
more corridor to go -"
"You know, Weasley, I think
I will," said Lockhart. "I really should go and prepare my next class
-"
And he hurried off.
"Prepare his class,"
Ron sneered after him. "Gone to curl his hair, more like."
They let the rest of the
Gryffindors draw ahead of them, then darted down a side passage and hurried off
toward Moaning Myrtle's bathroom. But just as they were congratulating each
other on their brilliant scheme.
"Potter! Weasley! What are
you doing?"
It was Professor McGonagall, and
her mouth was the thinnest of thin lines.
"We were - we were -"
Ron stammered. "We were going to - to go and see -"
"Hermione," said
Harry. Ron and Professor McGonagall both looked at him.
"We haven't seen her for
ages, Professor," Harry went on hurriedly, treading on Ron's foot,
"and we thought we'd sneak into the hospital wing, you know, and tell her
the Mandrakes are nearly ready and, er, not to worry -"
Professor McGonagall was still
staring at him, and for a moment, Harry thought she was going to explode, but
when she spoke, it was in a strangely croaky voice.
"Of course," she said,
and Harry, amazed, saw a tear glistening in her beady eye. "Of course, I
realize this has all been hardest on the friends of those who have been...I quite
understand. Yes, Potter, of course you may visit Miss Granger. I will inform
Professor Binns where you've gone. Tell Madam Pomfrey I have given my
permission."
Harry and Ron walked away,
hardly daring to believe that they'd avoided detention. As they turned the
corner, they distinctly heard Professor McGonagall blow her nose.
"That," said Ron
fervently, "was the best story you've ever come up with."
They had no choice now but to go
to the hospital wing and tell Madam Pomfrey that they had Professor
McGonagall's permission to visit Hermione.
Madam Pomfrey let them in, but
reluctantly.
"There's just no point
talking to a Petrified. person," she said, and they had to admit she had a
point when they'd taken their seats next to Hermione. It was plain that
Hermione didn't have the faintest inkling that she had visitors, and that they
might just as well tell her bedside cabinet not to worry for all the good it
would do.
"Wonder if she did see the
attacker, though?" said Ron, looking sadly at Hermione's rigid face.
"Because if he sneaked up on them all, no one'll ever know..."
But Harry wasn't looking at
Hermione's face. He was more interested in her right hand. It lay clenched on
top of her blankets, and bending closer, he saw that a piece of paper was
scrunched inside her fist.
Making sure that Madam Pomfrey
was nowhere near, he pointed this out to Ron.
"Go on and get it
out," Ron whispered, shifting his chair so that he blocked Harry from
Madam Pomfrey's view.
It was no easy task. Hermione's
hand was clamped so tightly around the paper that Harry was sure he was going
to tear it. While Ron kept watch he tugged and twisted, and at last, after
several tense minutes, the paper came free.
It was a page torn from a very
old library book. Harry smoothed it out eagerly and Ron leaned close to read
it, too.
"Of the many fearsome beasts and monsters that
roam our land, there is none more curious or more deadly than the Basilisk,
known also as the King of Serpents. This snake, which may reach gigantic size
and live many hundreds of years, is born from a chicken's egg, hatched beneath
a toad. Its methods of killing are most wondrous, for
aside from its deadly and venomous fangs, the Basilisk has a
murderous stare, and all who are fixed with the beam of its eye shall suffer
instant death. Spiders flee before the Basilisk, for it is their mortal enemy,
and the Basilisk flees only from the crowing of the rooster, which is fatal to
it."
And beneath this, a single word
had been written, in a hand Harry recognized as Hermione's. Pipes. It was as though somebody had just flicked a light on in
his brain.
"Ron," he breathed.
"This is it. This is the answer. The monster in the Chamber's a basilisk
- a giant serpent! That's why I've been hearing that voice all over the
place, and nobody else has heard it. It's because I understand
Parseltongue..."
Harry looked up at the beds
around him.
"The basilisk kills people
by looking at them. But no one's died - because no one looked it straight in
the eye. Colin saw it through his camera. The basilisk burned up all the film
inside it, but Colin just got Petrified. Justin... Justin must've seen the
basilisk through Nearly Headless Nick! Nick got the full blast of it, but he
couldn't die again.. and Hermione and that Ravenclaw prefect were found with a
mirror next to them. Hermione had just realized the monster was a basilisk. I
bet you anything she warned the first person she met to look around corners
with a mirror first! And that girl pulled out her mirror - and -"
Rods jaw had dropped.
"And Mrs. Norris?" he
whispered eagerly.
Harry thought hard, picturing
the scene on the night of Halloween.
"The water..." he said
slowly. "The flood from Moaning Myrtle's bathroom. I bet you Mrs. Norris
only saw the reflection..."
He scanned the page in his hand
eagerly. The more he looked at it, the more it made sense.
"...The crowing of the
rooster...is fatal to it"! he read aloud. "Hagrid's roosters were
killed! The Heir of Slytherin didn't want one anywhere near the castle once the
Chamber was opened! Spiders flee before it.! It all fits!"
"But how's the basilisk
been getting around the place?" said Ron. "A giant snake...Someone
would've seen..."
Harry, however, pointed at the
word Hermione had scribbled at the foot of the page.
"Pipes," he said.
"Pipes...Ron, it's been using the
plumbing. I've been hearing that voice inside the walls..."
Ron suddenly grabbed Harry's
arm.
"The entrance to the
Chamber of Secrets!" he said hoarsely. "What if it's a bathroom? What
if it's in -"
"Moaning Myrtle's
bathroom," said Harry. They sat there, excitement coursing through them, hardly
able to believe it.
"This means," said
Harry, "I can't be the only Parselmouth in the school. The Heir of Slytherin's
one, too. That's how he's been controlling the basilisk."
"What're we going to
do?" said Ron, whose eyes were flashing. "Should we go straight to
McGonagall?"
"Let's go to the staff
room," said Harry, jumping up. "She'll be there in ten minutes. It's
nearly break."
They ran downstairs. Not wanting
to be discovered hanging around in
another corridor, they went straight into the deserted staff room. It
was a large, paneled room full of dark, wooden chairs. Harry and Ron paced around
it, too excited to sit down.
But the bell to signal break
never came.
Instead, echoing through the
corridors came Professor McGonagall's voice, magically magnified.
"All students to return to
their House dormitories at once. All teachers return to the staff room. Immediately,
please."
Harry wheeled around to stare at
Ron. "Not another attack? Not now?"
"What'll we do?" said
Ron, aghast. "Go back to the dormitory?" "No," said Harry,
glancing around. There was an ugly sort of wardrobe to his left, full of the
teachers' cloaks. "In here. Let's hear what it's all about. Then we can
tell them what we've found out."
They hid themselves inside it,
listening to the rumbling of hundreds of people moving overhead, and the staff
room door banging open. From between the musty folds of the cloaks, they
watched the teachers filtering into the room. Some of them were looking
puzzled, others downright scared. Then Professor McGonagall arrived.
"It has happened," she
told the silent staff room. "A student has been taken by the monster. Right
into the Chamber itself."
Professor Flitwick let out a
squeal. Professor Sprout clapped her hands over her mouth. Snape gripped the
back of a chair very hard and said, "How can you be sure?"
"The Heir of
Slytherin," said Professor McGonagall, who was very white, "left
another message. Right underneath the first one. 'Her skeleton will lie in
the Chamber forever.'"
Professor Flitwick burst into
tears.
"Who is it?" said
Madam Hooch, who had sunk, weak-kneed, into a chair. "Which student?"
"Ginny Weasley," said
Professor McGonagall.
Harry felt Ron slide silently
down onto the wardrobe floor beside him.
"We shall have to send all
the students home tomorrow," said Professor McGonagall. "This is the
end of Hogwarts. Dumbledore always said..."
The staffroom door banged open
again. For one wild moment, Harry was sure it would be Dumbledore. But it was
Lockhart, and he was beaming.
"So sorry - dozed off -
what have I missed?"
He didn't seem to notice that
the other teachers were looking at him with something remarkably like hatred.
Snape stepped forward. "Just the man," he said. "The very man. A
girl has been snatched by the monster, Lockhart. Taken into the Chamber of
Secrets itself. Your moment has come at last."
Lockhart blanched.
"That's right,
Gilderoy," chipped in Professor Sprout. "Weren't you saying just last
night that you've known all along where the entrance to the Chamber of Secrets
is?"
"I - well, I
-"sputtered Lockhart.
"Yes, didn't you tell me
you were sure you knew what was inside it?" piped up Professor Flitwick.
"D-did I? I don't recall
-"
"I certainly remember you
saying you were sorry you hadn't had a crack at the monster before Hagrid was
arrested," said Snape. "Didn't you say that the whole affair had been
bungled, and that you should have been given a free rein from the first?"
Lockhart stared around at his
stony-faced colleagues.
"I - I really never - you
may have misunderstood -" "We'll leave it to you, then, Gilderoy," said
Professor McGonagall. "Tonight will be an excellent time to do it. We'll
make sure everyone's out of your way. You'll be able to tackle the monster all
by youself. A free rein at last."
Lockhart gazed desperately
around him, but nobody came to the rescue. He didn't look remotely handsome
anymore. His lip was trembling, and in the absence of his usually toothy grin,
he looked weak-chinned and feeble.
"V-very well," he
said. "I'll - I'll be in my office, getting - getting ready."
And he left the room.
"Right," said
Professor McGonagall, whose nostrils were flared, "that's got him
out from under our feet. The Heads of Houses should go and inform their
students what has happened. Tell them the Hogwarts Express will take them home
first thing tomorrow. Will the rest of you please make sure no students have
been left outside their dormitories."
The teachers rose and left, one
by one.
It was probably the worst day of
Harry's entire life. He, Ron, Fred, and George sat together in a corner of the
Gryffindor common room, unable to say anything to each other. Percy wasn't
there. He had gone to send an owl to Mr. and Mrs. Weasley, then shut himself up
in his dormitory.
No afternoon ever lasted as long
as that one, nor had Gryffindor Tower ever been so crowded, yet so quiet. Near
sunset, Fred and George went up to bed, unable to sit there any longer.
"She knew something,
Harry," said Ron, speaking for the first time since they had entered the
wardrobe in the staff room. "That's why she was taken. It wasn't some
stupid thing about Percy at all., She'd found out something about the Chamber
of Secrets. That must be why she was -" Ron rubbed his eyes frantically.
"I mean, she was a pure-blood. There can't be any other reason."
Harry could see the sun sinking,
blood-red, below the skyline. This was the worst he had ever felt. If only
there was something they could do. Anything.
"Harry" said Ron.
"D'you think there's any chance at all she's not - you know -"
Harry didn't know what to say.
He couldn't see how Ginny could still be alive.
"D'you know what?"
said Ron. "I think we should go and see Lockhart. Tell him what we know.
He's going to try and get into the Chamber. We can tell him where we think it
is, and tell him it's a basilisk in there."
Because Harry couldn't think of
anything else to do, and because he wanted to be doing something, he agreed.
The Gryffindors around them were so miserable, and felt so sorry for the
Weasleys, that nobody tried to stop them as they got up, crossed the room, and
left through the portrait hole.
Darkness was falling as they
walked down to Lockhart's office. There seemed to be a lot of activity going on
inside it. They could hear scraping, thumps, and hurried footsteps.
Harry knocked and there was a
sudden silence from inside. Then the door opened the tiniest crack and they saw
one of Lockhart's eyes peering through it.
"Oh - Mr. Potter - Mr.
Weasley -" he said, opening the door a bit wider. "I'm rather busy at
the moment -if you would be quick -"
"Professor, we've got some
information for you," said Harry. "We think it'll help you."
"Er - well - it's not
terribly -" The side of Lockhart's face that they could see looked very
uncomfortable. "I mean - well - all right -"
He opened the door and they
entered.
His office had been almost
completely stripped. Two large trunks stood open on the floor. Robes,
jade-green, lilac, midnight blue, had been hastily folded into one of them;
books were jumbled untidily into the other. The photographs that had covered
the walls were now crammed into boxes on the desk.
"Are you going
somewhere?" said Harry.
"Er, well, yes," said
Lockhart, ripping a life-size poster of himself from the back of the door as he
spoke and starting to roll it up. "Urgent call - unavoidable - got to go
-"
"What about my
sister?" said Ron jerkily.
"Well, as to that - most
unfortunate -" said Lockhart, avoiding their eyes as he wrenched open a
drawer and started emptying the contents into a bag. "No one regrets more
than I -"
"You're the Defense Against
the Dark Arts teacher!" said Harry. "You can't go now! Not with all
the Dark stuff going on here!"
"Well - I must say - when I
took the job -" Lockhart muttered, now piling socks on top of his robes.
"nothing in the job description - didn't expect -"
"You mean you're running
away?" said Harry disbelievingly. "After all that stuff you did
in your books -" "Books can be misleading," said Lockhart
delicately.
"You wrote them!"
Harry shouted.
"My dear boy," said
Lockhart, straightening up and frowning at Harry. "Do use your common
sense. My books wouldn't have sold half as well if people didn't think I'd done
all those things. No one wants to read about some ugly old Armenian warlock,
even if he did save a village from werewolves. He'd look dreadful on the front
cover. No dress sense at all. And the witch who banished the Bandon Banshee had
a harelip. I mean, come on -"
"So you've just been taking
credit for what a load of other people have done?" said Harry
incredulously.
"Harry, Harry," said
Lockhart, shaking his head impatiently, "it's not nearly as simple as
that. There was work involved. I had to track these people down. Ask them
exactly how they managed to do what they did. Then I had to put a Memory Charm
on them so they wouldn't remember doing it. If there's one thing I pride myself
on, it's my Memory Charms. No, it's been a lot of work, Harry. It's not all
book signings and publicity photos, you know. You want fame, you have to be
prepared for a long hard slog."
He banged the lids of his trunks
shut and locked them.
"Let's see," he said.
"I think that's everything. Yes. Only one thing left."
He pulled out his wand and
turned to them. "Awfully sorry, boys, but I'll have to put a Memory
Charm on you now. Can't have you blabbing my secrets all over the place. I'd
never sell another book -"
Harry reached his wand just in
time. Lockhart had barely raised his, when Harry bellowed, "Expelliarmus!"
Lockhart
was blasted backward, falling over his trunk; his wand flew high into the air;
Ron caught it, and flung it out of the open window.
"Shouldn't have let
Professor Snape teach us that one," said Harry furiously, kicking Lockhart's
trunk aside. Lockhart was looking up at him, feeble once more. Harry was still
pointing his wand at him.
"What d'you want me to
do?" said Lockhart weakly. "I don't know where the Chamber of Secrets
is. There's nothing I can do."
"You're in luck," said
Harry, forcing Lockhart to his feet at wandpoint. "We think we know
where it is. And what's inside it. Let's go." They marched Lockhart out of his office and down the
nearest stairs, along the dark corridor where the messages shone on the wall,
to the door of Moaning Myrtle's bathroom. They sent Lockhart in first. Harry was pleased to see that
he was shaking.
Moaning Myrtle was sitting on
the tank of the end toilet.
"Oh, it's you," she
said when she saw Harry. "What do you want this time?"
"To ask you how you
died," said Harry.
Myrtle's whole aspect changed at
once. She looked as though she had never been asked such a flattering question.
"Ooooh, it was
dreadful," she said with relish. "It happened right in here. I died
in this very stall. I remember it so well. I'd hidden because Olive Hornby was
teasing me about my glasses. The door was locked, and I was crying, and then I
heard somebody come in. They said something funny. A different language, I
think it must have been. Anyway, what really got me was that it was a boy
speaking. So I unlocked the door, to tell him to go and use his own toilet, and
then -" Myrtle swelled importantly, her face shining. "I died." "How?" said Harry.
"No idea," said Myrtle
in hushed tones. "I just remember seeing a pair of great, big, yellow
eyes. My whole body sort of seized up, and then I was floating away..." She
looked dreamily at Harry. "And then I came back again. I was determined to
haunt Olive Hornby, you see. Oh, she was sorry she'd ever laughed at my glasses."
"Where exactly did you see
the eyes?" said Harry.
"Somewhere there,"
said Myrtle, pointing vaguely toward the sink in front of her toilet.
Harry and Ron hurried over to
it. Lockhart was standing well back, a look of utter terror on his face.
It looked like an ordinary sink.
They examined every inch of it, inside and out, including the pipes below. And
then Harry saw it: Scratched on the side of one of the copper taps was a tiny
snake.
"That tap's never
worked," said Myrtle brightly as he tried to turn it.
"Harry," said Ron.
"Say something. Something in Parseltongue."
"But -" Harry thought
hard. The only times he'd ever managed to speak Parseltongue were when he'd
been faced with a real snake. He stared hard at the tiny engraving, trying to
imagine it was real.
"Open up," he said.
He looked at Ron, who shook his
head.
"English," he said.
Harry looked back at the snake,
willing himself to believe it was alive. If he moved his head, the candlelight
made it look as though it were moving.
"Open up," he said.
Except that the words weren't
what he heard; a strange hissing had escaped him, and at once the tap glowed
with a brilliant white light and began to spin. Next second, the sink began to
move; the sink, in fact, sank, right out of sight, leaving a large pipe
exposed, a pipe wide enough for a man to slide into.
Harry heard Ron gasp and looked
up again. He had made up his mind what he was going to do.
"I'm going down
there," he said.
He couldn't not go, not now they
had found the entrance to the Chamber, not if there was even the faintest,
slimmest, wildest chance that Ginny might be alive.
"Me too," said Ron.
There was a pause.
"Well, you hardly seem to
need me," said Lockhart, with a shadow of his old smile. "I'll just
-"
He put his hand on the door
knob, but Ron and Harry both pointed their wands at him.
"You can go first,"
Ron snarled.
White-faced and wandless,
Lockhart approached the opening.
"Boys," he said, his
voice feeble. "Boys, what good will it do?"
Harry jabbed him in the back
with his wand. Lockhart slid his legs into the pipe.
"I really don't think
-" he started to say, but Ron gave him a push, and he slid out of sight.
Harry followed quickly. He lowered himself slowly into the pipe, then let go.
It was like rushing down an
endless, slimy, dark slide. He could see more pipes branching off in all
directions, but none as large as theirs, which twisted and turned, sloping
steeply downward, and he knew that he was falling deeper below the school than
even the dungeons. Behind him he could hear Ron, thudding slightly at the
curves.
And then, just as he had begun
to worry about what would happen when he hit the ground, the pipe leveled out,
and he shot out of the end with a wet thud, landing on the damp floor of a dark
stone tunnel large enough to stand in. Lockhart was getting to his feet a
little ways away, covered in slime and white as a ghost. Harry stood aside as
Ron came whizzing out of the pipe, too.
"We must be miles under the
school," said Harry, his voice echoing in the black tunnel.
"Under the lake,
probably," said Ron, squinting around at the dark, slimy walls.
All three of them turned to
stare into the darkness ahead.
"Lumos!" Harry
muttered to his wand and it lit again. "C'mon," he said to Ron and
Lockhart, and off they went, their footsteps slapping loudly on the wet floor. The tunnel was so dark that they could only see a little
distance ahead. Their shadows on the wet walls looked monstrous in the
wandlight.
"Remember," Harry said
quietly as they walked cautiously forward, "any sign of movement, close
your eyes right away..."
But the tunnel was quiet as the
grave, and the first unexpected sound they heard was a loud crunch as
Ron stepped on what turned out to be a rat's skull. Harry lowered his wand to
look at the floor and saw that it was littered with small animal bones. Trying
very hard not to imagine what Ginny might look like if they found her, Harry
led the way forward, around a dark bend in the tunnel.
"Harry - there's something
up there -" said Ron hoarsely, grabbing Harry's shoulder.
They froze, watching. Harry
could just see the outline of something huge and curved, lying right across the
tunnel. It wasn't moving.
"Maybe it's asleep,"
he breathed, glancing back at the other two. Lockhart's hands were pressed over
his eyes. Harry turned back to look at the thing, his heart beating so fast it
hurt.
Very slowly, his eyes as narrow
as he could make them and still see, Harry edged forward, his wand held high.
The light slid over a gigantic
snake skin, of a vivid, poisonous green, lying curled and empty across the
tunnel floor. The creature that had shed it must have been twenty feet long at
least.
"Blimey," said Ron
weakly.
There was a sudden movement
behind them. Gilderoy Lockhart's knees had given way.
"Get up," said Ron
sharply, pointing his wand at Lockhart.
Lockhart got to his feet - then
he dived at Ron, knocking him to the ground.
Harry jumped forward, but too
late - Lockhart was straightening up, panting, Ron's wand in his hand and a
gleaming smile back on his face.
"The adventure ends here,
boys!" he said. "I shall take a bit of this skin back up to the
school, tell them I was too late to save the girl, and that you two tragically
lost your minds at the sight of her mangled body - say good-bye to your
memories!"
He raised Ron's Spellotaped wand
high over his head and yelled, "Obliviate!"
The wand exploded with the force
of a small bomb. Harry flung his arms over his head and ran, slipping over the
coils of snake skin, out of the way of great chunks of tunnel ceiling that were
thundering to the floor. Next moment, he was standing alone, gazing at a solid
wall of broken rock.
"Ron!" he shouted.
"Are you okay? Ron!"
"I'm here!" came Ron's
muffled voice from behind the rockfall. "I'm okay - this git's not, though
- he got blasted by the wand -"
There was a dull thud and a loud
"ow!" It sounded as though Ron had just kicked Lockhart in the shins.
"What now?" Ron's
voice said, sounding desperate. "We can't get through - it'll take
ages..."
Harry looked up at the tunnel
ceiling. Huge cracks had appeared in it. He had never tried to break apart
anything as large as these rocks by magic, and now didn't seem a good moment to
try - what if the whole tunnel caved in?
There was another thud and
another "ow!" from behind the rocks. They were wasting time. Ginny
had already been in the Chamber of Secrets for hours...Harry knew there was only
one thing to do.
"Wait there," he
called to Ron. "Wait with Lockhart. I'll go on...If I'm not back in an
hour..."
There was a very pregnant pause,
"I'll try and shift some of this rock," said Ron, who seemed to be
trying to keep his voice steady. "So you can - can get back through. And,
Harry -"
"See you in a bit,"
said Harry, trying to inject some confidence into his shaking voice.
And he set off alone past the
giant snake skin.
Soon the distant noise of Ron
straining to shift the rocks was gone. The tunnel turned and turned again.
Every nerve in Harry's body was tingling unpleasantly. He wanted the tunnel to
end, yet dreaded what he'd find when it did. And then, at last, as he crept around
yet another bend, he saw a solid wall ahead on which two entwined serpents were
carved, their eyes set with great, glinting emeralds.
Harry approached, his throat
very dry. There was no need to pretend these stone snakes were real; their eyes
looked strangely alive.
He could guess what he had to
do. He cleared his throat, and the emerald eyes seemed to flicker.
"Open,"
said Harry, in a low, faint
hiss.
The serpents parted as the wall
cracked open, the halves slid smoothly out of sight, and Harry, shaking from
head to foot, walked inside. CHAPTER SEVENTEEN THE HEIR OF SLYTHERIN
He was standing at the end of a
very long, dimly lit chamber. Towering stone pillars entwined with more carved
serpents rose to support a ceiling lost in darkness, casting long, black
shadows through the odd, greenish gloom that filled the place.
His heart beating very fast, Harry stood
listening to the chill silence. Could the basilisk be lurking in a shadowy
corner, behind a pillar? And where was Ginny?
He pulled out his wand and moved
forward between the serpentine columns. Every careful footstep echoed loudly
off the shadowy walls. He kept his eyes narrowed, ready to clamp them shut at
the smallest sign of movement. The hollow eye sockets of the stone snakes
seemed to be following him. More than once, with a jolt of the stomach, he
thought he saw one stir.
Then, as he drew level with the
last pair of pillars, a statue high as the Chamber itself loomed into view,
standing against the back wall.
Harry had to crane his neck to
look up into the giant face above: It was ancient and monkeyish, with a long,
thin beard that fell almost to the bottom of the wizard's sweeping stone robes,
where two enormous gray feet stood on the smooth Chamber floor. And between the
feet, facedown, lay a small, black-robed figure with flaming-red hair.
"Ginny!" Harry
muttered, sprinting to her and dropping to his knees. "Ginny - don't be
dead - please don't be dead -" He flung his wand aside, grabbed Ginny's
shoulders, and turned her over. Her face was white as marble, and as cold, yet
her eyes were closed, so she wasn't Petrified. But then she must be...
"Ginny, please wake
up," Harry muttered desperately, shaking her. Ginny's head lolled
hopelessly from side to side.
"She won't wake," said
a soft voice.
Harry jumped and spun around on
his knees.
A tall, black-haired boy was
leaning against the nearest pillar, watching. He was strangely blurred around
the edges, as though Harry were looking at him through a misted window. But
there was no mistaking him.
"Tom - Tom Riddle?"
Riddle nodded, not taking his
eyes off Harry's face.
"What d'you mean, she won't
wake?" Harry said desperately. "She's not - she's not -?"
"She's still alive,"
said Riddle. "But only just."
Harry stared at him. Tom Riddle
had been at Hogwarts fifty years ago, yet here he stood, a weird, misty light
shining about him, not a day older than sixteen.
"Are you a ghost?"
Harry said uncertainly.
"A memory," said
Riddle quietly. "Preserved in a diary for fifty years."
He pointed toward the floor near
the statue's giant toes. Lying open there was the little black diary Harry had
found in Moaning Myrtle's bathroom. For a second, Harry wondered how it had got
there - but there were more pressing matters to deal with.
"You've got to help me,
Tom," Harry said, raising Ginny's head again. "We've got to get her
out of here. There's a basilisk...I don't know where it is, but it could be along
any moment...Please, help me."
Riddle didn't move. Harry,
sweating, managed to hoist Ginny half off the floor, and bent to pick up his
wand again.
But his wand had gone.
"Did you see -?"
He looked up. Riddle was still
watching him - twirling Harry's wand between his long fingers.
"Thanks," said Harry,
stretching out his hand for it.
A smile curled the corners of
Riddle's mouth. He continued to stare at Harry, twirling the wand idly.
"Listen," said Harry
urgently, his knees sagging with Ginny's dead weight. "We've got to go! If
the basilisk comes -"
"It won't come until it is
called," said Riddle calmly.
Harry lowered Ginny back onto
the floor, unable to hold her up any longer.
"What d'you mean?" he
said. "Look, give me my wand, I might need it -"
Riddle's smile broadened.
"You won't be needing
it," he said.
Harry stared at him.
"What d'you mean, I won't
be -?"
"I've waited a long time
for this, Harry Potter," said Riddle. "For the chance to see you. To
speak to you."
"Look," said Harry,
losing patience, "I don't think you get it. We're in the Chamber of
Secrets. We can talk later -"
"We're going to talk
now," said Riddle, still smiling broadly, and he pocketed Harry's wand.
Harry stared at him. There was
something very funny going on here ...
"How did Ginny get like
this?" he asked slowly.
"Well, that's an
interesting question," said Riddle pleasantly. "And quite a long
story. I suppose the real reason Ginny Weasley's like this is because she
opened her heart and spilled all her secrets to an invisible stranger."
"What are you talking
about?" said Harry.
"The diary," said
Riddle. 'My diary. Little Ginny's been writing in it for months and months,
telling me all her pitiful worries and woes - how her brothers tease her, how
she had to come to school with secondhand robes and books, how -" Riddle's
eyes glinted "- how she didn't think famous, good, great Harry Potter
would ever like her..."
All the time he spoke, Riddle's
eyes never left Harry's face. There was an almost hungry look in them.
"It's
very boring, having to listen to the silly little troubles of an
eleven-year-old girl," he went on. "But I was patient. I wrote back.
I was sympathetic, I was kind. Ginny simply loved me. No one's ever understood
me like you, Tom ... I'm so glad I've got this diary to confide in ... It's like
having a friend I can carry around in my pocket ..."
Riddle laughed, a high, cold
laugh that didn't suit him. It made the hairs stand up on the back of Harry's
neck.
"If I say it myself, Harry,
I've always been able to charm the people I needed. So Ginny poured out her
soul to me, and her soul happened to be exactly what I wanted... I grew stronger
and stronger on a diet of her deepest fears, her darkest secrets. I grew
powerful, far more powerful than little Miss Weasley. Powerful enough to start
feeding Miss Weasley a few of my secrets, to start pouring a little of my soul
back into her..."
"What d'you mean?"
said Harry, whose mouth had gone very dry.
"Haven't you guessed yet,
Harry Potter?" said Riddle softly. "Ginny Weasley opened the Chamber
of Secrets. She strangled the school roosters and daubed threatening messages
on the walls. She set the Serpent of Slytherin on four Mudbloods, and the
Squib's cat."
"No," Harry whispered.
"Yes," said Riddle,
calmly. "Of course, she didn't know what she was doing at first. It was
very amusing. I wish you could have seen her new diary entries...far more
interesting, they became... Dear Tom," he recited, watching Harry's
horrified face, 'I think I'm losing my memory. There are rooster feathers all
over my robes and 1 don't know how they got there. Dear Tom, l can't remember
what I did on the night of Halloween, but a cat was attacked and I've got paint
all down my front. Dear Tom, Percy keeps telling me I'm pale and I'm not
myself. I think he suspects me... There was another attack today and I don't know
where I was. Tom, what am I going to do? I think I'm going mad... I think I'm the
one attacking everyone, Tom!"
Harry's fists were clenched, the
nails digging deep into his palms.
"It took a very long time
for stupid little Ginny to stop trusting her diary," said Riddle.
"But she finally became suspicious and tried to dispose of it. And that's where
you came in, Harry. You found it, and I couldn't have been more delighted. Of
all the people who could have picked it up, it was you, the very person I was
most anxious to meet..."
"And why did you want to
meet me?" said Harry. Anger was coursing through him, and it was an effort
to keep his voice steady.
"Well, you see, Ginny told
me all about you, Harry," said Riddle. "Your whole fascinating
history." His eyes roved over the lightning scar on Harry's forehead, and
their expression grew hungrier. "I knew I must find out more about you,
talk to you, meet you if I could. So I decided to show you my famous capture of
that great oaf, Hagrid, to gain your trust -"
"Hagrid's my friend,"
said Harry, his voice now shaking. "And you framed him, didn't you? I thought
you made a mistake, but -"
Riddle laughed his high laugh
again.
"It was my word against
Hagrid's, Harry. Well, you can imagine how it looked to old Armando Dippet. On
the one hand, Tom Riddle, poor but brilliant, parentless but so brave, school
prefect, model student... on the other hand, big, blundering Hagrid, in trouble
every other week, trying to raise werewolf cubs under his bed, sneaking off to
the Forbidden Forest to wrestle trolls... but I admit, even I was surprised how
well the plan worked. I thought someone must realize that Hagrid couldn't
possibly be the Heir of Slytherin. It had taken me five whole years to find out
everything I could about the Chamber of Secrets and discover the secret
entrance... as though Hagrid had the brains, or the power!
"Only the Transfiguration
teacher, Dumbledore, seemed to think Hagrid was innocent. He persuaded Dippetto
keep Hagrid and train him as gamekeeper. Yes, I think Dumbledore might have
guessed...Dumbledore never seemed to like me as much as the other teachers did
..."
"I bet Dumbledore saw right
through you," said Harry, his teeth gritted.
"Well, he certainly kept an
annoyingly close watch on me after Hagrid was expelled," said Riddle
carelessly. "I knew it wouldn't be safe to open the Chamber again while I
was still at school. But I wasn't going to waste those long years I'd spent
searching for it. I decided to leave behind a diary, preserving my
sixteen-year-old self in its pages, so that one day, with luck, I would be able
to lead another in my footsteps, and finish Salazar Slytherin's noble
work."
"Well, you haven't finished
it," said Harry triumphantly. "No one's died this time, not even the
cat. In a few hours the Mandrake Draught will be ready and everyone who was
Petrified will be all right again -"
"Haven't I already told
you," said Riddle quietly, "that killing Mudbloods doesn't matter to
me anymore? For many months now, my new target has been - you."
Harry stared at him.
"Imagine how angry I was
when the next time my diary was opened, it was Ginny who was writing to me, not
you. She saw you with the diary, you see, and panicked. What if you found out
how to work it, and I repeated all her secrets to you? What if, even worse, I
told you who'd been strangling roosters? So the foolish little brat waited until
your dormitory was deserted and stole it back. But I knew what I must do. It
was clear to me that you were on the trail of Slytherin's heir. From everything
Ginny had told me about you, I knew you would go to any lengths to solve the
mystery - particularly if one of your best friends was attacked. And Ginny had
told me the whole school was buzzing because you could speak Parseltongue ...
"So I made Ginny write her
own farewell on the wall and come down here to wait. She struggled and cried
and became very boring. But there isn't much life left in her... She put too much
into the diary, into me. Enough to let me leave its pages at last... I have been
waiting for you to appear since we arrived here. I knew you'd come. I have many
questions for you, Harry Potter."
"Like what?" Harry
spat, fists still clenched.
"Well," said Riddle,
smiling pleasantly, "how is it that you - a skinny boy with no
extraordinary magical talent - managed to defeat the greatest wizard of all
time? How did you escape with nothing but a scar, while Lord Voldemort's powers
were destroyed?"
There was an odd red gleam in
his hungry eyes now.
"Why do you care how I
escaped?" said Harry slowly. "Voldemort was after your time..."
"Voldemort," said
Riddle softly, "is my past, present, and future, Harry Potter..."
He pulled Harry's wand from his
pocket and began to trace it through the air, writing three shimmering words:
TOM MARVOLO RIDDLE
Then he waved the wand once, and
the letters of his name rearranged themselves:
I AM LORD VOLDEMORT
"You
see?" he whispered. "It was a name I was already using at Hogwarts,
to my most intimate friends only, of course. You think I was going to use my
filthy Muggle father's name forever? I, in whose veins runs the blood of
Salazar Slytherin himself, through my mother's side? I, keep the name of a
foul, common Muggle, who abandoned me even before I was born, just because he
found out his wife was a witch? No, Harry - I fashioned myself a new name, a
name I knew wizards everywhere would one day fear to speak, when I had become
the greatest sorcerer in the world!"
Harry's brain seemed to have
jammed. He stared numbly at Riddle, at the orphaned boy who had grown up to
murder Harry's own parents, and so many others...At last he forced himself to
speak.
"You're not," he said,
his quiet voice full of hatred.
"Not what?" snapped
Riddle.
"Not the greatest sorcerer
in the world," said Harry, breathing fast. "Sorry to
disappoint you and all that, but the
greatest wizard in the world is Albus Dumbledore. Everyone says so. Even when
you were strong, you didn't dare try and take over at Hogwarts. Dumbledore saw
through you when you were at school and he still frightens you now, wherever
you're hiding these days -"
The smile had gone from Riddle's
face, to be replaced by a very ugly look.
"Dumbledore's been driven
out of this castle by the mere memory of me!" he hissed.
"He's not as gone as you
might think!" Harry retorted. He was speaking at random, wanting to scare
Riddle, wishing rather than believing it to be true.
Riddle opened his mouth, but
froze.
Music was coming from somewhere.
Riddle whirled around to stare down the empty Chamber. The music was growing
louder. It was eerie, spine-tingling, unearthly; it lifted the hair on Harry's
scalp and made his heart feel as though it was swelling to twice its normal
size. Then, as the music reached such a pitch that Harry felt it vibrating
inside his own ribs, flames erupted at the top of the nearest pillar.
A crimson bird the size of a
swan had appeared, piping its weird music to the vaulted ceiling. It had a
glittering golden tail as long as a peacock's and gleaming golden talons, which
were gripping a ragged bundle.
A second later, the bird was
flying straight at Harry. It dropped the ragged thing it was carrying at his
feet, then landed heavily on his shoulder. As it folded its great wings, Harry
looked up and saw it had a long, sharp golden beak and a beady black eye.
The bird stopped singing. It sat
still and warm next to Harry's cheek, gazing steadily at Riddle.
"That's a phoenix."
said Riddle, staring shrewdly back at it.
"Fawkes?" Harry
breathed, and he felt the bird's golden claws squeeze his shoulder gently.
"And that -" said
Riddle, now eyeing the ragged thing that Fawkes had dropped, "that's the
old school Sorting Hat -"
So it was. Patched, frayed, and
dirty, the hat lay motionless at Harry's feet.
Riddle began to laugh again. He
laughed so hard that the dark chamber rang with it, as though ten Riddles were
laughing at once.
"This is what Dumbledore
sends his defender! A songbird and an old hat! Do you feel brave, Harry Potter?
Do you feel safe now?"
Harry didn't answer. He might
not see what use Fawkes or the Sorting Hat were, but he was no longer alone,
and he waited for Riddle to stop laughing with his courage mounting.
"To business, Harry,"
said Riddle, still smiling broadly. "Twice - in your past, in my future -
we have met. And twice I failed to kill you. How did you survive? Tell me
everything. The longer you talk," he added softly, "the longer you
stay alive."
Harry was thinking fast,
weighing his chances. Riddle had the wand. He, Harry, had Fawkes and the
Sorting Hat, neither of which would be much good in a duel. It looked bad, all
right...but the longer Riddle stood there, the more life was dwindling out of
Ginny...and in the meantime, Harry noticed suddenly, Riddle's outline was
becoming clearer, more solid...If it had to be a fight between him and Riddle,
better sooner than later.
"No one knows why you lost
your powers when you attacked me," said Harry abruptly. "I don't know
myself. But I know why you couldn't kill me. Because my mother died to save me.
My common Muggle-born mother," he added, shaking with suppressed rage.
"She stopped you killing me. And I've seen the real you, I saw you last
year. You're a wreck. You're barely alive. That's where all your power got you.
You're in hiding. You're ugly, you're foul -"
Riddle's face contorted. Then he
forced it into an awful smile. "So. Your mother died to save you. Yes,
that's a powerful countercharm. I can see now...there is nothing special about
you, after all. I wondered, you see. There are strange likenesses between us,
after all. Even you must have noticed. Both half-bloods, orphans, raised by
Muggles. Probably the only two Parselmouths to come to Hogwarts since the great
Slytherin himself We even look something alike...but after all, it was merely a
lucky chance that saved you from me. That's all I wanted to know."
Harry stood, tense, waiting for
Riddle to raise his wand. But Riddle's twisted smile was widening again.
"Now, Harry, I'm going to
teach you a little lesson. Let's match the powers of Lord Voldemort, Heir of
Salazar Slytherin, against famous Harry Potter, and the best weapons Dumbledore
can give him..."
He cast an amused eye over
Fawkes and the Sorting Hat, then walked away. Harry, fear spreading up his numb
legs, watched Riddle stop between the high pillars and look up into the stone
face of Slytherin, high above him in the half-darkness. Riddle opened his mouth
wide and hissed - but Harry understood what he was saying ...
"Speak to me, Slytherin,
greatest of the Hogwarts Four."
Harry wheeled around to look up
at the statue, Fawkes swaying on his shoulder.
Slytherin's gigantic stone face
was moving. Horrorstruck, Harry saw his mouth opening, wider and wider, to make
a huge black hole.
And something was stirring
inside the statue's mouth. Something was slithering up from its depths.
Harry backed away until he hit
the dark Chamber wall, and as he shut his eyes tight he felt Fawkes' wing sweep
his cheek as he took flight. Harry wanted to shout, "Don't leave me!"
but what chance did a phoenix have against the king of serpents?
Something huge hit the stone
floor of the Chamber. Harry felt it shudder - he knew what was happening, he
could sense it, could almost see the giant serpent uncoiling itself from
Slytherin's mouth. Then he heard Riddle's hissing voice:
"Kill him."
The basilisk was moving toward
Harry; he could hear its heavy body slithering heavily across the dusty floor.
Eyes still tightly shut, Harry began to run blindly sideways, his hands
outstretched, feeling his way - Voldemort was laughing.
Harry tripped. He fell hard onto
the stone and tasted blood the serpent was barely feet from him, he could hear
it coming.
There was a loud, explosive
spitting sound right above him, and then something heavy hit Harry so hard that
he was smashed into the wall. Waiting for fangs to sink through his body he
heard more mad hissing, something thrashing wildly off the pillars.
He couldn't help it - he opened
his eyes wide enough to squint at what was going on.
The enormous serpent, bright,
poisonous green, thick as an oak trunk, had raised itself high in the air and
its great blunt head was weaving drunkenly between the pillars. As Harry
trembled, ready to close his eyes if it turned, he saw what had distracted the
snake.
Fawkes was soaring around its
head, and the basilisk was snapping furiously at him with fangs long and thin
as sabers Fawkes dived. His long golden beak sank out of sight and a sudden
shower of dark blood spattered the floor. The snake's tail thrashed, narrowly
missing Harry, and before Harry could shut his eyes, it turned - Harry looked
straight into its face and saw that its eyes, both its great, bulbous yellow
eyes, had been punctured by the phoenix; blood was streaming to the floor, and
the snake was spitting in agony.
"NO!" Harry heard
Riddle screaming. "LEAVE THE BIRD! LEAVE THE BIRD! THE BOY IS BEHIND YOU.
YOU CAN STILL SMELL HIM. KILL HIM!"
The blinded serpent swayed,
confused, still deadly. Fawkes was circling its head, piping his eerie song,
jabbing here and there at its scaly nose as the blood poured from its ruined
eyes.
"Help me, help me,"
Harry muttered wildly, "someone - anyone..."
The snake's tail whipped across
the floor again. Harry ducked. Something soft hit his face.
The basilisk had swept the
Sorting Hat into Harry's arms. Harry seized it. It was all he had left, his
only chance - he rammed it onto his head and threw himself flat onto the floor
as the basilisk's tail swung over him again.
Help me - help me -
Harry thought, his eyes screwed
tight under the hat. Please help me. There was no answering voice. Instead, the hat contracted,
as though an invisible hand was squeezing it very tightly.
Something very hard and heavy
thudded onto the top of Harry's head, almost knocking him out. Stars winking in
front of his eyes, he grabbed the top of the hat to pull it off and felt
something long and hard beneath it.
A gleaming silver sword had
appeared inside the hat, its handle glittering with rubies the size of eggs.
"KILL THE BOY! LEAVE THE
BIRD! THE BOY IS BEHIND YOU. SNIFF - SMELL HIM."
Harry was on his feet, ready.
The basilisk's head was falling, its body coiling around, hitting pillars as it
twisted to face him. He could see the vast, bloody eye sockets, see the mouth
stretching wide, wide enough to swallow him whole, lined with fangs long as his
sword, thin, glittering, venomous -
It lunged blindly - Harry dodged
and it hit the Chamber wall. It lunged again, and its forked tongue lashed
Harry's side. He raised the sword in both his hands -
The basilisk lunged again, and
this time its aim was true - Harry threw his whole weight behind the sword and
drove it to the hilt into the roof of the serpent's mouth -
But as warm blood drenched
Harry's arms, he felt a searing pain just above his elbow. One long, poisonous
fang was sinking deeper and deeper into his arm and it splintered as the
basilisk keeled over sideways and fell, twitching, to the floor.
Harry slid down the wall. He
gripped the fang that was spreading poison through his body and wrenched it out
of his arm. But he knew it was too late. White-hot pain was spreading slowly
and steadily from the wound. Even as he dropped the fang and watched his own
blood soaking his robes, his vision went foggy. The Chamber was dissolving in a
whirl of dull color.
A patch of scarlet swam past,
and Harry heard a soft clatter of claws beside him.
"Fawkes," said Harry
thickly. "You were fantastic, Fawkes..."
He felt the bird lay its
beautiful head on the spot where the serpent's fang had pierced him.
He could hear echoing footsteps
and then a dark shadow moved in front of him.
"You're dead, Harry
Potter," said Riddle's voice above him. "Dead. Even Dumbledore's bird
knows it. Do you see what he's doing, Potter? He's crying."
Harry blinked. Fawke's head slid
in and out of focus. Thick, pearly tears were trickling down the glossy
feathers.
"I'm going to sit here and
watch you die, Harry Potter. Take your time. I'm in no hurry."
Harry felt drowsy. Everything
around him seemed to be spinning.
"So ends the famous Harry
Potter," said Riddle's distant voice. "Alone in the Chamber of
Secrets, forsaken by his friends, defeated at last by the Dark Lord he so
unwisely challenged. You'll be back with your dear Mudblood mother soon, Harry...
She bought you twelve years of borrowed time... but Lord Voldemort got you in the
end, as you knew he must..."
If this is dying, thought Harry,
it's not so bad.
Even the pain was leaving him...
But was this dying? Instead of
going black, the Chamber seemed to be coming back into focus. Harry gave his
head a little shake and there was Fawkes, still resting his head on Harry's
arm. A pearly patch of tears was shining all around the wound - except that
there was no wound.
"Get away, bird," said
Riddle's voice suddenly. "Get away from him - I said, get away -"
Harry raised his head. Riddle
was pointing Harry's wand at Fawkes; there was a bang like a gun, and Fawkes
took flight again in a whirl of gold and scarlet.
"Phoenix tears..." said
Riddle quietly, staring at Harry's arm. "Of course...healing powers...I
forgot..."
He looked into Harry's face.
"But it makes no difference. In fact, I prefer it this way. Just you and
me, Harry Potter...you and me..."
He raised the wand ...
Then, in a rush of wings, Fawkes
had soared back overhead and something fell into Harry's lap - the diary.
For a split second, both Harry
and Riddle, wand still raised, stared at it. Then, without thinking, without
considering, as though he had meant to do it all along, Harry seized the
basilisk fang on the floor next to him and plunged it straight into the heart
of the book.
There was a long, dreadful,
piercing scream. Ink spurted out of the diary in torrents, streaming over
Harry's hands, flooding the floor. Riddle was writhing and twisting, screaming
and flailing and then -
He had gone. Harry's wand fell
to the floor with a clatter and there was silence. Silence except for the
steady drip drip of ink still oozing from the diary. The basilisk venom had
burned a sizzling hole right through it.
Shaking all over, Harry pulled
himself up. His head was spinning as though he'd just traveled miles by Floo
powder. Slowly, he gathered together his wand and the Sorting Hat, and, with a
huge tug, retrieved the glittering sword from the roof of the basilisk's mouth.
Then came a faint moan from the
end of the Chamber. Ginny was stirring. As Harry hurried toward her, she sat
up. Her bemused eyes traveled from the huge form of the dead
basilisk, over Harry, in his blood-soaked
robes, then to the diary in his hand. She drew a great, shuddering gasp and
tears began to pour down her face.
"Harry - oh, Harry - I
tried to tell you at b-breakfast, but I c-couldn't say it in front of Percy -
it was me, Harry - but I - I s-swear I d-didn't mean to - R-Riddle made me, he
t-took me over - and - how did you kill that - that thing? W-where's Riddle?
The last thing I r-remember is him coming out of the diary -"
" It's all right,"
said Harry, holding up the diary, and showing Ginny the fang hole,
"Riddle's finished. Look! Him and the basilisk. C'mon, Ginny, let's get
out of here -"
"I'm going to be
expelled!" Ginny wept as Harry helped her awkwardly to her feet.
"I've looked forward to coming to Hogwarts ever since B-Bill came and
n-now I'll have to leave and - w-what'll Mum and Dad say?"
Fawkes was waiting for them,
hovering in the Chamber entrance. Harry urged Ginny forward; they stepped over
the motionless coils of the dead basilisk, through the echoing gloom, and back
into the tunnel. Harry heard the stone doors close behind them with a soft
hiss.
After a few minutes' progress up
the dark tunnel, a distant sound of slowly shifting rock reached Harry's ears.
"Ron!" Harry yelled,
speeding up. "Ginny's okay! I've got her!"
He heard Ron give a strangled
cheer, and they turned the next bend to see his eager face staring through the
sizable gap he had managed to make in the rock fall.
"Ginny!" Ron thrust an
arm through the gap in the rock to pull her through first. "You're alive!
I don't believe it! What happened?" How - what - where did that bird come
from?"
Fawkes had swooped through the
gap after Ginny.
"He's Dumbledore's,"
said Harry, squeezing through himself.
"How come you've got a
sword?" said Ron, gaping at the glittering weapon in Harry's hand.
"I'll explain when we get
out of here," said Harry with a sideways glance at Ginny, who was crying
harder than ever.
"But -"
"Later," Harry said
shortly. He didn't think it was a good idea to tell Ron yet who'd been opening
the Chamber, not in front of Ginny, anyway. "Where's Lockhart?"
"Back there," said
Ron, still looking puzzled but jerking his head up the tunnel toward the pipe.
"He's in a bad way. Come and see."
Led by Fawkes, whose wide
scarlet wings emitted a soft golden glow in the darkness, they walked all the
way back to the mouth of the pipe. Gilderoy Lockhart was sitting there, humming
placidly to himself.
"His memory's gone,"
said Ron. "The Memory Charm backfired. Hit him instead of us. Hasn't got a
clue who he is, or where he is, or who we are. I told him to come and wait
here. He's a danger to himself."
Lockhart peered good-naturedly
up at them all.
"Hello," he said.
"Odd sort of place, this, isn't it? Do you live here?"
"No," said Ron,
raising his eyebrows at Harry.
Harry bent down and looked up
the long, dark pipe.
"Have you thought how we're
going to get back up this?" he said to Ron.
Ron shook his head, but Fawkes
the phoenix had swooped past Harry and was now fluttering in front of him, his
beady eyes bright in the dark. He was waving his long golden tail feathers.
Harry looked uncertainly at him.
"He looks like he wants you
to grab hold..." said Ron, looking perplexed. "But you're much too
heavy for a bird to pull up there -"
"Fawkes," said Harry,
"isn't an ordinary bird." He turned quickly to the others.
"We've got to hold on to each other. Ginny, grab Ron's hand. Professor
Lockhart -"
"He means you," said
Ron sharply to Lockhart.
"You hold Ginny's other
hand -"
Harry tucked the sword and the
Sorting Hat into his belt, Ron took hold of the back of Harry's robes, and
Harry reached out and took hold of Fawkes's strangely hot tail feathers.
An extraordinary lightness
seemed to spread through his whole body and the next second, in a rush of
wings, they were flying upward through the pipe. Harry could hear Lockhart
dangling below him, saying, "Amazing! Amazing! This is just like
magic!" The chill air was whipping through Harry's hair, and before he'd
stopped enjoying the ride, it was over - all four of them were hitting the wet
floor of Moaning Myrtle's bathroom, and as Lockhart straightened his hat, the
sink that hid the pipe was sliding back into place.
Myrtle goggled at them.
"You're alive," she
said blankly to Harry.
"There's no need to sound
so disappointed," he said grimly, wiping flecks of blood and slime off his
glasses.
"Oh, well...I'd just been
thinking...if you had died, you'd have been welcome to share my toilet,"
said Myrtle, blushing silver.
"Urgh!" said Ron as
they left the bathroom for the dark, deserted corridor outside. "Harry! I
think Myrtle's grown fond of you! You've got competition, Ginny!"
But tears were still flooding
silently down Ginny's face.
"Where now?" said Ron,
with an anxious look at Ginny. Harry pointed.
Fawkes was leading the way,
glowing gold along the corridor. They strode after him, and moments later,
found themselves outside Professor McGonagall's office.
Harry knocked and pushed the
door open. CHAPTER EIGHTEEN DOBBY'S REWARD
For a moment there was silence
as Harry, Ron, Ginny, and Lockhart stood in the doorway, covered in muck and
slime and (in Harry's case) blood. Then there was a scream.
"Ginny!"
It was Mrs. Weasley, who had
been sitting crying in front of the fire. She leapt to her feet, closely
followed by Mr. Weasley, and both of them flung themselves on their.
Harry, however, was looking past
them. Professor Dumbledore was standing by the mantelpiece, beaming, next to
Professor McGonagall, who was taking great, steadying
gasps, clutching her chest. Fawkes went whooshing past Harry's
ear and settled on Dumbledore's shoulder, just as Harry found himself and Ron
being swept into Mrs. Weasley's tight embrace.
"You saved her! You saved
her! How did you do it?"
"I think we'd all like to
know that," said Professor McGonagall weakly.
Mrs. Weasley let go of Harry,
who hesitated for a moment, then walked over to the desk and laid upon it the
Sorting Hat, the ruby-encrusted sword, and what remained of Riddle's diary.
Then he started telling them
everything. For nearly a quarter of an hour he spoke into the rapt silence: He
told them about hearing the disembodied voice, how Hermione had finally
realized that he was hearing a basilisk in the pipes; how he and Ron had
followed the spiders into the forest, that Aragog had told them where the last
victim of the basilisk had died; how he had guessed that Moaning Myrtle had
been the victim, and that the entrance to the Chamber of Secrets might be in
her bathroom...
"Very well," Professor
McGonagall prompted him as he paused, "so you found out where the entrance
was -breaking a hundred school rules into pieces along the way, I might add -
but how on earth did you all get out of there alive, Potter?"
So Harry, his voice now growing
hoarse from all this talking, told them about Fawkes's timely arrival and about
the Sorting Hat giving him the sword. But then he faltered. He had so far
avoided mentioning Riddle's diary - or Ginny. She was standing with her head
against Mrs. Weasley's shoulder, and tears were still coursing silently down
her cheeks. What if they expelled her? Harry thought in panic. Riddle's diary
didn't work anymore...How could they prove it had been he who'd made her do it
all?
Instinctively, Harry looked at
Dumbledore, who smiled faintly, the firelight glancing off his half-moon
spectacles.
"What interests me
most," said Dumbledore gently, "is how Lord Voldemort managed to
enchant Ginny, when my sources tell me he is currently in hiding in the forests
of Albania."
Relief - warm, sweeping,
glorious relief - swept over Harry. "W-what's that?" said Mr. Weasley
in a stunned voice. "You-Know-Who? En-enchant Ginny? But Ginny's not ...
Ginny hasn't been ... has she?"
"It was this diary,"
said Harry quickly, picking it up and showing it to Dumbledore. "Riddle
wrote it when he was sixteen..."
Dumbledore took the diary from
Harry and peered keenly down his long, crooked nose at its burnt and soggy
pages.
"Brilliant," he said
softly. "Of course, he was probably the most brilliant student Hogwarts
has ever seen." He turned around to the Weasleys, who were looking utterly
bewildered.
"Very few people know that
Lord Voldemort was once called Tom Riddle. I taught him myself, fifty years
ago, at Hogwarts. He disappeared after leaving the school... traveled far and
wide...sank so deeply into the Dark Arts, consorted with the very worst of our
kind, underwent so many dangerous, magical transformations, that when he resurfaced
as Lord Voldemort, he was barely recognizable. Hardly anyone connected Lord
Voldemort with the clever, handsome boy who was once Head Boy here."
"But, Ginny," said
Mrs. Weasley. "What's our Ginny got to do with - with - him?"
"His d-diary" Ginny
sobbed. "I've b-been writing in it, and he's been w-writing back all year
-"
"Ginny!" said Mr.
Weasley, flabbergasted. "Haven't I taught you anything. What have I always
told you? Never trust anything that can think for itself if you can't see where
it keeps its brain? Why didn't you show
the diary to me, or your mother? A suspicious object like that, it was clearly
full of Dark Magic!'
"I d-didn't know,"
sobbed Ginny. "I found it inside one of the books Mum got me. I th-thought
someone had just left it in there and forgotten about it -"
"Miss Weasley should go up
to the hospital wing right away," Dumbledore interrupted in a firm voice.
"This has been a terrible ordeal for her. There will be no punishment.
Older and wiser wizards than she have been hoodwinked by Lord Voldemort."
He strode over to the door and opened it. "Bed rest and perhaps a large,
steaming mug of hot chocolate. I always find that cheers me up," he added,
twinkling kindly down at her. "You will find that Madam Pomfrey is still
awake. She's just giving out Mandrake juice - I daresay the basilisk's victims
will be waking up any moment."
"So Hermione's okay!"
said Ron brightly.
"There has been no lasting
harm done, Ginny," said Dumbledore.
Mrs. Weasley led Ginny out, and
Mr. Weasley followed, still looking deeply shaken.
"You know, Minerva,"
Professor Dumbledore said thoughtfully to Professor McGonagall, "I think
all this merits a good feast. Might I ask you to go and alert the
kitchens?"
"Right," said
Professor McGonagall crisply, also moving to the door. "I'll leave you to
deal with Potter and Weasley, shall I?"
"Certainly," said
Dumbledore.
She left, and Harry and Ron
gazed uncertainly at Dumbledore. What exactly had Professor McGonagall meant,
deal with them? Surely - surely - they weren't about to be punished?
"I seem to remember telling
you both that I would have to expel you if you broke any more school rules,
said Dumbledore.
Ron opened his mouth in horror.
"Which goes to show that
the best of us must sometimes eat our words," Dumbledore went on, smiling.
"You will both receive Special Awards for Services to the School and - let
me see - yes, I think two hundred points apiece for Gryffindor."
Ron went as brightly pink as
Lockhart's valentine flowers and closed his mouth again.
"But one of us seems to be
keeping mightily quiet about his part in this dangerous adventure,"
Dumbledore added. "Why so modest, Gilderoy?"
Harry gave a start. He had
completely forgotten about Lockhart. He turned and saw that Lockhart was
standing in a corner of the room, still wearing his vague smile. When
Dumbledore addressed him, Lockhart looked over his shoulder to see who he was
talking to.
"Professor
Dumbledore," Ron said quickly, "there was an accident down in the
Chamber of Secrets. Professor Lockhart -"
"Am I a professor?"
said Lockhart in mild surprise. "Goodness. I expect I was hopeless, was
I?"
"He tried to do a Memory
Charm and the wand backfired," Ron explained quietly to Dumbledore.
"Dear me," said
Dumbledore, shaking his head, his long silver mustache quivering. "Impaled
upon your own sword, Gilderoy!"
"Sword?" said Lockhart
dimly. "Haven't got a sword. That boy has, though." He pointed at
Harry. "He'll lend you one."
"Would you mind taking
Professor Lockhart up to the infirmary, too?" Dumbledore said to Ron.
"I'd like a few more words with Harry..."
Lockhart ambled out. Ron cast a
curious look back at Dumbledore and Harry as he closed the door.
Dumbledore crossed to one of the
chairs by the fire.
"Sit down, Harry," he
said, and Harry sat, feeling unaccountably nervous.
"First of all, Harry, I
want to thank you," said Dumbledore, eyes twinkling again. "You must
have shown me real loyalty down in the Chamber. Nothing but that could have
called Fawkes to you."
He stroked the phoenix, which
had fluttered down onto his knee. Harry grinned awkwardly as Dumbledore watched
him.
"And so you met Tom
Riddle," said Dumbledore thoughtfully. "I imagine he was most
interested in you..."
Suddenly, something that was
nagging at Harry came tumbling out of his mouth.
"Professor Dumbledore...Riddle
said I'm like him. Strange likenesses, he said...
"Did he, now?" said
Dumbledore, looking thoughtfully at Harry from under his thick silver eyebrows.
"And what do you think, Harry?"
"I don't think I'm like
him!" said Harry, more loudly than he'd intended. "I mean, I'm - I'm
in Gryffindor, I'm..."
But he fell silent, a lurking
doubt resurfacing in his mind.
"Professor," he
started again after a moment. "The Sorting Hat told me I'd - I'd have done
well in Slytherin. Everyone thought I was Slytherin's heir for a while ...
because I can speak Parseltongue ..."
"You can speak
Parseltongue, Harry," said Dumbledore calmly, "because Lord Voldemort
- who is the last remaining ancestor of Salazar Slytherin - can speak
Parseltongue. Unless I'm much mistaken, he transferred some of his own powers
to you the night he gave you that scar. Not something he intended to do, I'm
sure..."
"Voldemort put a bit of
himself in me?" Harry said, thunderstruck.
"It certainly seems
so."
"So I should be in
Slytherin," Harry said, looking desperately into Dumbledore's face.
"The Sorting Hat could see Slytherin's power in me, and it -"
"Put you in
Gryffindor," said Dumbledore calmly. "Listen to me, Harry. You happen
to have many qualities Salazar Slytherin prized in his hand-picked students.
His own very rare gift, Parseltongue - resourcefulness - determination - a
certain disregard for rules," he added, his mustache quivering again.
"Yet the Sorting Hat placed you in Gryffindor. You know why that was.
Think."
"It only put me in Gryffindor,"
said Harry in a defeated voice, "because I asked not to go in
Slytherin..."
'Exactly, "said Dumbledore,
beaming once more. "Which makes you very different from Tom Riddle. It is
our choices, Harry, that show what we truly are, far more than our abilities."
Harry sat motionless in his chair, stunned. "If you want proof, Harry,
that you belong in Gryffindor, I suggest you look more closely at this."
Dumbledore reached across to
Professor McGonagall's desk, picked up the blood-stained silver sword, and handed
it to Harry. Dully, Harry turned it over, the rubies blazing in the firelight.
And then he saw the name engraved just below the hilt.
Godric Gryffindor
"Only a true Gryffindor
could have pulled that out of the hat, Harry," said Dumbledore simply.
For a minute, neither of them
spoke. Then Dumbledore pulled open one of the drawers in Professor McGonagall's
desk and took out a quill and a bottle of ink.
"What you need, Harry, is
some food and sleep. I suggest you go down to the feast, while I write to Azkaban
-we need our gamekeeper back. And I must draft an advertisement for the Daily
Prophet, too," he added Thoughtfully. "We'll be needing a new Defense
Against the Dark Arts teacher... Dear me, we do seem to run through them, don't
we?"
Harry got up and crossed to the
door. He had just reached for the handle, however, when the door burst open so
violently that it bounced back off the wall.
Lucius Malfoy stood there, fury
in his face. And cowering behind his legs, heavily wrapped in bandages, was
Dobby.
"Good evening,
Lucius," said Dumbledore pleasantly.
Mr. Malfoy almost knocked Harry
over as he swept into the room. Dobby went scurrying in after him, crouching at
the hem of his cloak, a look of abject terror on his face.
The elf was carrying a stained
rag with which he was attempting to finish cleaning Mr. Malfoys shoes.
Apparently Mr. Malfoy had set out in a great hurry, for not only were his shoes
half-polished, but his usually sleek hair was disheveled. Ignoring the elf
bobbing apologetically around his ankles, he fixed his cold eyes upon
Dumbledore.
"So!" he said
"You've come back. The governors suspended you, but you still saw fit to
return to Hogwarts."
"Well, you see,
Lucius," said Dumbledore, smiling serenely, "the other eleven
governors contacted me today. It was something like being caught in a hailstorm
of owls, to tell the truth. They'd heard that Arthur Weasleys daughter had been
killed and wanted me back here at once. They seemed to think I was the best man
for the job after all. Very strange tales they told me, too...Several of them
seemed to think that you had threatened to curse their families if they didn't
agree to suspend me in the first place."
Mr. Malfoy went even paler than
usual, but his eyes were still slits of fury.
"So - have you stopped the
attacks yet?" he sneered. "Have you caught the culprit?"
"We have," said
Dumbledore, with a smile.
"Well?" said Mr.
Malfoy sharply. "Who is it?"
"The same person as last
time, Lucius," said Dumbledore. "But this time, Lord Voldemort was
acting through somebody else. By means of this diary."
He held up the small black book
with the large hole through the center, watching Mr. Malfoy closely. Harry,
however, was watching Dobby.
The elf was doing something very
odd. His great eyes fixed meaningfully on Harry, he kept pointing at the diary,
then at Mr. Malfoy, and then hitting himself hard on the head with his fist.
"I see..." said Mr.
Malfoy slowly to Dumbledore.
"A clever plan," said
Dumbledore in a level voice, still staring Mr. Malfoy straight in the eye.
"Because if Harry here -" Mr. Malfoy shot Harry a swift, sharp look
"and his friend Ron hadn't discovered this book, why -- Ginny Weasley
might have taken all the blame. No one would ever have been able to prove she
hadn't acted of her own free will..."
Mr. Malfoy said nothing. His
face was suddenly masklike.
"And imagine,"
Dumbledore went on, "what might have happened then...The Weasleys are one of
our most prominent pure-blood families. Imagine the effect on Arthur Weasley
and his Muggle Protection Act, if his own daughter was discovered attacking and
- killing Muggle-borns ... Very fortunate the diary was discovered, and Riddle's
memories wiped from it. Who knows what the consequences might have been
otherwise..."
Mr. Malfoy forced himself to
speak.
"Very fortunate," he
said stiffly.
And still, behind his back,
Dobby was pointing, first to the diary, then to Lucius Malfoy, then punching
himself in the head.
And Harry suddenly understood.
He nodded at Dobby, and Dobby backed into a corner, now twisting his ears in punishment.
"Don't you want to know how
Ginny got hold of that diary, Mr. Malfoy?" said Harry.
Lucius Malfoy rounded on him.
"How should I know how the
stupid little girl got hold of it?" he said.
"Because you gave it to
her," said Harry. "In Flourish and Blotts. You picked up her old
Transfiguration book and slipped the diary inside it, didn't you?"
He saw Mr. Malfoy's white hands
clench and unclench.
"Prove it," he hissed.
"Oh, no one will be able to
do that," said Dumbledore, smiling at Harry. "Not now that Riddle has
vanished from the book. On the other hand, I would advise you, Lucius, not to
go giving out any more of Lord Voldemort's old school things. If any more of
them find their way into innocent hands, I think Arthur Weasley, for one, will
make sure they are traced back to you..."
Lucius Malfoy stood for a
moment, and Harry distinctly saw his right hand twitch as though he was longing
to reach for his wand. Instead, he turned to his house-elf. "We're going,
Dobby!"
He wrenched open the door and as
the elf came hurrying up to him, he kicked him right through it. They could
hear Dobby squealing with pain all the way along the corridor. Harry stood for
a moment, thinking hard. Then it came to him -
"Professor
Dumbledore," he said hurriedly. "Can I give that diary back to Mr.
Malfoy, please?"
"Certainly, Harry,"
said Dumbledore calmly. "But hurry. The feast, remember...Harry grabbed the
diary and dashed out of the office. He could hear Dobby's squeals of pain
receding around the corner. Quickly, wondering if this plan could possibly
work, Harry took off one of his shoes, pulled off his slimy, filthy sock, and
stuffed the diary into it. Then he ran down the dark corridor.
He caught up with them at the
top of the stairs.
"Mr. Malfoy," he
gasped, skidding to a halt, "I've got something for you -"
And he forced the smelly sock
into Lucius Malfoy's hand.
"What the -?"
Mr. Malfoy ripped the sock off
the diary, threw it aside, then looked furiously from the ruined book to Harry.
"You'll meet the same sticky end as your parents one of these days, Harry
Potter," he said softly. "They were meddlesome fools, too."
He turned to go.
"Come, Dobby. I said,
come."
But Dobby didn't move. He was
holding up Harry's disgusting, slimy sock, and looking at it as though it were
a priceless treasure.
"Master has given a
sock," said the elf in wonderment. "Master gave it to Dobby."
"What's that?" spat
Mr. Malfoy. "What did you say?"
"Got a sock," said
Dobby in disbelief. "Master threw it, and Dobby caught it, and Dobby -
Dobby is free."
Lucius Malfoy stood frozen,
staring at the elf Then he lunged at Harry.
"You've lost me my servant,
boy!"
But Dobby shouted, "You
shall not harm Harry Potter!"
There was a loud bang, and Mr.
Malfoy was thrown backward. He crashed down the stairs, three at a time,
landing in a crumpled heap on the landing below. He got up, his face livid, and
pulled out his wand, but Dobby raised a long, threatening finger.
"You shall go now," he
said fiercely, pointing down at Mr. Malfoy. "You shall not touch Harry
Potter. You shall go now."
Lucius Malfoy had no choice.
With a last, incensed stare at the pair of them, he swung his cloak around him
and hurried out of sight.
"Harry Potter freed
Dobby!" said the elf shrilly, gazing up at Harry, moonlight from the
nearest window reflected in his orb-like eyes. "Harry Potter set Dobby
free!"
"Least I could do,
Dobby," said Harry, grinning. "Just promise never to try and save my
life again."
The elf's ugly brown face split
suddenly into a wide, toothy smile.
"I've just got one
question, Dobby," said Harry as Dobby pulled on Harry's sock with shaking
hands. "You told me all this had nothing to do with
He-Who-Must-Not-Be-Named, remember? Well -"
"It was a clue, sir,"
said Dobby, his eyes widening, as though this was obvious. "Was giving you
a clue. The Dark Lord, before he changed his name, could be freely named, you
see?"
"Right," said Harry
weakly. "Well, I'd better go. There's a feast, and my friend Hermione
should be awake by now..."
Dobby threw his arms around
Harry's middle and hugged him.
"Harry Potter is greater by
far than Dobby knew!" he sobbed. "Farewell, Harry Potter!"
And with a final loud crack,
Dobby disappeared.
Harry had been to several
Hogwarts feasts, but never one quite like this. Everybody was in their pajamas,
and the celebration lasted all night. Harry didn't know whether the best bit
was Hermione running toward him, screaming "You solved it! You solved
it!" or Justin hurrying over from the Hufflepuff table to wring. his hand
and apologize endlessly for suspecting him, or Hagrid turning up at half past
three, cuffing Harry and Ron so hard on the shoulders that they were knocked
into their plates of trifle, or his and Ron's four hundred points for
Gryffindor securing the House Cup for the second year running, or Professor
McGonagall standing up to tell them all that the exams had been canceled as a
school treat ("Oh, no!" said Hermione), or Dumbledore announcing
that, unfortunately, Professor Lockhart would be unable to return next year,
owing to the fact that he needed to go away and get his memory back. Quite a
few of the teachers joined in the cheering that greeted this news.
"Shame," said Ron,
helping himself to a jam doughnut. "He has starting to grow on me."
The rest of the final term
passed in a haze of blazing sunshine. Hogwarts was back to normal with only a
few, small differences - Defense Against the Dark Arts classes were canceled
("but we've had plenty of practice at that anyway," Ron told a
disgruntled Hermione) and Lucius Malfoy had been sacked as a school governor.
Draco was no longer strutting around the school as though he owned the place.
On the contrary, he looked resentful and sulky. On the other hand, Ginny
Weasley was perfectly happy again.
Too soon, it was time for the
journey home on the Hogwarts Express. Harry, Ron, Hermione, Fred, George, and
Ginny got a compartment to themselves. They made the mos of the last few hours
in which they were allowed to do magic before the holidays. They played
Exploding Snap, set off the very last of
Fred and George's Filibuster fireworks, and practiced disarming each other by
magic. Harry was getting very good at it.
They were almost at King's Cross
when Harry remembered something.
"Ginny - what did you see
Percy doing, that he didn't want you to tell anyone?"
"Oh, that," said
Ginny, giggling. "Well - Percy's got a girlfriend." Fred dropped a
stack of books on George's head.
"What?"
"It's that Ravenclaw
prefect, Penelope Clearwater," said Ginny. "That's who he was writing
to all last summer. He's been meeting her all over the school in secret. I
walked in on them kissing in an empty classroom one day. He was so upset when
she was - you know - attacked. You won't tease him, will you?" she added
anxiously.
"Wouldn't dream of it,"
said Fred, who was looking like his birthday had come early.
"Definitely not," said
George, sniggering.
The Hogwarts Express slowed and
finally stopped.
Harry pulled out his quill and a
bit of parchment and turned to Ron and Hermione.
"This is called a telephone
number," he told Ron, scribbling it twice, tearing the parchment in two,
and handing it to them. "I told your dad how to use a telephone last
summer - he'll know. Call me at the Dursleys', okay? I can't stand another two
months with only Dudley to talk to..."
"Your aunt and uncle will
be proud, though, won't they?" said Hermione as they got off the train and
joined the crowd thronging toward the enchanted barrier. "When they hear
what you did this year?"
"Proud?" said Harry.
"Are you crazy? All those times I could've died, and I didn't manage it?
They'll be furious..."
And together they walked back
through the gateway to the Muggle world.
by J.K. Rowling
Book 2 in the Harry Potter Series ![]() CHAPTER ONE THE WORST BIRTHDAY Not for the first time, an
argument had broken out over breakfast at number four, Privet Drive. Mr. Vernon
Dursley had been woken in the early hours of the morning by a loud, hooting
noise from his nephew Harry's room.
"Third time this
week!" he roared across the table. "If you can't control that owl,
it'll have to go!"
Harry tried, yet again, to
explain.
"She's bored,"
he said. "She's used to flying around outside. If I could just let her out
at night -"
"Do I look stupid?" snarled
Uncle Vernon, a bit of fried egg dangling from his bushy mustache. "I know
what'll happen if that owl's let out."
He exchanged dark looks with his
wife, Petunia.
Harry tried to argue back but
his words were drowned by a long, loud belch from the Dursleys' son, Dudley.
"I want more bacon."
"There's more in the frying
pan, sweetums," said Aunt Petunia, turning misty eyes on her massive son.
"We must build you up while we've got the chance...I don't like the sound
of that school food..."
"Nonsense, Petunia, I never
went hungry when I was at Smeltings," said Uncle Vernon heartily.
"Dudley gets enough, don't you, son?"
Dudley, who was so large his
bottom drooped over either side of the kitchen chair, grinned and turned to
Harry.
"Pass the frying pan."
"You've forgotten the magic
word," said Harry irritably. The effect of this
simple sentence on the rest of the family was incredible: Dudley gasped and
fell off his chair with a crash that shook the whole kitchen; Mrs. Dursley gave
a small scream and clapped her hands to her mouth; Mr. Dursley jumped to his
feet, veins throbbing in his temples.
"I meant 'please'!"
said Harry quickly. "I didn't mean -"
"WHAT HAVE I TOLD
YOU," thundered his uncle, spraying spit over the table, "ABOUT
SAYING THE 'M' WORD IN OUR HOUSE?"
"But I -"
"HOW DARE YOU THREATEN
DUDLEY!" roared Uncle Vernon, pounding the table with his fist.
"I just -"
"I WARNED YOU! I WILL NOT
TOLERATE MENTION OF YOUR ABNORMALITY UNDER THIS ROOF!"
Harry stared from his
purple-faced uncle to his pale aunt, who was trying to heave Dudley to his
feet.
"All right," said
Harry, "all right..." Uncle Vernon sat back down, breathing like a winded
rhinoceros and watching Harry closely out of the corners of his small, sharp
eyes.
Ever since Harry had come home
for the summer holidays, Uncle Vernon had been treating him like a bomb that
might go off at any moment, because Harry Potter wasn't a normal boy. As
a matter of fact, he was as not normal as it is possible to be.
Harry Potter was a wizard - a
wizard fresh from his first year at Hogwarts School of Witchcraft and Wizardry.
And if the Dursleys were unhappy to have him back for the holidays, it was
nothing to how Harry felt. He missed Hogwarts so much it was like having a constant
stomachache. He missed the castle, with its secret passageways and ghosts, his
classes (though perhaps not Snape, the Potions master), the mail arriving by
owl, eating banquets in the Great Hall, sleeping in his four-poster bed in the
tower dormitory, visiting the gamekeeper, Hagrid, in his cabin next to the
Forbidden Forest in the grounds, and, especially, Quidditch, the most popular
sport in the wizarding world (six tall goal posts, four flying balls, and
fourteen players on broomsticks).
All Harry's spellbooks, his
wand, robes, cauldron, and top-of-the-line Nimbus Two Thousand broomstick had
been locked in a cupboard under the stairs by Uncle Vernon the instant Harry
had come home. What did the Dursleys care if Harry lost his place on the House
Quidditch team because he hadn't practiced all summer? What was it to the
Dursleys if Harry went back to school without any of his homework done? The
Dursleys were what wizards called Muggles (not a drop of magical blood in their
veins), and as far as they were concerned, having a wizard in the family was a
matter of deepest shame. Uncle Vernon had even padlocked Harry's owl, Hedwig,
inside her cage, to stop her from carrying messages to anyone in the wizarding
world.
Harry looked nothing like the
rest of the family. Uncle Vernon was large and neckless, with an enormous black
mustache; Aunt Petunia was horse-faced and bony; Dudley was blond, pink, and
porky. Harry, on the other hand, was small and skinny, with brilliant green
eyes and jet-black hair that was always untidy. He wore round glasses, and on
his forehead was a thin, lightning-shaped scar.
It was this scar that made Harry
so particularly unusual, even for a wizard. This scar was the only hint of
Harry's very mysterious past, of the reason he had been left on the Dursleys'
doorstep eleven years before.
At the age of one year old,
Harry had somehow survived a curse from the greatest Dark sorcerer of all time,
Lord Voldemort, whose name most witches and wizards still feared to speak.
Harry's parents had died in Voldemort's attack, but Harry had escaped with his
lightning scar, and somehow - nobody understood why -Voldemort's powers had
been destroyed the instant he had failed to kill Harry.
So Harry had been brought up by
his dead mother's sister and her husband. He had spent ten years with the
Dursleys, never understanding why he kept making odd things happen without
meaning to, believing the Dursleys' story that he had got his scar in the car
crash that had killed his parents.
And then, exactly a year ago,
Hogwarts had written to Harry, and the whole story had come out. Harry had
taken up his place at wizard school, where he and his scar were famous...but now
the school year was over, and he was back with the Dursleys for the summer,
back to being treated like a dog that had rolled in something smelly.
The Dursleys hadn't even
remembered that today happened to be Harry's twelfth birthday. Of course, his
hopes hadn't been high; they'd never given him a real present, let alone a cake
- but to ignore it completely...
At that moment, Uncle Vernon
cleared his throat importantly and said, "Now, as we all know, today is a
very important day."
Harry looked up, hardly daring
to believe it.
"This could well be the day
I make the biggest deal of my career," said Uncle Vernon.
Harry went back to his toast. Of
course, he thought bitterly, Uncle Vernon was talking about the stupid
dinner party. He'd been talking of nothing else for two weeks. Some rich
builder and his wife were coming to dinner and Uncle Vernon was hoping to get a
huge order from him (Uncle Vernon's company made drills).
"I think we should run
through the schedule one more time," said Uncle Vernon. "We should
all be in position at eight o'clock. Petunia, you will be -?"
"In the lounge," said
Aunt Petunia promptly, "waiting to welcome them graciously to our home."
"Good, good. And
Dudley?" "I'll be waiting to open the door." Dudley put
on a foul, simpering smile. "May I take your coats, Mr. and Mrs.
Mason?"
"They'll love
him!" cried Aunt Petunia rapturously.
"Excellent, Dudley,"
said Uncle Vernon. Then he rounded on Harry. "And you?"
"I'll be in my bedroom,
making no noise and pretending I'm not there," said Harry tonelessly.
"Exactly," said Uncle
Vernon nastily. "I will lead them into the lounge, introduce you, Petunia,
and pour them drinks. At eight-fifteen -"
"I'll announce
dinner," said Aunt Petunia.
"And, Dudley, you'll say
-"
"May I take you through to
the dining room, Mrs. Mason?" said Dudley, offering his fat arm to an
invisible woman.
"My perfect little
gentleman!" sniffed Aunt Petunia.
"And you?" said
Uncle Vernon viciously to Harry.
"I'll be in my room, making
no noise and pretending I'm not there," said Harry dully. "Precisely. Now, we should aim to get in a few good
compliments at dinner. Petunia, any ideas?"
"Vernon tells me you're a wonderful
golfer, Mr. Mason...Do tell me where you bought your dress, Mrs.
Mason..." "Perfect...Dudley?"
"How about -'We had to
write an essay about our hero at school, Mr. Mason, and I wrote about you.'"
This was too much for both Aunt
Petunia and Harry. Aunt Petunia burst into tears and hugged her son, while
Harry ducked under the table so they wouldn't see him laughing.
"And you, boy?"
Harry fought to keep his face
straight as he emerged.
"I'll be in my room, making
no noise and pretending I'm not there," he said.
"Too right, you will."
said Uncle Vernon forcefully. "The Masons don't know anything about you
and it's going to stay that way. When dinner's over, you take Mrs. Mason back
to the lounge for coffee, Petunia, and I'll bring the subject around to drills.
With any luck, I'll have the deal signed and sealed before the news at ten. be
shopping for a vacation home in Majorca this time to morrow."
Harry couldn't feel too excited
about this. He didn't think the Dursleys would like him any better in Majorca
than they did on Privet Drive.
"Right - I'm off into town
to pick up the dinner jackets for Dudley and me. And you," he
snarled at Harry. "You stay out of your aunt's way while she's
cleaning." Harry left through the back door. It was a brilliant,
sunny day. He crossed the lawn, slumped down on the garden bench, and sang
under his breath:
"Happy birthday to me...happy
birthday to me..."
No cards, no presents, and he
would be spending the evening pretending not to exist. He gazed miserably into
the hedge. He had never felt so lonely. More than anything else at Hogwarts,
more even than playing Quidditch, Harry missed his best friends, Ron Weasley
and Hermione Granger. They, however, didn't seem to be missing him at all.
Neither of them had written to him all summer, even though Ron had said he was
going to ask Harry to come and stay.
Countless times, Harry had been
on the point of unlocking Hedwig's cage by magic and sending her to Ron and
Hermione with a letter, but it wasn't worth the risk. Underage wizards weren't
allowed to use magic outside of school. Harry hadn't told the Dursleys this; he
knew it was only their terror that he might turn them all into dung beetles
that stopped them from locking him in the cupboard under the stairs with
his wand and broomstick. For the first couple of weeks back, Harry had enjoyed
muttering nonsense words under his breath and watching Dudley tearing out of
the room as fast as his fat legs would carry him. But the long silence from Ron
and Hermione had made Harry feel so cut off from the magical world that even
taunting Dudley had lost its appeal - and now Ron and Hermione had forgotten
his birthday.
What wouldn't he give now for a
message from Hogwarts? From any witch or wizard? He'd almost be glad of a sight
of his archenemy, Draco Malfoy, just to be sure it hadn't all been a dream...
Not that his whole year at
Hogwarts had been fun. At the very end of last term, Harry had come
face-to-face with none other than Lord Voldemort himself. Voldemort might be a
ruin of his former self, but he was still terrifying, still cunning, still
determined to regain power. Harry had slipped through Voldemort's clutches for
a second time, but it had been a narrow escape, and even now, weeks later,
Harry kept waking in the night, drenched in cold sweat, wondering where
Voldemort was now, remembering his livid face, his wide, mad eyes -
Harry suddenly sat bolt upright
on the garden bench. He had been staring absent-mindedly into the hedge -and
the hedge was staring back. Two enormous green eyes had appeared among the leaves.
Harry jumped to his feet just as
a jeering voice floated across the lawn. "I know what day it is," sang Dudley, waddling
toward him.
The huge eyes blinked and
vanished.
"What?" said Harry,
not taking his eyes off the spot where they had been.
"I know what day it
is," Dudley repeated, coming right up to him.
"Well done," said
Harry. "So you've finally learned the days of the week."
"Today's your birthday,"
sneered Dudley. "How come you haven't got any cards? Haven't you even got
friends at that freak place?"
"Better not let your mum
hear you talking about my school," said Harry coolly.
Dudley hitched up his trousers,
which were slipping down his fat bottom.
"Why're you staring at the
hedge?" he said suspiciously.
"I'm trying to decide what
would be the best spell to set it on fire," said Harry.
Dudley stumbled backward at
once, a look of panic on his fat face.
"You c-can't - Dad told you
you're not to do m-magic - he said he'll chuck you out of the house - and you
haven't got anywhere else to go - you haven't got any friends to take
you -"
"Jiggery pokery!"
said Harry in a fierce voice. "Hocus pocus - squiggly wiggly -"
"MUUUUUUM!" howled
Dudley, tripping over his feet as he dashed back toward the house.
"MUUUUM! He's doing you know what!" Harry paid dearly for his moment of fun. As neither Dudley
nor the hedge was in any way hurt, Aunt Petunia knew he hadn't really done
magic, but he still had to duck as she aimed a heavy blow at his head with the
soapy frying pan. Then she gave him work to do, with the promise he wouldn't
eat again until he'd finished.
While Dudley lolled around
watching and eating ice cream, Harry cleaned the windows, washed the car, mowed
the lawn, trimmed the flowerbeds, pruned and watered the roses, and repainted
the garden bench. The sun blazed overhead, burning the back of his neck. Harry
knew he shouldn't have risen to Dudley's bait, but Dudley had said the very
thing Harry had been thinking himself...maybe he didn't have any friends
at Hogwarts...
Wish they could see famous Harry
Potter now, he
thought savagely as he spread manure on the flower beds, his back aching, sweat
running down his face.
It was half past seven in the
evening when at last, exhausted, he heard Aunt Petunia calling him.
"Get in here! And walk on
the newspaper!"
Harry moved gladly into the
shade of the gleaming kitchen. On top of the fridge stood tonight's pudding: a
huge mound of whipped cream and sugared violets. A loin of roast pork was
sizzling in the oven.
"Eat quickly! The Masons
will be here soon!" snapped Aunt Petunia, pointing to two slices of bread
and a lump of cheese on the kitchen table. She was already wearing a
salmon-pink cocktail dress.
Harry washed his hands and
bolted down his pitiful supper. The moment he had finished, Aunt Petunia
whisked away his plate. "Upstairs! Hurry!"
As he passed the door to the
living room, Harry caught a glimpse of Uncle Vernon and Dudley in bow ties and
dinner jackets. He had only just reached the upstairs landing when the door
bell rang and Uncle Vernon's furious face appeared at the foot of the stairs.
"Remember, boy - one sound
-"
Harry crossed to his bedroom on
tiptoe slipped inside, closed the door, and turned to collapse on his bed. The
trouble was, there was already someone sitting on it. CHAPTER TWO DOBBY'S WARNING
Harry managed not to shout out,
but it was a close thing. The little creature on the bed had large, bat-like
ears and bulging green eyes the size of tennis balls. Harry knew instantly that
this was what had been watching him out of the garden hedge that morning.
As they stared at each other,
Harry heard Dudley's voice from the hall.
"May I take your coats, Mr.
and Mrs. Mason?"
The creature slipped off the bed
and bowed so low that the end of its long, thin nose touched the carpet. Harry
noticed that it was wearing what looked like an old pillowcase, with rips for
arm- and leg-holes.
"Er - hello," said
Harry nervously. "Harry
Potter!" said the creature in a high-pitched voice Harry was sure would
carry down the stairs. "So long has Dobby wanted to meet you, sir...Such an
honor it is..."
"Th-thank you," said
Harry, edging along the wall and sinking into his desk chair, next to Hedwig,
who was asleep in her large cage. He wanted to ask, "What are you?"
but thought it would sound too rude, so instead he said, "Who are
you?"
"Dobby, sir. Just Dobby.
Dobby the house-elf," said the creature.
"Oh - really?" said
Harry. "Er - I don't want to be rude or anything, but - this isn't a great
time for me to have a house-elf in my bedroom."
Aunt Petunias high, false laugh
sounded from the living room. The elf hung his head.
"Not that I'm not pleased
to meet you," said Harry quickly, "but, er, is there any particular
reason you're here?" "Oh, yes, sir," said Dobby earnestly.
"Dobby has come to tell you, sir...it is difficult, sir...Dobby wonders where
to begin..."
"Sit down," said Harry
politely, pointing at the bed.
To his horror, the elf burst
into tears - very noisy tears.
"S-sit down!"
he wailed. "Never ...never ever..."
Harry thought he heard the
voices downstairs falter.
"I'm sorry," he
whispered, "I didn't mean to offend you or anything -"
"Offend Dobby!" choked
the elf. "Dobby has never been asked to sit down by a wizard - like
an equal -" Harry, trying to say "Shh!" and look comforting
at the same time, ushered Dobby back onto the bed where he sat hiccoughing,
looking like a large and very ugly doll. At last he managed to control himself,
and sat with his great eyes fixed on Harry in an expression of watery
adoration.
"You can't have met many
decent wizards," said Harry, trying to cheer him up.
Dobby shook his head. Then,
without warning, he leapt up and started banging his head furiously on the
window, shouting, "Bad Dobby! Bad Dobby!"
"Don't - what are you
doing?" Harry hissed, springing up and pulling Dobby back onto the bed - Hedwig
had woken up with a particularly loud screech and was beating her wings wildly
against the bars of her cage. "Dobby had to punish himself, sir," said the
elf, who had gone slightly cross-eyed. "Dobby almost spoke ill of his
family, sir..."
"Your family?"
"The wizard family Dobby
serves, sir...Dobby is a house-elf - bound to serve one house and one family
forever..."
"Do they know you're
here?" asked Harry curiously.
Dobby shuddered.
"Oh, no, sir, no...Dobby will
have to punish himself most grievously for coming to see you, sir. Dobby will
have to shut his ears in the oven door for this. If they ever knew, sir -"
"But won't they notice if
you shut your ears in the oven door?"
"Dobby doubts it, sir.
Dobby is always having to punish himself for something, sir. They lets Dobby
get on with it, sir. Sometimes they reminds me to do extra punishments..."
"But why don't you leave?
Escape?"
"A house-elf must be set
free, sir. And the family will never set Dobby free...Dobby will serve the family
until he dies, sir..."
Harry stared.
"And I thought I had it bad
staying here for another four weeks," he said. "This makes the
Dursleys sound almost human. Can't anyone help you? Can't I?"
Almost at once, Harry wished he
hadn't spoken. Dobby dissolved again into wails of gratitude.
"Please," Harry
whispered frantically, "please be quiet. If the Dursleys hear anything, if
they know you're here -"
"Harry Potter asks if he
can help Dobby...Dobby has heard of your greatness, sir, but of your goodness,
Dobby never knew..."
Harry, who was feeling
distinctly hot in the face, said, "Whatever you've heard about my
greatness is a load of rubbish. I'm not even top of my year at Hogwarts; that's
Hermione, she -"
But he stopped quickly, because
thinking about Hermione was painful.
"Harry Potter is humble and
modest," said Dobby reverently, his orb-like eyes aglow. "Harry
Potter speaks not of his triumph over He-Who-Must-Not-Be-Named -"
"Voldemort?" said
Harry.
Dobby clapped his hands over his
bat ears and moaned, "Ah, speak not the name, sir! Speak not the
name!"
"Sorry," said Harry
quickly. "I know lots of people don't like it. My friend Ron -"
He stopped again. Thinking about
Ron was painful, too.
Dobby leaned toward Harry, his
eyes wide as headlights.
"Dobby heard tell," he
said hoarsely, "that Harry Potter met the Dark Lord for a second time just
weeks ago...that Harry Potter escaped yet again." Harry nodded and Dobby's eyes suddenly shone with tears.
"Ah, sir," he gasped,
dabbing his face with a corner of the grubby pillowcase he was wearing.
"Harry Potter is valiant and bold! He has braved so many dangers already!
But Dobby has come to protect Harry Potter, to warn him, even if he does have
to shut his ears in the oven door later...Harry Potter must not go back to
Hogwarts."
There was a silence broken only
by the chink of knives and forks from downstairs and the distant rumble of
Uncle Vernon's voice.
"W-what?" Harry
stammered. "But I've got to go back - term starts on September first. It's
all that's keeping me going. You don't know what it's like here. I don't belong
here. I belong in your world - at Hogwarts."
"No, no, no," squeaked
Dobby, shaking his head so hard his ears flapped. "Harry Potter must stay
where he is safe. He is too great, too good, to lose. If Harry Potter goes back
to Hogwarts, he will be in mortal danger." "Why?" said Harry in surprise.
"There is a plot, Harry
Potter. A plot to make most terrible things happen at Hogwarts School of
Witchcraft and Wizardry this year," whispered Dobby, suddenly trembling
all over. "Dobby has known it for months, sir. Harry Potter must not put
himself in peril. He is too important, sir!"
"What terrible
things?" said Harry at once. "Who's plotting them?"
Dobby made a funny choking noise
and then banged his head frantically against the wall.
"All right!" cried
Harry, grabbing the elf's arm to stop him. "You can't tell me. I
understand. But why are you warning me?" A sudden, unpleasant
thought struck him. "Hang on - this hasn't got anything to do with Vol- -
sorry - with You-Know-Who, has it? You
could just shake or nod," he added hastily as Dobby's head tilted
worryingly close to the wall again.
Slowly, Dobby shook his head.
"Not - not He-Who-Must-Not-Be-Named,
sir -"
But Dobby's eyes were wide and
he seemed to be trying to give Harry a hint. Harry, however, was completely
lost.
"He hasn't got a brother,
has he?"
Dobby shook his head, his eyes
wider than ever.
"Well then, I can't think
who else would have a chance of making horrible things happen at
Hogwarts," said Harry. "I mean, there's Dumbledore, for one thing -
you know who Dumbledore is, don't you?"
Dobby bowed his head.
"Albus Dumbledore is the
greatest headmaster Hogwarts has ever had. Dobby knows it, sir. Dobby has heard
Dumbledore's powers rival those of He-Who-Must-Not-Be-Named at the height of
his strength. But, sir" - Dobby's voice dropped to an urgent whisper -
"there are powers Dumbledore doesn't...powers no decent wizard..."
And before Harry could stop him,
Dobby bounded off the bed, seized Harry's desk lamp, and started beating
himself around the head with earsplitting yelps.
A sudden silence fell
downstairs. Two seconds later Harry, heart thudding madly, heard Uncle Vernon
coming into the hall, calling, "Dudley must have left his television on
again, the little tyke!"
"Quick! In the
closet!" hissed Harry, stuffing Dobby in, shutting the door, and flinging
himself onto the bed just as the door handle turned.
"What - the - devil
- are - you - doing?" said Uncle Vernon through gritted teeth, his face
horribly close to Harry's. "You've just ruined the punch line of my
Japanese golfer joke...One more sound and you'll wish you'd never been born,
boy!"
He stomped flat-footed from the
room.
Shaking, Harry let Dobby out of
the closet.
"See what it's like
here?" he said. "See why I've got to go back to Hogwarts? It's the
only place I've got - well, I think I've got friends."
"Friends who don't even write
to Harry Potter?" said Dobby slyly.
"I expect they've just been
- wait a minute," said Harry, frowning. "How do you know my
friends haven't been writing to me?"
Dobby shuffled his feet.
"Harry Potter mustn't be
angry with Dobby. Dobby did it for the best -"
"Have you been stopping
my letters?"
"Dobby has them here,
sir," said the elf. Stepping nimbly out of Harry's reach, he pulled a
thick wad of envelopes from the inside of the pillowcase he was wearing. Harry
could make out Hermione's neat writing, Ron's untidy scrawl, and even a
scribble that looked as though it was from the Hogwarts gamekeeper, Hagrid.
Dobby blinked anxiously up at
Harry. "Harry Potter mustn't be angry...Dobby hoped...if Harry
Potter thought his friends had forgotten him...Harry Potter might not want to go
back to school, sir..."
Harry wasn't listening. He made
a grab for the letters, but Dobby jumped out of reach.
"Harry Potter will have
them, sir, if he gives Dobby his word that he will not return to Hogwarts. Ah,
sir, this is a danger you must not face! Say you won't go back, sir!"
"No," said Harry
angrily. "Give me my friends' letters!"
"Then Harry Potter leaves
Dobby no choice," said the elf sadly.
Before Harry could move, Dobby
had darted to the bedroom door, pulled it open, and sprinted down the stairs.
Mouth dry, stomach lurching,
Harry sprang after him, trying not to make a sound. He jumped the last six
steps, landing catlike on the hall carpet, looking around for Dobby. From the
dining room he heard Uncle Vernon saying, "...tell Petunia that very funny
story about those American plumbers, Mr. Mason. She's been dying to hear..."
Harry ran up the hall into the
kitchen and felt his stomach disappear.
Aunt Petunia's masterpiece of a
pudding, the mountain of cream and sugared violets, was floating up near the
ceiling. On top of a cupboard in the corner crouched Dobby.
"No," croaked Harry.
"Please...they'll kill me..."
"Harry Potter must say he's
not going back to school -"
"Dobby...please..."
"Say it, sir -"
"I can't -"
Dobby gave him a tragic look.
"Then Dobby must do it,
sir, for Harry Potter's own good."
The pudding fell to the floor
with a heart-stopping crash. Cream splattered the windows and walls as the dish
shattered. With a crack like a whip, Dobby vanished.
There were screams from the
dining room and Uncle Vernon burst into the kitchen to find Harry, rigid with
shock, covered from head to foot in Aunt Petunia's pudding.
At first, it looked as though
Uncle Vernon would manage to gloss the whole thing over. ("Just our nephew
-very disturbed - meeting strangers upsets him, so we kept him
upstairs...") He shooed the shocked Masons back into the dining room,
promised Harry he would flay him to within an inch of his life when the Masons
had left, and handed him a mop. Aunt Petunia dug some ice cream out of the
freezer and Harry, still shaking, started scrubbing the kitchen clean.
Uncle Vernon might still have
been able to make his deal - if it hadn't been for the owl.
Aunt Petunia was just passing
around a box of after-dinner mints when a huge barn owl swooped through the
dining room window, dropped a letter on Mrs. Mason's head, and swooped out
again. Mrs. Mason screamed like a banshee and ran from the house shouting about
lunatics. Mr. Mason stayed just long enough to tell the Dursleys that his wife
was mortally afraid of birds of all shapes and sizes, and to ask whether this
was their idea of a joke.
Harry stood in the kitchen,
clutching the mop for support, as Uncle Vernon advanced on him, a demonic glint
in his tiny eyes.
"Read it!" he hissed
evilly, brandishing the letter the owl had delivered. "Go on - read
it!"
Harry took it. It did not
contain birthday greetings. Dear Mr. Potter, We have received intelligence that a Hover
Charm was used at your place of residence this evening at twelve minutes past
nine. As
you know, underage wizards are not permitted to perform spells outside school,
and further spellwork on your part may
lead to expulsion from said school. (Decree for the Reasonable Restriction of
Underage Sorcery, 1875, Paragraph C). We
would also ask you to remember that any magical activity that risks notice by
members of the non magical community (Muggles) is a serious offense under
section 13 of the International Confederation of Warlocks' Statute of Secrecy. Enjoy your holidays!
Yours sincerely,
Mafalda Hopkirk
IMPROPER USE OF MAGIC OFFICE
Ministry of Magic
Harry looked up from the letter
and gulped.
"You didn't tell us you
weren't allowed to use magic outside school," said Uncle Vernon, a mad
gleam dancing in his eyes. "Forgot to mention it...Slipped your mind, I
daresay..."
He was bearing down on Harry
like a great bulldog, all his teeth bared. "Well, I've got news for you,
boy...I'm locking you up...You're never going back to that school...never...and if
you try and magic yourself out - they'll expel you!"
And laughing like a maniac, he
dragged Harry back upstairs.
Uncle Vernon was as bad as his
word. The following morning, he paid a man to fit bars on Harry's window. He
himself fitted a cat-flap in the bedroom door, so that small amounts of food
could be pushed inside three times a day. They let Harry out to use the
bathroom morning and evening. Otherwise, he was locked in his room around the clock.
Three days later, the Dursleys
were showing no sign of relenting, and Harry couldn't see any way out of his
situation. He lay on his bed watching the sun sinking behind the bars on the
window and wondered miserably what was going to happen to him.
What was the good of magicking
himself out of his room if Hogwarts would expel him for doing it? Yet life at
Privet Drive had reached an all-time low. Now that the Dursleys knew they
weren't going to wake up as fruit bats, he had lost his only weapon. Dobby might
have saved Harry from horrible happenings at Hogwarts, but the way things were
going, he'd probably starve to death anyway.
The cat-flap rattled and Aunt
Petunias hand appeared, pushing a bowl of canned soup into the room. Harry,
whose insides were aching with hunger, jumped off his bed and seized it. The
soup was stone-cold, but he drank half of it
in one gulp. Then he crossed the room to Hedwig's cage and tipped the
soggy vegetables at the bottom of the bowl into her empty food tray. She
ruffled her feathers and gave him a look of deep disgust.
"It's no good turning your
beak up at it - that's all we've got," said Harry grimly.
He put the empty bowl back on
the floor next to the cat-flap and lay back down on the bed, somehow even
hungrier than he had been before the soup. Supposing he was still alive in another four weeks, hat
would happen if he didn't turn up at Hogwarts? Would someone be sent to see why
he hadn't come back? Would they be able to make the Dursleys let him go?
The room was growing dark.
Exhausted, stomach rumbling, mind spinning over the same unanswerable
questions, Harry fell into an uneasy sleep.
He dreamed that he was on show
in a zoo, with a card reading UNDERAGE WIZARD
attached to his cage. People goggled through the bars at him as he lay,
starving and weak, on a bed of straw. He saw Dobby's face in the crowd and
shouted out, asking for help, but Dobby called, "Harry Potter is safe
there, sir!" and vanished. Then the Dursleys appeared and Dudley rattled
the bars of the cage, laughing at him.
"Stop it," Harry
muttered as the rattling pounded in his sore head. "Leave me alone...cut it
out...I'm trying to sleep..."
He opened his eyes. Moonlight
was shining through the bars on the window. And someone was goggling
through the bars at him: a freckle-faced, red-haired, long-nosed someone.
Ron Weasley was outside Harry's
window. CHAPTER THREE THE BURROW
"
Ron." breathed Harry, creeping
to the window and pushing it up so they could talk through the bars. "Ron,
how did you -? What the -?"
Harry's mouth fell open as the
full impact of what he was seeing hit him. Ron was leaning out of the back
window of an old turquoise car, which was parked in midair. Grinning at
Harry from the front seats were Fred and George, Ron's elder twin brothers. "All right, Harry?" asked George.
"What's been going
on?" said Ron. "Why haven't you been answering my letters? I've asked
you to stay about twelve times, and then Dad came home and said you'd got an
official warning for using magic in front of Muggles -"
"It wasn't me - and how did
he know?"
"He works for the
Ministry," said Ron. "You know we're not supposed to do spells
outside school -"
"You should talk,"
said Harry, staring at the floating car.
"Oh, this doesn't
count," said Ron. "We're only borrowing this. It's Dad's, we
didn't enchant it. But doing magic in front of those Muggles you live with
-"
"I told you, I didn't - but
it'll take too long to explain now - look, can you tell them at Hogwarts that
the Dursleys have locked me up and won't let me come back, and obviously I
can't magic myself out, because the Ministry'll think that's the second spell
I've done in three days, so -"
"Stop gibbering," said
Ron. "We've come to take you home with us."
"But you can't magic me out
either -"
"We don't need to,"
said Ron, jerking his head toward the front seat and grinning. "You forget
who I've got with me."
"Tie that around the
bars," said Fred, throwing the end of a rope to Harry.
"If the Dursleys wake up,
I'm dead," said Harry as he tied the rope tightly around a bar and Fred
revved up the car.
"Don't worry," said
Fred, "and stand back."
Harry moved back into the
shadows next to Hedwig, who seemed to have realized how important this was and
kept still and silent. The car revved louder and louder and suddenly, with a
crunching noise, the bars were pulled clean out of the window as Fred drove
straight up in the air. Harry ran back to the window to see the bars dangling a
few feet above the ground. Panting, Ron hoisted them up into the car. Harry
listened anxiously, but there was no sound from the Dursleys' bedroom.
When the bars were safely in the
back seat with Ron, Fred reversed as close as possible to Harry's window.
"Get in," Ron said.
"But all my Hogwarts stuff
- my wand - my broomstick -"
"Where is it?"
"Locked in the cupboard
under the stairs, and I can't get out of this room -"
"No problem," said
George from the front passenger seat. "Out of the way, Harry." Fred and George climbed catlike through the window into
Harry's room. You had to hand it to them, thought Harry, as George took an
ordinary hairpin from his pocket and started to pick the lock.
"A lot of wizards think
it's a waste of time, knowing this sort of Muggle trick," said Fred,
"but we feel they're skills worth learning, even if they are a bit
slow."
There was a small click and the
door swung open.
"So - we'll get your trunk
- you grab anything you need from your room and hand it out to Ron,"
whispered George.
"Watch out for the bottom
stair - it creaks," Harry whispered back as the twins disappeared onto the
dark landing.
Harry dashed around his room,
collecting his things and passing them out of the window to Ron. Then he went
to help Fred and George heave his trunk up the stairs. Harry heard Uncle Vernon
cough.
At last, panting, they reached
the landing, then carried the trunk through Harry's room to the open window.
Fred climbed back into the car to pull with Ron, and Harry and George pushed
from the bedroom side. Inch by inch, the trunk slid through the window.
Uncle Vernon coughed again.
"A bit more," panted
Fred, who was pulling from inside the car. "One good push -"
Harry and George threw their
shoulders against the trunk and it slid out of the window into the back seat of
the car.
"Okay, let's go,"
George whispered.
But as Harry climbed onto the
windowsill there came a sudden loud screech from behind him, followed
immediately by the thunder of Uncle Vernon's voice.
"THAT RUDDY OWL!"
"I've forgotten
Hedwig!"
Harry tore back across the room
as the landing light clicked on - he snatched up Hedwig's cage, dashed to the
window, and passed it out to Ron. He was scrambling back onto the chest of
drawers when Uncle Vernon hammered on the unlocked door - and it crashed open.
For a split second, Uncle Vernon
stood framed in the doorway; then he let out a bellow like an angry bull and
dived at Harry, grabbing him by the ankle.
Ron, Fred, and George seized
Harry's arms and pulled as hard as they could.
"Petunia!" roared
Uncle Vernon. "He's getting away! HE'S GETTING AWAY!"
But the Weasleys gave a gigantic
tug and Harry's leg slid out of Uncle Vernon's grasp - Harry was in the car -
he'd slammed the door shut -
"Put your foot down,
Fred!" yelled Ron, and the car shot suddenly toward the moon.
Harry couldn't believe it - he
was free. He rolled down the window, the night air whipping his hair, and
looked back at the shrinking rooftops of Privet Drive. Uncle Vernon, Aunt
Petunia, and Dudley were all hanging, dumbstruck, out of Harry's window.
"See you next summer!"
Harry yelled.
The Weasleys roared with
laughter and Harry settled back in his seat, grinning from ear to ear.
"Let Hedwig out," he
told Ron. "She can fly behind us. She hasn't had a chance to stretch her
wings for ages."
George handed the hairpin to Ron
and, a moment later, Hedwig soared joyfully out of the window to glide
alongside them like a ghost.
"So - what's the story,
Harry?" said Ron impatiently. "What's been happening?"
Harry told them all about Dobby,
the warning he'd given Harry and the fiasco of the violet pudding. There was a
long, shocked silence when he had finished.
"Very fishy," said
Fred finally.
"Definitely dodgy"
agreed George. "So he wouldn't even tell you who's supposed to be plotting
all this stuff?"
"I don't think he
could," said Harry. "I told you, every time he got close to letting
something slip, he started banging his head against the wall."
He saw Fred and George look at
each other.
"What, you think he was
lying to me?" said Harry.
"Well," said Fred,
"put it this way - house-elves have got powerful magic of their own, but
they can't usually use it without their master's permission. I reckon old Dobby
was sent to stop you coming back to Hogwarts. Someone's idea of a joke. Can you
think of anyone at school with a grudge against you?"
"Yes," said Harry and
Ron together, instantly.
"Draco Malfoy," Harry
explained. "He hates me."
"Draco Malfoy?" said
George, turning around. "Not Lucius Malfoy's son?"
"Must be, it's not a very
common name, is it?" said Harry.
"I've heard Dad talking
about him," said George. "He was a big supporter of You-Know-Who."
"And when You-Know-Who
disappeared," said Fred, craning around to look at Harry, "Lucius
Malfoy came back saying he'd never meant any of it. Load of dung - Dad reckons
he was right in You- Know-Who's inner circle."
Harry had heard these rumors
about Malfoy's family before, and they didn't surprise him at all. Malfoy made
Dudley Dursley look like a kind, thoughtful, and sensitive boy...
"I don't know whether the
Malfoys own a house-elf..." said Harry.
"Well, whoever owns him
will be an old wizarding family, and they'll be rich," said Fred.
"Yeah, Mum's always wishing
we had a house-elf to do the ironing," said George. "But all we've
got is a lousy old ghoul in the attic and gnomes all over the garden.
House-elves come with big old manors and castles and places like that; you
wouldn't catch one in our house..."
Harry was silent. Judging by the
fact that Draco Malfoy usually had the best of everything, his family was
rolling in wizard gold; he could just see Malfoy strutting around a large manor
house. Sending the family servant to stop Harry from going back to Hogwarts
also sounded exactly like the sort of thing Malfoy would do. Had Harry been
stupid to take Dobby seriously?
"I'm glad we came to get
you, anyway," said Ron. "I was getting really worried when you didn't
answer any of my letters. I thought it was Errol's fault at first -"
"Who's Errol?" "Our owl. He's ancient. It wouldn't be the first time
he'd collapsed on a delivery. So then I tried to borrow Hermes -"
"Who?"
"The owl Mum and Dad bought
Percy when he was made prefect," said Fred from the front.
"But Percy wouldn't lend
him to me," said Ron. "Said he needed him."
"Percy's been acting very
oddly this summer," said George, frowning. "And he has been
sending a lot of letters and spending a load of time shut up in his room...I
mean, there's only so many times you can polish a prefect badge...You're driving
too far west, Fred," he added, pointing at a compass on the dashboard.
Fred twiddled the steering wheel.
"So, does your dad know
you've got the car?" said Harry, guessing the answer.
"Er, no," said Ron,
"he had to work tonight. Hopefully we'll be able to get it back in the
garage without Mum noticing we flew it."
"What does your dad do at
the Ministry of Magic, anyway?"
"He works in the most
boring department," said Ron. "The Misuse of Muggle Artifacts
Office."
"The what?" "It's all to do with bewitching things that are
Muggle-made, you know, in case they end up back in a Muggle shop or house.
Like, last year, some old witch died and her tea set was sold to an antiques
shop. This Muggle woman bought it, took it home, and tried to serve her friends
tea in it. It was a nightmare - Dad was working overtime for weeks."
"What happened?"
"The teapot went berserk
and squirted boiling tea all over the place and one man ended up in the
hospital with the sugar tongs clamped to his nose. Dad was going frantic - it's
only him and an old warlock called Perkins in the office - and they had to do
Memory Charms and all sorts of stuff to cover it up -"
"But your dad - this car
-"
Fred laughed. "Yeah, Dad's
crazy about everything to do with Muggles; our shed's full of Muggle stuff. He
takes it apart, puts spells on it, and puts it back together again. If he
raided our house he'd have to put himself under arrest. It drives Mum mad."
"That's the main
road," said George, peering down through the windshield. "We'll be
there in ten minutes... Just as well, it's getting light..."
A faint pinkish glow was visible
along the horizon to the east.
Fred brought the car lower, and
Harry saw a dark patchwork of fields and clumps of trees.
"We're a little way outside
the village," said George. "Ottery St. Catchpole."
Lower and lower went the flying
car. The edge of a brilliant red sun was now gleaming through the trees. "Touchdown!" said Fred as, with a slight bump,
they hit the ground. They had landed next to a tumbledown garage in a small
yard, and Harry looked out for the first time at Ron's house.
It looked as though it had once
been a large stone pigpen, but extra rooms had been added here and there until
it was several stories high and so crooked it looked as though it were held up
by magic (which Harry reminded himself, it probably was). Four or five chimneys
were perched on top of the red roof. A lopsided sign stuck in the ground near
the entrance read, THE BURROW. Around the
front door lay a jumble of rubber boots and a very rusty cauldron. Several fat
brown chickens were pecking their way around the yard.
"It's not much," said
Ron.
"It's wonderful,"
said Harry happily, thinking of Privet Drive.
They got out of the car.
"Now, we'll go upstairs
really quietly," said Fred, "and wait for Mum to call us for
breakfast Then, Ron, you come bounding downstairs going, 'Mum, look who turned
up in the night!' and she'll be all pleased to see Harry and no one need ever
know we flew the car."
"Right," said Ron.
"Come on, Harry, I sleep at the - at the top -"
Ron had gone a nasty greenish
color, his eyes fixed on the house. The other three wheeled around.
Mrs. Weasley was marching across
the yard, scattering chickens, and for a short, plump, kind-faced woman, it was
remarkable how much she looked like a saber-toothed tiger.
"Ah, "said
Fred.
"Oh, dear," said
George.
Mrs. Weasley came to a halt in
front of them, her hands on her hips, staring from one guilty face to the next.
She was wearing a flowered apron with a wand sticking out of the pocket.
"So," she said.
"Morning, Mum," said
George, in what he clearly thought was a jaunty, winning voice. "Have you any idea how worried I've been?" said
Mrs. Weasley in a deadly whisper.
"Sorry, Mum, but see, we
had to -"
All three of Mrs. Weasley's sons
were taller than she was, but they cowered as her rage broke over them. "Beds empty! No note! Car gone - could have
crashed - out of my mind with worry - did you care? - never, as long as I've
lived - you wait until your father gets home, we never had trouble like this
from Bill or Charlie or Percy -"
"Perfect Percy,"
muttered Fred.
"YOU COULD DO WITH TAKING A
LEAF OUT OF PERCY'S BOOK!" yelled Mrs. Weasley, prodding a finger in
Fred's chest. "You could have died, you could have been seen,
you could have lost your father his job -"
It seemed to go on for hours.
Mrs. Weasley had shouted herself hoarse before she turned on Harry, who backed
away.
"I'm very pleased to see
you, Harry, dear," she said. "Come in and have some breakfast."
She turned and walked back into
the house and Harry, after a nervous glance at Ron, who nodded encouragingly,
followed her. The kitchen was small and rather cramped. There was a
scrubbed wooden table and chairs in the middle, and Harry sat down on the edge
of his seat, looking around. He had never been in a wizard house before.
The clock on the wall opposite
him had only one hand and no numbers at all. Written around the edge were
things like Time to make tea, Time to feed the chickens, and You're
late. Books were stacked three deep on the mantelpiece, books with titles
like Charm Your Own Cheese, Enchantment in Baking, and One Minute Feasts
- It's Magic! And unless Harry's ears were deceiving him, the old radio
next to the sink had just announced that coming up was "Witching Hour,
with the popular singing sorceress, Celestina Warbeck."
Mrs. Weasley was clattering
around, cooking breakfast a little haphazardly, throwing dirty looks at her
sons as she threw sausages into the frying pan. Every now and then she muttered
things like "don't know what you were thinking of," and "never
would have believed it."
"I don't blame you,
dear," she assured Harry, tipping eight or nine sausages onto his plate.
"Arthur and I have been worried about you, too. Just last night we were
saying we'd come and get you ourselves if you hadn't written back to Ron by
Friday. But really," (she was now adding three fried eggs to his plate)
"flying an illegal car halfway across the country - anyone could have seen
you -" She flicked her wand casually at the dishes in the sink,
which began to clean themselves, clinking gently in the background.
"It was cloudy,
Mum!" said Fred.
"You keep your mouth closed
while you're eating!" Mrs. Weasley snapped.
"They were starving him,
Mum!" said George.
"And you!" said Mrs.
Weasley, but it was with a slightly softened expression that she started
cutting Harry bread and buttering it for him.
At that moment there was a
diversion in the form of a small, redheaded figure in a long nightdress, who
appeared in the kitchen, gave a small squeal, and ran out again.
"Ginny," said Ron in
an undertone to Harry. "My sister. She's been talking about you all
summer." "Yeah, she'll be wanting your autograph, Harry,"
Fred said with a grin, but he caught his mother's eye and bent his face over
his plate without another word. Nothing more was said until all four plates
were clean, which took a surprisingly short time.
"Blimey, I'm
tired," yawned Fred, setting down his knife and fork at last. "I
think I'll go to bed and -"
"You will not,"
snapped Mrs. Weasley. "It's your own fault you've been up all night.
You're going to de-gnome the garden for me; they're getting completely out of
hand again -"
"Oh, Mum -"
"And you two," she
said, glaring at Ron and Fred. "You can go up to bed, dear," she
added to Harry. "You didn't ask them to fly that wretched car -"
But Harry, who felt wide awake,
said quickly, "I'll help Ron. I've never seen a de-gnoming -"
"That's very sweet of you,
dear, but it's dull work," said Mrs. Weasley. "Now, let's see what
Lockhart's got to say on the subject -"
And she pulled a heavy book from
the stack on the mantelpiece. George groaned.
"Mum, we know how to
de-gnome a garden -"
Harry looked at the cover of
Mrs. Weasley's book. Written across it in fancy gold letters were the words Gilderoy
Lockhart's Guide to Household Pests. There was a big photograph on the
front of a very good-looking wizard with wavy blond hair and bright blue eyes.
As always in the wizarding world, the photograph was moving; the wizard, who
Harry supposed was Gilderoy Lockhart, kept winking cheekily up at them all.
Mrs. Weasley beamed down at him.
"Oh, he is marvelous,"
she said. "He knows his household pests, all right, it's a wonderful
book..."
"Mum fancies
him," said Fred, in a very audible whisper.
"Don't be so ridiculous,
Fred," said Mrs. Weasley, her cheeks rather pink. "All right, if you
think you know better than Lockhart, you can go and get on with it, and woe
betide you if there's a single gnome in that garden when I come out to inspect
it."
Yawning and grumbling, the
Weasleys slouched outside with Harry behind them. The garden was large, and in
Harry's eyes, exactly what a garden should be. The Dursleys wouldn't have liked
it - there were plenty of weeds, and the grass needed cutting - but there were
gnarled trees all around the walls, plants Harry had never seen spilling from
every flower bed, and a big green pond full of frogs.
"Muggles have garden
gnomes, too, you know," Harry told Ron they crossed the lawn.
"Yeah, I've seen those
things they think are gnomes," said Ron, bent double with his head in a
peony bush, "like fat little Santa Clauses with fishing rods..."
There was a violent scuffling
noise, the peony bush shuddered, and Ron straightened up. "This is
a gnome," he said grimly.
"Gerroff me! Gerroff
me!" squealed the gnome.
It was certainly nothing like
Santa Claus. It was small and leathery looking, with a large, knobby, bald head
exactly like a potato. Ron held it at arm's length as it kicked out at him with
its horny little feet; he grasped it around the ankles and turned it upside
down.
"This is what you have to
do," he said. He raised the gnome above his head ("Gerroff me!")
and started to swing it in great circles like a lasso. Seeing the shocked look
on Harry's face, Ron added, "It doesn't hurt them -you've just got
to make them really dizzy so they can't find their way back to the gnome
holes."
He let go of the gnome's ankles:
It flew twenty feet into the air and landed with a thud in the field over the
hedge.
"Pitiful," said Fred.
"I bet I can get mine beyond that stump."
Harry learned quickly not to
feel too sorry for the gnomes. He decided just to drop the first one he caught
over the hedge, but the gnome, sensing weakness, sank its razor-sharp teeth
into Harry's finger and he had a hard job shaking it off - until -
"Wow, Harry - that must've
been fifty feet..."
The air was soon thick with
flying gnomes.
"See, they're not too
bright," said George, seizing five or six gnomes at once. "The moment
they know the de-gnoming's going on they storm up to have a look. You'd think
they'd have learned by now just to stay put."
Soon, the crowd of gnomes in the
field started walking away in a straggling line, their little shoulders
hunched.
"They'll be back,"
said Ron as they watched the gnomes disappear into the hedge on the other side
of the field. "They love it here...Dad's too soft with them; he thinks
they're funny..."
Just then, the front door
slammed.
"He's back!" said
George. "Dad's home!"
They hurried through the garden
and back into the house.
Mr. Weasley was slumped in a
kitchen chair with his glasses off and
his eyes closed. He was a thin man, going bald, but the little hair he had was
as red as any of his children's. He was wearing long green robes, which were
dusty and travel-worn.
"What a night," he
mumbled, groping for the teapot as they all sat down around him. "Nine
raids. Nine! And old Mundungus Fletcher tried to put a hex on me when I had my
back turned..."
Mr. Weasley took a long gulp of
tea and sighed.
"Find anything, Dad?"
said Fred eagerly.
"All I got were a few
shrinking door keys and a biting kettle," yawned Mr. Weasley. "There
was some pretty nasty stuff that wasn't my department, though. Mortlake was
taken away for questioning about some extremely odd ferrets, but that's the
Committee on Experimental Charms, thank goodness..."
"Why would anyone bother
making door keys shrink?" said George.
"Just Muggle-baiting,"
sighed Mr. Weasley. "Sell them a key that keeps shrinking to nothing so
they can never find it when they need it...Of course, it's very hard to convict
anyone because no Muggle would admit their key keeps shrinking - they'll insist
they just keep losing it. Bless them, they'll go to any lengths to ignore
magic, even if it's staring them in the face...But the things our lot have taken
to enchanting, you wouldn't believe -"
"LIKE CARS, FOR
INSTANCE?"
Mrs. Weasley had appeared,
holding a long poker like a sword. Mr. Weasley's eyes jerked open. He stared
guiltily at his wife.
"C-cars, Molly, dear?"
"Yes, Arthur, cars,"
said Mrs. Weasley, her eyes flashing. "Imagine a wizard buying a rusty old
car and telling his wife all he wanted to do with it was take it apart to see
how it worked, while really he was enchanting it to make it fly."
Mr. Weasley blinked.
"Well, dear, I think you'll
find that he would be quite within the law to do that, even if - er - he maybe
would have done better to, um, tell his wife the truth...There's a loophole in
the law, you'll find...As long as he wasn't intending to fly the car, the
fact that the car could fly wouldn't -"
"Arthur Weasley, you made
sure there was a loophole when you wrote that law!" shouted Mrs. Weasley.
"Just so you could carry on tinkering with all that Muggle rubbish in your
shed! And for your information, Harry arrived this morning in the car you
weren't intending to fly!"
"Harry?" said Mr.
Weasley blankly. "Harry who?"
He looked around, saw Harry, and
jumped.
"Good lord, is it Harry
Potter? Very pleased to meet you, Ron's told us so much about -"
"Your sons flew that car to
Harry's house and back last night!" shouted Mrs. Weasley. "What have you got to say
about that, eh?"
"Did you really?" said
Mr. Weasley eagerly. "Did it go all right? I - I mean," he faltered
as sparks flew from Mrs. Weasley's eyes, "that - that was very wrong, boys
- very wrong indeed..."
"Let's leave them to
it," Ron muttered to Harry as Mrs. Weasley swelled like a bullfrog.
"Come on, I'll show you my bedroom."
They slipped out of the kitchen
and down a narrow passageway to an uneven staircase, which wound its way,
zigzagging up through the house. On the third landing, a door stood ajar. Harry
just caught sight of a pair of bright brown eyes staring at him before it
closed with a snap.
"Ginny," said Ron.
"You don't know how weird it is for her to be this shy. She never shuts up
normally -"
They climbed two more flights
until they reached a door with peeling paint and a small plaque on it, saying
RONALD'S ROOM.
Harry stepped in, his head
almost touching the sloping ceiling, and blinked. It was like walking into a
furnace: Nearly everything in Ron's room seemed to be a violent shade of
orange: the bedspread, the walls, even the ceiling. Then Harry realized that
Ron had covered nearly every inch of the shabby wallpaper with posters of the
same seven witches and wizards, all wearing bright orange robes, carrying
broomsticks, and waving energetically.
"Your Quidditch team?"
said Harry.
"The Chudley Cannons,"
said Ron, pointing at the orange bedspread, which was emblazoned with two giant
black C's and a speeding cannonball. "Ninth in the league."
Ron's school spellbooks were
stacked untidily in a corner, next to a pile of comics that all seemed to
feature The Adventures of Martin Miggs, the Mad Muggle. Ron's magic wand
was lying on top of a fish tank full of frog spawn on the windowsill, next to
his fat gray rat, Scabbers, who was snoozing in a patch of sun.
Harry stepped over a pack of
Self-Shuffling playing cards on the floor and looked out of the tiny window. In
the field far below he could see a gang of gnomes sneaking one by one back
through the Weasleys' hedge. Then he turned to look at Ron, who was watching
him almost nervously, as though waiting for his opinion.
"It's a bit small,"
said Ron quickly. "Not like that room you had with the Muggles. And I'm
right underneath the ghoul in the attic; he's always banging on the pipes and
groaning..."
But Harry, grinning widely,
said, "This is the best house I've ever been in."
Ron's ears went pink. CHAPTER FOUR AT FLOURISH AND BLOTTS
Life at the Burrow was as
different as possible from life on Privet Drive. The Dursleys liked everything
neat and ordered; the Weasleys' house burst with the strange and unexpected.
Harry got a shock the first time he looked in the mirror over the kitchen
mantelpiece and it shouted, "Tuck your shirt in, scruffy!" The
ghoul in the attic howled and dropped pipes whenever he felt things were
getting too quiet, and small explosions from Fred and George's bedroom were
considered perfectly normal. What Harry found most unusual about life at Ron's,
however, wasn't the talking mirror or the clanking ghoul: It was the fact that
everybody there seemed to like him.
Mrs. Weasley fussed over the
state of his socks and tried to force him to eat fourth helpings at every meal.
Mr. Weasley liked Harry to sit next to him at the dinner table so that he could
bombard him with questions about life with Muggles, asking him to explain how
things like plugs and the postal service worked.
"Fascinating."
he would say as Harry talked him through using a telephone. "Ingenious,
really, how many ways Muggles have found of getting along without magic."
Harry heard from Hogwarts one
sunny morning about a week after he had arrived at the Burrow. He and Ron went
down to breakfast to find Mr. and Mrs. Weasley and Ginny already sitting at the
kitchen table. The moment she saw Harry, Ginny accidentally knocked her
porridge bowl to the floor with a loud clatter. Ginny seemed very prone to
knocking things over whenever Harry entered a room. She dived under the table
to retrieve the bowl and emerged with her face glowing like the setting sun.
Pretending he hadn't noticed this, Harry sat down and took the toast Mrs.
Weasley offered him.
"Letters from school,"
said Mr. Weasley, passing Harry and Ron identical envelopes of yellowish
parchment, addressed in green ink. "Dumbledore already knows you're here,
Harry - doesn't miss a trick, that man. You two've got them, too," he
added, as Fred and George ambled in, still in their pajamas.
For a few minutes there was
silence as they all read their letters. Harry's told him to catch the Hogwarts
Express as usual from King's Cross station on September first. There was also a
list of the new books he'd need for the coming year.
SECOND-YEAR STUDENTS WILL REQUIRE:
The Standard Book of Spells, Grade 2 by
Miranda Goshawk
Break with a Banshee
by Gilderoy Lockhart
Gadding with Ghouls
by Gilderoy Lockhart
Holidays with Hags
by Gilderoy Lockhart
43 Travels with Trolls
by Gilderoy Lockhart
Voyages with Vampires
by Gilderoy Lockhart
Wanderings with Werewolves
by Gilderoy Lockhart
Year with the Yeti
by Gilderoy Lockhart
Fred, who had finished his own
list, peered over at Harry's.
"You've been told to get
all Lockhart's books, too!" he said. "The new Defense Against the
Dark Arts teacher must be a fan - bet it's a witch."
At this point, Fred caught his
mother's eye and quickly busied himself with the marmalade.
"That lot won't come
cheap," said George, with a quick look at his parents. "Lockhart's
books are really expensive..."
"Well, we'll manage,"
said Mrs. Weasley, but she looked worried. "I expect we'll be able to pick
up a lot of Ginny's things secondhand."
"Oh, are you starting at
Hogwarts this year?" Harry asked Ginny.
She nodded, blushing to the roots
of her flaming hair, and put her elbow in the butter dish. Fortunately no one
saw this except Harry, because just then Ron's elder brother Percy walked in.
He was already dressed, his Hogwarts prefect badge pinned to his sweater vest.
"Morning, all," said
Percy briskly. "Lovely day." He sat down in the only remaining chair but leapt up again
almost immediately, pulling from underneath him a molting, gray feather duster
- at least, that was what Harry thought it was, until he saw that it was
breathing.
"Errol!" said Ron,
taking the limp owl from Percy and extracting a letter from under its wing.
"Finally - he's got Hermione's answer. I wrote to her saying we
were going to try and rescue you from the Dursleys."
He carried Errol to a perch just
inside the back door and tried to stand him on it, but Errol flopped straight
off again so Ron lay him on the draining board instead, muttering,
"Pathetic." Then he ripped open Hermione's letter and read it out
loud:
"'Dear Ron, and Harry if
you're there, "'I hope everything went all right and that Harry is
okay and that you didn't do anything illegal to get him out, Ron, because that
would get Harry into trouble, too. I've been really worried and if Harry is all
right, will you please let me know at once, but perhaps it would be better if
you used a different owl because I think another delivery might finish your one
off.
"'I'm very busy with
schoolwork, of course' - How can she be?" said Ron in horror. "We're on vacation! -
'and we're going to London next Wednesday to buy my new books. Why don't we
meet in Diagon Alley?
"'Let me know what's
happening as soon as you can. Love from Hermione.' "
"Well, that fits in nicely,
we can go and get all your things then, too," said Mrs. Weasley, starting
to clear the table. "What're you all up to today?"
Harry, Ron, Fred, and George
were planning to go up the hill to a small paddock the Weasleys owned. It was
surrounded by trees that blocked it from view of the village below, meaning
that they could practice Quidditch there, as long as they didn't fly too high.
They couldn't use real Quidditch
balls, which would have been hard to explain if they had escaped and flown away
over the village; instead they threw apples for one another to catch. They took
turns riding Harry's Nimbus Two Thousand, which was easily the best broom;
Ron's old Shooting Star was often outstripped by passing butterflies.
Five minutes later they were
marching up the hill, broomsticks over their shoulders. They had asked Percy if
he wanted to join them, but he had said he was busy. Harry had only seen Percy
at mealtimes so far; he stayed shut in his room the rest of the time.
"Wish I knew what he was up
to," said Fred, frowning. "He's not himself. His exam results came
the day before you did; twelve O.W.L.s and he hardly gloated at all."
"Ordinary Wizarding
Levels," George explained, seeing Harry's puzzled look. "Bill got
twelve, too. If we're not careful, we'll have another Head Boy in the family. I
don't think I could stand the shame."
Bill was the oldest Weasley brother.
He and the next brother, Charlie, had already left Hogwarts. Harry had never
met either of them, but knew that Charlie was in Romania studying dragons and
Bill in Egypt working for the wizard's bank, Gringotts.
"Dunno how Mum and Dad are
going to afford all our school stuff this year," said George after a
while. "Five sets of Lockhart books! And Ginny needs robes and a wand and
everything..."
Harry said nothing. He felt a
bit awkward. Stored in an underground vault at Gringotts in London was a small
fortune that his parents had left him. Of course, it was only in the wizarding
world that he had money; you couldn't use Galleons, Sickles, and Knuts in
Muggle shops. He had never mentioned his Gringotts bank account to the
Dursleys; he didn't think their horror of anything connected with magic would
stretch to a large pile of gold.
Mrs. Weasley woke them all early
the following Wednesday. After a quick half a dozen bacon sandwiches each, they
pulled on their coats and Mrs. Weasley took a flowerpot off the kitchen
mantelpiece and peered inside.
"We're running low,
Arthur," she sighed. "We'll have to buy some more today...Ah well,
guests first! After you, Harry dear!"
And she offered him the
flowerpot.
Harry stared at them all
watching him.
"W-what am I supposed to
do?" he stammered.
"He's never traveled by
Floo powder," said Ron suddenly. "Sorry, Harry, I forgot."
"Never?" said Mr.
Weasley. "But how did you get to Diagon Alley to buy your school things
last year?"
"I went on the Underground
-"
"Really?" said Mr.
Weasley eagerly. "Were there escapators? How exactly -"
"Not now,
Arthur," said Mrs. Weasley. "Floo powder's a lot quicker, dear, but
goodness me, if you've never used it before -"
"He'll be all right,
Mum," said Fred. "Harry, watch us first."
He took a pinch of glittering
powder out of the flowerpot, stepped up to the fire, and threw the powder into
the flames.
With a roar, the fire turned
emerald green and rose higher than Fred, who stepped right into it, shouted,
"Diagon Alley!" and vanished.
"You must speak clearly,
dear," Mrs. Weasley told Harry as George dipped his hand into the
flowerpot. "And be sure to get out at the right grate..."
"The right what?" said
Harry nervously as the fire roared and whipped George out of sight, too.
"Well, there are an awful
lot of wizard fires to choose from, you know, but as long as you've spoken
clearly -"
"He'll be fine, Molly,
don't fuss," said Mr. Weasley, helping himself to Floo powder too.
"But, dear, if he got lost,
how would we ever explain to his aunt and uncle?"
"They wouldn't mind,"
Harry reassured her. "Dudley would think it was a brilliant joke if I got
lost up a chimney, don't worry about that -"
"Well...all right...you go
after Arthur," said Mrs. Weasley. "Now, when you get into the fire,
say where you're going."
"And keep your elbows
tucked in," Ron advised.
"And your eyes shut,"
said Mrs. Weasley. "The soot -"
"Don't fidget," said
Ron. "Or you might well fall out of the wrong fireplace -"
"But don't panic and get
out too early; wait until you see Fred and George."
Trying hard to bear all this in
mind, Harry took a pinch of Floo powder and walked to the edge of the fire. He
took a deep breath, scattered the powder into the flames, and stepped forward;
the fire felt like a warm breeze; he opened his mouth and immediately swallowed
a lot of hot ash.
"D-Dia-gon Alley," he
coughed.
It felt as though he was being
sucked down a giant drain. He seemed to be spinning very fast - the roaring in
his ears was deafening - he tried to keep his eyes open but the whirl of green
flames made him feel sick -something hard knocked his elbow and he tucked it in
tightly, still spinning and spinning - now it felt as though cold hands were
slapping his face - squinting through his glasses he saw a blurred stream of
fireplaces and snatched glimpses of the rooms beyond - his bacon sandwiches
were churning inside him - he closed his eyes again wishing it would stop, and
then...
He fell, face forward, onto cold
stone and felt the bridge of his glasses snap.
Dizzy and bruised, covered in
soot, he got gingerly to his feet, holding his broken glasses up to his eyes.
He was quite alone, but where he was, he had no idea. All he could tell was
that he was standing in the stone fireplace of what looked like a large, dimly
lit wizard's shop - but nothing in here was ever likely to be on a Hogwarts
school list.
A glass case nearby held a
withered hand on a cushion, a bloodstained pack of cards, and a staring glass
eye. Evil-looking masks stared down from the walls, an assortment of human
bones lay upon the counter, and rusty, spiked instruments hung from the
ceiling. Even worse, the dark, narrow street Harry could see through the dusty
shop window was definitely not Diagon Alley.
The sooner he got out of here,
the better. Nose still stinging where it had hit the hearth, Harry made his way
swiftly and silently toward the door, but before he'd got halfway toward it,
two people appeared on the other side of the glass - and one of them was the
very last person Harry wanted to meet when he was lost, covered in soot, and
wearing broken glasses: Draco Malfoy.
Harry looked quickly around and
spotted a large black cabinet to his left; he shot inside it and pulled the
doors closed, leaving a small crack to peer through. Seconds later, a bell
clanged, and Malfoy stepped into the shop.
The man who followed could only
be Draco's father. He had the same pale, pointed face and identical cold, gray
eyes. Mr. Malfoy crossed the shop, looking lazily at the items on display, and
rang a bell on the counter before turning to his son and saying, "Touch
nothing, Draco."
Malfoy, who had reached for the
glass eye, said, "I thought you were going to buy me a present."
"I said I would buy you a
racing broom," said his father, drumming his fingers on the counter.
"What's the good of that if
I'm not on the House team?" said Malfoy, looking sulky and bad-tempered.
"Harry Potter got a Nimbus Two Thousand last year. Special permission from
Dumbledore so he could play for Gryffindor. He's not even that good, it's just
because he's famous...famous for having a stupid scar on his
forehead..."
Malfoy bent down to examine a
shelf full of skulls.
"...everyone thinks he's so
smart, wonderful Potter with his scar and his broomstick
-" "You have told me this at least a dozen times
already," said Mr. Malfoy, with a quelling look at his son. "And I
would remind you that it is not - prudent - to appear less than fond of Harry
Potter, not when most of our kind regard him as the hero who made the Dark Lord
disappear - ah, Mr. Borgin."
A stooping man had appeared
behind the counter, smoothing his greasy hair back from his face.
"Mr. Malfoy, what a
pleasure to see you again," said Mr. Borgin in a voice as oily as his
hair. "Delighted - and young Master Malfoy, too - charmed. How may I be of
assistance? I must show you, just in today, and very reasonably priced -"
"I'm not buying today, Mr.
Borgin, but selling," said Mr. Malfoy.
"Selling?" The smile
faded slightly from Mr. Borgin's face.
"You have heard, of course,
that the Ministry is conducting more raids," said Mr. Malfoy, taking a
roll of parchment from his inside pocket and unraveling it for Mr. Borgin to
read. "I have a few - ah - items at home that might embarrass me, if the
Ministry were to call..."
Mr. Borgin fixed a pair of
pince-nez to his nose and looked down the list.
"The Ministry wouldn't
presume to trouble you, sir, surely?"
Mr. Malfoy's lip curled.
"I have not been visited
yet. The name Malfoy still commands a certain respect, yet the Ministry grows
ever more meddlesome. There are rumors about a new Muggle Protection Act - no
doubt that flea-bitten, Muggle-loving fool Arthur Weasley is behind it -"
Harry felt a hot surge of anger.
"- and as you see, certain
of these poisons might make it appear -" "I understand, sir, of course," said Mr. Borgin.
"Let me see..."
"Can I have that?"
interrupted Draco, pointing at the withered hand on its cushion.
"Ah, the Hand of
Glory!" said Mr. Borgin, abandoning Mr. Malfoy's list and scurrying over
to Draco. "Insert a candle and it gives light only to the holder! Best friend
of thieves and plunderers! Your son has fine taste, sir."
"I hope my son will amount
to more than a thief or a plunderer, Borgin," said Mr. Malfoy coldly, and
Mr. Borgin said quickly, "No offense, sir, no offense meant -"
"Though if his grades don't
pick up," said Mr. Malfoy, more coldly still, "that may indeed be all
he is fit for -"
"It's not my fault,"
retorted Draco. "The teachers all have favorites, that Hermione Granger
-"
"I would have thought you'd
be ashamed that a girl of no wizard family beat you in every exam,"
snapped Mr. Malfoy.
"Ha!" said Harry under
his breath, pleased to see Draco looking both abashed and angry.
"It's the same all
over," said Mr. Borgin, in his oily voice. "Wizard blood is counting
for less everywhere -"
"Not with me," said
Mr. Malfoy, his long nostrils flaring.
"No, sir, nor with me,
sir," said Mr. Borgin, with a deep bow.
"In that case, perhaps we
can return to my list," said Mr. Malfoy shortly. "I am in something
of a hurry, Borgin, I have important business elsewhere today -"
They started to haggle. Harry
watched nervously as Draco drew nearer and nearer to his hiding place,
examining the objects for sale. Draco paused to examine a long coil of
hangman's rope and to read, smirking, the card propped on a magnificent necklace
of opals, Caution: Do Not Touch. Cursed - Has Claimed the Lives of Nineteen
Muggle Owners to Date. Draco turned away and saw the cabinet right in front of
him. He walked forward - he stretched out his hand for the handle
"Done," said Mr. Malfoy at the counter. "Come, Draco -"
Harry wiped his forehead on his
sleeve as Draco turned away.
"Good day to you, Mr.
Borgin. I'll expect you at the manor tomorrow to pick up the goods."
The moment the door had closed,
Mr. Borgin dropped his oily manner.
"Good day yourself, Mister
Malfoy, and if the stories are true, you haven't sold me half of what's hidden
in your manor..." Muttering darkly, Mr. Borgin disappeared into a back room.
Harry waited for a minute in case he came back, then, quietly as he could,
slipped out of the cabinet, past the glass cases, and out of the shop door.
Clutching his broken glasses to
his face, Harry stared around. He had emerged into a dingy alleyway that seemed
to be made up entirely of shops devoted to the Dark Arts. The one he'd just
left, Borgin and Burkes, looked like the largest, but opposite was a nasty
window display of shrunken heads and, two doors down, a large cage was alive
with gigantic black spiders. Two shabby-looking wizards were watching him from
the shadow of a doorway, muttering to each other. Feeling jumpy, Harry set off,
trying to hold his glasses on straight and hoping against hope he'd be able to
find a way out of here.
An old wooden street sign
hanging over a shop selling poisonous candles told him he was in Knockturn
Alley. This didn't help, as Harry had never heard of such a place. He supposed
he hadn't spoken clearly enough through his mouthful of ashes back in the
Weasleys' fire. Trying to stay calm, he wondered what to do.
"Not lost are you, my
dear?" said a voice in his ear, making him jump.
An aged witch stood in front of
him, holding a tray of what looked horribly like whole human fingernails. She
leered at him, showing mossy teeth. Harry backed away.
"I'm fine, thanks," he
said. "I'm just -"
"HARRY! What d'yeh think
yer doin' down there?"
Harry's heart leapt. So did the
witch; a load of fingernails cascaded down over her feet and she cursed as the
massive form of Hagrid, the Hogwarts' gamekeeper, came striding toward them,
beetle-black eyes flashing over his great bristling beard.
"Hagrid!" Harry
croaked in relief. "I was lost - Floo powder -"
Hagrid seized Harry by the
scruff of the neck and pulled him away from the witch, knocking the tray right
out of her hands. Her shrieks followed them all the way along the twisting
alleyway out into bright sunlight. Harry saw a familiar, snow-white marble
building in the distance - Gringotts Bank. Hagrid had steered him right into
Diagon Alley.
"Yer a mess!" said
Hagrid gruffly, brushing soot off Harry so forcefully he nearly knocked him
into a barrel of dragon dung outside an apothecary. "Skulkin' around
Knockturn Alley, I dunno dodgy place, Harry - don' want no one ter see yeh down
there -"
"I realized that,"
said Harry, ducking as Hagrid made to brush him off again. "I told you, I
was lost - what were you doing down there, anyway?"
"I was lookin' fer a
Flesh-Eatin' Slug Repellent," growled Hagrid. "They're ruinin' the
school cabbages. Yer not on yer own?"
"I'm staying with the
Weasleys but we got separated," Harry explained. "I've got to go and
find them..."
They set off together down the
street.
"How come yeh never wrote
back ter me?" said Hagrid as Harry jogged alongside him (he had to take
three steps to every stride of Hagrid's enormous boots). Harry explained all
about Dobby and the Dursleys.
"Lousy Muggles,"
growled Hagrid. "If I'd've known -"
"Harry! Harry! Over
here!" Harry looked up and saw Hermione Granger standing at the
top of the white flight of steps to Gringotts. She ran down to meet them, her
bushy brown hair flying behind her.
"What happened to your
glasses? Hello, Hagrid - Oh, it's wonderful to see you two again - Are
you coming into Gringotts, Harry?"
"As soon as I've found the
Weasleys," said Harry.
"Yeh won't have long ter
wait," Hagrid said with a grin.
Harry and Hermione looked
around: Sprinting up the crowded street were Ron, Fred, George, Percy, and Mr.
Weasley.
"Harry," Mr. Weasley
panted. "We hoped you'd only gone one grate too far..." He
mopped his glistening bald patch. "Molly's frantic - she's coming now
-"
"Where did you come
out?" Ron asked.
"Knockturn Alley,"
said Hagrid grimly.
"Excellent!"
said Fred and George together. "We've never been allowed in," said Ron
enviously.
"I should ruddy well think
not," growled Hagrid. Mrs. Weasley now came galloping into view, her
handbag swinging wildly in one hand, Ginny just clinging onto the other.
"Oh, Harry - oh, my dear -
you could have been anywhere -"
Gasping for breath she pulled a
large clothes brush out of her bag and began sweeping off the soot Hagrid
hadn't managed to beat away. Mr. Weasley took Harry's glasses, gave them a tap
of his wand, and returned them, good as new.
"Well, gotta be off,"
said Hagrid, who was having his hand wrung by Mrs. Weasley ("Knockturn
Alley! If you hadn't found him, Hagrid!"). "See yer at
Hogwarts!" And he strode away, head and shoulders taller than anyone else
in the packed street.
"Guess who I saw in Borgin
and Burkes?" Harry asked Ron and Hermione as they climbed the Gringotts
steps. "Malfoy and his father."
"Did Lucius Malfoy buy
anything?" said Mr. Weasley sharply behind them.
"No, he was selling -"
"So he's worried,"
said Mr. Weasley with grim satisfaction. "Oh, I'd love to get Lucius
Malfoy for something ..."
"You be careful,
Arthur," said Mrs. Weasley sharply as they were bowed into the bank by a
goblin at the door. "That family's trouble. Don't go biting off more than
you can chew -"
"So you don't think I'm a
match for Lucius Malfoy?" said Mr. Weasley indignantly, but he was
distracted almost at once by the sight of Hermione's parents, who were standing
nervously at the counter that ran all along the great marble hall, waiting for
Hermione to introduce them.
"But you're Muggles!"
said Mr. Weasley delightedly. "We must have a drink! What's that you've
got there? Oh, you're changing Muggle money. Molly, look!" He pointed
excitedly at the ten-pound notes in Mr. Granger's hand.
"Meet you back here,"
Ron said to Hermione as the Weasleys and Harry were led off to their
underground vaults by another Gringotts goblin.
The vaults were reached by means
of small, goblin-driven carts that sped along miniature train tracks through
the bank's underground tunnels. Harry enjoyed the breakneck journey down to the
Weasleys' vault, but felt dreadful, far worse than he had in Knockturn Alley,
when it was opened. There was a very small pile of silver Sickles inside, and
just one gold Galleon. Mrs. Weasley felt right into the corners before sweeping
the whole lot into her bag. Harry felt even worse when they reached his vault.
He tried to block the contents from view as he hastily shoved handfuls of coins
into a leather bag.
Back outside on the marble
steps, they all separated. Percy muttered vaguely about needing a new quill.
Fred and George had spotted their friend from Hogwarts, Lee Jordan. Mrs.
Weasley and Ginny were going to a secondhand robe shop. Mr. Weasley was
insisting on taking the Grangers off to the Leaky Cauldron for a drink.
"We'll all meet at Flourish
and Blotts in an hour to buy your schoolbooks," said Mrs. Weasley, setting
off with Ginny. "And not one step down Knockturn Alley!" she shouted
at the twins' retreating backs.
Harry, Ron, and Hermione
strolled off along the winding, cobbled street. The bag of gold, silver, and
bronze jangling cheerfully in Harry's pocket was clamoring to be spent, so he
bought three large strawberry-and-peanut-butter ice creams, which they slurped
happily as they wandered up the alley, examining the fascinating shop windows.
Ron gazed longingly at a full set of Chudley Cannon robes in the windows of
Quality Quidditch Supplies until Hermione dragged them off to buy ink and
parchment next door. In Gambol and Japes Wizarding Joke Shop, they met Fred,
George, and Lee Jordan, who were stocking up on Dr. Filibuster's Fabulous
Wet-Start, No-Heat Fireworks, and in a tiny junk shop full of broken wands,
lopsided brass scales, and old cloaks covered in potion stains they found
Percy, deeply immersed in a small and deeply boring book called Prefects Who
Gained Power.
"A study of Hogwarts
prefects and their later careers,"
Ron read aloud off the back cover. "That sounds fascinating..." "Go away," Percy snapped.
"'Course, he's very
ambitious, Percy, he's got it all planned out...He wants to be Minister of
Magic..." Ron told Harry and Hermione in an undertone as they left Percy to
it.
An hour later, they headed for
Flourish and Blotts. They were by no means the only ones making their way to
the bookshop. As they approached it, they saw to their surprise a large crowd
jostling outside the doors, trying to get in. The reason for this was
proclaimed by a large banner stretched across the upper windows:
GILDEROY LOCKHART will be signing copies of his autobiography MAGICAL ME
today 12:30
P.M. to 4:30
P.M.
"We can actually meet
him!" Hermione squealed. "I mean, he's written almost the whole
booklist!"
The crowd seemed to be made up
mostly of witches around Mrs. Weasley's age. A harassed-looking wizard stood at
the door, saying, "Calmly, please, ladies...Don't push, there...mind the
books, now..."
Harry, Ron, and Hermione
squeezed inside. A long line wound right to the back of the shop, where
Gilderoy Lockhart was signing his books. They each grabbed a copy of The
Standard Book of Spells, Grade 2 and sneaked up the line to where the rest
of the Weasleys were standing with Mr. and Mrs. Granger.
"Oh, there you are,
good," said Mrs. Weasley. She sounded breathless and kept patting her
hair. "We'll be able to see him in a minute..."
Gilderoy Lockhart came slowly
into view, seated at a table surrounded by large pictures of his own face, all
winking and flashing dazzlingly white teeth at the crowd. The real Lockhart was
wearing robes of forget-me-not blue that exactly matched his eyes; his pointed
wizard's hat was set at a jaunty angle on his wavy hair.
A short, irritable-looking man
was dancing around taking photographs with a large black camera that emitted
puffs of purple smoke with every blinding flash.
"Out of the way,
there," he snarled at Ron, moving back to get a better shot. "This is
for the Daily Prophet -" "Big deal," said Ron, rubbing his foot where the
photographer had stepped on it.
Gilderoy Lockhart heard him. He
looked up. He saw Ron - and then he saw Harry. He stared. Then he leapt to his
feet and positively shouted, "It can't be Harry Potter?"
The crowd parted, whispering excitedly;
Lockhart dived forward, seized Harry's arm, and pulled him to the front. The
crowd burst into applause. Harry's face burned as Lockhart shook his hand for
the photographer, who was clicking away madly, wafting thick smoke over the
Weasleys.
"Nice big smile,
Harry," said Lockhart, through his own gleaming teeth. "Together, you
and I are worth the front page."
When he finally let go of
Harry's hand, Harry could hardly feel his fingers. He tried to sidle back over
to the Weasleys, but Lockhart threw an arm around his shoulders and clamped him
tightly to his side.
"Ladies and
gentlemen," he said loudly, waving for quiet. "What an extraordinary
moment this is! The perfect moment for me to make a little announcement I've
been sitting on for some time!
"When young Harry here
stepped into Flourish and Blotts today, he only wanted to buy my autobiography
- which I shall be happy to present him now, free of charge -" The crowd
applauded again. "He had no idea," Lockhart continued, giving
Harry a little shake that made his glasses slip to the end of his nose,
"that he would shortly be getting much, much more than my book, Magical
Me. He and his schoolmates will, in fact, be getting the real magical me.
Yes, ladies and gentlemen, I have great pleasure and pride in announcing that
this September, I will be taking up the post of Defense Against the Dark Arts
teacher at Hogwarts School of Witchcraft and Wizardry!"
The crowd cheered and clapped
and Harry found himself being presented with the entire works of Gilderoy Lockhart.
Staggering slightly under their weight, he managed to make his way out of the
limelight to the edge of the room, where Ginny was standing next to her new
cauldron.
"You have these,"
Harry mumbled to her, tipping the books into the cauldron. "I'll buy my
own -"
"Bet you loved that, didn't
you, Potter?" said a voice Harry had no trouble recognizing. He
straightened up and found himself face-to-face with Draco Malfoy, who was
wearing his usual sneer.
"Famous Harry
Potter," said Malfoy. "Can't even go into a bookshop without
making the front page."
"Leave him alone, he didn't
want all that!" said Ginny. It was the first time she had spoken in front
of Harry. She was glaring at Malfoy.
"Potter, you've got
yourself a girlfriend!" drawled Malfoy. Ginny went scarlet as Ron
and Hermione fought their way over, both clutching stacks of Lockhart's books.
"Oh, it's you," said
Ron, looking at Malfoy as if he were something unpleasant on the sole of his
shoe. "Bet you're surprised to see Harry here, eh?"
"Not as surprised as I am
to see you in a shop, Weasley," retorted Malfoy. "I suppose your
parents will go hungry for a month to pay for all those."
Ron went as red as Ginny. He
dropped his books into the cauldron, too, and started toward Malfoy, but Harry
and Hermione grabbed the back of his jacket.
"Ron!" said Mr.
Weasley, struggling over with Fred and George. "What are you doing? It's
too crowded in here, let's go outside."
"Well, well, well - Arthur
Weasley."
It was Mr. Malfoy. He stood with
his hand on Draco's shoulder, sneering in just the same way.
"Lucius," said Mr.
Weasley, nodding coldly.
"Busy time at the Ministry,
I hear," said Mr. Malfoy. "All those raids...I hope they're paying you
overtime?"
He reached into Ginny's cauldron
and extracted, from amid the glossy Lockhart books, a very old, very battered
copy of A Beginner's Guide to Transfiguration.
"Obviously not," Mr.
Malfoy said. "Dear me, what's the use of being a disgrace to the name of
wizard if they don't even pay you well for it?"
Mr. Weasley flushed darker than
either Ron or Ginny.
"We have a very different
idea of what disgraces the name of wizard, Malfoy," he said.
"Clearly," said Mr.
Malfoy, his pale eyes straying to Mr. and Mrs. Granger, who were watching
apprehensively. "The company you keep, Weasley...and I thought your family
could sink no lower."
There was a thud of metal as
Ginny's cauldron went flying; Mr. Weasley had thrown himself at Mr. Malfoy,
knocking him backward into a bookshelf. Dozens of heavy spellbooks came
thundering down on all their heads; there was a yell of, "Get him,
Dad!" from Fred or George; Mrs. Weasley was shrieking, "No, Arthur,
no!"; the crowd stampeded backward, knocking more shelves over;
"Gentlemen, please - please!" cried the assistant, and then, louder
than all -
"Break it up, there, gents,
break it up -"
Hagrid was wading toward them
through the sea of books. In an instant he had pulled Mr. Weasley and Mr.
Malfoy apart. Mr. Weasley had a cut lip and Mr. Malfoy had been hit in the eye
by an Encyclopedia of Toadstools. He was still holding Ginny's old
Transfiguration book. He thrust it at her, his eyes glittering with malice.
"Here, girl - take your
book - it's the best your father can give you -" Pulling himself out of
Hagrid's grip he beckoned to Draco and swept from the shop.
"Yeh should've ignored him,
Arthur," said Hagrid, almost lifting Mr. Weasley off his feet as he
straightened his robes. "Rotten ter the core, the whole family, everyone
knows that - no Malfoy's worth listenin' ter - bad blood, that's what it is - come
on now - let's get outta here."
The assistant looked as though
he wanted to stop them leaving, but he barely came up to Hagrid's waist and
seemed to think better of it. They hurried up the street, the Grangers shaking
with fright and Mrs. Weasley beside herself with fury.
"A fine example to set for
your children...brawling in public...what Gilderoy Lockhart must've
thought -"
"He was pleased," said
Fred. "Didn't you hear him as we were leaving? He was asking that bloke
from the Daily Prophet if he'd be able to work the fight into his report
- said it was all publicity -"
But it was a subdued group that
headed back to the fireside in the Leaky Cauldron, where Harry, the Weasleys,
and all their shopping would be traveling back to the Burrow using Floo powder.
They said good-bye to the Grangers, who were leaving the pub for the Muggle
street on the other side; Mr. Weasley started to ask them how bus stops worked,
but stopped quickly at the look on Mrs. Weasley's face.
Harry took off his glasses and
put them safely in his pocket before helping himself to Floo powder. It
definitely wasn't his favorite way to travel. CHAPTER FIVE THE WHOMPING WILLOW
The end of the summer vacation
came too quickly for Harry's liking. He was looking forward to getting back to
Hogwarts, but his month at the Burrow had been the happiest of his life. It was
difficult not to feel jealous of Ron when he thought of the Dursleys and the
sort of welcome he could expect next time he turned up on Privet Drive.
On their last evening, Mrs.
Weasley conjured up a sumptuous dinner that included all of Harry's favorite
things, ending with a mouthwatering treacle pudding. Fred and George rounded
off the evening with a display of Filibuster fireworks; they filled the kitchen
with red and blue stars that bounced from ceiling to wall for at least half an
hour. Then it was time for a last mug of hot chocolate and bed.
It took a long while to get
started next morning. They were up at dawn, but somehow they still seemed to
have a great deal to do. Mrs. Weasley dashed about in a bad mood looking for
spare socks and quills; people kept colliding on the stairs, half-dressed with
bits of toast in their hands; and Mr. Weasley nearly broke his neck, tripping
over a stray chicken as he crossed the yard carrying Ginny's trunk to the car.
Harry couldn't see how eight
people, six large trunks, two owls, and a rat were going to fit into one small
Ford Anglia. He had reckoned, of course, without the special features that Mr.
Weasley had added.
"Not a word to Molly,"
he whispered to Harry as he opened the. trunk and showed him how it had been
magically expanded so that the luggage fitted easily.
When at last they were all in
the car, Mrs. Weasley glanced into the back seat, where Harry, Ron, Fred,
George, and Percy were all sitting comfortably side by side, and said,
"Muggles do know more than we give them credit for, don't
they?" She and Ginny got into the front seat, which had been stretched so
that it resembled a park bench. "I mean, you'd never know it was this
roomy from the outside, would you?"
Mr. Weasley started up the
engine and they trundled out of the yard, Harry turning back for a last look at
the house. He barely had time to wonder when he'd see it again when they were
back. George had forgotten his box of Filibuster fireworks. Five minutes after
that, they skidded to a halt in the yard so that Fred could run in for his
broomstick. They had almost reached the highway when Ginny shrieked that she'd
left her diary. By the time she had clambered back into the car, they were
running very late, and tempers were running high.
Mr. Weasley glanced at his watch
and then at his wife.
"Molly, dear -"
"No, Arthur -"
"No one would see - this
little button here is an Invisibility Booster I installed - that'd get us up in
the air - then we fly above the clouds. We'd be there in ten minutes and no one
would be any the wiser -"
"I said no, Arthur, not in
broad daylight -"
They reached King's Cross at a
quarter to eleven. Mr. Weasley dashed across the road to get trolleys for their
trunks and they all hurried into the station.
Harry had caught the Hogwarts
Express the previous year. The tricky part was getting onto platform nine and
three-quarters, which wasn't visible to the Muggle eye. What you had to do was
walk through the solid barrier dividing platforms nine and ten. It didn't hurt,
but it had to be done carefully so that none of the Muggles noticed you
vanishing.
"Percy first," said
Mrs. Weasley, looking nervously at the clock overhead, which showed they had
only five minutes to disappear casually through the barrier.
Percy strode briskly forward and
vanished. Mr. Weasley went next; Fred and George followed.
"I'll take Ginny and you
two come right after us," Mrs. Weasley told Harry and Ron, grabbing
Ginny's hand and setting off. In the blink of an eye they were gone.
"Let's go together, we've
only got a minute," Ron said to Harry.
Harry made sure that Hedwig's
cage was safely wedged on top of his trunk and wheeled his trolley around to
face the barrier. He felt perfectly confident; this wasn't nearly as
uncomfortable as using Floo powder. Both of them bent low over the handles of
their trolleys and walked purposefully toward the barrier, gathering speed. A
few feet away from it, they broke into a run and -
CRASH.
Both trolleys hit the barrier
and bounced backward; Ron's trunk fell off with a loud thump, Harry was knocked
off his feet, and Hedwig's cage bounced onto the shiny floor, and she rolled
away, shrieking indignantly; people all around them stared and a guard nearby
yelled, "What in blazes d'you think you're doing?"
"Lost control of the
trolley," Harry gasped, clutching his ribs as he got up. Ron ran to pick
up Hedwig, who was causing such a scene that there was a lot of muttering about
cruelty to animals from the surrounding crowd.
"Why can't we get
through?" Harry hissed to Ron.
"I dunno -"
Ron looked wildly around. A
dozen curious people were still watching them.
"We're going to miss the
train," Ron whispered. "I don't understand why the gateway's sealed
itself -"
Harry looked up at the giant
clock with a sickening feeling in the pit of his stomach. Ten seconds...nine
seconds ...
He wheeled his trolley forward
cautiously until it was right against the barrier and pushed with all his
might. The metal remained solid.
Three seconds...two seconds...one
second...
"It's gone," said Ron,
sounding stunned. "The train's left. What if Mum and Dad can't get back
through to us? Have you got any Muggle money?"
Harry gave a hollow laughed.
"The Dursleys haven't given me pocket money for about six years."
Ron pressed his ear to the cold
barrier.
"Can't hear a thing,"
he said tensely, "What're we going to do? I don't know how long it'll take
Mum and Dad to get back to us."
They looked around. People were
still watching them, mainly because of Hedwig's continuing screeches.
"I think we'd better go and
wait by the car," said Harry. "We're attracting too much atten
-"
"Harry!" said Ron, his
eyes gleaming. "The car!"
"What about it?"
"We can fly the car to
Hogwarts!"
"But I thought -"
"We're stuck, right? And
we've got to get to school, haven't we? And even underage wizards are allowed
to use magic if it's a real emergency, section nineteen or something of the
Restriction of Thingy -"
"But your Mum and
Dad..." said Harry, pushing against the barrier again in the vain hope that
it would give way. "How will they get home?"
"They don't need the
car!" said Ron impatiently. "They know how to Apparate! You know,
just vanish and reappear at home! They only bother with Floo powder and the car
because we're all underage and we're not allowed to Apparate yet..." Harry's feeling of
panic turned suddenly to excitement.
"Can you fly it?"
"No, problem," said
Ron, wheeling his trolley around to face the exit. "C'mon, let's go. If we
hurry we'll be able to follow the Hogwarts Express -"
And they marched off through the
crowd of curious Muggles, out of the station and back onto the side road where
the old Ford Anglia was parked.
Ron unlocked the cavernous trunk
with a series of taps from his wand. They heaved their luggage back in, put
Hedwig on the back seat, and got into the front.
"Check that no one's
watching," said Ron, starting the ignition with another tap of his wand.
Harry stuck his head out of the window: Traffic was rumbling along the main
road ahead, but their street was empty.
"Okay," he said.
Ron pressed a tiny silver button
on the dashboard. The car around them vanished - and so did they. Harry could
feel the seat vibrating beneath him, hear the engine, feel his hands on his
knees and his glasses on his nose, but for all he could see, he had become a
pair of eyeballs, floating a few feet above the ground in a dingy street full
of parked cars.
"Let's go," said Ron's
voice from his right.
And the ground and the dirty
buildings on either side fell away, dropping out of sight as the car rose; in
seconds, the whole of London lay, smoky and glittering, below them.
Then there was a popping noise
and the car, Harry, and Ron reappeared.
"Uh-oh," said Ron,
jabbing at the Invisibility Booster. "It's faulty -"
Both of them pummeled it. The
car vanished. Then it flickered back again.
"Hold on!" Ron yelled,
and he slammed his foot on the accelerator; they shot straight into the low,
woolly clouds and everything turned dull and foggy.
"Now what?" said
Harry, blinking at the solid mass of cloud pressing in on them from all sides.
"We need to see the train
to know what direction to go in," said Ron.
"Dip back down again -
quickly -"
They dropped back beneath the
clouds and twisted around in their seats, squinting at the ground.
"I can see it!" Harry
yelled. "Right ahead - there!"
The Hogwarts Express was
streaking along below them like a scarlet snake.
"Due north," said Ron,
checking the compass on the dashboard. "Okay, we'll just have to check on
it every half hour or so - hold on -"
And they shot up through the
clouds. A minute later, they burst out into a blaze of sunlight.
It was a different world. The
wheels of the car skimmed the sea of fluffy cloud, the sky a bright, endless
blue under the blinding white sun.
"All we've got to worry
about now are airplanes," said Ron.
They looked at each other and
started to laugh; for a long time, they couldn't stop.
It was as though they had been
plunged into a fabulous dream. This, thought Harry, was surely the only way to
travel - past swirls and turrets of snowy cloud, in a car full of hot, bright
sunlight, with a fat pack of toffees in the glove compartment, and the prospect
of seeing Fred's and George's jealous faces when they landed smoothly and
spectacularly on the sweeping lawn in front of Hogwarts castle.
They made regular checks on the
train as they flew farther and farther north, each dip beneath the clouds
showing them a different view. London was soon far behind them, replaced by
neat green fields that gave way in turn to wide, purplish moors, a great city
alive with cars like multicolored ants, villages with tiny toy churches.
Several uneventful hours later,
however, Harry had to admit that some of the fun was wearing off. The toffees
had made them extremely thirsty and they had nothing to drink. He and Ron had
pulled off their sweaters, but Harry's T-shirt was sticking to the back of his
seat and his glasses kept sliding down to the end of his sweaty nose. He had
stopped noticing the fantastic cloud shapes now and was thinking longingly of
the train miles below, where you could buy ice-cold pumpkin juice from a
trolley pushed by a plump witch. Why hadn't they been able to get onto
platform nine and three-quarters? "Can't be much further, can it?" croaked Ron,
hours later still, as the sun started to sink into their floor of cloud,
staining it a deep pink. "Ready for another check on the train?"
It was still right below them,
winding its way past a snowcapped mountain. It was much darker beneath the
canopy of clouds.
Ron put his foot on the
accelerator and drove them upward again, but as he did so, the engine began to
whine.
Harry and Ron exchanged nervous
glances.
"It's probably just
tired," said Ron. "It's never been this far before..."
And they both pretended not to
notice the whining growing louder and louder as the sky became steadily darker.
Stars were blossoming in the blackness. Harry pulled his sweater back on,
trying to ignore the way the windshield wipers were now waving feebly, as
though in protest.
"Not far," said Ron,
more to the car than to Harry, "not far now," and he patted the
dashboard nervously.
When they flew back beneath the
clouds a little while later, they had to squint through the darkness for a
landmark they knew.
"There!" Harry
shouted, making Ron and Hedwig jump. "Straight ahead!"
Silhouetted on the dark horizon,
high on the cliff over the lake, stood the many turrets and towers of Hogwarts
castle.
But the car had begun to shudder
and was losing speed.
"Come on," Ron said
cajolingly, giving the steering wheel a little shake, "nearly there, come
on -"
The engine groaned. Narrow jets
of steam were issuing from under the hood. Harry found himself gripping the
edges of his seat very hard as they flew toward the lake.
The car gave a nasty wobble.
Glancing out of his window, Harry saw the smooth, black, glassy surface of the
water, a mile below. Ron's knuckles were white on the steering wheel. The car
wobbled again.
"Come on," Ron
muttered.
They were over the lake - the
castle was right ahead - Ron put his foot down.
There was a loud clunk, a
splutter, and the engine died completely.
"Uh-oh," said Ron,
into the silence.
The nose of the car dropped.
They were falling, gathering speed, heading straight for the solid castle wall.
"Noooooo!"
Ron yelled, swinging the
steering wheel around; they missed the dark stone wall by inches as the car
turned in a great arc, soaring over the dark greenhouses, then the vegetable
patch, and then out over the black lawns, losing altitude all the time.
Ron let go of the steering wheel
completely and pulled his wand out of his back pocket -
"STOP! STOP!" he
yelled, whacking the dashboard and the windshield, but they were still
plummeting, the ground flying up toward them -
"WATCH OUT FOR THAT
TREE!" Harry bellowed, lunging for the steering wheel, but too late -
CRUNCH.
With an earsplitting bang of
metal on wood, they hit the thick tree trunk and dropped to the ground with a
heavy jolt. Steam was billowing from under the crumpled hood; Hedwig was
shrieking in terror; a golfball-size lump was throbbing on Harry's head where
he had hit the windshield; and to his right, Ron let out a low, despairing
groan.
"Are you okay?" Harry
said urgently.
"My wand," said Ron,
in a shaky voice. "Look at my wand -"
It had snapped, almost in two;
the tip was dangling limply, held on by a few splinters.
Harry opened his mouth to say he
was sure they'd be able to mend it up at the school, but he never even got
started. At that very moment, something hit his side of the car with the force
of a charging bull, sending him lurching sideways into Ron, just as an equally
heavy blow hit the roof.
"What's happen -?"
Ron gasped, staring through the
windshield, and Harry looked around just in time to see a branch as thick as a
python smash into it. The tree they had hit was attacking them. Its trunk was
bent almost double, and its gnarled boughs were pummeling every inch of the car
it could reach.
"Aaargh!" said Ron as
another twisted limb punched a large dent into his door; the windshield was now
trembling under a hail of blows from knuckle-like twigs and a branch as thick
as a battering ram was pounding furiously on the roof, which seemed to be
caving in.
"Run for it!" Ron
shouted, throwing his full weight against his door, but next second he had been
knocked backward into Harry's lap by a vicious uppercut from another branch.
"We're done for!" he
moaned as the ceiling sagged, but suddenly the floor of the car was vibrating -
the engine had restarted.
"Reverse!"
Harry yelled, and the car shot backward; the tree was still trying to hit them;
they could hear its roots creaking as it almost ripped itself up, lashing out
at them as they sped out of reach.
"That," panted Ron,
"was close. Well done, car -"
The car, however, had reached
the end of its tether. With two sharp clunks, the doors flew open and Harry
felt his seat tip sideways: Next thing he knew he was sprawled on the damp
ground. Loud thuds told him that the car was ejecting their luggage from the
trunk; Hedwig's cage flew through the air and burst open; she rose out of it
with an angry screech and sped off toward the castle without a backward look.
Then, dented, scratched, and steaming, the car rumbled off into the darkness,
its rear lights blazing angrily.
"Come back!" Ron
yelled after it, brandishing his broken wand. "Dad'll kill me!"
But the car disappeared from
view with one last snort from its exhaust.
"Can you believe our
luck?" said Ron miserably, bending down to pick up Scabbers. "Of all
the trees we could've hit, we had to get one that hits back."
He glanced over his shoulder at
the ancient tree, which was still flailing its branches threateningly. "Come on," said Harry wearily, "we'd better
get up to the school..."
It wasn't at all the triumphant
arrival they had pictured. Stiff, cold, and bruised, they seized the ends of their
trunks and began dragging them up the grassy slope, toward the great oak front
doors.
"I think the feast's
already started," said Ron, dropping his trunk at the foot of the front
steps and crossing quietly to look through a brightly lit window. "Hey -
Harry - come and look - it's the Sorting!"
Harry hurried over and,
together, he and Ron peered in at the Great Hall.
Innumerable candles were
hovering in midair over four long, crowded tables, making the golden plates and
goblets sparkle. Overhead, the bewitched ceiling, which always mirrored the sky
outside, sparkled with stars.
Through the forest of pointed
black Hogwarts hats, Harry saw a long line of scared-looking first years filing
into the Hall. Ginny was among them, easily visible because of her vivid
Weasley hair. Meanwhile, Professor McGonagall, a bespectacled witch with her
hair in a tight bun, was placing the famous Hogwarts Sorting Hat on a stool
before the newcomers.
Every year, this aged old hat,
patched, frayed, and dirty, sorted new students into the four Hogwarts houses
(Gryffindor, Hufflepuff, Ravenclaw, and Slytherin). Harry well remembered
putting it on, exactly one year ago, and waiting, petrified, for its decision
as it muttered aloud in his ear. For a few horrible seconds he had feared that
the hat was going to put him in Slytherin, the house that had turned out more
Dark witches and wizards than any other but he had ended up in Gryffindor,
along with Ron, Hermione, and the rest of the Weasleys. Last term, Harry and
Ron had helped Gryffindor win the House Championship, beating Slytherin for the
first time in seven years.
A very small, mousy-haired boy
had been called forward to place the hat on his head. Harry's eyes wandered
past him to where Professor Dumbledore, the headmaster, sat watching the
Sorting from the staff table, his long silver beard and half-moon glasses
shining brightly in the candlelight. Several seats along, Harry saw Gilderoy
Lockhart, dressed in robes of aquamarine. And there at the end was Hagrid, huge
and hairy, drinking deeply from his goblet.
"Hang on..." Harry
muttered to Ron. "There's an empty chair at the staff table...Where's
Snape?"
Professor Severus Snape was
Harry's least favorite teacher. Harry also happened to be Snape's least
favorite student. Cruel, sarcastic, and disliked by everybody except the
students from his own house (Slytherin), Snape taught Potions.
"Maybe he's ill!" said
Ron hopefully.
"Maybe he's left,"
said Harry, "because he missed out on the Defense Against Dark Arts job again!"
"Or he might have been sacked!"
said Ron enthusiastically. "I mean, everyone hates him -" "Or maybe," said a very cold voice right behind
them, "he's waiting to hear why you two didn't arrive on the school
train."
Harry spun around. There, his
black robes rippling in a cold breeze, stood Severus Snape. He was a thin man
with sallow skin, a hooked nose, and greasy, shoulder-length black hair, and at
this moment, he was smiling in a way that told Harry he and Ron were in very
deep trouble.
"Follow me," said
Snape.
Not daring even to look at each
other, Harry and Ron followed Snape up the steps into the vast, echoing
entrance hall, which was lit with flaming torches. A delicious smell of food
was wafting from the Great Hall, but Snape led them away from the warmth and
light, down a narrow stone staircase that led into the dungeons.
"In!" he said, opening
a door halfway down the cold passageway and pointing.
They entered Snape's office,
shivering. The shadowy walls were lined with shelves of large glass jars, in
which floated all manner of revolting things Harry didn't really want to know
the name of at the moment. The fireplace was dark and empty. Snape closed the
door and turned to look at them.
"So," he said softly,
"the train isn't good enough for the famous Harry Potter and his faithful
sidekick Weasley. Wanted to arrive with a bang, did we, boys?"
"No, sir, it was the
barrier at King's Cross, it -"
"Silence!" said Snape
coldly. "What have you done with the car?" Ron gulped. This wasn't
the first time Snape had given Harry the impression of being able to read
minds. But a moment later, he understood, as Snape unrolled today's issue of
the Evening Prophet. "You were seen," he hissed, showing them
the headline: FLYING FORD ANGLIA MYSTIFIES MUGGLES. He began to read
aloud: "Two Muggles in London, convinced they saw an old car flying over
the Post Office tower...at noon in Norfolk, Mrs. Hetty Bayliss, while hanging out
her washing...Mr. Angus Fleet, of Peebles, reported to police...Six or seven
Muggles in all. I believe your father works in the Misuse of Muggle Artifacts
Office?" he said, looking up at Ron and smiling still more nastily.
"Dear, dear...his own son..."
Harry felt as though he'd just
been walloped in the stomach by one of the mad tree's larger branches. If
anyone found out Mr. Weasley had bewitched the car...he hadn't thought of that...
"I noticed, in my search of
the park, that considerable damage seems to have been done to a very valuable
Whomping Willow," Snape went on.
"That tree did more damage
to us than we -" Ron blurted out.
"Silence!"
snapped Snape again. "Most unfortunately, you are not in my House and the
decision to expel you does not rest with me. I shall go and fetch the people
who do have that happy power. You will wait here." Harry and Ron stared at each other, white-faced. Harry
didn't feel hungry any more. He now felt extremely sick. He tried not to look
at a large, slimy something suspended in green liquid on a shelf behind Snape's
desk. If Snape had gone to fetch Professor McGonagall, head of Gryffindor
House, they were hardly any better off. She might be fairer than Snape, but she
was still extremely strict.
Ten minutes later, Snape
returned, and sure enough it was Professor McGonagall who accompanied him.
Harry had seen Professor McGonagall angry on several occasions, but either he
had forgotten just how thin her mouth could go, or he had never seen her this
angry before. She raised her wand the moment she entered; Harry and Ron both
flinched, but she merely pointed it at the empty fireplace, where flames suddenly
erupted.
"Sit," she said, and
they both backed into chairs by the fire.
"Explain," she said,
her glasses glinting ominously.
Ron launched into the story,
starting with the barrier at the station refusing to let them through.
"- so we had no choice,
Professor, we couldn't get on the train."
"Why didn't you send us a
letter by owl? I believe you have an owl?" Professor McGonagall
said coldly to Harry.
Harry gaped at her. Now she said
it, that seemed the obvious thing to have done.
"I - I didn't think -"
"That," said Professor
McGonagall, "is obvious."
There was a knock on the office
door and Snape, now looking happier than ever, opened it. There stood the
headmaster, Professor Dumbledore.
Harry's whole body went numb.
Dumbledore was looking unusually grave. He stared down his very crooked nose at
them, and Harry suddenly found himself wishing he and Ron were still being
beaten up by the Whomping Willow.
There was a long silence. Then
Dumbledore said, "Please explain why you did this."
It would have been better if he
had shouted. Harry hated the disappointment in his voice. For some reason, he
was unable to look Dumbledore in the eyes, and spoke instead to his knees. He
told Dumbledore everything except that Mr. Weasley owned the bewitched car,
making it sound as though he and Ron had happened to find a flying car parked
outside the station. He knew Dumbledore would see through this at once, but
Dumbledore asked no questions about the car. When Harry had finished, he merely
continued to peer at them through his spectacles.
"We'll go and get our
stuff," said Ron in a hopeless sort of voice.
"What are you talking
about, Weasley?" barked Professor McGonagall.
"Well, you're expelling us,
aren't you?" said Ron.
Harry looked quickly at
Dumbledore.
"Not today, Mr. Weasley,"
said Dumbledore. "But I must impress upon both of you the seriousness of
what you have done. I will be writing to both your families tonight. I must
also warn you that if you do anything like this again, I will have no choice
but to expel you."
Snape looked as though Christmas
had been canceled. He cleared his throat and said, "Professor Dumbledore,
these boys have flouted the Decree for the Restriction of Underage Wizardry,
caused serious damage to an old and valuable tree - surely acts of this nature
-"
"It will be for Professor
McGonagall to decide on these boys' punishments, Severus," said Dumbledore
calmly. "They are in her House and are therefore her responsibility."
He turned to Professor McGonagall. "I must go back to the feast, Minerva,
I've got to give out a few notices. Come, Severus, there's a delicious-looking
custard tart I want to sample -"
Snape shot a look of pure venom
at Harry and Ron as he allowed himself to be swept out of his office, leaving
them alone with Professor McGonagall, who was still eyeing them like a wrathful
eagle.
"You'd better get along to
the hospital wing, Weasley, you're bleeding."
"Not much," said Ron,
hastily wiping the cut over his eye with his sleeve.
"Professor, I wanted to
watch my sister being Sorted -"
"The Sorting Ceremony is
over," said Professor McGonagall. "Your sister is also in
Gryffindor."
"Oh, good," said Ron.
"And speaking of Gryffindor
-" Professor McGonagall said sharply, but Harry cut in: "Professor,
when we took the car, term hadn't started, so - so Gryffindor shouldn't really
have points taken from it - should it?" he finished, watching her
anxiously.
Professor McGonagall gave him a
piercing look, but he was sure she had almost smiled. Her mouth looked less
thin, anyway.
"I will not take any points
from Gryffindor," she said, and Harry's heart lightened considerably.
"But you will both get a detention." It was better than Harry had
expected. As for Dumbledore's writing to the Dursleys, that was nothing. Harry
knew perfectly well they'd just be disappointed that the Whomping Willow hadn't
squashed him flat.
Professor McGonagall raised her
wand again and pointed it at Snape's desk. A large plate of sandwiches, two
silver goblets, and a jug of iced pumpkin juice appeared with a pop.
"You will eat in here and
then go straight up to your dormitory," she said. "I must also return
to the feast."
When the door had closed behind
her, Ron let out a long, low whistle.
"I thought we'd had
it," he said, grabbing a sandwich.
"So did I," said
Harry, taking one, too.
"Can you believe our luck,
though?" said Ron thickly through a mouthful of chicken and ham.
"Fred and George must've flown that car five or six times and no Muggle
ever saw them." He swallowed and took another huge bite. "Why
couldn't we get through the barrier?" Harry shrugged. "We'll have to watch our step from
now on, though," he said, taking a grateful swig of pumpkin juice.
"Wish we could've gone up to the feast..."
"She didn't want us showing
off," said Ron sagely. "Doesn't want people to think it's clever,
arriving by flying car."
When they had eaten as many
sandwiches as they could (the plate kept refilling itself) they rose and left
the office, treading the familiar path to Gryffindor Tower. The castle was
quiet; it seemed that the feast was over. They walked past muttering portraits
and creaking suits of armor, and climbed narrow flights of stone stairs, until
at last they reached the passage where the secret entrance to Gryffindor Tower
was hidden, behind an oil painting of a very fat woman in a pink silk dress.
"Password?" she said
as they approached.
"Er -" said Harry.
They didn't know the new year's
password, not having met a Gryffindor prefect yet, but help came almost
immediately; they heard hurrying feet behind them and turned to see Hermione
dashing toward them.
"There you are!
Where have you been? The most ridiculous rumors - someone said
you'd been expelled for crashing a flying car!"
"Well, we haven't been
expelled," Harry assured her.
"You're not telling me you did
fly here?" said Hermione, sounding almost as severe as Professor
McGonagall.
"Skip the lecture,"
said Ron impatiently, "and tell us the new password."
"It's 'wattlebird,'"
said Hermione impatiently, "but that's not the point -"
Her words were cut short,
however, as the portrait of the fat lady swung open and there was a sudden
storm of clapping. It looked as though the whole of Gryffindor House was still
awake, packed into the circular common room, standing on the lopsided tables
and squashy armchairs, waiting for them to arrive. Arms reached through the
portrait hole to pull Harry and Ron inside, leaving Hermione to scramble in
after them.
"Brilliant!" yelled
Lee Jordan. "Inspired! What an entrance! Flying a car right into the
Whomping Willow, people'll be talking about that one for years -"
"Good for you," said a
fifth year Harry had never spoken to; someone was patting him on the back as
though he'd just won a marathon; Fred and George pushed their way to the front
of the crowd and said together, "Why couldn't we've come in the car,
eh?"
Ron was scarlet in the face,
grinning embarrassedly, but Harry could see one person who didn't look happy at
all. Percy was visible over the heads of some excited first years, and he
seemed to be trying to get near enough to start telling them off. Harry nudged
Ron in the ribs and nodded in Percy's direction. Ron got the point at once.
"Got to get upstairs - bit
tired," he said, and the two of them started pushing their way toward the
door on the other side of the room, which led to a spiral staircase and the
dormitories.
"'Night," Harry called
back to Hermione, who was wearing a scowl just like Percy's.
They managed to get to the other
side of the common room, still having their backs slapped, and gained the peace
of the staircase. They hurried up it, right to the top, and at last reached the
door of their old dormitory, which now had a sign on it saying SECOND YEARS.
They entered the familiar, circular room, with its five four-posters hung with
red velvet and its high, narrow windows. Their trunks had been brought up for
them and stood at the ends of their beds.
Ron grinned guiltily at Harry.
"I know I shouldn't've
enjoyed that or anything, but..."
The dormitory door flew open and
in came the other second year Gryffindor boys, Seamus Finnigan, Dean Thomas,
and Neville Longbottom.
"Unbelievable!"
beamed Seamus.
"Cool," said Dean.
"Amazing," said
Neville, awestruck. Harry couldn't help it. He grinned, too. CHAPTER SIX GILDEROY LOCKHART
The next day, however, Harry
barely grinned once. Things started to go downhill from breakfast in the Great
Hall. The four long house tables were laden with tureens of porridge, plates of
kippers, mountains of toast, and dishes of eggs and bacon, beneath the
enchanted ceiling (today, a dull, cloudy gray). Harry and Ron sat down at the
Gryffindor table next to Hermione, who had her copy of Voyages with Vampires
propped open against a milk jug. There was a slight stiffness in the way she
said "Morning," which told Harry that she was still disapproving of
the way they had arrived. Neville Longbottom, on the other hand, greeted them
cheerfully. Neville was a round-faced and accident-prone boy with the worst
memory of anyone Harry had ever met.
"Mail's due any minute - I
think Gran's sending a few things I forgot." Harry had only just started his porridge when, sure
enough, there was a rushing sound overhead and a hundred or so owls streamed
in, circling the hall and dropping letters and packages into the chattering
crowd. A big, lumpy package bounced off Neville's head and, a second later,
something large and gray fell into Hermione's jug, spraying them all with milk
and feathers.
"Errol!" said Ron,
pulling the bedraggled owl out by the feet. Errol slumped, Unconscious, onto
the table, his legs in the air and a damp red envelope in his beak.
"Oh, no -" Ron gasped.
"It's all right, he's still
alive," said Hermione, prodding Errol gently with the tip of her finger.
"It's not that - it's that."
Ron was pointing at the red
envelope. It looked quite ordinary to Harry, but Ron and Neville were both
looking at it as though they expected it to explode.
"What's the matter?"
said Harry.
"She's - she's sent me a
Howler," said Ron faintly.
"You'd better open it,
Ron," said Neville in a timid whisper. "It'll be worse if you Don't
My gran sent me one once, and I ignored it and" - he gulped -"it was
horrible."
Harry looked from their
petrified faces to the red envelope.
"What's a Howler?" he
said.
But Ron's whole attention was
fixed on the letter, which had begun to smoke at the corners.
"Open it," Neville
urged. "It'll all be over in a few minutes -"
Ron stretched out a shaking
hand, eased the envelope from Errol's beak, and slit it open. Neville stuffed
his fingers in his ears. A split second later, Harry knew why. He thought for a
moment it had exploded; a roar of sound filled the huge hall, shaking
dust from the ceiling.
"-STEALING THE CAR, I
WOULDN'T HAVE BEEN SURPRISED IF THEY'D EXPELLED YOU, YOU WAIT TILL I GET HOLD
OF YOU, I DON'T SUPPOSE YOU STOPPED TO THINK WHAT YOUR FATHER AND I WENT THROUGH
WHEN WE SAW IT WAS GONE -"
Mrs. Weasleys yells, a hundred
times louder than usual, made the plates and spoons rattle on the table, and
echoed deafeningly off the stone walls. People throughout the hall were
swiveling around to see who had received the Howler, and Ron sank so low in his
chair that only his crimson forehead could be seen.
"-LETTER FROM DUMBLEDORE
LAST NIGHT, I THOUGHT YOUR FATHER WOULD DIE OF SHAME, WE DIDN'T BRING YOU UP TO
BEHAVE LIKE THIS, YOU AND HARRY COULD BOTH HAVE DIED -"
Harry had been wondering when
his name was going to crop up. He tried very hard to look as though he couldn't
hear the voice that was making his eardrums throb.
"-ABSOLUTELY DISGUSTED -
YOUR FATHER'S FACING AN INQUIRY AT WORK, IT'S ENTIRELY YOUR FAULT AND IF YOU PUT
ANOTHER TOE OUT OF LINE WE'LL BRING YOU STRAIGHT BACK HOME."
A ringing silence fell. The red
envelope, which had dropped from Ron's hand, burst into flames and curled into
ashes. Harry and Ron sat stunned, as though a tidal wave had just passed over
them. A few people laughed and, gradually, a babble of talk broke out again.
Hermione closed Voyages with
Vampires and looked down at the top of Ron's head.
"Well, I don't know what
you expected, Ron, but you -"
"Don't tell me I deserved
it," snapped Ron.
Harry pushed his porridge away.
His insides were burning with guilt. Mr. Weasley was facing an inquiry at work.
After all Mr. and Mrs. Weasley had done for him over the summer...
But he had no time to dwell on
this; Professor McGonagall was moving along the Gryffindor table, handing out
course schedules. Harry took his and saw that they had double Herbology with
the Hufflepuffs first.
Harry, Ron, and Hermione left
the castle together, crossed the vegetable patch, and made for the greenhouses,
where the magical plants were kept. At least the Howler had done one good
thing: Hermione seemed to think they had now been punished enough and was being
perfectly friendly again.
As they neared the greenhouses
they saw the rest of the class standing outside, waiting for Professor Sprout.
Harry, Ron, and Hermione had only just joined them when she came striding into
view across the lawn, accompanied by Gilderoy Lockhart. Professor Sprout's arms
were full of bandages, and with another twinge of guilt, Harry spotted the
Whomping Willow in the distance, several of its branches now in slings.
Professor Sprout was a squat
little witch who wore a patched hat over her flyaway hair; there was usually a
large amount of earth on her clothes and her fingernails would have made Aunt
Petunia faint. Gilderoy Lockhart, however, was immaculate in sweeping robes of
turquoise, his golden hair shining under a perfectly positioned turquoise hat
with gold trimming.
"Oh, hello there!" he
called, beaming around at the assembled students. "Just been showing
Professor Sprout the right way to doctor a Whomping Willow! But I don't want
you running away with the idea that I'm better at Herbology than she is! I just
happen to have met several of these exotic plants on my travels..."
"Greenhouse three today, chaps!"
said Professor Sprout, who was looking distinctly disgruntled, not at all her
usual cheerful self.
There was a murmur of interest.
They had only ever worked in greenhouse one before - greenhouse three housed
far more interesting and dangerous plants. Professor Sprout took a large key
from her belt and unlocked the door. Harry caught a whiff of damp earth and
fertilizer mingling with the heavy perfume of some giant, umbrella-sized
flowers dangling from the ceiling. He was about to follow Ron and Hermione
inside when Lockhart's hand shot out.
"Harry! I've been wanting a
word - you don't mind if he's a couple of minutes late, do you, Professor
Sprout?"
Judging by Professor Sprout's
scowl, she did mind, but Lockhart said, "That's the ticket," and
closed the greenhouse door in her face.
"Harry," said
Lockhart, his large white teeth gleaming in the sunlight as he shook his head.
"Harry, Harry, Harry."
Completely nonplussed, Harry
said nothing.
"When I heard - well, of
course, it was all my fault. Could have kicked myself."
Harry had no idea what he was
talking about. He was about to say so when Lockhart went on, "Don't know
when I've been more shocked. Flying a car to Hogwarts! Well, of course, I knew
at once why you'd done it. Stood out a mile. Harry, Harry, Harry." It was remarkable how he could show every one of those
brilliant teeth even when he wasn't talking.
"Gave you a taste for
publicity, didn't I?" said Lockhart. "Gave you the bug. You
got onto the front page of the paper with me and you couldn't wait to do it
again."
"Oh, no, Professor, see
-"
"Harry, Harry, Harry,"
said Lockhart, reaching out and grasping his shoulder. "I understand.
Natural to want a bit more once you've had that first taste - and I blame
myself for giving you that, because it was bound to go to your head - but see
here, young man, you can't start flying cars to try and get yourself
noticed. Just calm down, all right? Plenty of time for all that when you're
older. Yes, yes, I know what you're thinking! 'It's all right for him, he's an
internationally famous wizard already!' But when I was twelve, I was just as
much of a nobody as you are now. In fact, I'd say I was even more of a nobody!
I mean, a few people have heard of you, haven't they? All that business with
He-Who-Must-Not-Be-Named!" He glanced at the lightning scar on Harry's
forehead. "I know, I know - it's not quite as good as winning Witch
Weekly's Most Charming Smile Award five times in a row, as I have - but
it's a start, Harry, it's a start." He gave Harry a hearty wink and strode off. Harry stood
stunned for a few seconds, then, remembering he was supposed to be in the
greenhouse, he opened the door and slid inside.
Professor Sprout was standing
behind a trestle bench in the center of the greenhouse. About twenty pairs of different-colored
ear muffs were lying on the bench. When Harry had taken his place between Ron
and Hermione, she said, "We'll be repotting Mandrakes today. Now, who can
tell me the properties of the Mandrake?"
To nobody's surprise, Hermione's
hand was first into the air.
"Mandrake, or Mandragora,
is a powerful restorative," said Hermione, sounding as usual as though she
had swallowed the textbook. "It is used to return people who have been
transfigured or cursed to their original state."
"Excellent. Ten points to
Gryffindor," said Professor Sprout. "The Mandrake forms an essential
part of most antidotes. It is also, however, dangerous. Who can tell me
why?"
Hermione's hand narrowly missed
Harry's glasses as it shot up again.
"The cry of the Mandrake is
fatal to anyone who hears it," she said promptly.
"Precisely. Take another
ten points," said Professor Sprout. "Now, the Mandrakes we have here
are still very young."
She pointed to a row of deep
trays as she spoke, and everyone shuffled forward for a better look. A hundred
or so tufty little plants, purplish green in color, were growing there in rows.
They looked quite unremarkable to Harry, who didn't have the slightest idea
what Hermione meant by the "cry" of the Mandrake.
"Everyone take a pair of
earmuffs," said Professor Sprout.
There was a scramble as everyone
tried to seize a pair that wasn't pink and fluffy.
"When I tell you to put
them on, make sure your ears are completely covered," said
Professor Sprout. "When it is safe to remove them, I will give you the
thumbs-up. Right - earmuffs on." Harry snapped the earmuffs over his ears. They shut out
sound completely. Professor Sprout put the pink, fluffy pair over her own ears,
rolled up the sleeves of her robes, grasped one of the tufty plants firmly, and
pulled hard.
Harry let out a gasp of surprise
that no one could hear.
Instead of roots, a small,
muddy, and extremely ugly baby popped out of the earth. The leaves were growing
right out of his head. He had pale green, mottled skin, and was clearly bawling
at the top of his lungs.
Professor Sprout took a large
plant pot from under the table and plunged the Mandrake into it, burying him in
dark, damp compost until only the tufted leaves were visible. Professor Sprout
dusted off her hands, gave them all the thumbs-up, and removed her own
earmuffs.
"As our Mandrakes are only
seedlings, their cries won't kill yet," she said calmly as though she'd
just done nothing more exciting than water a begonia. "However, they will
knock you out for several hours, and as I'm sure none of you want to miss your
first day back, make sure your earmuffs are securely in place while you work. I
will attract your attention when it is time to pack up. "Four to a tray - there is a large supply of pots
here - compost in the sacks over there - and be careful of the Venemous
Tentacula, it's teething."
She gave a sharp slap to a
spiky, dark red plant as she spoke, making it draw in the long feelers that had
been inching sneakily over her shoulder.
Harry, Ron, and Hermione were
joined at their tray by a curly-haired Hufflepuff boy Harry knew by sight but
had never spoken to.
"Justin
Finch-Fletchley," he said brightly, shaking Harry by the hand. "Know
who you are, of course, the famous Harry Potter...And you're Hermione Granger -
always top in everything" (Hermione beamed as she had her hand shaken too)
"- and Ron Weasley. Wasn't that your flying car?"
Ron didn't smile. The Howler was
obviously still on his mind.
"That Lockhart's something,
isn't he?" said Justin happily as they began filling their plant pots with
dragon dung compost. "Awfully brave chap. Have you read his books? I'd
have died of fear if Id been cornered in a telephone booth by a werewolf, but
he stayed cool and - zap - just fantastic. "My name was down for Eton, you know. I can't tell
you how glad I am I came here instead. Of course, Mother was slightly
disappointed, but since I made her read Lockhart's books I think she's begun to
see how useful it'll be to have a fully trained wizard in the family..."
After that they didn't have much
chance to talk. Their earmuffs were back on and they needed to concentrate on
the Mandrakes. Professor Sprout had made it look extremely easy, but it wasn't.
The Mandrakes didn't like coming out of the earth, but didn't seem to want to
go back into it either. They squirmed, kicked, flailed their sharp little
fists, and gnashed their teeth; Harry spent ten whole minutes trying to squash
a particularly fat one into a pot.
By the end of the class, Harry,
like everyone else, was sweaty, aching, and covered in earth. Everyone traipsed
back to the castle for a quick wash and then the Gryffindors hurried off to
Transfiguration.
Professor McGonagall's classes
were always hard work, but today was especially difficult. Everything Harry had
learned last year seemed to have leaked out of his head during the summer. He
was supposed to be turning a beetle into a button, but all he managed to do was
give his beetle a lot of exercise as it scuttled over the desktop avoiding his
wand.
Ron was having far worse
problems. He had patched up his wand with some borrowed Spellotape, but it
seemed to be damaged beyond repair. It kept crackling and sparking at odd
moments, and every time Ron tried to transfigure his beetle it engulfed him in
thick gray smoke that smelled of rotten eggs. Unable to see what he was doing,
Ron accidentally squashed his beetle with his elbow and had to ask for a new
one. Professor McGonagall wasn't pleased.
Harry was relieved to hear the
lunch bell. His brain felt like a wrung sponge. Everyone filed out of the
classroom except him and Ron, who was whacking his wand furiously on the desk.
"Stupid - useless - thing
-"
"Write home for another
one," Harry suggested as the wand let off a volley of bangs like a
firecracker.
"Oh, yeah, and get another
Howler back," said Ron, stuffing the now hissing wand into his bag. "
'It's your own fault your wand got snapped -'" They went down to lunch, where Ron's mood was not improved
by Hermione's showing them the handful of perfect coat buttons she had produced
in Transfiguration.
"What've we got this
afternoon?" said Harry, hastily changing the subject.
"Defense Against the Dark
Arts," said Hermione at once.
"Why, "demanded
Ron, seizing her schedule, "have you outlined all Lockhart's lessons in
little hearts?"
Hermione snatched the schedule
back, blushing furiously.
They finished lunch and went
outside into the overcast courtyard. Hermione sat down on a stone step and
buried her nose in Voyages with Vampires again. Harry and Ron stood
talking about Quidditch for several minutes before Harry became aware that he
was being closely watched. Looking up, he saw the very small, mousy-haired boy
he'd seen trying on the Sorting Hat last night staring at Harry as though
transfixed. He was clutching what looked like an ordinary Muggle camera, and
the moment Harry looked at him, he went bright red.
"All right, Harry? I'm -
I'm Colin Creevey," he said breathlessly, taking a tentative step forward.
"I'm in Gryffindor, too. D'you think - would it be all right if - can I
have a picture?" he said, raising the camera hopefully.
"A picture?" Harry
repeated blankly.
"So I can prove I've met
you," said Colin Creevey eagerly, edging further forward. "I know all
about you. Everyone's told me. About how you survived when You-Know-Who tried
to kill you and how he disappeared and everything and how you've still got a
lightning scar on your forehead" (his eyes raked Harry's hairline)
"and a boy in my dormitory said if I develop the film in the right potion,
the pictures'll move." Colin drew a great shuddering breath of
excitement and said, "It's amazing here, isn't it? I never knew all
the odd stuff I could do was magic till I got the letter from Hogwarts. My
dad's a milkman, he couldn't believe it either. So I'm taking loads of pictures
to send home to him. And it'd be really good if I had one of you" - he
looked imploringly at Harry - "maybe your friend could take it and I could
stand next to you? And then, could you sign it?"
"Signed photos?
You're giving out signed
photos, Potter?"
Loud and scathing, Draco
Malfoy's voice echoed around the courtyard. He had stopped right behind Colin,
flanked, as he always was at Hogwarts, by his large and thuggish cronies,
Crabbe and Goyle.
"Everyone line up!"
Malfoy roared to the crowd. "Harry Potter's giving out signed
photos!" "No, I'm not," said Harry angrily, his fists
clenching. "Shut up, Malfoy."
"You're just jealous,"
piped up Colin, whose entire body was about as thick as Crabbe's neck.
"Jealous?" said
Malfoy, who didn't need to shout anymore: half the courtyard was listening in.
"Of what? I don't want a foul scar right across my head, thanks. I don't
think getting your head cut open makes you that special, myself."
Crabbe and Goyle were sniggering
stupidly.
"Eat slugs, Malfoy,"
said Ron angrily. Crabbe stopped laughing and started rubbing his knuckles in a
menacing way.
"Be careful, Weasley,"
sneered Malfoy. "You don't want to start any trouble or your Mommy'll have
to come and take you away from school." He put on a shrill, piercing
voice. "'If you put another toe out of line'-"
A knot of Slytherin fifth-years
nearby laughed loudly at this.
"Weasley would like a
signed photo, Potter," smirked Malfoy. "It'd be worth more than his
family's whole house -"
Ron whipped out his Spellotaped
wand, but Hermione shut Voyages with Vampires with a snap and whispered,
"Look out!" "What's all this, what's all this?" Gilderoy
Lockhart was striding toward them, his turquoise robes swirling behind him.
"Who's giving out signed photos?" Harry started to speak but he was cut short as Lockhart
flung an arm around his shoulders and thundered jovially, "Shouldn't have
asked! We meet again, Harry!" Pinned to Lockhart's side and burning with humiliation,
Harry saw Malfoy slide smirking back into the crowd. "Come on then, Mr. Creevey," said Lockhart,
beaming at Colin. "A double portrait, can't do better than that, and we'll
both sign it for you."
Colin fumbled for his camera and
took the picture as the bell rang behind them, signaling the start of afternoon
classes.
"Off you go, move along
there," Lockhart called to the crowd, and he set off back to the castle
with Harry, who was wishing he knew a good Vanishing Spell, still clasped to
his side.
"A word to the wise,
Harry," said Lockhart paternally as they entered the building through a side
door. "I covered up for you back there with young Creevey - if he was
photographing me, too, your schoolmates won't think you're setting yourself up
so much..."
Deaf to Harry's stammers,
Lockhart swept him down a corridor lined with staring students and up a
staircase.
"Let me just say that
handing out signed pictures at this stage of your career isn't sensible - looks
a tad bigheaded, Harry, to be frank. There may well come a time when, like me,
you'll need to keep a stack handy wherever you go, but" - he gave a little
chortle - "I don't think you're quite there yet."
They had reached Lockhart's
classroom and he let Harry go at last. Harry yanked his robes straight and
headed for a seat at the very back of the class, where he busied himself with
piling all seven of Lockhart's books in front of him, so that he could avoid
looking at the real thing.
The rest of the class came
clattering in, and Ron and Hermione sat down on either side of Harry.
"You could've fried an egg
on your face" said Ron. "You'd better hope Creevey doesn't meet
Ginny, or they'll be starting a Harry Potter fan club."
"Shut up," snapped
Harry. The last thing he needed was for Lockhart to hear the phrase "Harry
Potter fan club"
When the whole class was seated,
Lockhart cleared his throat loudly and silence fell. He reached forward, picked
up Neville Longbottom's copy of Travels with Trolls, and held it up to
show his own, winking portrait on the front.
"Me," he said,
pointing at it and winking as well. "Gilderoy Lockhart, Order of Merlin, Third
Class, Honorary Member of the Dark Force Defense League, and five-time winner
of Witch Weekly's Most Charming Smile Award but I don't talk about that.
I didn't get rid of the Bandon Banshee by smiling at her!" He waited for them to laugh; a few people smiled weakly.
"I see you've all bought a
complete set of my books - well done. I thought we'd start today with a little
quiz. Nothing to worry about - just to check how well you've read them, how
much you've taken in -"
When he had handed out the test
papers he returned to the front of the class and said, "You have thirty
minutes - start - now!"
Harry looked down at his paper
and read: 1. What is Gilderoy Lockhart 's favorite color? 2. What is Gilderoy Lockhart's secret ambition? 3. What, in your opinion, is Gilderoy Lockhart's greatest achievement to date?
On and on it went, over three
sides of paper, right down to: 54. When is Gilderoy Lockhart's birthday, and what would his ideal gift be?
Half an hour later, Lockhart
collected the papers and rifled through them in front of the class.
"Tut, tut - hardly any of
you remembered that my favorite color is lilac. I say so in Year with the
Yeti. And a few of you need to read Wanderings with Werewolves more
carefully - I clearly state in chapter twelve that my ideal birthday gift would
be harmony between all magic and non-magic peoples - though I wouldn't say no
to a large bottle of Ogdeds Old Firewhisky!"
He gave them another roguish
wink. Ron was now staring at Lockhart with an expression of disbelief on his
face; Seamus Finnigan and Dean Thomas, who were sitting in front, were shaking
with silent laughter. Hermione, on the other hand, was listening to Lockhart
with rapt attention and gave a start when he mentioned her name.
"...but Miss Hermione Granger
knew my secret ambition is to rid the world of evil and market my own range of
hair-care potions - good girl! In fact" - he flipped her paper over -
"full marks! Where is Miss Hermione Granger?"
Hermione raised a trembling
hand.
"Excellent!" beamed
Lockhart. "Quite excellent! Take ten points for Gryffindor! And so - to
business -"
He bent down behind his desk and
lifted a large, covered cage onto it.
"Now - be warned! It is my
job to arm you against the foulest creatures known to wizardkind! You may find
yourselves facing your worst fears in this room. Know only that no harm can
befall you whilst I am here. All I ask is that you remain calm."
In spite of himself, Harry
leaned around his pile of books for a better look at the cage. Lockhart placed
a hand on the cover. Dean and Seamus had stopped laughing now. Neville was
cowering in his front row seat.
"I must ask you not to
scream," said Lockhart in a low voice. "It might provoke them."
As the whole class held its
breath, Lockhart whipped off the cover.
"Yes," he said
dramatically. "Freshly caught Cornish pixies." Seamus Finnigan couldn't control himself. He let out a
snort of laughter that even Lockhart couldn't mistake for a scream of terror.
"Yes?" He smiled at
Seamus.
"Well, they're not -
they're not very - dangerous, are they?" Seamus choked.
"Don't be so sure!"
said Lockhart, waggling a finger annoyingly at Seamus. "Devilish tricky
little blighters they can be!" The pixies were electric blue and about eight inches high,
with pointed faces and voices so shrill it was like listening to a lot of
budgies arguing. The moment the cover had been removed, they had started
jabbering and rocketing around, rattling the bars and making bizarre faces at
the people nearest them.
"Right, then,"
Lockhart said loudly. "Let's see what you make of them!" And he
opened the cage.
It was pandemonium. The pixies
shot in every direction like rockets. Two of them seized Neville by the ears
and lifted him into the air. Several shot straight through the window,
showering the back row with broken glass. The rest proceeded to wreck the
classroom more effectively than a rampaging rhino. They grabbed ink bottles and
sprayed the class with them, shredded books and papers, tore pictures from the
walls, up-ended the waste basket, grabbed bags and books and threw them out of
the smashed window; within minutes, half the class was sheltering under desks
and Neville was swinging from the iron chandelier in the ceiling.
"Come on now - round them
up, round them up, they're only pixies," Lockhart shouted.
He rolled up his sleeves,
brandished his wand, and bellowed, "Peskipiksi Pesternomi!" It had absolutely no effect; one of the pixies seized his
wand and threw it out of the window, too. Lockhart gulped and dived under his
own desk, narrowly avoiding being squashed by Neville, who fell a second later
as the chandelier gave way.
The bell rang and there was a
mad rush toward the exit. In the relative calm that followed, Lockhart
straightened up, caught sight of Harry, Ron, and Hermione, who were almost at
the door, and said, "Well, I'll ask you three to just nip the rest of them
back into their cage." He swept past them and shut the door quickly behind
him.
"Can you believe
him?" roared Ron as one of the remaining pixies bit him painfully on the
ear. "He just wants to give us some hands-on
experience," said Hermione, immobilizing two pixies at once with a clever
Freezing Charm and stuffing them back into their cage.
"Hands on?
"said Harry, who was trying to grab a pixie dancing out of reach with its
tongue out. "Hermione, he didn't have a clue what he was doing -"
"Rubbish," said
Hermione. "You've read his books - look at all those amazing things he's
done -"
"He says he's
done," Ron muttered. CHAPTER SEVEN MUDBLOODS AND MURMURS
Harry spent a lot of time over
the next few days dodging out of sight whenever he saw Gilderoy Lockhart coming
down a corridor. Harder to avoid was Colin Creevey, who seemed to have
memorized Harry's schedule. Nothing seemed to give Colin a bigger thrill than
to say, "All right, Harry?" six or seven times a day and hear,
"Hello, Colin," back, however exasperated Harry sounded when he said
it.
Hedwig was still angry with
Harry about the disastrous car journey and Ron's wand was still malfunctioning,
surpassing itself on Friday morning by shooting out of Ron's hand in Charms and
hitting tiny old Professor Flitwick squarely between the eyes, creating a
large, throbbing green boil where it had struck. So with one thing and another,
Harry was quite glad to reach the weekend. He, Ron, and Hermione were planning
to visit Hagrid on Saturday morning. Harry, however, was shaken awake several
hours earlier than he would have liked by Oliver Wood, Captain of the
Gryffindor Quidditch team.
"Whassamatter?" said
Harry groggily.
"Quidditch practice!" said
Wood. "Come on!"
Harry squinted at the window.
There was a thin mist hanging across the pink-and-gold sky. Now that he was
awake, he couldn't understand how he could have slept through the racket the
birds were making.
"Oliver," Harry
croaked. "It's the crack of dawn."
"Exactly," said Wood.
He was a tall and burly sixth year and, at the moment, his eyes were gleaming
with a crazed enthusiasm. "It's part of our new training program. Come on,
grab your broom, and let's go," said Wood heartily. "None of the
other teams have started training yet; we're going to be first off the mark
this year -"
Yawning and shivering slightly,
Harry climbed out of bed and tried to find his Quidditch robes.
"Good man," said Wood.
"Meet you on the field in fifteen minutes."
When he'd found his scarlet team
robes and pulled on his cloak for warmth, Harry scribbled a note to Ron
explaining where he'd gone and went down the spiral staircase to the common
room, his Nimbus Two Thousand on his shoulder. He had just reached the portrait
hole when there was a clatter behind him and Colin Creevey came dashing down
the spiral staircase, his camera swinging madly around his neck and something
clutched in his hand.
"I heard someone saying
your name on the stairs, Harry! Look what I've got here! I've had it developed,
I wanted to show you -"
Harry looked bemusedly at the
photograph Colin was brandishing under his nose.
A moving, black-and-white
Lockhart was tugging hard on an arm Harry recognized as his own. He was pleased
to see that his photographic self was putting up a good fight and refusing to
be dragged into view. As Harry watched, Lockhart gave up and slumped, Panting,
against the white edge of the picture.
"Will you sign it?"
said Colin eagerly.
"No," said Harry
flatly, glancing around to check that the room was really deserted.
"Sorry, Colin, I'm in a hurry - Quidditch practice -"
He climbed through the portrait
hole.
"Oh, wow! Wait for me! I've
never watched a Quidditch game before!"
Colin scrambled through the hole
after him.
"It'll be really
boring," Harry said quickly, but Colin ignored him, his face shining with
excitement.
"You were the youngest
House player in a hundred years, weren't you, Harry? Weren't you?" said
Colin, trotting alongside him. "You must be brilliant. I've never flown.
Is it easy? Is that your own broom? Is that the best one there is?"
Harry didn't know how to get rid
of him. It was like having an extremely talkative shadow.
"I don't really understand
Quidditch," said Colin breathlessly. "Is it true there are four
balls? And two of them fly around trying to knock people off their
brooms?"
"Yes," said Harry
heavily, resigned to explaining the complicated rules of Quidditch.
"They're called Bludgers. There are two Beaters on each team who carry
clubs to beat the Bludgers away from their side. Fred and George Weasley are
the Gryffindor Beaters."
"And what are the other
balls for?" Colin asked, tripping down a couple of steps because he was
gazing open-mouthed at Harry.
"Well, the Quaffle - that's
the biggish red one - is the one that scores goals. Three Chasers on each team
throw the Quaffle to each other and try and get it through the goal posts at
the end of the pitch - they're three long poles with hoops on the end."
"And the fourth ball
-"
"- is the Golden Snitch,"
said Harry, "and it's very small, very fast, and difficult to catch. But
that's what the Seeker's got to do, because a game of Quidditch doesn't end
until the Snitch has been caught. And whichever team's Seeker gets the Snitch
earns his team an extra hundred and fifty points."
"And you're the
Gryffindor Seeker, aren't you?" said Colin in awe.
"Yes," said Harry as
they left the castle and started across the dew-drenched grass. "And
there's the Keeper, too. He guards the goal posts. That's it, really."
But Colin didn't stop
questioning Harry all the way down the sloping lawns to the Quidditch field,
and Harry only shook him off when he reached the changing rooms; Colin called
after him in a piping voice, "I'll go and get a good seat, Harry!"
and hurried off to the stands.
The rest of the Gryffindor team
were already in the changing room. Wood was the only person who looked truly
awake. Fred and George Weasley were sitting, puffy-eyed and touslehaired, next
to fourth year Alicia Spinnet, who seemed to be nodding off against the wall
behind her. Her fellow Chasers, Katie Bell and Angelina Johnson, were yawning
side by side opposite them.
"There you are, Harry, what
kept you?" said Wood briskly. Now,
I wanted a quick talk with you all before we actually get onto the field,
because I spent the summer devising a whole new training program, which I
really think will make all the difference..."
Wood was holding up a large
diagram of a Quidditch field, on which were drawn many lines, arrows, and
crosses in different colored inks. He took out his wand, tapped the board, and
the arrows began to wiggle over the diagram like caterpillars. As Wood launched
into a speech about his new tactics, Fred Weasley's head drooped right onto
Alicia Spinnet's shoulder and he began to snore.
The first board took nearly
twenty minutes to explain, but there was another board under that, and a third
under that one. Harry sank into a stupor as Wood droned on and on.
"So," said Wood, at
long last, jerking Harry from a wistful fantasy about what he could be eating
for breakfast at this very moment up at the castle. "Is that clear? Any
questions?"
"I've got a question,
Oliver," said George, who had woken with a start. "Why couldn't you
have told us all this yesterday when we were awake?"
Wood wasn't pleased.
"Now, listen here, you
lot," he said, glowering at them all. "We should have won the
Quidditch cup last year. We're easily the best team. But unfortunately - owing
to circumstances beyond our control -"
Harry shifted guiltily in his
seat. He had been unconscious in the hospital wing for the final match of the
previous year, meaning that Gryffindor had been a player short and had suffered
their worst defeat in three hundred years.
Wood took a moment to regain
control of himself. Their last defeat was clearly still torturing him.
"So this year, we train
harder than ever before...Okay, let's go and put our new theories into
practice!" Wood shouted, seizing his broomstick and leading the way out of
the locker rooms. Stiff-legged and still yawning, his team followed.
They had been in the locker room
so long that the sun was up completely now, although remnants of mist hung over
the grass in the stadium. As Harry walked onto the field, he saw Ron and
Hermione sitting in the stands.
"Aren't you finished
yet?" called Ron incredulously.
"Haven't even
started," said Harry, looking jealously at the toast and marmalade Ron and
Hermione had brought out of the Great Hall. "Wood's been teaching us new
moves."
He mounted his broomstick and
kicked at the ground, soaring up into the air. The cool morning air whipped his
face, waking him far more effectively than Wood's long talk. It felt wonderful
to be back on the Quidditch field. He soared right around the stadium at full
speed, racing Fred and George.
"What's that funny clicking
noise?" called Fred as they hurtled around the corner.
Harry looked into the stands.
Colin was sitting in one of the highest seats, his camera raised, taking
picture after picture, the sound strangely magnified in the deserted stadium.
"Look this way, Harry! This
way!" he cried shrilly.
"Who's that?" said
Fred.
"No idea," Harry lied,
putting on a spurt of speed that took him as far away as possible from Colin.
"What's going on?"
said Wood, frowning, as he skimmed through the air toward them. "Why's
that first year taking pictures? I don't like it. He could be a Slytherin spy,
trying to find out about our new training program."
"He's in Gryffindor,"
said Harry quickly.
"And the Slytherins don't
need a spy, Oliver," said George.
"What makes you say
that?" said Wood testily.
"Because they're here in
person," said George, pointing.
Several people in green robes
were walking onto the field, broomsticks in their hands.
"I don't believe it!"
Wood hissed in outrage. "I booked the field for today! We'll see about
this!"
Wood shot toward the ground,
landing rather harder than he meant to in his anger, staggering slightly as he
dismounted. Harry, Fred, and George followed.
"Flint!" Wood bellowed
at the Slytherin Captain. "This is our practice time! We got up specially!
You can clear off now!"
Marcus Flint was even larger
than Wood. He had a look of trollish cunning on his face as he replied,
"Plenty of room for all of us, Wood."
Angelina, Alicia, and Katie had
come over, too. There were no girls on the Slytherin team, who stood shoulder
to shoulder, facing the Gryffindors, leering to a man.
"But I booked the
field!" said Wood, positively spitting with rage. "I booked it!"
"Ah," said Flint.
"But I've got a specially signed note here from Professor Snape. 'I,
Professor S. Snape, give the Slytherin team permission to practice today on the
Quidditch field owing to the need to train their new Seeker'."
"You've got a new
Seeker?" said Wood, distracted. "Where?"
And from behind the six large
figures before them came a seventh, smaller boy, smirking all over his pale,
pointed face. It was Draco Malfoy.
"Aren't you Lucius Malfoy's
son?" said Fred, looking at Malfoy with dislike.
"Funny you should mention
Draco's father," said Flint as the whole Slytherin team smiled still more
broadly. "Let me show you the generous gift he's made to the Slytherin
team."
All seven of them held out their
broomsticks. Seven highly polished, brand-new handles and seven sets of fine
gold lettering spelling the words Nimbus Two Thousand and One gleamed
under the Gryffindors' noses in the early morning sun. "Very latest model. Only came out last month,"
said Flint carelessly, flicking a speck of dust from the end of his own.
"I believe it outstrips the old Two Thousand series by a considerable
amount. As for the old Cleansweeps" - he smiled nastily at Fred and
George, who were both clutching Cleansweep Fives -" sweeps the board with
them."
None of the Gryffindor team
could think of anything to say for a moment. Malfoy was smirking so broadly his
cold eyes were reduced to slits.
"Oh, look," said
Flint. "A field invasion."
Ron and Hermione were crossing
the grass to see what was going on.
"What's happening?"
Ron asked Harry. "Why aren't you playing? And what's he doing
here?" He was looking at Malfoy, taking in his Slytherin
Quidditch robes.
"I'm the new Slytherin
Seeker, Weasley," said Malfoy, smugly. "Everyone's just been admiring
the brooms my father's bought our team.
Ron gaped, open-mouthed, at the
seven superb broomsticks in front of him.
"Good, aren't they?"
said Malfoy smoothly. "But perhaps the Gryffindor team will be able to
raise some gold and get new brooms, too. You could raffle off those Cleansweep
Fives; I expect a museum would bid for them."
The Slytherin team howled with
laughter.
"At least no one on the
Gryffindor team had to buy their way in," said Hermione sharply.
"They got in on pure talent."
The smug look on Malfoy's face
flickered.
"No one asked your opinion,
you filthy little Mudblood," he spat.
Harry knew at once that Malfoy
had said something really bad because there was an instant uproar at his words.
Flint had to dive in front of Malfoy to stop Fred and George jumping on him,
Alicia shrieked, "How dare you!" and Ron plunged his hand into
his robes, pulled out his wand, yelling, "You'll pay for that one,
Malfoy!" and pointed it furiously under Flint's arm at Malfoys face.
A loud bang echoed around the
stadium and a jet of green light shot out of the wrong end of Ron's wand,
hitting him in the stomach and sending him reeling backward onto the grass.
"Ron! Ron! Are you all
right?" squealed Hermione.
Ron opened his mouth to speak,
but no words came out. Instead he gave an almighty belch and several slugs
dribbled out of his mouth onto his lap.
The Slytherin team were
paralyzed with laughter. Flint was doubled up, hanging onto his new broomstick
for support. Malfoy was on all fours, banging the ground with his fist. The
Gryffindors were gathered around Ron, who kept belching large, glistening
slugs. Nobody seemed to want to touch him.
"We'd better get him to
Hagrid's, it's nearest," said Harry to Hermione, who nodded bravely, and
the pair of them pulled Ron up by the arms.
"What happened, Harry? What
happened? Is he ill? But you can cure him, can't you?" Colin had run down
from his seat and was now dancing alongside them as they left the field. Ron
gave a huge heave and more slugs dribbled down his front.
"Oooh," said Colin,
fascinated and raising his camera. "Can you hold him still, Harry?"
"Get out of the way,
Colin!" said Harry angrily. He and Hermione supported Ron out of the
stadium and across the grounds toward the edge of the forest.
"Nearly there, Ron,"
said Hermione as the gamekeeper's cabin came into view. "You'll be all
right in a minute - almost there -"
They were within twenty feet of
Hagrid's house when the front door opened, but it wasn't Hagrid who emerged.
Gilderoy Lockhart, wearing robes of palest mauve today, came striding out.
"Quick, behind here,"
Harry hissed, dragging Ron behind a nearby bush. Hermione followed, somewhat
reluctantly.
"It's a simple matter if
you know what you're doing!" Lockhart was saying loudly to Hagrid.
"If you need help, you know where I am! I'll let you have a copy of my
book. I'm surprised you haven't already got one - I'll sign one tonight and
send it over. Well, good-bye!" And he strode away toward the castle.
Harry waited until Lockhart was
out of sight, then pulled Ron out of the bush and up to Hagrid's front door.
They knocked urgently.
Hagrid appeared at once, looking
very grumpy, but his expression brightened when he saw who it was.
"Bin wonderin' when you'd
come ter see me - come in, come in - thought you mighta bin Professor Lockhart
back again -"
Harry and Hermione supported Ron
over the threshold into the one-roomed cabin, which had an enormous bed in one
corner, a fire crackling merrily in the other. Hagrid didn't seem perturbed by
Ron's slug problem, which Harry hastily explained as he lowered Ron into a
chair.
"Better out than in,"
he said cheerfully, plunking a large copper basin in front of him. "Get
'em all up, Ron."
"I don't think there's
anything to do except wait for it to stop," said Hermione anxiously,
watching Ron bend over the basin. "That's a difficult curse to work at the
best of times, but with a broken wand -"
Hagrid was bustling around
making them tea. His boarhound, Fang, was slobbering over Harry.
"What did Lockhart want
with you, Hagrid?" Harry asked, scratching Fang's ears.
"Givin' me advice on
gettin' kelpies out of a well," growled Hagrid, moving a half-plucked
rooster off his scrubbed table and setting down the teapot. "Like I don'
know. An' bangin' on about some banshee he banished. If one word of it was
true, I'll eat my kettle."
It was most unlike Hagrid to
criticize a Hogwarts' teacher, and Harry looked at him in surprise. Hermione,
however, said in a voice somewhat higher than usual, "I think you're being
a bit unfair. Professor Dumbledore obviously thought he was the best man for
the job -"
"He was the on'y man
for the job," said Hagrid, offering them a plate of treacle fudge, while
Ron coughed squelchily into his basin. "An' I mean the on'y one.
Gettin' very difficult ter find anyone fer
the Dark Arts job. People aren't too keen ter take it on, see. They're
startin' ter think it's jinxed. No one's lasted long fer a while now. So tell
me," said Hagrid, jerking his head at Ron. "Who was he tryin' ter
curse?"
"Malfoy called Hermione
something - it must've been really bad, because everyone went wild."
"It was bad,"
said Ron hoarsely, emerging over the tabletop looking pale and sweaty.
"Malfoy called her 'Mudblood,' Hagrid -"
Ron dived out of sight again as
a fresh wave of slugs made their appearance. Hagrid looked outraged. "He didn'!" he growled at Hermione.
"He did," she said.
"But I don't know what it means. I could tell it was really rude, of
course -"
"It's about the most
insulting thing he could think of," gasped Ron, coming back up.
"Mudblood's a really foul name for someone who is Muggle-born - you know,
non-magic parents. There are some wizards - like Malfoy's family - who think
they're better than everyone else because they're what people call
pure-blood." He gave a small burp, and a single slug fell into his
outstretched hand. He threw it into the basin and continued, "I mean, the
rest of us know it doesn't make any difference at all. Look at Neville
Longbottom - he's pure-blood and he can hardly stand a cauldron the right way
up."
"An' they haven't invented
a spell our Hermione can' do," said Hagrid proudly, making Hermione go a
brilliant shade of magenta.
"It's a disgusting thing to
call someone," said Ron, wiping his sweaty brow with a shaking hand.
"Dirty blood, see. Common blood. It's ridiculous. Most wizards these days
are half-blood anyway. If we hadn't married Muggles we'd've died out."
He retched and ducked out of
sight again.
"Well, I don' blame yeh fer
tryin' ter curse him, Ron," said Hagrid loudly over the thuds of more
slugs hitting the basin. "Bu' maybe it was a good thing yer wand
backfired. 'Spect Lucius Malfoy would've come marchin' up ter school if yeh'd
cursed his son. Least yer not in trouble."
Harry would have pointed out
that trouble didn't come much worse than having slugs pouring out of your
mouth, but he couldn't; Hagrid's treacle fudge had cemented his jaws together. "Harry," said Hagrid abruptly as though struck
by a sudden thought. "Gotta bone ter pick with yeh. I've heard you've bin
givin' out signed photos. How come I haven't got one?"
Furious, Harry wrenched his
teeth apart.
"I have not been
giving out signed photos," he said hotly. "If Lockhart's still
spreading that around -"
But then he saw that Hagrid was
laughing.
"I'm on'y jokin'," he
said, patting Harry genially on the back and sending him face first into the
table. "I knew yeh hadn't really. I told Lockhart yeh didn' need teh. Yer
more famous than him without tryin'."
"Bet he didn't like
that," said Harry, sitting up and rubbing his chin.
"Don' think he did,"
said Hagrid, his eyes twinkling. "An' then I told him I'd never read one
o' his books an' he decided ter go. Treacle fudge, Ron?" he added as Ron
reappeared.
"No thanks," said Ron
weakly. "Better not risk it."
"Come an' see what I've bin
growin'," said Hagrid as Harry and Hermione finished the last of their
tea.
In the small vegetable patch
behind Hagrid's house were a dozen of the largest pumpkins Harry had ever seen.
Each was the size of a large boulder.
"Gettin' on well, aren't
they?" said Hagrid happily. "Fer the Halloween feast...should be big
enough by then."
"What've you been feeding
them?" said Harry.
Hagrid looked over his shoulder
to check that they were alone.
"Well, I've bin givin' them
- you know - a bit o' help -"
Harry noticed Hagrid's flowery
pink umbrella leaning against the back wall of the cabin. Harry had had reason
to believe before now that this umbrella was not all it looked; in fact, he had
the strong impression that Hagrid's old school wand was concealed inside it.
Hagrid wasn't supposed to use magic. He had been expelled from Hogwarts in his
third year, but Harry had never found out why - any mention of the matter and
Hagrid would clear his throat loudly and become mysteriously deaf until the
subject was changed.
"An Engorgement Charm, I
suppose?" said Hermione, halfway between disapproval and amusement.
"Well, you've done a good job on them."
"That's what yer little
sister said," said Hagrid, nodding at Ron. "Met her jus'
yesterday." Hagrid looked sideways at Harry, his beard twitching.
"Said she was jus' lookin' round the grounds, but I reckon she was hopin'
she might run inter someone else at my house." He winked at Harry.
"If yeh ask me, she wouldn' say no ter a signed -"
"Oh, shut up," said
Harry. Ron snorted with laughter and the ground was sprayed with slugs.
"Watch it!" Hagrid
roared, pulling Ron away from his precious pumpkins.
It was nearly lunchtime and as
Harry had only had one bit of treacle fudge since dawn, he was keen to go back
to school to eat. They said good-bye to Hagrid and walked back up to the
castle, Ron hiccoughing occasionally, but only bringing up two very small
slugs.
They had barely set foot in the
cool entrance hall when a voice rang out, "There you are, Potter -
Weasley." Professor McGonagall was walking toward them, looking stern.
"You will both do your detentions this evening."
"What're we doing,
Professor?" said Ron, nervously suppressing a burp.
"You will be
polishing the silver in the trophy room with Mr. Filch," said Professor
McGonagall. "And no magic, Weasley - elbow grease."
Ron gulped. Argus Filch, the
caretaker, was loathed by every student in the school.
"And you, Potter, will be
helping Professor Lockhart answer his fan mail," said Professor
McGonagall.
"Oh n- Professor, can't I
go and do the trophy room, too?" said Harry desperately.
"Certainly not," said
Professor McGonagall, raising her eyebrows. "Professor Lockhart requested
you particularly. Eight o'clock sharp, both of you."
Harry and Ron slouched into the
Great Hall in states of deepest gloom, Hermione behind them, wearing a well-you-did-break-school-rules
sort of expression. Harry didn't enjoy his shepherd's pie as much as he'd
thought. Both he and Ron felt they'd got the worse deal.
"Filch'll have me there all
night," said Ron heavily. "No magic! There must be about a hundred
cups in that room. I'm no good at Muggle cleaning."
"I'd swap anytime,"
said Harry hollowly. "I've had loads of practice with the Dursleys.
Answering Lockhart's fan mail...he'll be a nightmare..."
Saturday afternoon seemed to
melt away, and in what seemed like no time, it was five minutes to eight, and
Harry was dragging his feet along the second-floor corridor to Lockhart's
office. He gritted his teeth and knocked.
The door flew open at once.
Lockhart beamed down at him.
"Ah, here's the
scalawag!" he said. "Come in, Harry, come in -"
Shining brightly on the walls by
the light of many candles were countless framed photographs of Lockhart. He had
even signed a few of them. Another large pile lay on his desk.
"You can address the
envelopes!" Lockhart told Harry, as though this was a huge treat.
"This first one's to Gladys
Gudgeon, bless her - huge fan of mine -"
The minutes snailed by. Harry
let Lockhart's voice wash over him, occasionally saying, "Mmm" and
"Right" and "Yeah." Now and then he caught a phrase like,
"Fame's a fickle friend, Harry," or "Celebrity is as celebrity
does, remember that."
The candles burned lower and
lower, making the light dance over the many moving faces of Lockhart watching
him. Harry moved his aching hand over what felt like the thousandth envelope,
writing out Veronica Smethley's address. It must be nearly time to leave,
Harry thought miserably, please let it be nearly time... And then he heard something - something quite apart from
the spitting of the dying candles and Lockhart's prattle about his fans.
It was a voice, a voice to chill
the bone marrow, a voice of breathtaking, ice-cold venom.
"Come...come to me...Let me
rip you...Let me tear you...Let me kill you..." Harry gave a huge jump and a large lilac blot appeared on
Veronica Smethley's street.
"What?" he said
loudly.
"I know!" said
Lockhart. "Six solid months at the top of the best-seller list! Broke all
records!"
"No," said Harry
frantically. "That voice!"
"Sorry?" said
Lockhart, looking puzzled. "What voice?"
"That - that voice that
said - didn't you hear it?"
Lockhart was looking at Harry in
high astonishment.
"What are you talking
about, Harry? Perhaps you're getting a little drowsy? Great Scott - look at the
time! We've been here nearly four hours! I'd never have believed it - the
time's flown, hasn't it?"
Harry didn't answer. He was
straining his ears to hear the voice again, but there was no sound now except
for Lockhart telling him he mustn't expect a treat like this every time he got
detention. Feeling dazed, Harry left.
It was so late that the
Gryffindor common room was almost empty. Harry went straight up to the
dormitory. Ron wasn't back yet. Harry pulled on his pajamas, got into bed, and
waited. Half an hour later, Ron arrived, nursing his right arm and bringing a
strong smell of polish into the darkened room.
"My muscles have all seized
up," he groaned, sinking on his bed. "Fourteen times he made me buff
up that Quidditch cup before he was satisfied. And then I had another slug
attack all over a Special Award for Services to the School. Took ages to get
the slime off...How was it with Lockhart?"
Keeping his voice low so as not
to wake Neville, Dean, and Seamus, Harry told Ron exactly what he had heard.
"And Lockhart said he
couldn't hear it?" said Ron. Harry could see him frowning in the
moonlight. "D'you think he was lying? But I don't get it - even someone
invisible would've had to open the door."
"I know," said Harry,
lying back in his four-poster and staring at the canopy above him. "I
don't get it either." CHAPTER EIGHT THE DEATHDAY PARTY
October arrived, spreading a damp
chill over the grounds and into the castle. Madam Pomfrey, the nurse, was kept
busy by a sudden spate of colds among the staff and students. Her Pepperup
potion worked instantly, though it left the drinker smoking at the ears for
several hours afterward. Ginny Weasley, who had been looking pale, was bullied
into taking some by Percy. The steam pouring from under her vivid hair gave the
impression that her whole head was on fire. Raindrops the size of bullets
thundered on the castle windows for days on end; the lake rose, the flower beds
turned into muddy streams, and Hagrid's pumpkins swelled to the size of garden
sheds. Oliver Wood's enthusiasm for regular training sessions, however, was not
dampened, which was why Harry was to be found, late one stormy Saturday
afternoon a few days before Halloween, returning to Gryffindor Tower, drenched
to the skin and splattered with mud.
Even aside from the rain and
wind it hadn't been a happy practice session. Fred and George, who had been
spying on the Slytherin team, had seen for themselves the speed of those new
Nimbus Two Thousand and Ones. They reported that the Slytherin team was no more
than seven greenish blurs, shooting through the air like missiles. As Harry
squelched along the deserted corridor he came across somebody who looked just as
preoccupied as he was. Nearly Headless Nick, the ghost of Gryffindor Tower, was
staring morosely out of a window, muttering under his breath, "...don't
fulfill their requirements...half an inch, if that..."
"Hello, Nick," said
Harry.
"Hello, hello," said
Nearly Headless Nick, starting and looking round. He wore a dashing, plumed hat
on his long curly hair, and a tunic with a ruff, which concealed the fact that
his neck was almost completely severed. He was pale as smoke, and Harry could
see right through him to the dark sky and torrential rain outside.
"You look troubled, young
Potter," said Nick, folding a transparent letter as he spoke and tucking
it inside his doublet.
"So do you," said
Harry.
"Ah," Nearly Headless
Nick waved an elegant hand, "a matter of no importance...It's not as though
I really wanted to join...Thought I'd apply, but apparently I 'don't fulfill
requirements' -"
In spite of his airy tone, there
was a look of great bitterness on his face.
"But you would think,
wouldn't you," he erupted suddenly, pulling the letter back out of his
pocket, "that getting hit forty-five times in the neck with a blunt axe
would qualify you to join the Headless Hunt?"
"Oh - yes," said
Harry, who was obviously supposed to agree.
"I mean, nobody wishes more
than I do that it had all been quick and clean, and my head had come off
properly, I mean, it would have saved me a great deal of pain and ridicule.
However -" Nearly Headless Nick shook his letter open and read furiously:
"'We can only accept
huntsmen whose heads have parted company with their bodies. You will appreciate
that it would be impossible otherwise for members to participate in hunt
activities such as Horseback Head-Juggling and Head Polo. It is with the
greatest regret, therefore, that I must inform you that you do not fulfill our
requirements. With very best wishes, Sir Patrick Delaney-Podmore.'"
Fuming, Nearly Headless Nick
stuffed the letter away.
"Half an inch of skin and
sinew holding my neck on, Harry! Most people would think that's good and
beheaded, but oh, no, it's not enough for Sir Properly
Decapitated-Podmore."
Nearly Headless Nick took
several deep breaths and then said, in a far calmer tone, "So - what's
bothering you? Anything I can do?"
"No," said Harry.
"Not unless you know where we can get seven free Nimbus Two Thousand and
Ones for our match against Sly-"
The rest of Harry's sentence was
drowned out by a high-pitched mewling from somewhere near his ankles. He looked
down and found himself gazing into a pair of lamp-like yellow eyes. It was Mrs.
Norris, the skeletal gray cat who was used by the caretaker, Argus Filch, as a
sort of deputy in his endless battle against students.
"You'd better get out of
here, Harry," said Nick quickly. "Filch isn't in a good mood - he's
got the flu and some third years accidentally plastered frog brains all over
the ceiling in dungeon five. He's been cleaning all morning, and if he sees you
dripping mud all over the place -"
"Right," said Harry, backing away from the accusing
stare of Mrs. Norris, but not quickly enough. Drawn to the spot by the
mysterious power that seemed to connect him with his foul cat, Argus Filch
burst suddenly through a tapestry to Harry's right, wheezing and looking wildly
about for the rule-breaker. There was a thick tartan scarf bound around his
head, and his nose was unusually purple.
"Filth!" he shouted,
his jowls aquiver, his eyes popping alarmingly as he pointed at the muddy
puddle that had dripped from Harry's Quidditch robes. "Mess and muck
everywhere! I've had enough of it, I tell you! Follow me, Potter!"
So Harry waved a gloomy good-bye
to Nearly Headless Nick and followed Filch back downstairs, doubling the number
of muddy footprints on the floor. Harry had never been inside Filch's office
before; it was a place most students avoided. The room was dingy and
windowless, lit by a single oil lamp dangling from the low ceiling. A faint
smell of fried fish lingered about the place. Wooden filing cabinets stood
around the walls; from their labels, Harry could see that they contained details
of every pupil Filch had ever punished. Fred and George Weasley had an entire
drawer to themselves. A highly polished collection of chains and manacles hung
on the wall behind Filch's desk. It was common knowledge that he was always
begging Dumbledore to let him suspend students by their ankles from the
ceiling.
Filch grabbed a quill from a pot
on his desk and began shuffling around looking for parchment.
"Dung," he muttered
furiously, "great sizzling dragon bogies...frog brains...rat intestines...I've
had enough of it...make an example...where's the form...yes..."
He retrieved a large roll of
parchment from his desk drawer and stretched it out in front of him, dipping
his long black quill into the ink pot.
"Name...Harry Potter. Crime..." "It was only a bit of mud!" said Harry.
"It's only a bit of mud to
you, boy, but to me it's an extra hour scrubbing!" shouted Filch, a drip
shivering unpleasantly at the end of his bulbous nose. "Crime...befouling
the castle...suggested sentence..."
Dabbing at his streaming nose,
Filch squinted unpleasantly at Harry who waited with bated breath for his
sentence to fall.
But as Filch lowered his quill,
there was a great BANG! on the ceiling of the office, which made the oil lamp
rattle.
"PEEVES!" Filch
roared, flinging down his quill in a transport of rage. "I'll have you
this time, I'll have you!"
And without a backward glance at
Harry, Filch ran flat-footed from the office, Mrs. Norris streaking alongside
him.
Peeves was the school
poltergeist, a grinning, airborne menace who lived to cause havoc and distress.
Harry didn't much like Peeves, but couldn't help feeling grateful for his
timing. Hopefully, whatever Peeves had done (and it sounded as though he'd
wrecked something very big this time) would distract Filch from Harry.
Thinking that he should probably
wait for Filch to come back, Harry sank into a moth-eaten chair next to the
desk. There was only one thing on it apart from his half-completed form: a
large, glossy, purple envelope with silver lettering on the front. With a quick
glance at the door to check that Filch wasn't on his way back, Harry picked up
the envelope and read:
Kwikspell
A Correspondence Course in
Beginners' Magic.
Intrigued, Harry flicked the envelope open and pulled out
the sheaf of parchment inside. More curly silver writing on the front page
said:
Feel out of step
in the world of modern magic? Find yourself making excuses not to perform
simple spells? Ever been taunted for your woeful wandwork?
There is an answer!
Kwikspell is an all-new,
fail-safe, quick-result, easy-learn course. Hundreds of witches and wizards
have benefited from the Kwikspell method!
Madam Z. Nettles of Topsham
writes:
"I had no memory for
incantations and my potions were a family joke! Now, after a Kwikspell course,
I am the center of attention at parties and friends beg for the recipe of my
Scintillation Solution!"
Warlock D. J. Prod of Didsbury
says:
"My wife used to sneer at
my feeble charms, but one month into your fabulous Kwikspell course and I
succeeded in turning her into a yak! Thank you, Kwikspell!"
Fascinated, Harry thumbed
through the rest of the envelope's contents. Why on earth did Filch want a
Kwikspell course? Did this mean he wasn't a proper wizard? Harry was just
reading "Lesson One: Holding Your Wand (Some Useful Tips)" when shuffling
footsteps outside told him Filch was coming back. Stuffing the parchment back
into the envelope, Harry threw it back onto the desk just as the door opened.
Filch was looking triumphant.
"That vanishing cabinet was
extremely valuable!" he was saying gleefully to Mrs. Norris. "We'll
have Peeves out this time, my sweet -"
His eyes fell on Harry and then
darted to the Kwikspell envelope, which, Harry realized too late, was lying two
feet away from where it had started.
Filch's pasty face went brick
red. Harry braced himself for a tidal wave of fury. Filch hobbled across to his
desk, snatched up the envelope, and threw it into a drawer.
"Have you - did you read
-?" he sputtered.
"No," Harry lied quickly.
Filch's knobbly hands were
twisting together.
"If I thought you'd read my
private -not that it's mine - for a friend - be that as it may - however
-"
Harry was staring at him,
alarmed; Filch had never looked madder. His eyes were popping, a tic was going
in one of his pouchy cheeks, and the tartan scarf didn't help.
"Very well - go - and don't
breathe a word - not that - however, if you didn't read - go now, I have to
write up Peeves' report - go -"
Amazed at his luck, Harry sped
out of the office, up the corridor, and back upstairs. To escape from Filch's
office without punishment was probably some kind of school record.
"Harry! Harry! Did it
work?"
Nearly Headless Nick came
gliding out of a classroom. Behind him, Harry could see the wreckage of a large
black-and-gold cabinet that appeared to have been dropped from a great height.
"I persuaded Peeves to
crash it right over Filch's office," said Nick eagerly. "Thought it
might distract him -"
"Was that you?" said
Harry gratefully. "Yeah, it worked, I didn't even get detention.
Thanks, Nick!"
They set off up the corridor
together. Nearly Headless Nick, Harry noticed, was still holding Sir Patrick's
rejection letter... "I wish there was something I could do for you about
the Headless Hunt," Harry said. Nearly Headless Nick stopped in his tracks
and Harry walked right through him. He wished he hadn't; it was like stepping
through an icy shower.
"But there is
something you could do for me," said Nick excitedly. "Harry - would I
be asking too much - but no, you wouldn't want -"
"What is it?" said
Harry. "Well, this Halloween will be my five hundredth deathday,"
said Nearly Headless Nick, drawing himself up and looking dignified.
"Oh," said Harry, not
sure whether he should look sorry or happy about this. "Right."
"I'm holding a party down
in one of the roomier dungeons. Friends will be coming from all over the
country. It would be such an honor if you would attend. Mr. Weasley and Miss
Granger would be most welcome, too, of course - but I daresay you'd rather go
to the school feast?" He watched Harry on tenterhooks.
"No," said Harry
quickly, "I'll come -"
"My dear boy! Harry Potter,
at my deathday party! And -" he hesitated, looking excited "- do you
think you could possibly mention to Sir Patrick how very frightening and
impressive you find me?"
"Of - of course," said
Harry.
Nearly Headless Nick beamed at
him.
"A deathday party?"
said Hermione keenly when Harry had changed at last and joined her and Ron in
the common room. "I bet there aren't many living people who can say
they've been to one of those - it'll be fascinating!"
"Why would anyone want to
celebrate the day they died?" said Ron, who was halfway through his
Potions homework and grumpy. "Sounds dead depressing to me..."
Rain was still lashing the
windows, which were now inky black, but inside all looked bright and cheerful.
The firelight glowed over the countless squashy armchairs where people sat
reading, talking, doing homework or, in the case of Fred and George Weasley,
trying to find out what would happen if you fed a Filibuster firework to a
salamander. Fred had "rescued" the brilliant orange, fire-dwelling
lizard from a Care of Magical Creatures class and it was now smouldering gently
on a table surrounded by a knot of curious people.
Harry was at the point of
telling Ron and Hermione about Filch and the Kwikspell course when the
salamander suddenly whizzed into the air, emitting loud sparks and bangs as it
whirled wildly round the room. The sight of Percy bellowing himself hoarse at
Fred and George, the spectacular display of tangerine stars showering from the
salamander's mouth, and its escape into the fire, with accompanying explosions,
drove both Filch and the Kwikspell envelope from Harry's mind.
By the time Halloween arrived,
Harry was regretting his rash promise to go to the deathday party. The rest of
the school was happily anticipating their Halloween feast;
the Great Hall had been decorated with the
usual live bats, Hagrid's vast pumpkins had been carved into lanterns large
enough for three men to sit in, and there were rumors that Dumbledore had booked
a troupe of dancing skeletons for the entertainment.
"A promise is a
promise," Hermione reminded Harry bossily. "You said you'd go to the
deathday party."
So at seven o'clock, Harry, Ron,
and Hermione walked straight past the doorway to the packed Great Hall, which
was glittering invitingly with gold plates and candles, and directed their
steps instead toward the dungeons.
The passageway leading to Nearly
Headless Nick's party had been lined with candles, too, though the effect was
far from cheerful: These were long, thin, jet-black tapers, all burning bright
blue, casting a dim, ghostly light even over their own living faces. The
temperature dropped with every step they took. As Harry shivered and drew his
robes tightly around him, he heard what sounded like a thousand fingernails
scraping an enormous blackboard.
"Is that supposed to be music?"
Ron whispered. They turned a corner and saw Nearly Headless Nick standing at a
doorway hung with black velvet drapes.
"My dear friends," he
said mournfully. "Welcome, welcome...so pleased you could come..."
He swept off his plumed hat and
bowed them inside.
It was an incredible sight. The
dungeon was full of hundreds of pearly-white, translucent people, mostly
drifting around a crowded dance floor, waltzing to the dreadful, quavering
sound of thirty musical saws, played by an orchestra on a raised, black-draped
platform. A chandelier overhead blazed midnight-blue with a thousand more black
candles. Their breath rose in a mist before them; it was like stepping into a freezer.
"Shall we have a look
around?" Harry suggested, wanting to warm up his feet.
"Careful not to walk
through anyone," said Ron nervously, and they set off around the edge of
the dance floor. They passed a group of gloomy nuns, a ragged man wearing chains,
and the Fat Friar, a cheerful Hufflepuff ghost, who was talking to a knight
with an arrow sticking out of his forehead. Harry wasn't surprised to see that
the Bloody Baron, a gaunt, staring Slytherin ghost covered in silver
bloodstains, was being given a wide berth by the other ghosts.
"Oh, no," said
Hermione, stopping abruptly. "Turn back, turn back, I don't want to talk
to Moaning Myrtle -"
"Who?" said Harry as
they backtracked quickly.
"She haunts one of the
toilets in the girls' bathroom on the first floor," said Hermione.
"She haunts a toilet?"
"Yes. It's been
out-of-order all year because she keeps having tantrums and flooding the place.
I never went in there anyway if I could avoid it; it's awful trying to have a
pee with her wailing at you -" "Look, food!" said Ron. On the other side of the dungeon was a long table, also
covered in black velvet. They approached it eagerly but next moment had stopped
in their tracks, horrified. The smell was quite disgusting. Large, rotten fish
were laid on handsome silver platters; cakes, burned charcoal-black, were
heaped on salvers; there was a great maggoty haggis, a slab of cheese covered
in furry green mold and, in pride of place, an enormous gray cake in the shape
of a tombstone, with tar-like icing forming the words, SIR NICHOLAS DE MIMSY-PORPINGTON DIED 31ST OCTOBER, 1492
Harry watched, amazed, as a
portly ghost approached the table, crouched low, and walked through it, his
mouth held wide so that it passed through one of the stinking salmon.
"Can you taste it if you
walk though it?" Harry asked him.
"Almost," said the
ghost sadly, and he drifted away.
"I expect they've let it
rot to give it a stronger flavor," said Hermione knowledgeably, pinching
her nose and leaning closer to look at the putrid haggis.
"Can we move? I feel
sick," said Ron.
They had barely turned around,
however, when a little man swooped suddenly from under the table and came to a
halt in midair before them.
"Hello, Peeves," said
Harry cautiously.
Unlike the ghosts around them,
Peeves the Poltergeist was the very reverse of pale and transparent. He was
wearing a bright orange party hat, a revolving bow tie, and a broad grin on his
wide, wicked face.
"Nibbles?" he said
sweetly, offering them a bowl of peanuts covered in fungus.
"No thanks," said
Hermione.
"Heard you talking about
poor Myrtle," said Peeves, his eyes dancing. "Rude you was
about poor Myrtle." He took a deep breath and bellowed, "OY!
MYRTLE!"
"Oh, no, Peeves, don't tell
her what I said, she'll be really upset," Hermione whispered frantically.
"I didn't mean it, I don't mind her - er, hello, Myrtle."
The squat ghost of a girl had
glided over. She had the glummest face Harry had ever seen, half-hidden behind
lank hair and thick, pearly spectacles.
"What?" she said
sulkily.
"How are you, Myrtle?"
said Hermione in a falsely bright voice. "It's nice to see you out of the
toilet."
Myrtle sniffed.
"Miss Granger was just
talking about you -" said Peeves slyly in Myrtle's ear. "Just saying
-"
"Just saying - saying - how
nice you look tonight," said Hermione, glaring at Peeves.
Myrtle eyed Hermione
suspiciously.
"You're making fun of
me," she said, silver tears welling rapidly in her small, see-through
eyes.
"No - honestly - didn't I
just say how nice Myrtle's looking?" said Hermione, nudging Harry and Ron
painfully in the ribs.
"Oh, yeah -"
"She did -"
"Don't lie to me,"
Myrtle gasped, tears now flooding down her face, while Peeves chuckled happily
over her shoulder. "D'you think I don't know what people call me behind my
back? Fat Myrtle! Ugly Myrtle! Miserable, moaning, moping Myrtle!"
"You've forgotten
pimply," Peeves hissed in her ear.
Moaning Myrtle burst into
anguished sobs and fled from the dungeon. Peeves shot after her, pelting her
with moldy peanuts, yelling, "Pimply! Pimply!"
"Oh, dear," said
Hermione sadly.
Nearly Headless Nick now drifted
toward them through the crowd.
"Enjoying yourselves?"
"Oh, yes," they lied.
"Not a bad turnout,"
said Nearly Headless Nick proudly. "The Wailing Widow came all the way up
from Kent...It's nearly time for my speech, I'd better go and warn the
orchestra..."
The orchestra, however, stopped
playing at that very moment. They, and everyone else in the dungeon, fell
silent, looking around in excitement, as a hunting horn sounded.
"Oh, here we go," said
Nearly Headless Nick bitterly.
Through the dungeon wall burst a
dozen ghost horses, each ridden by a headless horseman. The assembly clapped
wildly; Harry started to clap, too, but stopped quickly at the sight of Nick's
face.
The horses galloped into the middle
of the dance floor and halted, rearing and plunging. At the front of the pack
was a large ghost who held his bearded head under his arm, from which position
he was blowing the horn. The ghost leapt down, lifted his head high in the air
so he could see over the crowd (everyone laughed), and strode over to Nearly
Headless Nick, squashing his head back onto his neck.
"Nick!" he roared.
"How are you? Head still hanging in there?"
He gave a hearty guffaw and
clapped Nearly Headless Nick on the shoulder.
"Welcome, Patrick,"
said Nick stiffly.
"Live 'uns!" said Sir
Patrick, spotting Harry, Ron, and Hermione and giving a huge, fake jump of
astonishment, so that his head fell off again (the crowd howled with laughter).
"Very amusing," said
Nearly Headless Nick darkly.
"Don't mind Nick!"
shouted Sir Patrick's head from the floor. "Still upset we won't let him
join the Hunt! But I mean to say - look at the fellow -"
"I think," said Harry
hurriedly, at a meaningful look from Nick, "Nick's very - frightening and
- er -"
"Ha!" yelled Sir
Patrick's head.
"Bet he asked you to say
that!"
"If I could have everyone's
attention, it's time for my speech!" said Nearly Headless Nick loudly,
striding toward the podium and climbing into an icy blue spotlight.
"My late lamented lords,
ladies, and gentlemen, it is my great sorrow..."
But nobody heard much more. Sir
Patrick and the rest of the Headless Hunt had just started a game of Head
Hockey and the crowd were turning to watch. Nearly Headless Nick tried vainly
to recapture his audience, but gave up as Sir Patrick's head went sailing past
him to loud cheers.
Harry was very cold by now, not
to mention hungry.
"I can't stand much more of
this," Ron muttered, his teeth chattering, as the orchestra ground back
into action and the ghosts swept back onto the dance floor.
"Let's go," Harry
agreed.
They backed toward the door,
nodding and beaming at anyone who looked at them, and a minute later were
hurrying back up the passageway full of black candles.
"Pudding might not be
finished yet," said Ron hopefully, leading the way toward the steps to the
entrance hall.
And then Harry heard it.
"...rip...tear...kill..." It was the same voice, the same cold, murderous voice he
had heard in Lockhart's office.
He stumbled to a halt, clutching
at the stone wall, listening with all his might, looking around, squinting up
and down the dimly lit passageway.
"Harry, what're you
-?"
"It's that voice again -
shut up a minute -"
"...soo hungry...for
so long..." "Listen!" said Harry urgently, and Ron and
Hermione froze, watching him.
"...kill...time to
kill..." The voice was growing fainter. Harry was sure it was
moving away - moving upward. A mixture of fear and excitement gripped him as he
stared at the dark ceiling; how could it be moving upward? Was it a phantom, to
whom stone ceilings didn't matter?
"This way," he
shouted, and he began to run, up the stairs, into the entrance hall. It was no
good hoping to hear anything here, the babble of talk from the Halloween feast
was echoing out of the Great Hall. Harry sprinted up the marble staircase to
the first floor, Ron and Hermione clattering behind him.
"Harry, what're we -"
"SHH!"
Harry strained his ears.
Distantly, from the floor above, and growing fainter still, he heard the voice:
"...I smell blood...I SMELL BLOOD!"
His stomach lurched -
"It's going to kill
someone!" he shouted, and ignoring Ron's and Hermione's bewildered faces,
he ran up the next flight of steps three at a time, trying to listen over his
own pounding footsteps - Harry hurtled around the whole of the second floor, Ron
and Hermione panting behind him, not stopping until they turned a corner into
the last, deserted passage.
"Harry, what was
that all about?" said Ron, wiping sweat off his face. "I couldn't
hear anything..." But Hermione gave a sudden gasp, pointing down the
corridor.
"Look!"
Something was shining on the
wall ahead. They approached slowly, squinting through the darkness. Foot-high
words had been daubed on the wall between two windows, shimmering in the light
cast by the flaming torches. THE CHAMBER OF SECRETS HAS BEEN OPENED. ENEMIES OF THE HEIR, BEWARE.
"What's that thing -
hanging underneath?" said Ron, a slight quiver in his voice.
As they edged nearer, Harry
almost slipped - there was a large puddle of water on the floor; Ron and
Hermione grabbed him, and they inched toward the message, eyes fixed on a dark
shadow beneath it. All three of them realized what it was at once, and leapt
backward with a splash.
Mrs. Norris, the caretaker's
cat, was hanging by her tail from the torch bracket. She was stiff as a board,
her eyes wide and staring.
For a few seconds, they didn't
move. Then Ron said, "Let's get out of here."
"Shouldn't we try and help
-" Harry began awkwardly.
"Trust me," said Ron.
"We don't want to be found here."
But it was too late. A rumble,
as though of distant thunder, told them that the feast had just ended. From
either end of the corridor where they stood came the sound of hundreds of feet
climbing the stairs, and the loud, happy talk of well-fed people; next moment,
students were crashing into the passage from both ends.
The chatter, the bustle, the
noise died suddenly as the people in front spotted the hanging cat. Harry, Ron,
and Hermione stood alone, in the middle of the corridor, as silence fell among
the mass of students pressing forward to see the grisly sight.
Then someone shouted through the
quiet.
"Enemies of the Heir,
beware! You'll be next, Mudbloods!"
It was Draco Malfoy. He had
pushed to the front of the crowd, his cold eyes alive, his usually bloodless
face flushed, as he grinned at the sight of the hanging, immobile cat. CHAPTER NINE THE WRITING ON THE WALL
What's going on here? What's
going on?" Attracted no doubt by
Malfoy's shout, Argus Filch came shouldering his way through the crowd. Then he
saw Mrs. Norris and fell back, clutching his face in horror.
"My cat! My cat! What's
happened to Mrs. Norris?" he shrieked.
And his popping eyes fell on
Harry.
"You!" he
screeched. "You! You've murdered my cat! You've killed her! I'll
kill you! I'll -"
"Argus!" Dumbledore had arrived on the scene, followed by a number
of other teachers. In seconds, he had swept past Harry, Ron, and Hermione and
detached Mrs. Norris from the torch bracket.
"Come with me, Argus,"
he said to Filch. "You, too, Mr. Potter, Mr. Weasley, Miss Granger."
Lockhart stepped forward
eagerly.
"My office is nearest,
Headmaster - just upstairs - please feel free -"
"Thank you, Gilderoy,"
said Dumbledore.
The silent crowd parted to let
them pass. Lockhart, looking excited and important, hurried after Dumbledore;
so did Professors McGonagall and Snape.
As they entered Lockhart's
darkened office there was a flurry of movement across the walls; Harry saw
several of the Lockharts in the pictures dodging out of sight, their hair in
rollers. The real Lockhart lit the candles on his desk and stood back.
Dumbledore lay Mrs. Norris on the polished surface and began to examine her.
Harry, Ron, and Hermione exchanged tense looks and sank into chairs outside the
pool of candlelight, watching.
The tip of Dumbledore's long,
crooked nose was barely an inch from Mrs. Norris's fur. He was looking at her
closely through his half-moon spectacles, his long fingers gently prodding and
poking. Professor McGonagall was bent almost as close, her eyes narrowed. Snape
loomed behind them, half in shadow, wearing a most peculiar expression: It was
as though he was trying hard not to smile. And Lockhart was hovering around all
of them, making suggestions.
"It was definitely a curse
that killed her - probably the Transmogrifian Torture - I've seen it used many
times, so unlucky I wasn't there, I know the very countercurse that would have
saved her..."
Lockhart's comments were
punctuated by Filch's dry, racking sobs. He was slumped in a chair by the desk,
unable to look at Mrs. Norris, his face in his hands. Much as he detested
Filch, Harry couldn't help feeling a bit sorry for him, though not nearly as
sorry as he felt for himself If Dumbledore believed Filch, he would be expelled
for sure.
Dumbledore was now muttering
strange words under his breath and tapping Mrs. Norris with his wand but
nothing happened. She continued to look as though she had been recently
stuffed.
"...I remember something very
similar happening in Ouagadogou," said Lockhart, "a series of
attacks, the full story's in my autobiography, I was able to provide the
townsfolk with various amulets, which cleared the matter up at once..."
The photographs of Lockhart on
the walls were all nodding in agreement as he talked. One of them had forgotten
to remove his hair net.
At last Dumbledore straightened
up.
"She's not dead,
Argus," he said softly.
Lockhart stopped abruptly in the
middle of counting the number of murders he had prevented. "Not dead?" choked Filch, looking through his
fingers at Mrs. Norris. "But why's she all - all stiff and frozen?"
"She has been
Petrified," said Dumbledore ("Ah! I thought so!" said Lockhart).
"But how, I cannot say..."
"Ask him!"
shrieked Filch, turning his blotched and tearstained face to Harry.
"No second year could have
done this," said Dumbledore firmly. "it would take Dark Magic of the
most advanced -" "He did it, he did it!" Filch spat, his pouchy
face purpling. "You saw what he wrote on the wall! He found - in my office
- he knows I'm a - I'm a -" Filch's face worked horribly. "He knows
I'm a Squib!" he finished.
"I never touched
Mrs. Norris!" Harry said loudly, uncomfortably aware of everyone looking
at him, including all the Lockharts on the walls. "And I don't even know
what a Squib is."
"Rubbish!" snarled
Filch. "He saw my Kwikspell letter!"
"If I might speak, Headmaster,"
said Snape from the shadows, and Harry's sense of foreboding increased; he was
sure nothing Snape had to say was going to do him any good.
"Potter and his friends may
have simply been in the wrong place at the wrong time," he said, a slight
sneer curling his mouth as though he doubted it. "But we do have a set of
suspicious circumstances here. Why was he in the upstairs corridor at all? Why
wasn't he at the Halloween feast?"
Harry, Ron and Hermione all
launched into an explanation about the deathday party. "...there were
hundreds of ghosts, they'll tell you we were there -"
"But why not join the feast
afterward?" said Snape, his black eyes glittering in the candlelight.
"Why go up to that corridor?"
Ron and Hermione looked at
Harry.
"Because - because -"
Harry said, his heart thumping very fast; something told him it would sound
very far-fetched if he told them he had been led there by a bodiless voice no
one but he could hear, "because we were tired and wanted to go to
bed," he said.
"Without any supper?"
said Snape, a triumphant smile flickering across his gaunt face. "I didn't
think ghosts provided food fit for living people at their parties."
"We weren't hungry,"
said Ron loudly as his stomach gave a huge rumble.
Snape's nasty smile widened.
"I suggest, Headmaster,
that Potter is not being entirely truthful," he said. "It might be a
good idea if he were deprived of certain privileges until he is ready to tell
us the whole story. I personally feel he should be taken off the Gryffindor Quidditch
team until he is ready to be honest."
"Really, Severus,"
said Professor McGonagall sharply, "I see no reason to stop the boy
playing Quidditch. This cat wasn't hit over the head with a broomstick. There
is no evidence at all that Potter has done anything wrong."
Dumbledore was giving Harry a
searching look. His twinkling light-blue gaze made Harry feel as though he were
being X-rayed.
"Innocent until proven
guilty, Severus," he said firmly.
Snape looked furious.
So did Filch.
"My cat has been
Petrified!" he shrieked, his eyes popping. "I want to see some punishment!" "We will be able to cure her, Argus," said
Dumbledore patiently. "Professor Sprout recently managed to procure some
Mandrakes. As soon as they have reached their full size, I will have a potion
made that will revive Mrs. Norris."
"I'll make it,"
Lockhart butted in. "I must have done it a hundred times. I could whip up
a Mandrake Restorative Draught in my sleep -"
"Excuse me," said
Snape icily. "But I believe I am the Potions master at this school."
There was a very awkward pause.
"You may go,"
Dumbledore said to Harry, Ron, and Hermione.
They went, as quickly as they
could without actually running. When they were a floor up from Lockhart's
office, they turned into an empty classroom and closed the door quietly behind
them. Harry squinted at his friends' darkened faces.
"D'you think I should have
told them about that voice I heard?"
"No," said Ron,
without hesitation. "Hearing voices no one else can hear isn't a good
sign, even in the wizarding world."
Something in Ron's voice made
Harry ask, "You do believe me, don't you?"
"'Course I do," said
Ron quickly. "But - you must admit it's weird..."
"I know it's weird,"
said Harry. "The whole thing's weird. What was that writing on the wall
about? The Chamber Has Been Opened...What's that supposed to mean?" "You know, it rings a sort of bell," said Ron
slowly. "I think someone told me a story about a secret chamber at
Hogwarts once...might've been Bill..."
"And what on earth's a
Squib?" said Harry.
To his surprise, Ron stifled a
snigger.
"Well - it's not funny
really - but as it's Filch," he said. "A Squib is someone who was
born into a wizarding family but hasn't got any magic powers. Kind of the
opposite of Muggle-born wizards, but Squibs are quite unusual. If Filch's
trying to learn magic from a Kwikspell course, I reckon he must be a Squib. It
would explain a lot. Like why he hates students so much." Ron gave a
satisfied smile. "He's bitter."
A clock chimed somewhere.
"Midnight," said
Harry. "We'd better get to bed before Snape comes along and tries to frame
us for something else."
For a few days, the school could
talk of little else but the attack on Mrs. Norris. Filch kept it fresh in
everyone's minds by pacing the spot where she had been attacked, as though he
thought the attacker might come back. Harry had seen him scrubbing the message
on the wall with Mrs. Skower's All-Purpose Magical Mess Remover, but to no
effect; the words still gleamed as brightly as ever on the stone. When Filch
wasn't guarding the scene of the crime, he was skulking red-eyed through the
corridors, lunging out at unsuspecting students and trying to put them in
detention for things like "breathing loudly' and "looking
happy."
Ginny Weasley seemed very
disturbed by Mrs. Norris's fate. According to Ron, she was a great cat lover.
"But you haven't really got
to know Mrs. Norris," Ron told her bracingly. "Honestly, we're much
better off without her." Ginny's lip trembled. "Stuff like this
doesn't often happen at Hogwarts," Ron assured her. "They'll catch
the maniac who did it and have him out of here in no time. I just hope he's got
time to Petrify Filch before he's expelled. I'm only joking -" Ron added
hastily as Ginny blanched.
The attack had also had an
effect on Hermione. It was quite usual for Hermione to spend a lot of time
reading, but she was now doing almost nothing else. Nor could Harry and Ron get
much response from her when they asked what she was up to, and not until the
following Wednesday did they find out.
Harry had been held back in
Potions, where Snape had made him stay behind to scrape tubeworms off the
desks. After a hurried lunch, he went upstairs to meet Ron in the library, and
saw Justin Finch-Fletchley, the Hufflepuff boy from Herbology, coming toward
him. Harry had just opened his mouth to say hello when Justin caught sight of
him, turned abruptly, and sped off in the opposite direction.
Harry found Ron at the back of
the library, measuring his History of Magic homework. Professor Binns had asked
for a three foot long composition on "The Medieval Assembly of European
Wizards."
"I don't believe it, I'm
still eight inches short said Ron furiously, letting go of his parchment, which
sprang back into a roll. "And Hermione's done four feet seven inches and
her writing's tiny."
"Where is she?" asked
Harry, grabbing the tape measure and unrolling his own homework.
"Somewhere over
there," said Ron, pointing along the shelves. "Looking for another
book. I think she's trying to read the whole library before Christmas."
Harry told Ron about Justin
Finch-Fletchley running away from him.
"Dunno why you care. I
thought he was a bit of an idiot," said Ron, scribbling away, making his
writing as large as possible. "All that junk about Lockhart being so great
-"
Hermione emerged from between the
bookshelves. She looked irritable and at last seemed ready to talk to them.
"All the copies of Hogwarts,
A History have been taken out," she said, sitting down next to Harry
and Ron. "And there's a two-week waiting list. I wish I hadn't left
my copy at home, but I couldn't fit it in my trunk with all the Lockhart
books."
"Why do you want it?"
said Harry. "The same reason everyone else wants it," said
Hermione, "to read up on the legend of the Chamber of Secrets."
"What's that?" said
Harry quickly.
"That's just it. I can't
remember," said Hermione, biting her lip. "And I can't find the story
anywhere else -"
"Hermione, let me read your
composition," said Ron desperately, checking his watch.
"No, I won't," said
Hermione, suddenly severe. "You've had ten days to finish it -"
"I only need another two
inches, come on -"
The bell rang. Ron and Hermione
led the way to History of Magic, bickering.
History of Magic was the dullest
subject on their schedule. Professor Binns, who taught it, was their only ghost
teacher, and the most exciting thing that ever happened in his classes was his
entering the room through the blackboard. Ancient and shriveled, many people
said he hadn't noticed he was dead. He had simply got up to teach one day and
left his body behind him in an armchair in front of the staff room fire; his
routine had not varied in the slightest since.
Today was as boring as ever.
Professor Binns opened his notes and began to read in a flat drone like an old
vacuum cleaner until nearly everyone in the class was in a deep stupor,
occasionally coming to long enough to copy down a name or date, then falling
asleep again. He had been speaking for half an hour when something happened
that had never happened before. Hermione put up her hand.
Professor Binns, glancing up in
the middle of a deadly dull lecture on the International Warlock Convention of
1289, looked amazed.
"Miss - er -?"
"Granger, Professor. I was
wondering if you could tell us anything about the Chamber of Secrets,"
said Hermione in a clear voice.
Dean Thomas, who had been
sitting with his mouth hanging open, gazing out of the window, jerked out of
his trance; Lavender Brown's head came up off her arms and Neville Longbottom's
elbow slipped off his desk.
Professor Binns blinked.
"My subject is History of
Magic," he said in his dry, wheezy voice. "I deal with facts,
Miss Granger, not myths and legends." He cleared his throat with a small
noise like chalk slipping and continued, "In September of that year, a
subcommittee of Sardinian sorcerers -"
He stuttered to a halt.
Hermione's hand was waving in the air again.
"Miss Grant?"
"Please, sir, don't legends
always have a basis in fact?"
Professor Binns was looking at
her in such amazement, Harry was sure no student had ever interrupted him
before, alive or dead.
"Well," said Professor
Binns slowly, "yes, one could argue that, I suppose." He peered at
Hermione as though he had never seen a student properly before. "However,
the legend of which you speak is such a very sensational, even ludicrous
tale -"
But the whole class was now
hanging on Professor Binns's every word. He looked dimly at them all, every
face turned to his. Harry could tell he was completely thrown by such an
unusual show of interest.
"Oh, very well," he
said slowly. "Let me see...the Chamber of Secrets...
"You all know, of course,
that Hogwarts was founded over a thousand years ago - the precise date is
uncertain - by the four greatest witches and wizards of the age. The four
school Houses are named after them: Godric Gryffindor, Helga Hufflepuff, Rowena
Ravenclaw, and Salazar Slytherin. They built this castle together, far from
prying Muggle eyes, for it was an age when magic was feared by common people,
and witches and wizards suffered much persecution."
He paused, gazed blearily around
the room, and continued.
"For a few years, the
founders worked in harmony together, seeking out youngsters who showed signs of
magic and bringing them to the castle to be educated. But then disagreements
sprang up between them. A rift began to grow between Slytherin and the others.
Slytherin wished to be more selective about the students admitted to
Hogwarts. He believed that magical learning should be kept within all-magic
families. He disliked taking students of Muggle parentage, believing them to be
untrustworthy. After a while, there was a serious argument on the subject
between Slytherin and Gryffindor, and Slytherin left the school."
Professor Binns paused again,
pursing his lips, looking like a wrinkled old tortoise. "Reliable historical sources tell us this much,"
he said. "But these honest facts have been obscured by the fanciful legend
of the Chamber of Secrets. The story goes that Slytherin had built a hidden
chamber in the castle, of which the other founders knew nothing.
"Slytherin, according to
the legend, sealed the Chamber of Secrets so that none would be able to open it
until his own true heir arrived at the school. The heir alone would be able to
unseal the Chamber of Secrets, unleash the horror within, and use it to purge
the school of all who were unworthy to study magic."
There was silence as he finished
telling the story, but it wasn't the usual, sleepy silence that filled
Professor Binns's classes. There was unease in the air as everyone continued to
watch him, hoping for more. Professor Binns looked faintly annoyed.
"The whole thing is arrant
nonsense, of course," he said. "Naturally, the school has been
searched for evidence of such a chamber, many times, by the most learned
witches and wizards. It does not exist. A tale told to frighten the gullible."
Hermione's hand was back in the
air.
"Sir - what exactly do you
mean by the 'horror within' the Chamber?"
"That is believed to be
some sort of monster, which the Heir of Slytherin alone can control," said
Professor Binns in his dry, reedy voice.
The class exchanged nervous
looks.
"I tell you, the thing does
not exist," said Professor Binns, shuffling his notes. "There is no
Chamber and no monster."
"But, sir," said
Seamus Finnigan, "if the Chamber can only be opened by Slytherin's true
heir, no one else would be able to find it, would they?" "Nonsense, O'Flaherty," said Professor Binns in
an aggravated tone. "If a long succession of Hogwarts headmasters and
headmistresses haven't found the thing -"
"But, Professor,"
piped up Parvati Patil, "you'd probably have to use Dark Magic to open it
-"
"Just because a wizard doesn't
use Dark Magic doesn't mean he can't, Miss Pennyfeather," snapped
Professor Binns. "I repeat, if the likes of Dumbledore -"
"But maybe you've got to be
related to Slytherin, so Dumbledore couldn't -" began Dean Thomas, but
Professor Binns had had enough.
"That will do," he
said sharply. "It is a myth! It does not exist! There is not a shred of
evidence that Slytherin ever built so much as a secret broom cupboard! I regret
telling you such a foolish story! We will return, if you please, to history,
to solid, believable, verifiable fact!" And within five minutes, the class had sunk back into its
usual torpor.
"I always knew Salazar
Slytherin was a twisted old loony," Ron told Harry and Hermione as they
fought their way through the teeming corridors at the end of the lesson to drop
off their bags before dinner. "But I never knew he started all this
pure-blood stuff. I wouldn't be in his house if you paid me. Honestly, if the
Sorting Hat had tried to put me in Slytherin, I'd've got the train straight
back home..."
Hermione nodded fervently, but
Harry didn't say anything. His stomach had just dropped unpleasantly.
Harry had never told Ron and
Hermione that the Sorting Hat had seriously considered putting him in
Slytherin. He could remember, as though it were yesterday, the small voice that
had spoken in his ear when he'd placed the hat on his head a year before:
You could be great, you know, it's all here in your head, and Slytherin would
help you on the way to greatness, no doubt about that... But Harry, who had already heard of Slytherin House's
reputation for turning out Dark wizards, had thought desperately, Not
Slytherin! and the hat had said, Oh, well, if you're sure...better be
Gryffindor...
As they were shunted along in
the throng, Colin Creevy went past.
"Hiya, Harry!"
"Hullo, Colin," said
Harry automatically.
"Harry - Harry - a boy in
my class has been saying you're -"
But Colin was so small he
couldn't fight against the tide of people bearing him toward the Great Hall;
they heard him squeak, "See you, Harry!" and he was gone.
"What's a boy in his class
saying about you?" Hermione wondered.
"That I'm Slytherin's heir,
I expect," said Harry, his stomach dropping another inch or so as he
suddenly remembered the way Justin Finch-Fletchley had run away from him at
lunchtime.
"People here'll believe
anything," said Ron in disgust.
The crowd thinned and they were
able to climb the next staircase without difficulty.
"D'you really think
there's a Chamber of Secrets?" Ron asked Hermione. "I don't know," she said, frowning.
"Dumbledore couldn't cure Mrs. Norris, and that makes me think that
whatever attacked her might not be - well - human."
As she spoke, they turned a
corner and found themselves at the end of the very corridor where the attack
had happened. They stopped and looked. The scene was just as it had been that
night, except that there was no stiff cat hanging from the torch bracket, and
an empty chair stood against the wall bearing the message "The Chamber of
Secrets has been Opened."
"That's where Filch has
been keeping guard," Ron muttered.
They looked at each other. The
corridor was deserted.
"Can't hurt to have a poke
around," said Harry, dropping his bag and getting to his hands and knees
so that he could crawl along, searching for clues.
"Scorch marks!" he
said. "Here - and here -"
"Come and look at
this!" said Hermione. "This is funny..."
Harry got up and crossed to the
window next to the message on the wall. Hermione was pointing at the topmost
pane, where around twenty spiders were scuttling, apparently fighting to get
through a small crack. A long, silvery thread was dangling like a rope, as
though they had all climbed it in their hurry to get outside.
"Have you ever seen spiders
act like that?" said Hermione wonderingly.
"No," said Harry,
"have you, Ron? Ron?"
He looked over his shoulder. Ron
was standing well back and seemed to be fighting the impulse to run.
"What's up?" said
Harry.
"I - don't - like -
spiders," said Ron tensely.
"I never knew that,"
said Hermione, looking at Ron in surprise. "You've used spiders in Potions
loads of times..."
"I don't mind them
dead," said Ron, who was carefully looking anywhere but at the window.
"I just don't like the way they move..."
Hermione giggled.
"It's not funny," said
Ron, fiercely. "If you must know, when I was three, Fred turned my - my
teddy bear into a great big filthy spider because I broke his toy
broomstick...You wouldn't like them either if you'd been holding your bear and
suddenly it had too many legs and..."
He broke off, shuddering.
Hermione was obviously still trying not to laugh. Feeling they had better get
off the subject, Harry said, "Remember all that water on the floor? Where
did that come from? Someone's mopped it up."
"It was about here,"
said Ron, recovering himself to walk a few paces past Filch's chair and
pointing. "Level with this door."
He reached for the brass
doorknob but suddenly withdrew his hand as though he'd been burned.
"What's the matter?"
said Harry.
"Can't go in there," said
Ron gruffly. "That's a girls' toilet."
"Oh, Ron, there won't be
anyone in there," said Hermione standing up and coming over. "That's
Moaning Myrtle's place. Come on, let's have a look."
And ignoring the large OUT of
ORDER sign, she opened the door.
It was the gloomiest, most
depressing bathroom Harry had ever set foot in. Under a large, cracked, and
spotted mirror were a row of chipped sinks. The floor was damp and reflected
the dull light given off by the stubs of a few candles, burning low in their holders;
the wooden doors to the stalls were flaking and scratched and one of them was
dangling off its hinges.
Hermione put her fingers to her
lips and set off toward the end stall. When she reached it she said,
"Hello, Myrtle, how are you?"
Harry and Ron went to look.
Moaning Myrtle was floating above the tank of the toilet, picking a spot on her
chin.
"This is a girls'
bathroom," she said, eyeing Ron and Harry suspiciously. "They're
not girls."
"No," Hermione agreed.
"I just wanted to show them how er - nice it is in here." She waved vaguely at the dirty old mirror and the damp
floor.
"Ask her if she saw
anything," Harry mouthed at Hermione.
"What are you
whispering?" said Myrtle, staring at him.
"Nothing," said Harry
quickly. "We wanted to ask -"
"I wish people would stop
talking behind my back!" said Myrtle, in a voice choked with tears.
"I do have feelings, you know, even if I am dead -"
"Myrtle, no one wants to
upset you," said Hermione. "Harry only -"
"No one wants to upset me!
That's a good one!" howled Myrtle. "My life was nothing but misery at
this place and now people come along ruining my death!"
"We wanted to ask you if
you've seen anything funny lately," said Hermione quickly. "Because a
cat was attacked right outside your front door on Halloween."
"Did you see anyone near
here that night?" said Harry.
"I wasn't paying
attention," said Myrtle dramatically. "Peeves upset me so much I came
in here and tried to kill myself. Then, of course, I remembered that I'm
- that I'm -"
"Already dead," said
Ron helpfully.
Myrtle gave a tragic sob, rose
up in the air, turned over, and dived headfirst into the toilet, splashing
water all over them and vanishing from sight, although from the direction of
her muffled sobs, she had come to rest somewhere in the U-bend.
Harry and Ron stood with their
mouths open, but Hermione shrugged wearily and said, "Honestly, that was
almost cheerful for Myrtle...Come on, let's go."
Harry had barely closed the door
on Myrtle's gurgling sobs when a loud voice made all three of them jump.
"RON!"
Percy Weasley had stopped dead
at the head of the stairs, prefect badge agleam, an expression of complete
shock on his face.
"That's a girls'
bathroom!" he gasped. "What were you -?"
"Just having a look
around," Ron shrugged. "Clues, you know -"
Percy swelled in a manner that
reminded Harry forcefully of Mrs. Weasley.
"Get - away - from - there
-" Perry said, striding toward them and starting to bustle them along,
flapping his arms. "Don't you care what this looks like? Coming
back here while everyone's at dinner -" "Why shouldn't we be here?" said Ron hotly,
stopping short and glaring at Percy. "Listen, we never laid a finger on
that cat!"
"That's what I told
Ginny," said Percy fiercely, "but she still seems to think you're
going to be expelled, I've never seen her so upset, crying her eyes out, you
might think of her, all the first years are thoroughly overexcited by
this business -"
"You don't care
about Ginny," said Ron, whose ears were now reddening. "You're
just worried I'm going to mess up your chances of being Head Boy -"
"Five points from
Gryffindor!" Percy said tersely, fingering his prefect badge. "And I
hope it teaches you a lesson! No more detective work, or I'll write to
Mum!" And he strode off, the back of his neck as red as Ron's ears.
Harry, Ron, and Hermione chose
seats as far as possible from Percy in the common room that night. Ron was
still in a very bad temper and kept blotting his Charms homework. When he
reached absently for his wand to remove the smudges, it ignited the parchment.
Fuming almost as much as his homework, Ron slammed The Standard Book of
Spells, Grade 2 shut. To Harry's surprise, Hermione followed suit.
"Who can it be,
though?" she said in a quiet voice, as though continuing a conversation
they had just been having. "Who'd want to frighten all the Squibs and
Muggle-borns out of Hogwart's?"
"Let's think," said
Ron in mock puzzlement. "Who do we know who thinks Muggle-borns are
scum?"
He looked at Hermione. Hermione
looked back, unconvinced.
"If you're talking about
Malfoy -"
"Of course I am!" said
Ron. "You heard him - 'You'll be next, Mudbloods!'- come on, you've only
got to look at his foul rat face to know it's him -"
"Malfoy, the Heir of
Slytherin?" said Hermione skeptically.
"Look at his family,"
said Harry, closing his books, too. "The whole lot of them have been in
Slytherin; he's always boasting about it. They could easily be Slytherin's
descendants. His father's definitely evil enough."
"They could've had the key
to the Chamber of Secrets for centuries!" said Ron. "Handing it down,
father to son ..."
"Well," said Hermione
cautiously, "I suppose it's possible..."
"But how do we prove
it?" said Harry darkly.
"There might be a
way," said Hermione slowly, dropping her voice still further with a quick
glance across the room at Percy. "Of course, it would be difficult. And
dangerous, very dangerous. We'd be breaking about fifty school rules, I expect
-"
"If, in a month or so, you
feel like explaining, you will let us know, won't you?" said Ron
irritably.
"All right," said
Hermione coldly. "What we'd need to do is to get inside the Slytherin
common room and ask Malfoy a few questions without him realizing it's us."
"But that's
impossible," Harry said as Ron laughed.
"No, it's not," said
Hermione. "All we'd need would be some Polyjuice Potion."
"What's that?" said
Ron and Harry together.
"Snape mentioned it in
class a few weeks ago -"
"D'you think we've got
nothing better to do in Potions than listen to Snape?" muttered Ron.
"It transforms you into
somebody else. Think about it! We could change into three of the Slytherins. No
one would know it was us. Malfoy would probably tell us anything. He's probably
boasting about it in the Slytherin common room right now, if only we could hear
him."
"This Polyjuice stuff
sounds a bit dodgy to me," said Ron, frowning. "What if we were stuck
looking like three of the Slytherins forever?"
"It wears off after a
while," said Hermione, waving her hand impatiently. "But getting hold
of the recipe will be very difficult. Snape said it was in a book called Moste
Potente Potions and it's bound to be in the Restricted Section of the
library." There was only one way to get out a book from the Restricted
Section: You needed a signed note of permission from a teacher. "Hard to
see why we'd want the book, really," said Ron, "if we weren't going
to try and make one of the potions." "I think," said Hermione,
"that if we made it sound as though we were just interested in the theory,
we might stand a chance...
"Oh, come on, no teacher's
going to fall for that," said Ron. "They'd have to be really
thick..." CHAPTER TEN THE ROGUE BLUDGER
Since the disastrous episode of
the pixies, Professor Lockhart had not brought live creatures to class.
Instead, he read passages from his books to them, and sometimes reenacted some
of the more dramatic bits. He usually picked Harry to help him with these
reconstructions; so far, Harry had been forced to play a simple Transylvanian
villager whom Lockhart had cured of a Babbling Curse, a yeti with a head cold,
and a vampire who had been unable to eat anything except lettuce since Lockhart
had dealt with him.
Harry was hauled to the front of
the class during their very next Defense Against the Dark Arts lesson, this
time acting a werewolf. If he hadn't had a very good reason for keeping
Lockhart in a good mood, he would have refused to do it.
"Nice loud howl, Harry -
exactly - and then, if you'll believe it, I pounced - like this - slammed him
to the floor - thus with one hand, I managed to hold him down - with my other,
I put my wand to his throat - I then screwed up my remaining strength and
performed the immensely complex Homorphus Charm- he let out a piteous moan - go
on, Harry - higher than that - good - the fur vanished - the fangs shrank - and
he turned back into a man. Simple, yet effective - and another village will
remember me forever as the hero who delivered them from the monthly terror of
werewolf attacks."
The bell rang and Lockhart got
to his feet.
"Homework - compose a poem
about my defeat of the Wagga Wagga Werewolf! Signed copies of Magical Me to the
author of the best one!"
The class began to leave. Harry
returned to the back of the room, where Ron and Hermione were waiting.
"Ready?" Harry
muttered.
"Wait till everyone's
gone," said Hermione nervously. "All right..."
She approached Lockhart's desk,
a piece of paper clutched tightly in her hand, Harry and Ron right behind her.
"Er - Professor
Lockhart?" Hermione stammered. "I wanted to - to get this book out of
the library. Just for background reading." She held out the piece of
paper, her hand shaking slightly. "But the thing is, it's in the
Restricted Section of the library, so I need a teacher to sign for it - I'm
sure it would help me understand what you say in Gadding with Ghouls about
slow-acting venoms."
"Ah, Gadding with
Ghouls!" said Lockhart, taking the note from Hermione and smiling widely
at her. "Possibly my very favorite book. You enjoyed it?"
"Oh, yes," said
Hermione eagerly. "So clever, the way you trapped that last one with the
tea-strainer -"
"Well, I'm sure no one will
mind me giving the best student of the year a little extra help," said
Lockhart warmly, and he pulled out an enormous peacock quill. "Yes, nice,
isn't it?" he said, misreading the revolted look on Ron's face. "I
usually save it for book-signings."
He scrawled an enormous loopy
signature on the note and handed it back to Hermione.
"So, Harry," said
Lockhart, while Hermione folded the note with fumbling fingers and slipped it
into her bag. "Tomorrow's the first Quidditch match of the season, I
believe? Gryffindor against Slytherin, is it not? I hear you're a useful
player. I was a Seeker, too. I was asked to try for the National Squad, but
preferred to dedicate my life to the eradication of the Dark Forces. Still, if
ever you feel the need for a little private training, don't hesitate to ask.
Always happy to pass on my expertise to less able players..."
Harry made an indistinct noise
in his throat and then hurried off after Ron and Hermione.
"I don't believe it,"
he said as the three of them examined the signature on the note. "He
didn't even look at the book we wanted."
"That's because he's a
brainless git," said Ron. "But who cares, we've got what we
needed-"
"He is not a brainless
git," said Hermione shrilly as they half ran toward the library.
"Just because he said you
were the best student of the year -"
They dropped their voices as
they entered the muffled stillness of the library. Madam Pince, the librarian,
was a thin, irritable woman who looked like an underfed vulture.
"Moste Potente Potions?"
she repeated suspiciously, trying to take the note from Hermione; but Hermione
wouldn't let go.
"I was wondering if I could
keep it," she said breathlessly.
"Oh, come on," said
Ron, wrenching it from her grasp and thrusting it at Madam Pince. "We'll get
you another autograph. Lockhart'll sign anything if it stands still long
enough."
Madam Pince held the note up to
the light, as though determined to detect a forgery, but it passed the test.
She stalked away between the lofty shelves and returned several minutes later
carrying a large and moldy-looking book. Hermione put it carefully into her bag
and they left, trying not to walk too quickly or look too guilty.
Five minutes later, they were
barricaded in Moaning Myrtle's out-of-order bathroom once again. Hermione had
overridden Ron's objections by pointing out that it was the last place anyone
in their right minds would go, so they were guaranteed some privacy. Moaning
Myrtle was crying noisily in her stall, but they were ignoring her, and she
them.
Hermione opened Moste Potente
Potions carefully, and the three of them bent over the damp-spotted pages. It
was clear from a glance why it belonged in the Restricted Section. Some of the
potions had effects almost too gruesome to think about, and there were some
very unpleasant illustrations, which included a man who seemed to have been
turned inside out and a witch sprouting several extra pairs of arms out of her
head.
"Here it is," said
Hermione excitedly as she found the page headed The Polyjuice Potion. It was
decorated with drawings of people halfway through transforming into other
people. Harry sincerely hoped the artist had imagined the looks of intense pain
on their faces.
"This is the most
complicated potion I've ever seen," said Hermione as they scanned the
recipe. "Lacewing flies, leeches, fluxweed, and knotgrass," she
murmured, running her finger down the list of ingredients. "Well, they're
easy enough, they're in the student store-cupboard, we can help ourselves...Oooh,
look, powdered horn of a bicorn - don't know where we're going to get that -
shredded skin of a boomslang -. that'll be tricky, too and of course a bit of
whoever we want to change into."
"Excuse me?" said Ron
sharply. "What d'you mean, a bit of whoever we're changing into? I'm
drinking nothing with Crabbe's toenails in it -"
Hermione continued as though she
hadn't heard him.
"We don't have to worry
about that yet, though, because we add those bits last..."
Ron turned, speechless, to
Harry, who had another worry.
"D'you realize how much we're
going to have to steal, Hermione? Shredded skin of a boomslang, that's
definitely not in the students' cupboard. What're we going to do, break into
Snape's private stores? I don't know if this is a good idea..."
Hermione shut the book with a
snap.
"Well, if you two are going
to chicken out, fine," she said. There were bright pink patches on her
cheeks and her eyes were brighter than usual. "I don't want to break
rules, you know. I think threatening Muggle-borns is far worse than brewing up
a difficult potion. But if you don't want to find out if it's Malfoy, I'll go
straight to Madam Pince now and hand the book back in.'
"I never thought Id see the
day when you'd be persuading us to break rules," said Ron. "All
right, we'll do it. But not toenails, okay?"
"How long will it take to
make, anyway?" said Harry as Hermione, looking happier, opened the book
again.
"Well, since the fluxweed
has got to be picked at the full moon and the lacewings have got to be stewed
for twenty-one days...I'd say it'd be ready in about a month, if we can get all
the ingredients."
"A month?" said Ron.
"Malfoy could have attacked half the Muggle-borns in the school by
then!" But Hermione's eyes narrowed dangerously again, and he added
swiftly, "But it's the best plan we've got, so full steam ahead, I
say."
However, while Hermione was
checking that the coast was clear for them to leave the bathroom, Ron muttered
to Harry, "It'll be a lot less hassle if you can just knock Malfoy off his
broom tomorrow."
Harry woke early on Saturday
morning and lay for a while thinking about the coming Quidditch match. He was
nervous, mainly at the thought of what Wood would say if Gryffindor lost, but
also at the idea of facing a team mounted on the fastest racing brooms gold
could buy. He had never wanted to beat Slytherin so badly. After half an hour
of lying there with his insides churning, he got up, dressed, and went down to
breakfast early, where he found the rest of the Gryffindor team huddled at the
long, empty table, all looking uptight and not speaking much.
As eleven o'clock approached,
the whole school started to make its way down to the Quidditch stadium. It was
a muggy sort of day with a hint of thunder in the air. Ron and Hermione came
hurrying over to wish Harry good luck as he entered the locker rooms. The team
pulled on their scarlet Gryffindor robes, then sat down to listen to Wood's
usual pre-match pep talk.
"Slytherin has better
brooms than us," he began. "No point denying it. But we've got better
people on our brooms. We've trained harder than they have, we've been flying in
all weathers -"("Too true," muttered George Weasley. "I
haven't been properly dry since August")"- and we're going to make
them rue the day they let that little bit of slime, Malfoy, buy his way onto
their team."
Chest heaving with emotion, Wood
turned to Harry.
"It'll be down to you,
Harry, to show them that a Seeker has to have something more than a rich
father. Get to that Snitch before Malfoy or die trying, Harry, because we've
got to win today, we've got to."
"So no pressure,
Harry" said Fred, winking at him.
As they walked out onto the
pitch, a roar of noise greeted them; mainly cheers, because Ravenclaw and
Hufflepuff were anxious to see Slytherin beaten, but the Slytherins in the
crowd made their boos and hisses heard, too. Madam Hooch, the Quidditch
teacher, asked Flint and Wood to shake hands, which they did, giving each other
threatening stares and gripping rather harder than was necessary.
"On my whistle," said
Madam Hooch. "Three...two...one..."
With a roar from the crowd to
speed them upward, the fourteen players rose toward the leaden sky. Harry flew
higher than any of them, squinting around for the Snitch.
"All right there,
Scarhead?" yelled Malfoy, shooting underneath him as though to show off
the speed of his broom.
Harry had no time to reply. At
that very moment, a heavy black Bludger came pelting toward him; he avoided it
so narrowly that he felt it ruffle his hair as it passed.
"Close one, Harry!"
said George, streaking past him with his club in his hand, ready to knock the
Bludger back toward a Slytherin. Harry saw George give the Bludger a powerful
whack in the direction of Adrian Pucey, but the Bludger changed direction in
midair and shot straight for Harry again.
Harry dropped quickly to avoid
it, and George managed to hit it hard toward Malfoy. Once again, the Bludger
swerved like a boomerang and shot at Harry's head.
Harry put on a burst of speed
and zoomed toward the other end of the pitch. He could hear the Bludger
whistling along behind him. What was going on? Bludgers never concentrated on
one player like this; it was their job to try and unseat as many people as
possible...
Fred Weasley was waiting for the
Bludger at the other end. Harry ducked as Fred swung at the Bludger with all
his might; the Bludger was knocked off course.
"Gotcha!" Fred yelled
happily, but he was wrong; as though it was magnetically attracted to Harry,
the Bludger pelted after him once more and Harry was forced to fly off at full
speed.
It had started to rain; Harry
felt heavy drops fall onto his face, splattering onto his glasses. He didn't
have a clue what was going on in the rest of the game until he heard Lee
Jordan, who was commentating, say, "Slytherin lead, sixty points to zero.'
The Slytherins' superior brooms
were clearly doing their jobs, and meanwhile the mad Bludger was doing all it
could to knock Harry out of the air. Fred and George were now flying so close
to him on either side that Harry could see nothing at all except their flailing
arms and had no chance to look for the Snitch, let alone catch it.
"Someone's - tampered -
with - this - Bludger -" Fred grunted, swinging his bat with all his might
at it as it launched a new attack on Harry.
"We need time out,"
said George, trying to signal to Wood and stop the Bludger breaking Harry's
nose at the same time.
Wood had obviously got the
message. Madam Hooch's whistle rang out and Harry, Fred, and George dived for
the ground, still trying to avoid the mad Bludger.
"What's going on?"
said Wood as the Gryffindor team huddled together, while Slytherins in the
crowd jeered. "We're being flattened. Fred, George, where were you when
that Bludger stopped Angelina scoring?"
"We were twenty feet above
her, stopping the other Bludger from murdering Harry, Oliver," said George
angrily. "Someone's fixed it - it won't leave Harry alone. It hasn't gone
for anyone else all game. The Slytherins must have done something to it."
"But the Bludgers have been
locked in Madam Hooch's office since our last practice, and there was nothing
wrong with them then..." said Wood, anxiously. Madam Hooch was walking
toward them. Over her shoulder, Harry could see the Slytherin team jeering and
pointing in his direction.
"Listen," said Harry
as she came nearer and nearer, "with you two flying around me all the time
the only way I'm going to catch the Snitch is if it flies up my sleeve. Go back
to the rest of the team and let me deal with the rogue one."
"Don't be thick," said
Fred. "It'll take your head off."
Wood was looking from Harry to
the Weasleys.
"Oliver, this is
insane," said Alicia Spinner angrily. "You can't let Harry deal with
that thing on his own. Let's ask for an inquiry..."
"If we stop now, we'll have
to forfeit the match!" said Harry. "And we're not losing to Slytherin
just because of a crazy Bludger! Come on, Oliver, tell them to leave me
alone!"
"This is all your
fault," George said angrily to Wood. "'Get the Snitch or die trying,'
what a stupid thing to tell him -"
Madam Hooch had joined them.
"Ready to resume
play?" she asked Wood.
Wood looked at the determined
look on Harry's face.
"All right," he said.
"Fred, George, you heard Harry - leave him alone and let him deal with the
Bludger on his own."
The rain was falling more
heavily now. On Madam Hooch's whistle, Harry kicked hard into the air and heard
the telltale whoosh of the Bludger behind him. Higher and higher Harry climbed;
he looped and swooped, spiraled, zigzagged, and rolled. Slightly dizzy, he
nevertheless kept his eyes wide open, rain was speckling his glasses and ran up
his nostrils as he hung upside down, avoiding another fierce dive from the
Bludger. He could hear laughter from the crowd; he knew he must look very
stupid, but the rogue Bludger was heavy and couldn't change direction as
quickly as Harry could; he began a kind of roller-coaster ride around the edges
of the stadium, squinting through the silver sheets of rain to the Gryffindor
goal posts, where Adrian Pucey was trying to get past Wood.
A whistling in Harry's ear told
him the Bludger had just missed him again; he turned right over and sped in the
opposite direction.
"Training for the ballet,
Potter?" yelled Malfoy as Harry was forced to do a stupid kind of twirl in
midair to dodge the Bludger, and he fled, the Bludger trailing a few feet
behind him; and then, glaring back at Malfoy in hatred, he saw it - the Golden
Snitch. It was hovering inches above Malfoy's left ear - and Malfoy, busy
laughing at Harry, hadn't seen it.
For an agonizing moment, Harry
hung in midair, not daring to speed toward Malfoy in case he looked up and saw
the Snitch.
WHAM.
He had stayed still a second too
long. The Bludger had hit him at last, smashed into his elbow, and Harry felt
his arm break. Dimly, dazed by the searing pain in his arm, he slid sideways on
his rain-drenched broom, one knee still crooked over it, his right arm dangling
useless at his side - the Bludger came pelting back for a second attack, this
time zooming at his face - Harry swerved out of the way, one idea firmly lodged
in his numb brain: get to Malfoy.
Through a haze of rain and pain
he dived for the shimmering, sneering face below him and saw its eyes widen
with fear: Malfoy thought Harry was attacking him.
"What the -" he
gasped, careening out of Harry's way.
Harry took his remaining hand
off his broom and made a wild snatch; he felt his fingers close on the cold
Snitch but was now only gripping the broom with his legs, and there was a yell
from the crowd below as he headed straight for the ground, trying hard not to
pass out.
With a splattering thud he hit
the mud and rolled off his broom. His arm was hanging at a very strange angle;
riddled with pain, he heard, as though from a distance, a good deal of
whistling and shouting. He focused on the Snitch clutched in his good hand.
"Aha," he said
vaguely. "We've won."
And he fainted.
He came around, rain falling on
his face, still lying on the field, with someone leaning over him. He saw a
glitter of teeth.
"Oh, no, not you," he
moaned.
"Doesn't know what he's
saying," said Lockhart loudly to the anxious crowd of Gryffindors pressing
around them. "Not to worry, Harry. I'm about to fix your arm."
"No!" said Harry.
"I'll keep it like this, thanks..."
He tried to sit up, but the pain
was terrible. He heard a familiar clicking noise nearby.
"I don't want a photo of
this, Colin," he said loudly.
"Lie back, Harry,"
said Lockhart soothingly. "It's a simple charm I've used countless times
-"
"Why can't I just go to the
hospital wing?" said Harry through clenched teeth.
"He should really,
Professor," said a muddy Wood, who couldn't help grinning even though his
Seeker was injured. "Great capture, Harry, really spectacular, your best
yet, I'd say -"
Through the thicket of legs
around him, Harry spotted Fred and George Weasley, wrestling the rogue Bludger
into a box. It was still putting up a terrific fight.
"Stand back," said
Lockhart, who was rolling up his jade-green sleeves.
"No - don't -" said
Harry weakly, but Lockhart was twirling his wand and a second later had
directed it straight at Harry's arm.
A strange and unpleasant
sensation started at Harry's shoulder and spread all the way down to his
fingertips. It felt as though his arm was being deflated. He didn't dare look
at what was happening. He had shut his eyes, his face turned away from his arm,
but his worst fears were realized as the people above him gasped and Colin
Creevey began clicking away madly. His arm didn't hurt anymore - nor did it
feel remotely like an arm.
"Ah," said Lockhart.
"Yes. Well, that can sometimes happen. But the point is, the bones are no
longer broken. That's the thing to bear in mind. So, Harry, just toddle up to
the hospital wing - ah, Mr. Weasley, Miss Granger, would you escort him? - and
Madam Pomfrey will be able to - er - tidy you up a bit."
As Harry got to his feet, he
felt strangely lopsided. Taking a deep breath he looked down at his right side.
What he saw nearly made him pass out again.
Poking out of the end of his
robes was what looked like a thick, flesh-colored rubber glove. He tried to
move his fingers. Nothing happened.
Lockhart hadn't mended Harry's
bones. He had removed them.
Madam Pomfrey wasn't at all
pleased.
"You should have come
straight to me!" she raged, holding up the sad, limp remainder of what,
half an hour before, had been a working arm. "I can mend bones in a second
- but growing them back -"
"You will be able to, won't
you?" said Harry desperately.
"I'll be able to,
certainly, but it will be painful," said Madam Pomfrey grimly, throwing
Harry a pair of pajamas. "You'll have to stay the night..."
Hermione waited outside the
curtain drawn around Harry's bed while Ron helped him into his pajamas. It took
a while to stuff the rubbery, boneless arm into a sleeve.
"How can you stick up for
Lockhart now, Hermione, eh?" Ron called through the curtain as he pulled
Harry's limp fingers through the cuff. "If Harry had wanted deboning he
would have asked."
"Anyone can make a
mistake," said Hermione. "And it doesn't hurt anymore, does it,
Harry?"
"No," said Harry,
getting into bed. "But it doesn't do anything else either."
As he swung himself onto the bed,
his arm flapped pointlessly.
Hermione and Madam Pomfrey came
around the curtain. Madam Pomfrey was holding a large bottle of something
labeled Skele-Gro.
"You're in for a rough
night," she said, pouring out a steaming beakerful and handing it to him.
"Regrowing bones is a nasty business."
So was taking the Skele-Gro. It
burned Harry's mouth and throat as it went down, making him cough and splutter.
Still tut-tutting about dangerous sports and inept teachers, Madam Pomfrey
retreated, leaving Ron and Hermione to help Harry gulp down some water.
"We won, though," said Ron, a grin breaking across his face.
"That was some catch you made. Malfoy's face...he looked ready to
kill..."
"I want to know how he
fixed that Bludger," said Hermione darkly. "We can add that to the
list of questions we'll ask him when we've taken the Polyjuice Potion,"
said Harry, sinking back onto his pillows. "I hope it tastes better than
this stuff..."
"If it's got bits of
Slytherins in it? You've got to be joking," said Ron.
The door of the hospital wing
burst open at that moment. Filthy and soaking wet, the rest of the Gryffindor
team had arrived to see Harry. "Unbelievable flying, Harry," said
George. "I've just seen Marcus Flint yelling at Malfoy. Something about
having the Snitch on top of his head and not noticing. Malfoy didn't seem too
happy." They had brought cakes, sweets, and bottles of pumpkin juice; they
gathered around Harry's bed and were just getting started on what promised to
be a good party when Madam Pomfrey came storming over, shouting, "This boy
needs rest, he's got thirty-three bones to regrow! Out! OUT!" And Harry
was left alone, with nothing to distract him from the stabbing pains in his
limp arm.
Hours and hours later, Harry
woke quite suddenly in the pitch blackness and gave a small yelp of pain: His
arm now felt full of large splinters. For a second, he thought that was what
had woken him. Then, with a thrill of horror, he realized that someone was
sponging his forehead in the dark.
"Get off!" he said
loudly, and then, "Dobby!"
The house-elf's goggling tennis
ball eyes were peering at Harry through the darkness. A single tear was running
down his long, pointed nose.
"Harry Potter came back to
school," he whispered miserably. "Dobby warned and warned Harry
Potter. Ah sir, why didn't you heed Dobby? Why didn't Harry Potter go back home
when he missed the train?"
Harry heaved himself up on his
pillows and pushed Dobby's sponge away.
"What're you doing
here?" he said. "And how did you know I missed the train?"
Dobby's lip trembled and Harry
was seized by a sudden suspicion.
"It was you!" he said
slowly. "You stopped the barrier from letting us through!"
"Indeed yes, sir,"
said Dobby, nodding his head vigorously, ears flapping. "Dobby hid and
watched for Harry Potter and sealed the gateway and Dobby had to iron his hands
afterward" - he showed Harry ten long, bandaged fingers - "but Dobby
didn't care, sir, for he thought Harry Potter was safe, and never did Dobby
dream that Harry Potter would get to school another way!"
He was rocking backward and
forward, shaking his ugly head.
"Dobby was so shocked when
he heard Harry Potter was back at Hogwarts, he let his master's dinner burn!
Such a flogging Dobby never had, sir..."
Harry slumped back onto his
pillows.
"You nearly got Ron and me
expelled," he said fiercely. "You'd better get lost before my bones
come back, Dobby, or I might strangle you."
Dobby smiled weakly.
"Dobby is used to death
threats, sir. Dobby gets them five times a day at home."
He blew his nose on a corner of
the filthy pillowcase he wore, looking so pathetic that Harry felt his anger
ebb away in spite of himself.
"Why d'you wear that thing,
Dobby?" he asked curiously.
"This, sir?" said
Dobby, plucking at the pillowcase. "'Tis a mark of the house-elf's
enslavement, sir. Dobby can only be freed if his masters present him with
clothes, sir. The family is careful not to pass Dobby even a sock, sir, for
then he would be free to leave their house forever."
Dobby mopped his bulging eyes
and said suddenly, "Harry Potter must go home! Dobby thought his Bludger
would be enough to make -"
"Your Bludger?" said
Harry, anger rising once more. "What d'you mean, your Bludger? You made
that Bludger try and kill me?"
"Not kill you, sir, never
kill you!" said Dobby, shocked. "Dobby wants to save Harry Potter's
life! Better sent home, grievously injured, than remain here sir! Dobby only
wanted Harry Potter hurt enough to be sent home!"
"Oh, is that all?"
said Harry angrily. "I don't suppose you're going to tell me why you
wanted me sent home in pieces?"
"Ah, if Harry Potter only
knew!" Dobby groaned, more tears dripping onto his ragged pillowcase.
"If he knew what he means to us, to the lowly, the enslaved, we dregs of
the magical world! Dobby remembers how it was when He-Who-Must-Not-Be-Named was
at the height of his powers, sir! We house-elves were treated like vermin, sir!
Of course, Dobby is still treated like that, sir," he admitted, drying his
face on the pillowcase. "But mostly, sir, life has improved for my kind
since you triumphed over He-Who-Must-Not-Be-Named. Harry Potter survived, and
the Dark Lord's power was broken, and it was a new dawn, sir, and Harry Potter
shone like a beacon of hope for those of us who thought the Dark days would
never end, sit...And now, at Hogwarts, terrible things are to happen, are perhaps
happening already, and Dobby cannot let Harry Potter stay here now that history
is to repeat itself, now that the Chamber of Secrets is open once more."
Dobby froze, horrorstruck, then
grabbed Harry's water jug from his bedside table and cracked it over his own
head, toppling out of sight. A second later, he crawled back onto the bed,
cross-eyed, muttering, "Bad Dobby, very bad Dobby..."
"So there is a Chamber of
Secrets?" Harry whispered. "And did you say it's been opened before?
Tell me, Dobby!"
He seized the elf's bony wrist
as Dobby's hand inched toward the water jug. "But I'm not Muggle-born -
how can I be in danger from the Chamber?"
"Ah, sir, ask no more, ask
no more of poor Dobby," stammered the elf, his eyes huge in the dark.
"Dark deeds are planned in this place, but Harry Potter must not be here
when they happen - go home, Harry Potter, go home. Harry Potter must not meddle
in this, sir, 'tis too dangerous -"
"Who is it, Dobby?"
Harry said, keeping a firm hold on Dobby's wrist to stop him from hitting
himself with the water jug again. "Who's opened it? Who opened it last
time?"
"Dobby can't, sir, Dobby
can't, Dobby mustn't tell!" squealed the elf. "Go home, Harry Potter,
go home!"
"I'm not going
anywhere!" said Harry fiercely. "One of my best friends is
Muggle-born; she'll be first in line if the Chamber really has been opened
-"
"Harry Potter risks his own
life for his friends!" moaned Dobby in a kind of miserable ecstasy.
"So noble! So valiant! But he must save himself, he must, Harry Potter
must not -"
Dobby suddenly froze, his bat
ears quivering. Harry heard it, too. There were footsteps coming down the
passageway outside.
"Dobby must go!"
breathed the elf, terrified. There was a loud crack, and Harry's fist was suddenly
clenched on thin air. He slumped back into bed, his eyes on the dark doorway to
the hospital wing as the footsteps drew nearer.
Next moment, Dumbledore was
backing into the dormitory, wearing a long woolly dressing gown and a nightcap.
He was carrying one end of what looked like a statue. Professor McGonagall
appeared a second later, carrying its feet. Together, they heaved it onto a
bed.
"Get Madam Pomfrey,"
whispered Dumbledore, and Professor McGonagall hurried past the end of Harry's
bed out of sight. Harry lay quite still, pretending to be asleep. He heard
urgent voices, and then Professor McGonagall swept back into view, closely
followed by Madam Pomfrey, who was pulling a cardigan on over her nightdress.
He heard a sharp intake of breath.
"What happened?" Madam
Pomfrey whispered to Dumbledore, bending over the statue on the bed.
"Another attack," said
Dumbledore. "Minerva found him on the stairs."
"There was a bunch of
grapes next to him," said Professor McGonagall. "We think he was
trying to sneak up here to visit Potter."
Harry's stomach gave a horrible
lurch. Slowly and carefully, he raised himself a few inches so he could look at
the statue on the bed. A ray of moonlight lay across its staring face.
It was Colin Creevey. His eyes
were wide and his hands were stuck up in front of him, holding his camera.
"Petrified?" whispered
Madam Pomfrey.
"Yes," said Professor
McGonagall. "But I shudder to think ...If Albus hadn't been on the way
downstairs for hot chocolate - who knows what might have -"
The three of them stared down at
Colin. Then Dumbledore leaned forward and wrenched the camera out of Colin's
rigid grip.
"You don't think he managed
to get a picture of his attacker?" said Professor McGonagall eagerly.
Dumbledore didn't answer. He
opened the back of the camera.
"Good gracious!" said
Madam Pomfrey.
A jet of steam had hissed out of
the camera. Harry, three beds away, caught the acrid smell of burnt plastic.
"Melted," said Madam
Pomfrey wonderingly. "All melted..."
"What does this mean,
Albus?" Professor McGonagall asked urgently.
"It means," said
Dumbledore, "that the Chamber of Secrets is indeed open again."
Madam Pomfrey clapped a hand to
her mouth. Professor McGonagall stared at Dumbledore.
"But,
Albus...surely...who?"
"The question is not
who," said Dumbledore, his eyes on Colin. "The question is,
how..." And from what Harry could see of Professor McGonagall's shadowy
face, she didn't understand this any better than he did. CHAPTER ELEVEN THE DUELING CLUB
Harry woke up on Sunday morning
to find the dormitory blazing with winter sunlight and his arm reboned but very
stiff. He sat up quickly and looked over at Colin's bed, but it had been
blocked from view by the high curtains Harry had changed behind yesterday.
Seeing that he was awake, Madam Pomfrey came bustling over with a breakfast
tray and then began bending and stretching his arm and fingers.
"All in order," she
said as he clumsily fed himself porridge left-handed. "When you've
finished eating, you may leave."
Harry dressed as quickly as he
could and hurried off to Gryffindor Tower, desperate to tell Ron and Hermione
about Colin and Dobby, but they weren't there. Harry left to look for them,
wondering where they could have got to and feeling slightly hurt that they
weren't interested in whether he had his bones back or not.
As Harry passed the library,
Percy Weasley strolled out of it, looking in far better spirits than last time
they'd met.
"Oh, hello, Harry," he
said. "Excellent flying yesterday, really excellent. Gryffindor has just
taken the lead for the House Cup - you earned fifty points!"
"You haven't seen Ron or
Hermione, have you?" said Harry.
"No, I haven't," said
Percy, his smile fading. "I hope Ron's not in another girls' toilet
..."
Harry forced a laugh, watched
Percy walk out of sight, and then headed straight for Moaning Myrtle's
bathroom. He couldn't see why Ron and Hermione would be in there again, but
after making sure that neither Filch nor any prefects were around, he opened
the door and heard their voices coming from a locked stall.
"It's me," he said,
closing the door behind him. There was a clunk, a splash, and a gasp from
within the stall and he saw Hermione's eye peering through the keyhole.
'Harry!" she said.
"You gave us such a fright - come in. How's your arm?"
"Fine," said Harry,
squeezing into the stall. An old cauldron was perched on the toilet, and a
crackling from under the rim told Harry they had lit a fire beneath it.
Conjuring up portable, waterproof fires was a specialty of Hermione's.
"We'd've come to meet you,
but we decided to get started on the Polyjuice Potion," Ron explained as
Harry, with difficulty, locked the stall again. "We've decided this is the
safest place to hide it."
Harry started to tell them about
Colin, but Hermione interrupted.
"We already know - we heard
Professor McGonagall telling Professor Flitwick this morning. That's why we
decided we'd better get going -"
"The sooner we get a
confession out of Malfoy, the better," snarled Ron. "D'you know what
I think? He was in such a foul temper after the Quidditch match, he took it out
on Colin."
"There's something
else," said Harry, watching Hermione tearing bundles of knotgrass and
throwing them into the potion. "Dobby came to visit me in the middle of
the night."
Ron and Hermione looked up,
amazed. Harry told them everything Dobby had told him - or hadn't told him.
Hermione and Ron listened with their mouths open. "The Chamber of
Secrets has been opened before?" Hermione said.
"This settles it,"
said Ron in a triumphant voice. "Lucius Malfoy must've opened the Chamber
when he was at school here and now he's told dear old Draco how to do it. It's
obvious. Wish Dobby'd told you what kind of monster's in there, though. I want
to know how come nobody's noticed it sneaking around the school."
"Maybe it can make itself
invisible," said Hermione, prodding leeches to the bottom of the cauldron.
"Or maybe it can disguise itself - pretend to be a suit of armor or
something - I've read about Chameleon Ghouls -"
"You read too much,
Hermione," said Ron, pouring dead lacewings on top of the leeches. He
crumpled up the empty lacewing bag and looked at Harry.
"So Dobby stopped us from
getting on the train and broke your arm." He shook his head. "You
know what, Harry? If he doesn't stop trying to save your life he's going to kill
you."
The news that Colin Creevey had
been attacked and was now lying as though dead in the hospital wing had spread
through the entire school by Monday morning. The air was suddenly thick with
rumor and suspicion. The first years were now moving around the castle in
tight-knit groups, as though scared they would be attacked if they ventured
forth alone.
Ginny Weasley, who sat next to
Colin Creevey in Charms, was distraught, but Harry felt that Fred and George
were going the wrong way about cheering her up. They were taking turns covering
themselves with fur or boils and jumping out at her from behind statues. They
only stopped when Percy, apoplectic with rage, told them he was going to write
to Mrs. Weasley and tell her Ginny was having nightmares.
Meanwhile, hidden from the
teachers, a roaring trade in talismans, amulets, and other protective devices
was sweeping the school. Neville Longbottom bought a large, evil-smelling green
onion, a pointed purple crystal, and a rotting newt tail before the other Gryffindor
boys pointed out that he was in no danger; he was a pure-blood, and therefore
unlikely to be attacked.
"They went for Filch
first," Neville said, his round face fearful. "And everyone knows I'm
almost a Squib."
In the second week of December
Professor McGonagall came around as usual, collecting names of those who would
be staying at school for Christmas. Harry, Ron, and Hermione signed her list;
they had heard that Malfoy was staying, which struck them as very suspicious.
The holidays would be the perfect time to use the Polyjuice Potion and try to
worm a confession out of him.
Unfortunately, the potion was
only half finished. They still needed the bicorn horn and the boomslang skin,
and the only place they were going to get them was from Snape's private stores.
Harry privately felt he'd rather face Slytherin's legendary monster than let
Snape catch him robbing his office.
"What we need," said
Hermione briskly as Thursday afternoon's double Potions lesson loomed nearer,
"is a diversion. Then one of us can sneak into Snape's office and take
what we need." Harry and Ron looked at her nervously.
"I think I'd better do the
actual stealing," Hermione continued in a matter-of-fact tone. "You
two will be expelled if you get into any more trouble, and I've got a clean
record. So all you need to do is cause enough mayhem to keep Snape busy for
five minutes or so."
Harry smiled feebly.
Deliberately causing mayhem in Snape's Potions class was about as safe as
poking a sleeping dragon in the eye.
Potions lessons took place in
one of the large dungeons. Thursday afternoon's lesson proceeded in the usual
way. Twenty cauldrons stood steaming between the wooden desks, on which stood
brass scales and jars of ingredients. Snape prowled through the fumes, making
waspish remarks about the Gryffindors' work while the Slytherins sniggered
appreciatively. Draco Malfoy, who was Snape's favorite student, kept flicking
puffer-fish eyes at Ron and Harry, who knew that if they retaliated they would
get detention faster than you could say "Unfair."
Harry's Swelling Solution was
far too runny, but he had his mind on more important things. He was waiting for
Hermione's signal, and he hardly listened as Snape paused to sneer at his
watery potion. When Snape turned and walked off to bully Neville, Hermione
caught Harry's eye and nodded.
Harry ducked swiftly down behind
his cauldron, pulled one of Fred's Filibuster fireworks out of his pocket, and
gave it a quick prod with his wand. The firework began to fizz and sputter.
Knowing he had only seconds, Harry straightened up, took aim, and lobbed it
into the air; it landed right on target in Goyle's cauldron.
Goyle's potion exploded,
showering the whole class. People shrieked as splashes of the Swelling Solution
hit them. Malfoy got a faceful and his nose began to swell like a balloon;
Goyle blundered around, his hands over his eyes, which had expanded to the size
of a dinner plate - Snape was trying to restore calm and find out what had
happened. Through the confusion, Harry saw Hermione slip quietly into Snape's
office.
"Silence! SILENCE!"
Snape roared. "Anyone who has been splashed, come here for a Deflating
Draft - when I find out who did this -"
Harry tried not to laugh as he
watched Malfoy hurry forward, his head drooping with the weight of a nose like
a small melon. As half the class lumbered up to Snape's desk, some weighted
down with arms like clubs, others unable to talk through gigantic puffed-up
lips, Harry saw Hermione slide back into the dungeon, the front of her robes
bulging.
When everyone had taken a swig
of antidote and the various swellings had subsided, Snape swept over to Goyle's
cauldron and scooped out the twisted black remains of the firework. There was a
sudden hush.
"If I ever find out who
threw this," Snape whispered, "I shall make sure that person is
expelled."
Harry arranged his face into
what he hoped was a puzzled expression. Snape was looking right at him, and the
bell that rang ten minutes later could not have been more welcome.
"He knew it was me,"
Harry told Ron and Hermione as they hurried back to Moaning Myrtle's bathroom.
"I could tell."
Hermione threw the new
ingredients into the cauldron and began to stir feverishly.
"It'll be ready in two
weeks," she said happily.
"Snape can't prove it was
you," said Ron reassuringly to Harry. "What can he do?"
"Knowing Snape, something
foul," said Harry as the potion frothed and bubbled.
A week later, Harry, Ron, and
Hermione were walking across the entrance hall when they saw a small knot of
people gathered around the notice board, reading a piece of parchment that had
just been pinned up. Seamus Finnigan and Dean Thomas beckoned them over,
looking excited.
"They're starting a Dueling
Club!" said Seamus. "First meeting tonight! I wouldn't mind dueling
lessons; they might come in handy one of these days..."
"What, you reckon
Slytherin's monster can duel?" said Ron, but he, too, read the sign with
interest.
"Could be useful," he
said to Harry and Hermione as they went into dinner. "Shall we go?"
Harry and Hermione were all for
it, so at eight o'clock that evening they hurried back to the Great Hall. The
long dining tables had vanished and a golden stage had appeared along one wall,
lit by thousands of candles floating overhead. The ceiling was velvety black
once more and most of the school eemed to be packed beneath it, all carrying
their wands and looking excited.
"I wonder who'll be
teaching us?" said Hermione as they edged into the chattering crowd.
"Someone told me Flitwick was a dueling champion when he was young - maybe
it'll be him."
"As long as it's not
-" Harry began, but he ended on a groan: Gilderoy Lockhart was walking
onto the stage, resplendent in robes of deep plum and accompanied by none other
than Snape, wearing his usual black.
Lockhart waved an arm for
silence and called ' "Gather round, gather round! Can everyone see me? Can
you all hear me? Excellent!
"Now, Professor Dumbledore
has granted me permission to start this little dueling club, to train you all
in case you ever need to defend yourselves as I myself have done on countless
occasions - for full details, see my published works.
"Let me introduce my
assistant, Professor Snape," said Lockhart, flashing a wide smile.
"He tells me he knows a tiny little bit about dueling himself and has
sportingly agreed to help me with a short demonstration before we begin. Now, I
don't want any of you youngsters to worry - you'll still have your Potions
master when I'm through with him, never fear!"
"Wouldn't it be good if
they finished each other off?" Ron muttered in Harry's ear.
Snape's upper lip was curling.
Harry wondered why Lockhart was still smiling; if Snape had been looking at him
like that he'd have been running as fast as he could in the opposite direction.
Lockhart and Snape turned to
face each other and bowed; at least, Lockhart did, with much twirling of his
hands, whereas Snape jerked his head irritably. Then they raised their wands
like swords in front of them.
"As you see, we are holding
our wands in the accepted combative position," Lockhart told the silent crowd.
"On the count of three, we will cast our first spells. Neither of us will
be aiming to kill, of course."
"I wouldn't bet on
that," Harry murmured, watching Snape baring his teeth.
"One - two - three -"
Both of them swung their wands
above their heads and pointed them at their opponent; Snape cried:
"Expelliarmus!" There was a dazzling flash of scarlet light and
Lockhart was blasted off his feet: He flew backward off the stage, smashed into
the wall, and slid down it to sprawl on the floor.
Malfoy and some of the other
Slytherins cheered. Hermione was dancing on tiptoes. "Do you think he's
all right?" she squealed through her fingers.
"Who cares?" said
Harry and Ron together.
Lockhart was getting unsteadily
to his feet. His hat had fallen off and his wavy hair was standing on end.
"Well, there you have
it!" he said, tottering back onto the platform. "That was a Disarming
Charm - as you see, I've lost my wand - ah, thank you, Miss Brown - yes, an
excellent idea to show them that, Professor Snape, but if you don't mind my
saying so, it was very obvious what you were about to do. If I had wanted to
stop you it would have been only too easy - however, I felt it would be
instructive to let them see..."
Snape was looking murderous.
Possibly Lockhart had noticed, because he said, "Enough demonstrating! I'm
going to come amongst you now and put you all into pairs. Professor Snape, if
you'd like to help me -"
They moved through the crowd,
matching up partners. Lockhart teamed Neville with Justin Finch-Fletchley, but
Snape reached Harry and Ron first.
"Time to split up the dream
team, I think," he sneered. "Weasley, you can partner Finnigan.
Potter -"
Harry moved automatically toward
Hermione.
"I don't think so,"
said Snape, smiling coldly. "Mr. Malfoy, come over here. Let's see what
you make of the famous Potter. And you, Miss Granger - you can partner Miss
Bulstrode."
Malfoy strutted over, smirking.
Behind him walked a Slytherin girl who reminded Harry of a picture he'd seen in
Holidays with Hags. She was large and square and her heavy jaw jutted
aggressively. Hermione gave her a weak smile that she did not return.
"Face your partners!"
called Lockhart, back on the platform. "And bow!"
Hrry and Malfoy barely inclined
their heads, not taking their eyes off each other.
"Wands at the ready!"
shouted Lockhart. "When I count to three, cast your charms to disarm your
opponents - only to disarm them - we don't want any accidents - one ... two
...three -"
Harry swung his wand high, but
Malfoy had already started on "two": His spell hit Harry so hard he
felt as though he'd been hit over the head with a saucepan. He stumbled, but
everything still seemed to be working, and wasting no more time, Harry pointed
his wand straight at Malfoy and shouted, "Rictusempra!"
A jet of silver light hit Malfoy
in the stomach and he doubled up, wheezing.
"I said disarm only!"
Lockhart shouted in alarm over the heads of the battling crowd, as Malfoy sank
to his knees; Harry had hit him with a Tickling Charm, and he could barely move
for laughing. Harry hung back, with a vague feeling it would be unsporting to
bewitch Malfoy while he was on the floor, but this was a mistake; gasping for
breath, Malfoy pointed his wand at Harry's knees, choked, "Tarantallegra!"
and the next second Harry's legs began to jerk around out of his control in a
kind of quickstep. "Stop! Stop!" screamed Lockhart, but Snape took
charge. "Finite Incantatem!" he shouted; Harry's feet stopped
dancing, Malfoy stopped laughing, and they were able to look up.
A haze of greenish smoke was hovering
over the scene. Both Neville and Justin were lying on the floor, panting; Ron
was holding up an ashen-faced Seamus, apologizing for whatever his broken wand
had done; but Hermione and Millicent Bulstrode were still moving; Millicent had
Hermione in a headlock and Hermione was whimpering in pain; both their wands
lay forgotten on the floor. Harry leapt forward and pulled Millicent off. It
was difficult: She was a lot bigger than he was.
"Dear, dear," said
Lockhart, skittering through the crowd, looking at the aftermath of the duels.
"Up you go, Macmillan..."
"Careful there, Miss
Fawcett... Pinch it hard, it'll stop bleeding in a second,"
"I think I'd better teach
you how to block unfriendly spells," said Lockhart, standing flustered in
the midst of the hall. He glanced at Snape, whose black eyes glinted, and
looked quickly away. "Let's have a volunteer pair - Longbottom and
Finch-Fletchley, how about you -"
"A bad idea, Professor
Lockhart," said Snape, gliding over like a large and malevolent bat.
"Longbottom causes devastation with the simplest spells. We'll be sending
what's left of Finch-Fletchley up to the hospital wing in a matchbox."
Neville's round, pink face went pinker. "How about Malfoy and
Potter?" said Snape with a twisted smile.
"Excellent idea!" said
Lockhart, gesturing Harry and Malfoy into the middle of the hall as the crowd
backed away to give them room.
"Now, Harry," said
Lockhart. "When Draco points his wand at you, you do this."
He raised his own wand,
attempted a complicated sort of wiggling action, and dropped it. Snape smirked
as Lockhart quickly picked it up, saying, "Whoops - my wand is a little
overexcited -"
Snape moved closer to Malfoy,
bent down, and whispered something in his ear. Malfoy smirked, too. Harry
looked up nervously at Lockhart and said, "Professor, could you show me
that blocking thing again?"
"Scared?" muttered
Malfoy, so that Lockhart couldn't hear him.
"You wish," said Harry
out of the corner of his mouth.
Lockhart cuffed Harry merrily on
the shoulder. "Just do what I did, Harry!"
"What, drop my wand?"
But Lockhart wasn't listening.
"Three - two - one -
go!" he shouted.
Malfoy raised his wand quickly
and bellowed, "Serpensortia!" The end of his wand exploded. Harry watched, aghast, as a
long black snake shot out of it, fell heavily onto the floor between them, and
raised itself, ready to strike. There were screams as the crowd backed swiftly
away, clearing the floor.
"Don't move, Potter,"
said Snape lazily, clearly enjoying the sight of Harry standing motionless, eye
to eye with the angry snake. "I'll get rid of it....."
"Allow
me!" shouted Lockhart. He brandished his wand at the snake and there was a
loud bang; the snake, instead of vanishing, flew ten feet into the air and fell
back to the floor with a loud smack. Enraged, hissing furiously, it slithered
straight toward Justin Finch-Fletchley and raised itself again, fangs exposed,
poised to strike.
Harry wasn't sure what made him
do it. He wasn't even aware of deciding to do it. All he knew was that his legs
were carrying him forward as though he was on casters and that he had shouted
stupidly at the snake, "Leave him alone!" And miraculously -
inexplicably - the snake slumped to the floor, docile as a thick, black garden
hose, its eyes now on Harry. Harry felt the fear drain out of him. He knew the
snake wouldn't attack anyone now, though how he knew it, he couldn't have
explained.
He looked up at Justin,
grinning, expecting to see Justin looking relieved, or puzzled, or even
grateful - but certainly not angry and scared.
"What do you think you're
playing at?" he shouted, and before Harry could say anything, Justin had
turned and stormed out of the hall.
Snape stepped forward, waved his
wand, and the snake vanished in a small puff of black smoke. Snape, too, was
looking at Harry in an unexpected way: It was a shrewd and calculating look,
and Harry didn't like it. He was also dimly aware of an ominous muttering all
around the walls. Then he felt a tugging on the back of his robes.
"Come on," said Ron's
voice in his ear. "Move - come on -"
Ron steered him out of the hall,
Hermione hurrying alongside them. As they went through the doors, the people on
either side drew away as though they were frightened of catching something.
Harry didn't have a clue what was going on, and neither Ron nor Hermione
explained anything until they had dragged him all the way up to the empty
Gryffindor common room.
Then Ron pushed Harry into an
armchair and said, "You're a Parselmouth. Why didn't you tell us?"
"I'm a what?" said
Harry.
"A Parselmouth!" said
Ron. "You can talk to snakes!"
"I know," said Harry.
"I mean, that's only the second time I've ever done it. I accidentally set
a boa constrictor on my cousin Dudley at the zoo once - long story - but it was
telling me it had never seen Brazil and I sort of set it free without meaning
to that was before I knew I was a wizard -"
"A boa constrictor told you
it had never seen Brazil?" Ron repeated faintly.
"So?" said Harry.
"I bet loads of people here can do it."
"Oh, no they can't,"
said Ron. "It's not a very common gift. Harry, this is bad."
"What's bad?" said
Harry, starting to feel quite angry. "What's wrong with everyone? Listen,
if I hadn't told that snake not to attack Justin -"
"Oh, that's what you said
to it?"
"What d'you mean? You were
there - you heard me -"
"I heard you speaking
Parseltongue," said Ron. "Snake language. You could have been saying
anything - no wonder Justin panicked, you sounded like you were egging the
snake on or something - it was creepy, you know -"
Harry gaped at him.
"I spoke a different
language? But - I didn't realize - how can I speak a language without knowing I
can speak it?"
Ron shook his head. Both he and
Hermione were looking as though someone had died. Harry couldn't see what was
so terrible.
"D'you want to tell me
what's wrong with stopping a massive snake biting off Justin's head?" he
said. "What does it matter how I did it as long as Justin doesn't have to
join the Headless Hunt?"
"It matters," said
Hermione, speaking at last in a hushed voice, "because being able to talk
to snakes was what Salazar Slytherin was famous for. That's why the symbol of
Slytherin House is a serpent."
Harry's mouth fell open.
"Exactly," said Ron.
"And now the whole school's going to think you're his
great-great-great-great-grandson or something -"
"But I'm not," said
Harry, with a panic he couldn't quite explain.
"You'll find that hard to
prove," said Hermione. "He lived about a thousand years ago; for all
we know, you could be."
Harry lay awake for hours that
night. Through a gap in the curtains around his four-poster he watched snow
starting to drift past the tower window and wondered...
Could he be a descendant of
Salazar Slithering? He didn't know anything about his father's family, after
all. The Dursleys had always forbidden questions about his wizarding relatives.
Quietly, Harry tried to say
something in Parseltongue. The words wouldn't come. It seemed he had to be
face-to-face with a snake to do it.
But I'm in Gryffindor, Harry
thought. The Sorting Hat wouldn't have put me in here if I had Slytherin blood...
Ah, said a nasty little voice in
his brain, but the Sorting Hat wanted to put you in Slytherin, don't you
remember?
Harry turned over. He'd see
Justin the next day in Herbology and he'd explain that he'd been calling the
snake off, not egging it on, which (he thought angrily, pummeling his pillow)
any fool should have realized.
By next morning, however, the
snow that had begun in the night had turned into a blizzard so thick that the
last Herbology lesson of the term was canceled: Professor Sprout wanted to fit
socks and scarves on the Mandrakes, a tricky operation she would entrust to no
one else, now that it was so important for the Mandrakes to grow quickly and
revive Mrs. Norris and Colin Creevey.
Harry fretted about this next to
the fire in the Gryffindor common room, while Ron and Hermione used their time
off to play a game of wizard chess.
"For heaven's sake,
Harry," said Hermione, exasperated, as one of Ron's bishops wrestled her
knight off his horse and dragged him off the board. "Go and find Justin if
it's so important to you."
So Harry got up and left through
the portrait hole, wondering where Justin might be.
The castle was darker than it
usually was in daytime because of the thick, swirling gray snow at every
window. Shivering, Harry walked past classrooms where lessons were taking
place, catching snatches of what was happening within. Professor McGonagall was
shouting at someone who, by the sound of it, had turned his friend into a
badger. Resisting the urge to take a look, Harry walked on by, thinking that
Justin might be using his free time to catch up on some work, and deciding to
check the library first.
A group of the Hufliepuffs who
should have been in Herbology were indeed sitting at the back of the library,
but they didn't seem to be working. Between the long lines of high bookshelves,
Harry could see that their heads were close together and they were having what
looked like an absorbing conversation. He couldn't see whether Justin was among
them. He was walking toward them when something of what they were saying met
his ears, and he paused to listen, hidden in the Invisibility section.
"So anyway," a stout
boy was saying, "I told Justin to hide up in our dormitory. I mean to say,
if Potter's marked him down as his next victim, it's best if he keeps a low
profile for a while. Of course, Justin's been waiting for something like this
to happen ever since he let slip to Potter he was Muggle-born. Justin actually
told him he'd been down for Eton. That's not the kind of thing you bandy about
with Slytherin's heir on the loose, is it?"
"You definitely think it is
Potter, then, Ernie?" said a girl with blonde pigtails anxiously.
"Hannah," said the
stout boy solemnly, "he's a Parselmouth. Everyone knows that's the mark of
a Dark wizard. Have you ever heard of a decent one who could talk to snakes?
They called Slytherin himself Serpent-tongue."
There was some heavy murmuring
at this, and Ernie went on, "Remember what was written on the wall?
Enemies of the Heir, Beware. Potter had some sort of run-in with Filch. Next
thing we know, Flich's cat's attacked. That first year, Creevey, was annoying
Potter at the Quidditch match, taking pictures of him while he was lying in the
mud. Next thing we know - Creevey's been attacked."
"He always seems so nice,
though," said Hannah uncertainly, "and, well, he's the one who made
You-Know-Who disappear. He can't be all bad, can he?"
Ernie lowered his voice
mysteriously, the Hufflepuffs bent closer, and Harry edged nearer so that he
could catch Ernie's words.
"No one knows how he
survived that attack by You-Know-Who. I mean to say, he was only a baby when it
happened. He should have been blasted into smithereens. Only a really powerful
Dark wizard could have survived a curse like that." He dropped his voice
until it was barely more than a whisper, and said, "That's probably why
You- Know-Who wanted to kill him in the first place. Didn't want another Dark
Lord competing with him. I wonder what other powers Potter's been hiding?"
Harry couldn't take anymore.
Clearing his throat loudly, he stepped out from behind the bookshelves. If he
hadn't been feeling so angry, he would have found the sight that greeted him
funny: Every one of the Hufflepuffs looked as though they had been Petrified by
the sight of him, and the color was draining out of Ernie's face.
"Hello," said Harry.
"I'm looking for Justin Finch-Fletchley."
The Hufflepuffs' worst fears had
clearly been confirmed. They all looked fearfully at Ernie.
"What do you want with
him?" said Ernie in a quavering voice.
"I wanted to tell him what
really happened with that snake at the Dueling Club," said Harry.
Ernie bit his white lips and
then, taking a deep breath, said, "We were all there. We saw what
happened."
"Then you noticed that
after I spoke to it, the snake backed off?" said Harry.
"All I saw," said
Ernie stubbornly, though he was trembling as he spoke, "was you speaking
Parseltongue and chasing the snake toward Justin."
"I didn't chase it at
him!" Harry said, his voice shaking with anger. "It didn't even touch
him!"
"It was a very near
miss," said Ernie. "And in case you're getting ideas," he added
hastily, "I might tell you that you can trace my family back through nine
generations of witches and warlocks and my blood's as pure as anyone's, so
-"
"- I don't care what sort
of blood you've got!" said Harry fiercely. "Why would I want to
attack Muggle-borns?"
"I've heard you hate those
Muggles you live with," said Ernie swiftly.
"It's not possible to live
with the Dursleys and not hate them," said Harry. "I'd like to see
you try it."
He turned on his heel and
stormed out of the library, earning himself a reproving glare from Madam Pince,
who was polishing the gilded cover of a large spellbook.
Harry blundered up the corridor,
barely noticing where he was going, he was in such a fury. The result was that
he walked into something very large and solid, which knocked him backward onto
the floor.
"Oh, hello, Hagrid,"
Harry said, looking up.
Hagrid's face was entirely
hidden by a woolly, snow-covered balaclava, but it couldn't possibly be anyone
else, as he filled most of the corridor in his moleskin overcoat. A dead
rooster was hanging from one of his massive, gloved hands.
"All righ', Harry?" he
said, pulling up the balaclava so he could speak. "Why aren't yeh in
class?"
"Canceled," said
Harry, getting up. "What're you doing in here?"
Hagrid held up the limp rooster.
"Second one killed this
term," he explained. "It's either foxes or a Blood-Suckin Bugbear,
an' I need the Headmaster's permission ter put a charm around the hen
coop."
He peered more closely at Harry
from under his thick, snowflecked eyebrows.
"Yeh sure yeh're all righ'?
Yeh look all hot an' bothered -"
Harry couldn't bring himself to
repeat what Ernie and the rest of the Hufflepuffs had been saying about him.
"It's nothing," he
said. "Id better get going, Hagrid, it's Transfiguration next and I've got
to pick up my books."
He walked off, his mind still
full of what Ernie had said about him.
"Justin's been waiting for
something like this to happen ever since he let slip to Potter he was
Muggle-born..."
Harry stamped up the stairs and
turned along another corridor, which was particularly dark; the torches had
been extinguished by a strong, icy draft that was blowing through a loose
windowpane. He was halfway down the passage when he tripped headlong over
something lying on the floor.
He turned to squint at what he'd
fallen over and felt as though his stomach had dissolved.
Justin Finch-Fletchley was lying
on the floor, rigid and cold, a look of shock frozen on his face, his eyes
staring blankly at the ceiling. And that wasn't all. Next to him was another
figure, the strangest sight Harry had ever seen.
It was Nearly Headless Nick, no
longer pearly-white and transparent, but black and smoky, floating immobile and
horizontal, six inches off the floor. His head was half off and his face wore
an expression of shock identical to Justin's.
Harry got to his feet, his
breathing fast and shallow, his heart doing a kind of drumroll against his
ribs. He lookedwildly up and down the deserted corridor and saw a line of
spiders scuttling as fast as they could away from the bodies. The only sounds
were the muffled voices of teachers from the classes on either side.
He could run, and no one would
ever know he had been there. But he couldn't just leave them lying here...He had
to get help...Would anyone believe he hadn't had anything to do with this?
As he stood there, panicking, a
door right next to him opened with a bang. Peeves the Poltergeist came shooting
out.
"Why, it's potty wee
Potter!" cackled Peeves, knocking Harry's glasses askew as he bounced past
him. "What's Potter up to? Why's Potter lurking -"
Peeves stopped, halfway through
a midair somersault. Upside down, he spotted Justin and Nearly Headless Nick.
He flipped the right way up, filled his lungs and, before Harry could stop him,
screamed, "ATTACK! ATTACK! ANOTHER ATTACK! NO MORTAL OR GHOST IS SAFE! RUN
FOR YOUR LIVES! ATTAAAACK!"
Crash - crash - crash - door
after door flew open along the corridor and people flooded out. For several
long minutes, there was a scene of such confusion that Justin was in danger of
being squashed and people kept standing in Nearly Headless Nick. Harry found
himself pinned against the wall as the teachers shouted for quiet. Professor
McGonagall came running, followed by her own class, one of whom still had
black-and-white-striped hair. She used her wand to set off a loud bang, which
restored silence, and ordered everyone back into their classes. No sooner had
the scene cleared somewhat than Ernie the Hufflepuff arrived, panting, on the
scene.
"Caught in the act!"
Ernie yelled, his face stark white, pointing his finger dramatically at Harry.
"That will do,
Macmillan!" said Professor McGonagall sharply.
Peeves was bobbing overhead, now
grinning wickedly, surveying the scene; Peeves always loved chaos. As the
teachers bent over Justin and Nearly Headless Nick, examining them, Peeves
broke into song:
"Oh, Potter, you rotter,
oh, what have you done, You're killing off' students, you think it's good fun
-"
"That's enough
Peeves!" barked Professor McGonagall, and Peeves zoomed away backward,
with his tongue out at Harry.
Justin was carried up to the
hospital wing by Professor Flitwick and Professor Sinistra of the Astronomy
department, but nobody seemed to know what to do for Nearly Headless Nick. In
the end, Professor McGonagall conjured a large fan out of thin air, which she
gave to Ernie with instructions to waft Nearly Headless Nick up the stairs.
This Ernie did, fanning Nick along like a silent black hovercraft. This left
Harry and Professor McGonagall alone together.
"This way, Potter,"
she said.
"Professor," said
Harry at once, "I swear I didn't -"
"This is out of my hands,
Potter," said Professor McGonagall curtly.
They marched in silence around a
corner and she stopped before a large and extremely ugly stone gargoyle.
"Lemon drop!" she
said. This was evidently a password, because the gargoyle sprang suddenly to
life and hopped aside as the wall behind him split in two. Even full of
dread for what was coming, Harry couldn't fail to be
amazed. Behind the wall was a spiral staircase that was moving smoothly upward,
like an escalator. As he and Professor McGonagall stepped onto it, Harry heard
the wall thud closed behind them. They rose upward in circles, higher and
higher, until at last, slightly dizzy, Harry saw a gleaming oak door ahead,
with a brass knocker in the shape of a griffin.
He knew now where he was being
taken. This must be where Dumbledore lived.
CHAPTER TWELVE THE POLYJUICE POTION
They stepped off the stone
staircase at the top, and Professor McGonagall rapped on the door. It opened
silently and they entered. Professor McGonagall told Harry to wait and left him
there, alone.
Harry looked around. One thing
was certain: of all the teachers' offices Harry had visited so far this year,
Dumbledore's was by far the most interesting. If he hadn't been scared out of
his wits that he was about to be thrown out of school, he would have been very
pleased to have a chance to look around it.
It was a large and beautiful
circular room, full of funny little noises. A number of curious silver
instruments stood on spindle legged tables, whirring and emitting little puffs
of smoke. The walls were covered with portraits of old headmasters and headmistresses,
all of whom were snoozing gently in their frames. There was also an enormous,
claw-footed desk, and, sitting on a shelf behind it, a shabby, tattered
wizard's hat - the Sorting Hat.
Harry hesitated. He cast a wary
eye around the sleeping witches and wizards on the walls. Surely it couldn't
hurt if he took the hat down and tried it on again? Just to see...just to make
sure it had put him in the right House.
He walked quietly around the
desk, lifted the hat from its shelf, and lowered it slowly onto his head. It
was much too large and slipped down over his eyes, just as it had done the last
time he'd put it on. Harry stared at the black inside of the hat, waiting. Then
a small voice said in his ear, "Bee in your bonnet, Harry Potter?"
"Er, yes," Harry
muttered. "Er - sorry to bother you - I wanted to ask -"
"You've been wondering
whether I put you in the right House," said the hat smartly. "Yes...
you were particularly difficult to place. But I stand by what I said before
-" Harry's heart leapt - "you would have done well in Slytherin
-"
Harry's stomach plummeted. He
grabbed the point of the hat and pulled it off. It hung limply in his hand,
grubby and faded. Harry pushed it back onto its shelf, feeling sick.
"You're wrong," he
said aloud to the still and silent hat. It didn't move. Harry backed away,
watching it. Then a strange, gagging noise behind him made him wheel around.
He wasn't alone after all.
Standing on a golden perch behind the door was a decrepit-looking bird that
resembled a half-plucked turkey. Harry stared at it and the bird looked
balefully back, making its gagging noise again. Harry thought it looked very
ill. Its eyes were dull and, even as Harry watched, a couple more feathers fell
out of its tail.
Harry was just thinking that all
he needed was for Dumbledore's pet bird to die while he was alone in the office
with it, when the bird burst into flames.
Harry yelled in shock and backed
away into the desk. He looked feverishly around in case there was a glass of
water somewhere but couldn't see one; the bird, meanwhile, had become a
fireball; it gave one loud shriek and next second there was nothing but a
smouldering pile of ash on the floor.
The office door opened.
Dumbledore came in, looking very somber.
"Professor," Harry
gasped. "Your bird - I couldn't do anything - he just caught fire -"
To Harry's astonishment,
Dumbledore smiled.
"About time, too," he
said. "He's been looking dreadful for days; I've been telling him to get a
move on."
He chuckled at the stunned look
on Harry's face.
"Fawkes is a phoenix,
Harry. Phoenixes burst into flame when it is time for them to die and are
reborn from the ashes. Watch him..."
Harry looked down in time to see
a tiny, wrinkled, newborn bird poke its head out of the ashes. It was quite as
ugly as the old one.
"It's a shame you had to
see him on a Burning Day," said Dumbledore, seating himself behind his
desk. "He's really very handsome most of the time, wonderful red and gold
plumage. Fascinating creatures, phoenixes. They can carry immensely heavy loads,
their tears have healing powers, and they make highly faithful pets."
In the shock of Fawkes catching
fire, Harry had forgotten what he was there for, but it all came back to him as
Dumbledore settled himself in the high chair behind the desk and fixed Harry
with his penetrating, light-blue stare.
Before Dumbledore could speak
another word, however, the door of the office flew open with an almighty bang
and Hagrid burst in, a wild look in his eyes, his balaclava perched on top of
his shaggy black head and the dead rooster still swinging from his hand.
"It wasn' Harry, Professor
Dumbledore!" said Hagrid urgently. "I was talkin' ter him seconds
before that kid was found, he never had time, sir -"
Dumbledore tried to say
something, but Hagrid went ranting on, waving the rooster around in his
agitation, sending feathers everywhere.
" it can't've bin him, I'll
swear it in front o' the Ministry o' Magic if I have to."
"Hagrid, I -"
"- yeh've got the wrong
boy, sir, I know Harry never -"
"Hagrid!" said
Dumbledore loudly. "I do not think that Harry attacked those people."
"Oh," said Hagrid, the
rooster falling limply at his side. "Right. I'll wait outside then,
Headmaster."
And he stomped out looking
embarrassed.
"You don't think it was me,
Professor?" Harry repeated hopefully as Dumbledore brushed rooster
feathers off his desk.
"No, Harry, I don't,"
said Dumbledore, though his face was somber again. "But I still want to
talk to you."
Harry waited nervously while
Dumbledore considered him, the tips of his long fingers together.
"I must ask you, Harry,
whether there is anything you'd like to tell me," he said gently.
"Anything at all."
Harry didn't know what to say.
He thought of Malfoy shouting, "You'll be next, Mudbloods!" and of
the Polyjuice Potion simmering away in Moaning Myrtle's bathroom. Then he
thought of the disembodied voice he had heard twice and remembered what Ron had
said: "Hearing voices no one else can hear isn't a good sign, even in the
wizarding world." He thought, too, about what everyone was saying about
him, and his growing dread that he was somehow connected with Salazar
Slytherin...
"No," said Harry.
"There isn't anything, Professor..."
The double attack on Justin and
Nearly Headless Nick turned what had hitherto been nervousness into real panic.
Curiously, it was Nearly Headless Nick's fate that seemed to worry people most.
What could possibly do that to a ghost? people asked each other; what terrible
power could harm someone who was already dead? There was almost a stampede to
book seats on the Hogwarts Express so that students could go home for
Christmas.
"At this rate, we'll be the
only ones left," Ron told Harry and Hermione. "Us, Malfoy, Crabbe,
and Goyle. What a jolly holiday it's going to be."
Crabbe and Goyle, who always did
whatever Malfoy did, had signed up to stay over the holidays, too. But Harry
was glad that most people were leaving. He was tired of people skirting around
him in the corridors, as though he was about to sprout fangs or spit poison;
tired of all the muttering, pointing, and hissing as he passed.
Fred and George, however, found
all this very funny. They went out of their way to march ahead of Harry down
the corridors, shouting, "Make way for the Heir of Slytherin, seriously
evil wizard coming through..."
Percy was deeply disapproving of
this behavior.
"It is not a laughing
matter," he said coldly.
"Oh, get out of the way,
Percy," said Fred. "Harry's in a hurry."
"Yeah, he's off to the
Chamber of Secrets for a cup of tea with his fanged servant," said George,
chortling.
Ginny didn't find it amusing
either.
"Oh, don't," she
wailed every time Fred asked Harry loudly who he was planning to attack next,
or when George pretended to ward Harry off with a large clove of garlic when
they met.
Harry didn't mind; it made him
feel better that Fred and George, at least, thought the idea of his being
Slytherin's heir was quite ludicrous. But their antics seemed to be aggravating
Draco Malfoy, who looked increasingly sour each time he saw them at it.
"It's because he's bursting
to say it's really him," said Ron knowingly. "You know how he hates
anyone beating him at anything, and you're getting all the credit for his dirty
work."
"Not for long," said
Hermione in a satisfied tone. "The Polyjuice Potion's nearly ready. We'll
be getting the truth out of him any day now."
At last the term ended, and a
silence deep as the snow on the grounds descended on the castle. Harry found it
peaceful, rather than gloomy, and enjoyed the fact that he, Hermione, and the
Weasleys had the run of Gryffindor Tower, which meant they could play Exploding
Snap loudly without bothering anyone, and practice dueling in private. Fred,
George, and Ginny had chosen to stay at school rather than visit Bill in Egypt
with Mr. and Mrs. Weasley. Percy, who disapproved of what he termed their
childish behavior, didn't spend much time in the Gryffindor common room. He had
already told them pompously that he was only staying over Christmas because it
was his duty as a prefect to support the teachers during this troubled time.
Christmas morning dawned, cold
and white. Harry and Ron, the only ones left in their dormitory, were woken
very early by Hermione, who burst in, fully dressed and carrying presents for
them both.
"Wake up," she said
loudly, pulling back the curtains at the window.
"Hermione - you're not
supposed to be in here -" said Ron, shielding his eyes against the light.
"Merry Christmas to you,
too," said Hermione, throwing him his present. "I've been up for
nearly an hour, adding more lacewings to the potion. It's ready."
Harry sat up, suddenly wide
awake.
"Are you sure?"
"Positive," said
Hermione, shifting Scabbers the rat so that she could sit down on the end of
Ron's four-poster. "If we're going to do it, I say it should be
tonight."
At that moment, Hedwig swooped
into the room, carrying a very small package in her beak.
"Hello," said Harry
happily as she landed on his bed. "Are you speaking to me again?"
She nibbled his ear in an
affectionate sort of way, which was a far better present than the one that she
had brought him, which turned out to be from the Dursleys. They had sent Harry
a toothpick and a note telling him to find out whether he'd be able to stay at
Hogwarts for the summer vacation, too.
The rest of Harry's Christmas
presents were far more satisfactory. Hagrid had sent him a large tin of treacle
fudge, which Harry decided to soften by the fire before eating; Ron had given
him a book called Flying with the Cannons, a book of interesting facts about
his favorite Quidditch team, and Hermione had bought him a luxurious
eagle-feather quill. Harry opened the last present to find a new, hand-knitted
sweater from Mrs. Weasley and a large plum cake. He read her card with a fresh
surge of guilt, thinking about Mr. Weasley's car (which hadn't been seen since
its crash with the Whomping Willow), and the bout of rule-breaking he and Ron
were planning next.
No one, not even someone
dreading taking Polyjuice Potion later, could fail to enjoy Christmas dinner at
Hogwarts.
The Great Hall looked
magnificent. Not only were there a dozen frost-covered Christmas trees and
thick streamers of holly and mistletoe crisscrossing the ceiling, but enchanted
snow was falling, warm and dry, from the ceiling. Dumbledore led them in a few
of his favorite carols, Hagrid booming more and more loudly with every goblet
of eggnog he consumed. Percy, who hadn't noticed that Fred had bewitched his
prefect badge so that it now read "Pinhead," kept asking them all
what they were sniggering at. Harry didn't even care that Draco Malfoy was
making loud, snide remark about his new sweater from the Slytherin table. With
a bit of luck, Malfoy would be getting his comeuppance in a few hours' time.
Harry and Ron had barely
finished their third helpings of Christmas pudding when Hermione ushered them
out of the hall to finalize their plans for the evening.
"We still need a bit of the
people you're changing into," said Hermione matter-of-factly, as though
she were sending them to the supermarket for laundry detergent. "And
obviously, it'll be best if you can get something of Crabbe's and Goyle's;
they're Malfoys best friends, he'll tell them anything. And we also need to
make sure the real Crabbe and Goyle can't burst in on us while we're
interrogating him.
"I've got it all worked
out," she went on smoothly, ignoring Harry's and Ron's stupefied faces.
She held up two plump chocolate cakes. "I've filled these with a simple
Sleeping Draught. All you have to do is make sure Crabbe and Goyle find them.
You know how greedy they are, they're bound to eat them. Once they're asleep,
pull out a few of their hairs and hide them in a broom closet."
Harry and Ron looked
incredulously at each other.
"Hermione, I don't think
-"
"That could go seriously
wrong -"
But Hermione had a steely glint
in her eye not unlike the one Professor McGonagall sometimes had.
"The potion will be useless
without Crabbe's and Goyle's hair," she said sternly. "You do want to
investigate Malfoy, don't you?"
"Oh, all right, all
right," said Harry. "But what about you? Whose hair are you ripping
out?"
"I've already got
mine!" said Hermione brightly, pulling a tiny bottle out of her pocket and
showing them the single hair inside it. "Remember Millicent Bulstrode
wrestling with me at the Dueling Club? She left this on my robes when she was
trying to strangle me! And she's gone home for Christmas - so I'll just have to
tell the Slytherins I've decided to come back."
When Hermione had bustled off to
check on the Polyjuice Potion again, Ron turned to Harry with a doom-laden
expression.
"Have you ever heard of a
plan where so many things could go wrong?"
But to Harry's and Ron's utter
amazement, stage one of the operation went just as smoothly as Hermione had
said. They lurked in the deserted entrance hall after Christmas tea, waiting
for Crabbe and Goyle who had remained alone at the Slytherin table, shoveling
down fourth helpings of trifle. Harry had perched the chocolate cakes on the
end of the banisters. When they spotted Crabbe and Goyle coming out of the
Great Hall, Harry and Ron hid quickly behind a suit of armor next to the front
door.
"How thick can you
get?" Ron whispered ecstatically as Crabbe gleefully pointed out the cakes
to Goyle and grabbed them. Grinning stupidly, they stuffed the cakes whole into
their large mouths. For a moment, both of them chewed greedily, looks of
triumph on their faces. Then, without the smallest change of expression, they
both keeled over backward onto the floor.
By far the hardest part was
hiding them in the closet across the hall. Once they were safely stowed among
the buckets and mops, Harry yanked out a couple of the bristles that covered
Goyle's forehead and Ron pulled out several of Crabbe's hairs. They also stole
their shoes, because their own were far too small for Crabbe- and Goyle-size
feet. Then, still stunned at what they had just done, they sprinted up to
Moaning Myrtle's bathroom.
They could hardly see for the
thick black smoke issuing from the stall in which Hermione was stirring the
cauldron. Pulling their robes up over their faces, Harry and Ron knocked softly
on the door.
"Hermione?"
They heard the scrape of the
lock and Hermione emerged, shiny-faced and looking anxious. Behind her they
heard the gloop gloop of the bubbling, glutinous potion. Three glass tumblers
stood ready on the toilet seat.
"Did you get them?"
Hermione asked breathlessly.
Harry showed her Goyle's hair.
"Good. And I sneaked these
spare robes out of the laundry," Hermione said, holding up a small sack.
"You'll need bigger sizes once you're Crabbe and Goyle."
The three of them stared into
the cauldron. Close up, the potion looked like thick, dark mud, bubbling
sluggishly.
"I'm sure I've done
everything right," said Hermione, nervously rereading the splotched page
of Moste Potente Potions. "It looks like the book says it should ... once
we've drunk it, we'll have exactly an hour before we change back into
ourselves."
"Now what?" Ron
whispered.
"We separate it into three
glasses and add the hairs."
Hermione ladled large dollops of
the potion into each of the glasses. Then, her hand trembling, she shook Millicent
Bulstrode's hair out of its bottle into the first glass.
The potion hissed loudly like a
boiling kettle and frothed madly. A second later, it had turned a sick sort of
yellow.
"Urgh - essence of
Millicent Bulstrode," said Ron, eyeing it with loathing. "Bet it
tastes disgusting."
"Add yours, then,"
said Hermione.
Harry dropped Goyle's hair into
the middle glass and Ron put Crabbe's into the last one. Both glasses hissed
and frothed: Goyle's turned the khaki color of a booger, Crabbe's a dark, murky
brown.
"Hang on," said Harry
as Ron and Hermione reached for their glasses. "We'd better not all drink
them in here ... Once we turn into Crabbe and Goyle we won't fit. And Millicent
Bulstrode's no pixie."
"Good thinking," said
Ron, unlocking the door. "We'll take separate stalls."
Careful not to spill a drop of
his Polyjuice Potion, Harry slipped into the middle stall.
"Ready?" he called.
"Ready," came Ron's
and Hermione's voices.
"One - two - three -"
Pinching his nose, Harry drank
the potion down in two large gulps. It tasted like overcooked cabbage.
Immediately, his insides started
writhing as though he'd just swallowed live snakes - doubled up, he wondered
whether he was going to be sick - then a burning sensation spread rapidly from
his stomach to the very ends of his fingers and toes - next, bringing him
gasping to all fours, came a horrible melting feeling, as the skin all over his
body bubbled like hot wax - and before his eyes, his hands began to grow, the
fingers thickened, the nails broadened, the knuckles were bulging like bolts -
his shoulders stretched painfully and a prickling on his forehead told him that
hair was creeping down toward his eyebrows - his robes ripped as his chest
expanded like a barrel bursting its hoops - his feet were agony in shoes four
sizes too small.
As suddenly as it had started,
everything stopped. Harry lay facedown on the stone-cold floor, listening to
Myrtle gurgling morosely in the end toilet. With difficulty, he kicked off his
shoes and stood up. So this was what it felt like, being Goyle. His large hand
trembling, he pulled off his old robes, which were hanging a foot above his
ankles, pulled on the spare ones, and laced up Goyle's boatlike shoes. He
reached up to brush his hair out of his eyes and met only the short growth of
wiry bristles, low on his forehead. Then he realized that his glasses were
clouding his eyes because Goyle obviously didn't need them - he took them off
and called, "Are you two okay?" Goyle's low rasp of a voice issued
from his mouth.
"Yeah," came the deep
grunt of Crabbe from his right.
Harry unlocked his door and
stepped in front of the cracked mirror. Goyle stared back at him out of dull,
deepset eyes. Harry scratched his ear. So did Goyle.
Ron's door opened. They stared
at each other. Except that he looked pale and shocked, Ron was
indistinguishable from Crabbe, from the pudding-bowl haircut to the long,
gorilla arms.
"This is
unbelievable," said Ron, approaching the mirror and prodding Crabbe's flat
nose. "Unbelievable."
"We'd better get going,"
said Harry, loosening the watch that was cutting into Goyle's thick wrist.
"We've still got to find out where the Slytherin common room is. I only
hope we can find someone to follow..."
Ron, who had been gazing at
Harry, said, "You don't know how bizarre it is to see Goyle
thinking." He banged on Hermione's door. "C'mon, we need to go
-"
A high-pitched voice answered
him.
"I - I don't think I'm
going to come after all. You go on without me."
"Hermione, we know
Millicent Bulstrode's ugly, no one's going to know it's you -"
"No - really - I don't
think I'll come. You two hurry up, you're wasting time -"
Harry looked at Ron, bewildered.
"That looks more like
Goyle," said Ron. "That's how he looks every time a teacher asks him
a question."
"Hermione, are you okay?"
said Harry through the door.
"Fine - I'm fine - go on
-"
Harry looked at his watch. Five
of their precious sixty minutes had already passed.
"We'll meet you back here,
all right?" he said.
Harry and Ron opened the door of
the bathroom carefully, checked that the coast was clear, and set off.
"Don't swing your arms like
that," Harry muttered to Ron.
"Eh?"
"Crabbe holds them sort of
stiff..."
"How's this?"
"Yeah, that's better..."
They went down the marble
staircase. All they needed now was a Slytherin that they could follow to the
Slytherin common room, but there was nobody around.
"Any ideas?" muttered
Harry.
"The Slytherins always come
up to breakfast from over there," said Ron, nodding at the entrance to the
dungeons. The words had barely left his mouth when a girl with long, curly hair
emerged from the entrance.
"Excuse me," said Ron,
hurrying up to her. "We've forgotten the way to our common room."
"I beg your pardon?"
said the girl stiffly. "Our common room? I'm a Ravenclaw."
She walked away, looking suspiciously
back at them.
Harry and Ron hurried down the
stone steps into the darkness, their footsteps echoing particularly loudly as
Crabbe's and Goyle's huge feet hit the floor, feeling that this wasn't going to
be as easy as they had hoped.
The labyrinthine passages were
deserted. They walked deeper and deeper under the school, constantly checking
their watches to see how much time they had left. After a quarter of an hour,
just when they were getting desperate, they heard a sudden movement ahead.
"Ha!" said Ron
excitedly. "There's one of them now!"
The figure was emerging from a
side room. As they hurried nearer, however, their hearts sank. It wasn't a
Slytherin, it was Percy.
"What're you doing down
here?" said Ron in surprise.
Percy looked affronted.
"That," he said
stiffly, "is none of your business. It's Crabbe, isn't it?"
"Wh - oh, yeah," said
Ron.
"Well, get off to your
dormitories," said Percy sternly. "It's not safe to go wandering
around dark corridors these days."
"You are," Ron pointed
out.
"I," said Percy,
drawing himself up, "am a prefect. Nothing's about to attack me."
A voice suddenly echoed behind
Harry and Ron. Draco Malfoy was strolling toward them, and for the first time
in his life, Harry was pleased to see him.
"There you are," he
drawled, looking at them. "Have you two been pigging out in the Great Hall
all this time? I've been looking for you; I want to show you something really
funny."
Malfoy glanced witheringly at
Percy.
"And what're you doing down
here, Weasley?" he sneered.
Percy looked outraged.
"You want to show a bit
more respect to a school prefect!" he said. "I don't like your
attitude!"
Malfoy sneered and motioned for
Harry and Ron to follow him. Harry almost said something apologetic to Percy
but caught himself just in time. He and Ron hurried after Malfoy, who said as
they turned into the next passage, "That Peter Weasley -"
"Percy," Ron corrected
him automatically.
"Whatever," said
Malfoy. "I've noticed him sneaking around a lot lately. And I bet I know
what he's up to. He thinks he's going to catch Slytherin's heir
single-handed."
He gave a short, derisive laugh.
Harry and Ron exchanged excited looks.
Malfoy paused by a stretch of
bare, damp stone wall.
"What's the new password
again?" he said to Harry.
"Er -" said Harry.
"Oh, yeah -
pure-blood!" said Malfoy, not listening, and a stone door concealed in the
wall slid open. Malfoy marched through it, and Harry and Ron followed him.
The Slytherin common room was a
long, low underground room with rough stone walls and ceiling from which round,
greenish lamps were hanging on chains. A fire was crackling under an
elaborately carved mantelpiece ahead of them, and several Slytherins were
silhouetted around it in high-backed chairs.
"Wait here," said
Malfoy to Harry and Ron, motioning them to a pair of empty chairs set back from
the fire. "I'll go and get it my father's just sent it to me -"
Wondering what Malfoy was going
to show them, Harry and Ron sat down, doing their best to look at home.
Malfoy came back a minute later,
holding what looked like a newspaper clipping. He thrust it under Ron's nose.
"That'll give you a
laugh," he said.
Harry saw Ron's eyes widen in
shock. He read the clipping quickly, gave a very forced laugh, and handed it to
Harry.
It had been clipped out of the Daily
Prophet, and it said:
INQUIRY AT THE MINISTRY OF MAGIC
Arthur Weasley, Head of the Misuse of Muggle Artifacts Office, was today fined fifty
Galleons for bewitching a Muggle car.
Mr. Lucius Malfoy, a governor of Hogwarts School of Witchcraft and Wizardry, where
the enchanted car crashed earlier this year, called today for Mr. Weasley's
resignation. "Weasley has brought the Ministry into disrepute," Mr.
Malfoy told our reporter. "He is clearly unfit to draw up our laws and his
ridiculous Muggle Protection Act should be scrapped immediately."
Mr. Weasley was unavailable for comment, although his wife told reporters to clear
off or she'd set the family ghoul on them.
"Well?" said Malfoy
impatiently as Harry handed the clipping back to him. "Don't you think
it's funny?"
"Ha, ha," said Harry
bleakly.
"Arthur Weasley loves
Muggles so much he should snap his wand in half and go and join them,"
said Malfoy scornfully. "You'd never know the Weasleys were pure-bloods,
the way they behave."
Ron's - or rather, Crabbe's -
face was contorted with fury.
"What's up with you,
Crabbe?" snapped Malfoy.
"Stomachache," Ron
grunted.
"Well, go up to the
hospital wing and give all those Mudbloods a kick from me," said Malfoy,
snickering. "You know, I'm surprised the Daily Prophet hasn't reported all
these attacks yet," he went on thoughtfully. "I suppose Dumbledore's
trying to hush it all up. He'll be sacked if it doesn't stop soon. Father's
always said old Dumbledore's the worst thing that's ever happened to this
place. He loves Muggle-borns. A decent headmaster would never've let slime like
that Creevey in."
Malfoy started taking pictures
with an imaginary camera and did a cruel but accurate impression of Colin:
" 'Potter, can I have your picture, Potter? Can I have your autograph? Can
I lick your shoes, please, Potter?' "
He dropped his hands and looked
at Harry and Ron.
"What's the matter with you
two?"
Far too late, Harry and Ron
forced themselves to laugh, but Malfoy seemed satisfied; perhaps Crabbe and
Goyle were always slow on the uptake.
"Saint Potter, the
Mudbloods' friend," said Malfoy slowly. "He's another one with no
proper wizard feeling, or he wouldn't go around with that jumped up Granger
Mudblood. And people think he's Slytherin's heir!"
Harry and Ron waited with bated
breath: Malfoy was surely seconds away from telling them it was him - but then
"I wish I knew who it is," said Malfoy petulantly. "I could help
them."
Ron's jaw dropped so that Crabbe
looked even more clueless than usual. Fortunately, Malfoy didn't notice, and
Harry, thinking fast, said, "You must have some idea who's behind it
all..."
"You know I haven't, Goyle,
how many times do I have to tell you?" snapped Malfoy. "And Father
won't tell me anything about the last time the Chamber was opened either. Of
course, it was fifty years ago, so it was before his time, but he knows all
about it, and he says that it was all kept quiet and it'll look suspicious if I
know too much about it. But I know one thing - last time the Chamber of Secrets
was opened, a Mudblood died. So I bet it's a matter of time before one of
them's killed this time...I hope it's Granger," he said with relish.
Ron was clenching Crabbe's
gigantic fists. Feeling that it would be a bit of a giveaway if Ron punched
Malfoy, Harry shot him a warning look and said, "D'you know if the person
who opened the Chamber last time was caught?"
"Oh, yeah...whoever it was
was expelled," said Malfoy. "They're probably still in Azkaban."
"Azkaban?" said Harry,
puzzled.
"Azkaban - the wizard
prison, Goyle," said Malfoy, looking at him in disbelief "Honestly,
if you were any slower, you'd be going backward."
He shifted restlessly in his
chair and said, "Father says to keep my head down and let the Heir of
Slytherin get on with it. He says the school needs ridding of all the Mudblood
filth, but not to get mixed up in it. Of course, he's got a lot on his plate at
the moment. You know the Ministry of Magic raided our manor last week?"
Harry tried to force Goyle's
dull face into a look of concern.
"Yeah..." said Malfoy. "Luckily,
they didn't find much. Father's got some very valuable Dark Arts stuff. But
luckily, we've got our own secret chamber under the drawing-room floor -"
"Ho!" said Ron.
Malfoy looked at him. So did
Harry. Ron blushed. Even his hair was turning red. His nose was also slowly
lengthening - their hour was up, Ron was turning back into himself, and from
the look of horror he was suddenly giving Harry, he must be, too.
They both jumped to their feet.
"Medicine for my
stomach," Ron grunted, and without further ado they sprinted the length of
the Slytherin common room, hurled themselves at the stone wall, and dashed up
the passage, hoping against hope that Malfoy hadn't noticed anything. Harry
could feel his feet slipping around in Goyle's huge shoes and had to hoist up
his robes as he shrank; they crashed up the steps into the dark entrance hall,
which was full of a muffled pounding coming from the closet where they'd locked
Crabbe and Goyle. Leaving their shoes outside the closet door, they sprinted in
their socks up the marble staircase toward Moaning Myrtle's bathroom.
"Well, it wasn't a complete
waste of time," Ron panted, closing the bathroom door behind them. "I
know we still haven't found out who's doing the attacks, but I'm going to write
to Dad tomorrow and tell him to check under the Malfoys' drawing room."
Harry checked his face in the
cracked mirror. He was back to normal. He put his glasses on as Ron hammered on
the door of Hermione's stall.
"Hermione, come out, we've
got loads to tell you -"
"Go away!" Hermione
squeaked.
Harry and Ron looked at each
other.
"What's the matter?"
said Ron. "You must be back to normal by now, we are."
But Moaning Myrtle glided
suddenly through the stall door. Harry had never seen her looking so happy.
"Ooooooh, wait till you
see," she said. "It's awful -"
They heard the lock slide back
and Hermione emerged, sobbing, her robes pulled up over her head.
"What's up?" said Ron
uncertainly. "Have you still got Millicent's nose or something?"
Hermione let her robes fall and
Ron backed into the sink.
Her face was covered in black
fur. Her eyes had turned yellow and there were long, pointed ears poking
through her hair.
"It was a c-cat hair!"
she howled. "M-Millicent Bulstrode m-must have a cat! And the p-potion
isn't supposed to be used for animal transformations!"
"Uh-oh," said Ron.
"You'll be teased something
dreadful," said Myrtle happily.
"It's okay, Hermione,"
said Harry quickly. "We'll take you up to the hospital wing. Madam Pomfrey
never asks too many questions..."
It took a long time to persuade
Hermione to leave the bathroom. Moaning Myrtle sped them on their way with a
hearty guffaw. "Wait till everyone finds out you've got a tail!" CHAPTER THIRTEEN THE VERY SECRET DIARY
Hermione remained in the
hospital wing for several weeks. There was a flurry of rumor about her
disappearance when the rest of the school arrived back from their Christmas
holidays, because of course everyone thought that she had been attacked. So
many students filed past the hospital wing trying to catch a glimpse of her
that Madam Pomfrey took out her curtains again and placed them around
Hermione's bed, to spare her the shame of being seen with a furry face.
Harry and Ron went to visit her
every evening. When the new term started, they brought her each day's homework.
"If I'd sprouted whiskers,
I'd take a break from work," said Ron, tipping a stack of books onto
Hermione's bedside table one evening.
"Don't be silly, Ron, I've
got to keep up," said Hermione briskly. Her spirits were greatly improved
by the fact that all the hair had gone from her face and her eyes were turning
slowly back to brown. "I don't suppose you've got any new leads?" she
added in a whisper, so that Madam Pomfrey couldn't hear her.
"Nothing," said Harry
gloomily.
"I was so sure it was
Malfoy," said Ron, for about the hundredth time.
"What's that?" asked
Harry, pointing to something gold sticking out from under Hermione's pillow.
"Just a get well
card," said Hermione hastily, trying to poke it out of sight, but Ron was
too quick for her. He pulled it out, flicked it open, and read aloud:
"To Miss Granger, wishing
you a speedy recovery, from your concerned teacher, Professor Gilderoy
Lockhart, Order of Merlin, Third Class, Honorary Member of the Dark Force
Defense League, and five-time winner of Witch Weekly's Most Charming Smile
Award."
Ron looked up at Hermione,
disgusted.
"You sleep with this under
your pillow?"
But Hermione was spared
answering by Madam Pomfrey sweeping over with her evening dose of medicine.
"Is Lockhart the smarmiest
bloke you've ever met, or what?" Ron said to Harry as they left the
infirmary and started up the stairs toward Gryffindor Tower.
Snape had given them so much
homework, Harry thought he was likely to be in the sixth year before he
finished it. Ron was just saying he wished he had asked Hermione how many rat
tails you were supposed to add to a Hair Raising Potion when an angry outburst
from the floor above reached their ears.
"That's Filch," Harry
muttered as they hurried up the stairs and paused, out of sight, listening
hard.
"You don't think someone
else's been attacked?" said Ron tensely.
They stood still, their heads
inclined toward Flich's voice, which sounded quite hysterical.
"even more work for me!
Mopping all night, like I haven't got enough to do! No, this is the final
straw, I'm going to Dumbledore -"
His footsteps receded along the
out-of-sight corridor and they heard a distant door slam.
They poked their heads around
the corner. Filch had clearly been manning his usual lookout post: They were once
again on the spot where Mrs. Norris had been attacked. They saw at a glance
what Filch had been shouting about. A great flood of water stretched over half
the corridor, and it looked as though it was still seeping from under the door
of Moaning Myrtle's bathroom. Now that Filch had stopped shouting, they could
hear Myrtle's wails echoing off the bathroom walls.
"Now what's up with
her?" said Ron.
"Let's go and see,"
said Harry, and holding their robes over their ankles they stepped through the
great wash of water to the door bearing its OUT OF ORDER sign, ignored it as
always, and entered.
Moaning Myrtle was crying, if
possible, louder and harder than ever before. She seemed to be hiding down her
usual toilet. It was dark in the bathroom because the candles had been
extinguished in the great rush of water that had left both walls and floor
soaking wet.
"What's up, Myrtle?"
said Harry.
"Who's that?" glugged
Myrtle miserably. "Come to throw something else at me?"
Harry waded across to her stall
and said, "Why would I throw something at you?"
"Don't ask me," Myrtle
shouted, emerging with a wave of yet more water, which splashed onto the
already sopping floor. "Here I am, minding my own business, and someone
thinks it's funny to throw a book at me..."
"But it can't hurt you if
someone throws something at you," said Harry, reasonably. "I mean,
it'd just go right through you, wouldn't it?"
He had said the wrong thing.
Myrtle puffed herself up and shrieked, "Let's all throw books at Myrtle,
because she can't feel it! Ten points if you can get it through her stomach!
Fifty points if it goes through her head! Well, ha, ha, ha! What a lovely game,
I don't think!"
"Who threw it at you,
anyway?" asked Harry.
"I don't know... I was just
sitting in the U-bend, thinking about death, and it fell right through the top
of my head," said Myrtle, glaring at them. "It's over there, it got
washed out..."
Harry and Ron looked under the
sink where Myrtle was pointing. A small, thin book lay there. It had a shabby
black cover and was as wet as everything else in the bathroom. Harry stepped
forward to pick it up, but Ron suddenly flung out an arm to hold him back.
"What?" said Harry.
"Are you crazy?" said
Ron. "It could be dangerous."
"Dangerous?" said
Harry, laughing. "Come off it, how could it be dangerous?"
"You'd be surprised,"
said Ron, who was looking apprehensively at the book. "Some of the books
the Ministry's confiscated Dad's told me - there was one that burned your eyes
out. And everyone who read Sonnets of a Sorcerer spoke in limericks for the
rest of their lives. And some old witch in Bath had a book that you could never
stop reading! You just had to wander around with your nose in it, trying to do
everything one-handed. And -"
"All right, I've got the
point," said Harry.
The little book lay on the
floor, nondescript and soggy.
"Well, we won't find out
unless we look at it," he said, and he ducked around Ron and picked it up
off the floor.
Harry saw at once that it was a
diary, and the faded year on the cover told him it was fifty years old. He
opened it eagerly. On the first page he could just make out the name "T M.
Riddle" in smudged ink.
"Hang on," said Ron,
who had approached cautiously and was looking over Harry's shoulder. "I
know that name...T. M. Riddle got an award for special services to the school
fifty years ago."
"How on earth d'you know
that?" said Harry in amazement.
"Because Filch made me
polish his shield about fifty times in detention," said Ron resentfully.
"That was the one I burped slugs all over. If you'd wiped slime off a name
for an hour, you'd remember it, too."
Harry peeled the wet pages
apart. They were completely blank. There wasn't the faintest trace of writing
on any of them, not even Auntie Mabel's birthday, or dentist, half-past three.
"He never wrote in it,"
said Harry, disappointed.
"I wonder why someone
wanted to flush it away?" said Ron curiously.
Harry turned to the back cover
of the book and saw the printed name of a variety store on Vauxhall Road,
London.
"He must've been
Muggle-born," said Harry thoughtfully. "To have bought a diary from
Vauxhall Road..."
"Well, it's not much use to
you," said Ron. He dropped his voice. "Fifty points if you can get it
through Myrtle's nose."
Harry, however, pocketed it.
Hermione left the hospital wing,
de-whiskered, tail-less, and furfree, at the beginning of February. On her
first evening back in Gryffindor Tower, Harry showed her T. M. Riddle's diary
and told her the story of how they had found it.
"Oooh, it might have hidden
powers," said Hermione enthusiastically, taking the diary and looking at
it closely.
"If it has, it's hiding
them very well," said Ron. "Maybe it's shy. I don't know why you
don't chuck it, Harry."
"I wish I knew why someone
did try to chuck it," said Harry. "I wouldn't mind knowing how Riddle
got an award for special services to Hogwarts either."
"Could've been
anything," said Ron. "Maybe he got thirty O.W.L.s or saved a teacher
from the giant squid. Maybe he murdered Myrtle; that would've done everyone a
favor ..."
But Harry could tell from the arrested
look on Hermione's face that she was thinking what he was thinking.
"What?" said Ron,
looking from one to the other.
"Well, the Chamber of
Secrets was opened fifty years ago, wasn't it?" he said. "That's what
Malfoy said."
"Yeah..." said Ron
slowly.
"And this diary is fifty
years old," said Hermione, tapping it excitedly.
"So?"
"Oh, Ron, wake up,"
snapped Hermione. "We know the person who opened the Chamber last time was
expelled fifty years ago. We know T. M. Riddle got an award for special
services to the school fifty years ago. Well, what if Riddle got his special
award for catching the Heir of Slytherin? His diary would probably tell us
everything - where the Chamber is, and how to open it, and what sort of
creature lives in it - the person who's behind the attacks this time wouldn't
want that lying around, would they?"
"That's a brilliant theory,
Hermione," said Ron, "with just one tiny little flaw. There's nothing
written in his diary."
But Hermione was pulling her
wand out of her bag. "It might be invisible ink!" she whispered.
She tapped the diary three times
and said, "Aparecium!"
Nothing happened. Undaunted,
Hermione shoved her hand back into her bag and pulled out what appeared to be a
bright red eraser.
"It's a Revealer, I got it
in Diagon Alley," she said.
She rubbed hard on January
first. Nothing happened.
"I'm telling you, there's
nothing to find in there," said Ron. "Riddle just got a diary for
Christmas and couldn't be bothered filling it in."
Harry couldn't explain, even to
himself, why he didn't just throw Riddle's diary away. The fact was that even
though he knew the diary was blank, he kept absentmindedly picking it up and
turning the pages, as though it were a story he wanted to finish. And while
Harry was sure he had never heard the name T. M. Riddle before, it still seemed
to mean something to him, almost as though Riddle was a friend he'd had when he
was very small, and had half-forgotten. But this was absurd. He'd never had
friends before Hogwarts, Dudley had made sure of that.
Nevertheless, Harry was
determined to find out more about Riddle, so next day at break, he headed for
the trophy room to examine Riddle's special award, accompanied by an interested
Hermione and a thoroughly unconvinced Ron, who told them he'd seen enough of the
trophy room to last him a lifetime.
Riddle's burnished gold shield
was tucked away in a corner cabinet. It didn't carry details of why it had been
given to him ("Good thing, too, or it'd be even bigger and I'd still be
polishing it," said Ron). However, they did find Riddle's name on an old
Medal for Magical Merit, and on a list of old Head Boys.
"He sounds like
Percy," said Ron, wrinkling his nose in disgust. "Prefect, Head Boy
...probably top of every class -"
"You say that like it's a
bad thing," said Hermione in a slightly hurt voice.
The sun had now begun to shine
weakly on Hogwarts again. Inside the castle, the mood had grown more hopeful.
There had been no more attacks since those on Justin and Nearly Headless Nick,
and Madam Pomfrey was pleased to report that the Mandrakes were becoming moody
and secretive, meaning that they were fast leaving childhood.
"The moment their acne
clears up, they'll be ready for repotting again," Harry heard her telling
Filch kindly one afternoon. "And after that, it won't be long until we're
cutting them up and stewing them. You'll have Mrs. Norris back in no
time."
Perhaps the Heir of Slytherin
had lost his or her nerve, thought Harry. It must be getting riskier and
riskier to open the Chamber of Secrets, with the school so alert and
suspicious. Perhaps the monster, whatever it was, was even now settling itself
down to hibernate for another fifty years...
Ernie Macmillan of Hufflepuff
didn't take this cheerful view. He was still convinced that Harry was the
guilty one, that he had "given himself away" at the Dueling Club.
Peeves wasn't helping matters; he kept popping up in the crowded corridors
singing "Oh, Potter, you rotter..." now with a dance routine to match.
Gilderoy Lockhart seemed to
think he himself had made the attacks stop. Harry overheard him telling
Professor McGonagall so while the Gryffindors were lining up for
Transfiguration. "I don't think there'll be any more trouble,
Minerva," he said, tapping his nose knowingly and winking. "I think
the Chamber has been locked for good this time. The culprit must have known it
was only a matter of time before I caught him. Rather sensible to stop now,
before I came down hard on him.
"You know, what the school
needs now is a morale-booster. Wash away the memories of last term! I won't say
any more just now, but I think I know just the thing..."
He tapped his nose again and
strode off.
Lockhart's idea of a
morale-booster became clear at breakfast time on February fourteenth. Harry
hadn't had much sleep because of a late-running Quidditch practice the night
before, and he hurried down to the Great Hall, slightly late. He thought, for a
moment, that he'd walked through the wrong doors.
The walls were all covered with
large, lurid pink flowers. Worse still, heart-shaped confetti was falling from
the pale blue ceiling. Harry went over to the Gryffindor table, where Ron was
sitting looking sickened, and Hermione seemed to have been overcome with
giggles.
"What's going on?"
Harry asked them, sitting down and wiping confetti off his bacon.
Ron pointed to the teachers'
table, apparently too disgusted to speak. Lockhart, wearing lurid pink robes to
match the decorations, was waving for silence. The teachers on either side of
him were looking stony-faced. From where he sat, Harry could see a muscle going
in Professor McGonagall's cheek. Snape looked as though someone had just fed
him a large beaker of Skele-Gro.
"Happy Valentine's
Day!" Lockhart shouted. "And may I thank the forty-six people who
have so far sent me cards! Yes, I have taken the liberty of arranging this
little surprise for you all - and it doesn't end here!"
Lockhart clapped his hands and
through the doors to the entrance hall marched a dozen surly-looking dwarfs.
Not just any dwarfs, however. Lockhart had them all wearing golden wings and
carrying harps.
"My friendly, card-carrying
cupids!" beamed Lockhart. "They will be roving around the school
today delivering your valentines! And the fun doesn't stop here! I'm sure my
colleagues will want to enter into the spirit of the occasion! Why not ask
Professor Snape to show you how to whip up a Love Potion! And while you're at
it, Professor Flitwick knows more about Entrancing Enchantments than any wizard
I've ever met, the sly old dog!"
Professor Flitwick buried his
face in his hands. Snape was looking as though the first person to ask him for
a Love Potion would be force-fed poison.
"Please, Hermione, tell me
you weren't one of the forty-six, said Ron as they left the Great Hall for
their first lesson. Hermione suddenly became very interested in searching her
bag for her schedule and didn't answer.
All day long, the dwarfs kept
barging into their classes to deliver valentines, to the annoyance of the
teachers, and late that afternoon as the Gryffindors were walking upstairs for
Charms, one of the dwarfs caught up with Harry.
"Oy, you! 'Arry
Potter!" shouted a particularly grim-looking dwarf, elbowing people out of
the way to get to Harry.
Hot all over at the thought of
being given a valentine in front of a line of first years, which happened to
include Ginny Weasley, Harry tried to escape. The dwarf, however, cut his way
through the crowd by kicking people's shins, and reached him before he'd gone
two paces.
"I've got a musical message
to deliver to 'Arry Potter in person," he said, twanging his harp in a
threatening sort of way.
"Not here," Harry
hissed, trying to escape.
"Stay still!" grunted
the dwarf, grabbing hold of Harry's bag and pulling him back.
"Let me go!" Harry
snarled, tugging.
With a loud ripping noise, his
bag split in two. His books, wand, parchment, and quill spilled onto the floor
and his ink bottle smashed over everything.
Harry scrambled around, trying
to pick it all up before the dwarf started singing, causing something of a
holdup in the corridor.
"What's going on
here?" came the cold, drawling voice of Draco Malfoy. Harry started
stuffing everything feverishly into his ripped bag, desperate to get away
before Malfoy could hear his musical valentine.
"What's all this
commotion?" said another familiar voice as Percy Weasley arrived.
Losing his head, Harry tried to
make a run for it, but the dwarf seized him around the knees and brought him
crashing to the floor.
"Right," he said,
sitting on Harry's ankles. "Here is your singing valentine: His eyes are as green as a fresh pickled toad, His hair is as dark as a blackboard, I wish he was mine, he's really divine, The hero who conquered the Dark Lord
Harry would have given all the
gold in Gringotts to evaporate on the spot. Trying valiantly to laugh along
with everyone else, he got up, his feet numb from the weight of the dwarf, as
Percy Weasley did his best to disperse the crowd, some of whom were crying with
mirth.
"Off you go, off you go,
the bell rang five minutes ago, off to class, now," he said, shooing some
of the younger students away. "And you, Malfoy -"
Harry, glancing over, saw Malfoy
stoop and snatch up something. Leering, he showed it to Crabbe and Goyle, and
Harry realized that he'd got Riddle's diary.
"Give that back," said
Harry quietly.
"Wonder what Potter's
written in this?" said Malfoy, who obviously hadn't noticed the year on
the cover and thought he had Harry's own diary. A hush fell over the onlookers.
Ginny was staring from the diary to Harry, looking terrified.
"Hand it over,
Malfoy," said Percy sternly.
"When I've had a
look," said Malfoy, waving the diary tauntingly at Harry.
Percy said, "As a school
prefect -" but Harry had lost his temper. He pulled out his wand and
shouted, "Expelliarmus!" and just as Snape had disarmed
Lockhart, so Malfoy found the diary shooting out of his hand into the air. Ron,
grinning broadly, caught it.
"Harry!" said Percy
loudly. "No magic in the corridors. I'll have to report this, you
know!"
But Harry didn't care, he was
one-up on Malfoy, and that was worth five points from Gryffindor any day.
Malfoy was looking furious, and as Ginny passed him to enter her classroom, he
yelled spitefully after her, "I don't think Potter liked your valentine
much!"
Ginny covered her face with her
hands and ran into class. Snarling, Ron pulled out his wand, too, but Harry
pulled him away. Ron didn't need to spend the whole of Charms belching slugs.
It wasn't until they had reached
Professor Flitwick's class that Harry noticed something rather odd about
Riddle's diary. All his other books were drenched in scarlet ink. The diary,
however, was as clean as it had been before the ink bottle had smashed all over
it. He tried to point this out to Ron, but Ron was having trouble with his wand
again; large purple bubbles were blossoming out of the end, and he wasn't much
interested in anything else.
Harry went to bed before anyone
else in his dormitory that night. This was partly because he didn't think he
could stand Fred and George singing, "His eyes are as green as a fresh
pickled toad" one more time, and partly because he wanted to examine
Riddle's diary again, and knew that Ron thought he was wasting his time.
Harry sat on his four-poster and
flicked through the blank pages, not one of which had a trace of scarlet ink on
it. Then he pulled a new bottle out of his bedside cabinet, dipped his quill
into it, and dropped a blot onto the first page of the diary.
The ink shone brightly on the
paper for a second and then, as though it was being sucked into the page,
vanished. Excited, Harry loaded up his quill a second time and wrote, "My
name is Harry Potter."
The words shone momentarily on
the page and they, too, sank without trace. Then, at last, something happened.
Oozing back out of the page, in
his very own ink, came words Harry had never written.
"Hello, Harry Potter. My
name is Tom Riddle. How did you come by my diary?"
These words, too, faded away,
but not before Harry had started to scribble back.
"Someone tried to flush it
down a toilet."
He waited eagerly for Riddle's
reply.
"Lucky that I recorded my
memories in some more lasting way than ink. But I always knew that there would
be those who would not want this diary read."
"What do you mean?"
Harry scrawled, blotting the page in his excitement.
'I mean that this diary holds
memories of terrible things. Things that were covered up. Things that happened
at Hogwarts School of Witchcraft and Wizardry."
"That's where I am
now," Harry wrote quickly. "I'm at Hogwarts, and horrible stuff's
been happening. Do you know anything about the Chamber of Secrets?"
His heart was hammering.
Riddle's reply came quickly, his writing becoming untidier, as though he was
hurrying to tell all he knew.
"Of course I know about the
Chamber of Secrets. In my day, they told us it was a legend, that it did not
exist. But this was a lie. In my fifth year, the Chamber was opened and the
monster attacked several students, finally killing one. I caught the person
who'd opened the Chamber and he was expelled. But the Headmaster, Professor
Dippet, ashamed that such a thing had happened at Hogwarts, forbade me to tell
the truth. A story was given out that the girl had died in a freak accident.
They gave me a nice, shiny, engraved trophy for my trouble and warned me to
keep my mouth shut. But I knew it could happen again. The monster lived on, and
the one who had the power to release it was not imprisoned."
Harry nearly upset his ink
bottle in his hurry to write back.
"It's happening again now.
There have been three attacks and no one seems to know who's behind them. Who
was it last time?"
"I can show you, if you
like, "came Riddle's reply. "You don't have to take my word for it. I
can take you inside my memory of the night when I caught him."
Harry hesitated, his quill
suspended over the diary. What did Riddle mean? How could he be taken inside
somebody else's memory? He glanced nervously at the door to the dormitory,
which was growing dark. When he looked back at the diary, he saw fresh words
forming.
"Let me show you."
Harry paused for a fraction of a
second and then wrote two letters.
OK
The pages of the diary began to
blow as though caught in a high wind, stopping halfway through the month of
June. Mouth hanging open, Harry saw that the little square for June thirteenth
seemed to have turned into a miniscule television screen. His hands trembling
slightly, he raised the book to press his eye against the little window, and
before he knew what was happening, he was tilting forward; the window was
widening, he felt his body leave his bed, and he was pitched headfirst through
the opening in the page, into a whirl of color and shadow.
He felt his feet hit solid
ground, and stood, shaking, as the blurred shapes around him came suddenly into
focus.
He knew immediately where he
was. This circular room with the sleeping portraits was Dumbledore's office -
but it wasn't Dumbledore who was sitting behind the desk. A wizened,
frail-looking wizard, bald except for a few wisps of white hair, was reading a
letter by candlelight. Harry had never seen this man before.
"I'm sorry," he said
shakily. "I didn't mean to butt in -"
But the wizard didn't look up.
He continued to read, frowning slightly. Harry drew nearer to his desk and
stammered, "Er - I'll just go, shall I?"
Still the wizard ignored him. He
didn't seem even to have heard him. Thinking that the wizard might be deaf,
Harry raised his voice.
"Sorry I disturbed you.
I'll go now," he half-shouted.
The wizard folded up the letter
with a sigh, stood up, walked past Harry without glancing at him, and went to
draw the curtains at his window.
The sky outside the window was
ruby-red; it seemed to be sunset. The wizard went back to the desk, sat down,
and twiddled his thumbs, watching the door.
Harry looked around the office.
No Fawkes the phoenix - no whirring silver contraptions. This was Hogwarts as
Riddle had known it, meaning that this unknown wizard was Headmaster, not
Dumbledore, and he, Harry, was little more than a phantom, completely invisible
to the people of fifty years ago.
There was a knock on the office
door.
"Enter," said the old
wizard in a feeble voice.
A boy of about sixteen entered,
taking off his pointed hat. A silver prefect's badge was glinting on his chest.
He was much taller than Harry, but he, too, had jet-black hair.
"Ah, Riddle," said the
Headmaster.
"You wanted to see me,
Professor Dippet?" said Riddle. He looked nervous.
"Sit down," said
Dippet. "I've just been reading the letter you sent me."
"Oh," said Riddle. He
sat down, gripping his hands together very tightly.
"My dear boy," said
Dipper kindly, "I cannot possibly let you stay at school over the summer.
Surely you want to go home for the holidays?"
"No," said Riddle at
once. "I'd much rather stay at Hogwarts than go back to that - to that
-"
"You live in a Muggle
orphanage during the holidays, I believe?" said Dippet curiously.
"Yes, sir," said
Riddle, reddening slightly.
"You are Muggle-born?"
"Half-blood, sir,"
said Riddle. "Muggle father, witch mother."
"And are both your parents
-?"
"My mother died just after
I was born, sir. They told me at the orphanage she lived just long enough to
name me - Tom after my father, Marvolo after my grandfather."
Dipper clucked his tongue
sympathetically.
"The thing is, Tom,"
he sighed, "Special arrangements might have been made for you, but in the
current circumstances..."
"You mean all these
attacks, sir?" said Riddle, and Harry's heart leapt, and he moved closer,
scared of missing anything.
"Precisely," said the
headmaster. "My dear boy, you must see how foolish it would be of me to
allow you to remain at the castle when term ends. Particularly in light of the
recent tragedy... the death of that poor little girl... You will be safer by far at
your orphanage. As a matter of fact, the Ministry of Magic is even now talking
about closing the school. We are no nearer locating the - er - source of all
this unpleasantness..."
Riddle's eyes had widened.
"Sir - if the person was
caught - if it all stopped -"
"What do you mean?"
said Dippet with a squeak in his voice, sitting up in his chair. "Riddle,
do you mean you know something about these attacks?"
"No, sir," said Riddle
quickly.
But Harry was sure it was the
same sort of "no" that he himself had given Dumbledore.
Dippet sank back, looking
faintly disappointed.
"You may go, Tom..."
Riddle slid off his chair and
slouched out of the room. Harry followed him.
Down the moving spiral staircase
they went, emerging next to the gargoyle in the darkening corridor. Riddle
stopped, and so did Harry, watching him. Harry could tell that Riddle was doing
some serious thinking. He was biting his lip, his forehead furrowed.
Then, as though he had suddenly
reached a decision, he hurried off, Harry gliding noiselessly behind him. They
didn't see another person until they reached the entrance hall, when a tall
wizard with long, sweeping auburn hair and a beard called to Riddle from the
marble staircase.
"What are you doing,
wandering around this late, Tom?"
Harry gaped at the wizard. He
was none other than a fifty-year-younger Dumbledore.
"I had to see the
headmaster, sir," said Riddle.
"Well, hurry off to
bed," said Dumbledore, giving Riddle exactly the kind of penetrating stare
Harry knew so well. "Best not to roam the corridors these days. Not
since..."
He sighed heavily, bade Riddle
good night, and strode off. Riddle watched him walk out of sight and then,
moving quickly, headed straight down the stone steps to the dungeons, with
Harry in hot pursuit.
But to Harry's disappointment,
Riddle led him not into a hidden passageway or a secret tunnel but to the very
dungeon in which Harry had Potions with Snape. The torches hadn't been lit, and
when Riddle pushed the door almost closed, Harry could only just see him,
standing stock-still by the door, watching the passage outside.
It felt to Harry that they were
there for at least an hour. All he could see was the figure of Riddle at the
door, staring through the crack, waiting like a statue. And just when Harry had
stopped feeling expectant and tense and started wishing he could return to the
present, he heard something move beyond the door.
Someone was creeping along the
passage. He heard whoever it was pass the dungeon where he and Riddle were
hidden. Riddle, quiet as a shadow, edged through the door and followed, Harry
tiptoeing behind him, forgetting that he couldn't be heard.
For perhaps five minutes they
followed the footsteps, until Riddle stopped suddenly, his head inclined in the
direction of new noises. Harry heard a door creak open, and then someone
speaking in a hoarse whisper.
"C'mon...gotta get yeh outta
here...C'mon now...in the box..."
There was something familiar
about that voice...
Riddle suddenly jumped around
the corner. Harry stepped out behind him. He could see the dark outline of a
huge boy who was crouching in front of an open door, a very large box next to
it.
"Evening, Rubeus,"
said Riddle sharply.
The boy slammed the door shut
and stood up.
"What yer doin' down here,
Tom?"
Riddle stepped closer.
"It's all over," he
said. "I'm going to have to turn you in, Rubeus. They're talking about
closing Hogwarts if the attacks don't stop."
"'N at d'yeh -"
"I don't think you meant to
kill anyone. But monsters don't make good pets. I suppose you just let it out
for exercise and -"
"It never killed no
one!" said the large boy, backing against the closed door. From behind
him, Harry could hear a funny rustling and clicking.
"Come on, Rubeus,"
said Riddle, moving yet closer. "The dead girl's parents will be here
tomorrow. The least Hogwarts can do is make sure that the thing that killed
their daughter is slaughtered..."
"It wasn't him!"
roared the boy, his voice echoing in the dark passage. "He wouldn'! He
never!"
"Stand aside," said
Riddle, drawing out his wand.
His spell lit the corridor with
a sudden flaming light. The door behind the large boy flew open with such force
it knocked him into the wall opposite. And out of it came something that made
Harry let out a long, piercing scream unheard by anyone.
A vast, low-slung, hairy body
and a tangle of black legs; a gleam of many eyes and a pair of razor-sharp
pincers - Riddle raised his wand again, but he was too late. The thing bowled
him over as it scuttled away, tearing up the corridor and out of sight. Riddle
scrambled to his feet, looking after it; he raised his wand, but the huge boy
leapt on him, seized his wand, and threw him back down, yelling,
"NOOOOOO!"
The scene whirled, the darkness
became complete; Harry felt himself falling and, with a crash, he landed
spread-eagled on his four-poster in the Gryffindor dormitory, Riddle's diary
lying open on his stomach.
Before he had had time to regain
his breath, the dormitory door opened and Ron came in.
"There you are," he
said.
Harry sat up. He was sweating
and shaking.
"What's up?" said Ron,
looking at him with concern.
"It was Hagrid, Ron. Hagrid
opened the Chamber of Secrets fifty years ago." CHAPTER FOURTEEN CORNELIUS FUDGE
Harry, Ron, and Hermione had
always known that Hagrid had an unfortunate liking for large and monstrous
creatures. During their first year at Hogwarts he had tried to raise a dragon
in his little wooden house, and it would be a long time before they forgot the
giant, three-headed dog he'd christened "Fluffy." And if, as a boy,
Hagrid had heard that a monster was hidden somewhere in the castle, Harry was
sure he'd have gone to any lengths for a glimpse of it. He'd probably thought
it was a shame that the monster had been cooped up so long, and thought it
deserved the chance to stretch its many legs; Harry could just imagine the
thirteen-year-old Hagrid trying to fit a leash and collar on it. But he was
equally certain that Hagrid would never have meant to kill anybody.
Harry half wished he hadn't
found out how to work Riddle's diary. Again and again Ron and Hermione made him
recount what he'd seen, until he was heartily sick of telling them and sick of
the long, circular conversations that followed.
"Riddle might have
got the wrong person," said Hermione. "Maybe it was some other
monster that was attacking people..."
"How many monsters d'you
think this place can hold?" Ron asked dully.
"We always knew Hagrid had
been expelled," said Harry miserably. "And the attacks must've
stopped after Hagrid was kicked out. Otherwise, Riddle wouldn't have got his
award."
Ron tried a different tack.
"Riddle does sound
like Percy - who asked him to squeal on Hagrid, anyway?"
"But the monster had killed
someone, Ron," said Hermione.
"And Riddle was going to go
back to some Muggle orphanage if they closed Hogwarts," said Harry.
"I don't blame him for wanting to stay here..." "You met Hagrid down Knockturn Alley, didn't you,
Harry?"
"He was buying a
Flesh-Eating Slug Repellent," said Harry quickly.
The three of them fell silent.
After a long pause, Hermione voiced the knottiest question of all in a hesitant
voice.
"Do you think we should go
and ask Hagrid about it all?" "That'd be
a cheerful visit," said Ron. "'Hello, Hagrid. Tell us, have you been
setting anything mad and hairy loose in the castle lately?'"
In the end, they decided that
they would not say anything to Hagrid unless there was another attack, and as
more and more days went by with no whisper from the disembodied voice, they
became hopeful that they would never need to talk to him about why he had been
expelled. It was now nearly four months since Justin and Nearly Headless Nick
had been Petrified, and nearly everybody seemed to think that the attacker,
whoever it was, had retired for good. Peeves had finally got bored of his
"Oh, Potter, you rotter" song, Ernie Macmillan asked Harry quite
politely to pass a bucket of leaping toadstools in Herbology one day, and in
March several of the Mandrakes threw a loud and raucous party in greenhouse
three. This made Professor Sprout very happy.
"The moment they start
trying to move into each other's pots, we'll know they're fully mature,"
she told Harry. "Then we'll be able to revive those poor people in the
hospital wing."
The second years were given
something new to think about during their Easter holidays. The time had come to
choose their subjects for the third year, a matter that Hermione, at least,
took very seriously.
"...it could affect our whole
future," she told Harry and Ron as they pored over lists of new subjects,
marking them with checks.
"I just want to give up
Potions," said Harry.
"We can't," said Ron
gloomily. "We keep all our old subjects, or I'd've ditched Defense Against
the Dark Arts."
"But that's very
important!" said Hermione, shocked.
"Not the way Lockhart
teaches it," said Ron. "I haven't learned anything from him except
not to set pixies loose."
Neville Longbottom had been sent
letters from all the witches and wizards in his family, all giving him
different advice on what to choose. Confused and worried, he sat reading the
subject lists with his tongue poking out, asking people whether they thought
Arithmancy sounded more difficult than the study of Ancient Runes. Dean Thomas,
who, like Harry, had grown up with Muggles, ended up closing his eyes and
jabbing his wand at the list, then picking the subjects it landed on. Hermione
took nobody's advice but signed up for everything.
Harry smiled grimly to himself
at the thought of what Uncle Vernon and Aunt Petunia would say if he tried to
discuss his career in wizardry with them. Not that he didn't get any guidance:
Percy Weasley was eager to share his experience.
"Depends where you want to
go, Harry," he said. "It's never too early to think about the future,
so I'd recommend Divination. People say Muggle Studies is a soft option, but I
personally think wizards should have a thorough understanding of the
non-magical community, particularly if they're thinking of working in close
contact with them - look at my father, he has to deal with Muggle business all
the time. My brother Charlie was always more of an outdoor type, so he went for
Care of Magical Creatures. Play to your strengths, Harry."
But the only thing Harry felt he
was really good at was Quidditch. In the end, he chose the same new subjects as
Ron, feeling that if he was lousy at them, at least he'd have someone friendly
to help him.
Gryffindor's next Quidditch
match would be against Hufflepuff. Wood was insisting on team practices every
night after dinner, so that Harry barely had time for anything but Quidditch
and homework. However, the training sessions were getting better, or at least
drier, and the evening before Saturday's match he went up to his dormitory to
drop off his broomstick feeling Gryffindor's chances for the Quidditch cup had
never been better.
But his cheerful mood didn't
last long. At the top of the stairs to the dormitory, he met Neville
Longbottom, who was looking frantic.
"Harry - I don't know who
did it - I just found -"
Watching Harry fearfully, Neville
pushed open the door.
The contents of Harry's trunk
had been thrown everywhere. His cloak lay ripped on the floor. The bedclothes
had been pulled off his four-poster and the drawer had been pulled out of his
bedside cabinet, the contents strewn over the mattress.
Harry walked over to the bed,
open-mouthed, treading on a few loose pages of Travels with Trolls. As he and
Neville pulled the blankets back onto his bed, Ron, Dean, and Seamus came in.
Dean swore loudly.
"What happened,
Harry?"
"No idea," said Harry.
But Ron was examining Harry's robes. All the pockets were hanging out.
"Someone's been looking for
something," said Ron. "Is there anything missing?"
Harry started to pick up all his
things and throw them into his trunk. It was only as he threw the last of the
Lockhart books back into it that he realized what wasn't there.
"Riddle's diary's
gone," he said in an undertone to Ron.
"What?"
Harry jerked his head toward the
dormitory door and Ron followed him out. They hurried down to the Gryffindor
common room, which was half-empty, and joined Hermione, who was sitting alone,
reading a book called Ancient Runes Made Easy. Hermione looked aghast at the news.
"But - only a Gryffindor
could have stolen - nobody else knows our password -"
"Exactly," said Harry.
They woke the next day to
brilliant sunshine and a light, refreshing breeze.
"Perfect Quidditch
conditions!" said Wood enthusiastically at the Gryffindor table, loading
the team's plates with scrambled eggs. "Harry, buck up there, you need a
decent breakfast."
Harry had been staring down the
packed Gryffindor table, wondering if the new owner of Riddle's diary was right
in front of his eyes. Hermione had been urging him to report the robbery, but
Harry didn't like the idea. He'd have to tell a teacher all about the diary,
and how many people knew why Hagrid had been expelled fifty years ago? He
didn't want to be the one who brought it all up again.
As he left the Great Hall with
Ron and Hermione to go and collect his Quidditch things, another very serious
worry was added to Harry's growing list. He had just set foot on the marble
staircase when he heard it yet again.
"Kill this time...let me
rip...tear..."
He shouted aloud and Ron and
Hermione both jumped away from him in alarm.
"The voice!" said
Harry, -looking over his shoulder. "I just heard it again - didn't
you?"
Ron shook his head, wide-eyed.
Hermione, however, clapped a hand to her forehead.
"Harry - I think I've just
understood something! I've got to go to the library!"
And she sprinted away, up the
stairs.
"What does she
understand?" said Harry distractedly, still looking around, trying to tell
where the voice had come from.
"Loads more than I
do," said Ron, shaking his head.
"But why's she got to go to
the library?"
"Because that's what
Hermione does," said Ron, shrugging. "When in doubt, go to the
library."
Harry stood, irresolute, trying
to catch the voice again, but people were now emerging from the Great Hall
behind him, talking loudly, exiting through the front doors on their way to the
Quidditch pitch.
"You'd better get
moving," said Ron. "It's nearly eleven - the match -"
Harry raced up to Gryffindor
Tower, collected his Nimbus Two Thousand, and joined the large crowd swarming
across the grounds, but his mind was still in the castle along with the bodiless
voice, and as he pulled on his scarlet robes in the locker room, his only
comfort was that everyone was now outside to watch the game.
The teams walked onto the field
to tumultuous applause. Oliver Wood took off for a warm-up flight around the
goal posts; Madam Hooch released the balls. The Hufflepuffs, who played in
canary yellow, were standing in a huddle, having a last-minute discussion of
tactics.
Harry was just mounting his
broom when Professor McGonagall came half marching, half running across the
pitch, carrying an enormous purple megaphone.
Harry's heart dropped like a
stone.
"This match has been
cancelled," Professor McGonagall called through the megaphone, addressing
the packed stadium. There were boos and shouts. Oliver Wood, looking devastated,
landed and ran toward Professor McGonagall without getting off his broomstick.
"But, Professor!" he
shouted. "We've got to play - the cup - Gryffindor -" Professor McGonagall ignored him and continued to shout
through her megaphone:
"All students are to make
their way back to the House common rooms, where their Heads of Houses will give
them further information. As quickly as you can, please!"
Then she lowered the megaphone
and beckoned Harry over to her.
"Potter, I think you'd
better come with me..."
Wondering how she could possibly
suspect him this time, Harry saw Ron detach himself from the complaining crowd;
he came running up to them as they set off toward the castle. To Harry's
surprise, Professor McGonagall didn't object.
"Yes, perhaps you'd better
come, too, Weasley..."
Some of the students swarming
around them were grumbling about the match being canceled; others looked
worried. Harry and Ron followed Professor McGonagall back into the school and
up the marble staircase. But they weren't taken to anybody's office this time.
"This will be a bit of a
shock," said Professor McGonagall in a surprisingly gentle voice as they
approached the infirmary. "There has been another attack ... another double
attack." Harry's insides did a horrible somersault. Professor
McGonagall pushed the door open and he and Ron entered. Madam Pomfrey was
bending over a fifth-year girl with long, curly hair. Harry recognized her as
the Ravenclaw they'd accidentally asked for directions to the Slytherin common
room. And on the bed next to her was -
"Hermione!" Ron
groaned.
Hermione lay utterly still, her
eyes open and glassy.
"They were found near the
library," said Professor McGonagall. "I don't suppose either of you
can explain this? It was on the floor next to them..."
She was holding up a small,
circular mirror.
Harry and Ron shook their heads,
both staring at Hermione.
"I will escort you back to
Gryffindor Tower," said Professor McGonagall heavily. "I need to
address the students in any case."
"All students will return
to their House common rooms by six o'clock in the evening. No student is to
leave the dormitories after that time. You will be escorted to each lesson by a
teacher. No student is to use the bathroom unaccompanied by a teacher. All
further Quidditch training and matches are to be postponed. There will be no
more evening activities."
The Gryffindors packed inside
the common room listened to Professor McGonagall in silence. She rolled up the
parchment from which she had been reading and said in a somewhat choked voice,
"I need hardly add that I have rarely been so distressed. It is likely
that the school will be closed unless the culprit behind these attacks is
caught. I would urge anyone who thinks they might know anything about them to
come forward."
She climbed somewhat awkwardly
out of the portrait hole, and the Gryffindors began talking immediately.
"That's two Gryffindors
down, not counting a Gryffindor ghost, one Ravenclaw, and one Hufflepuff,
" said the Weasley twins' friend Lee Jordan, counting on his fingers.
"Haven't any of the teachers noticed that the Slytherins are all safe?
Isn't it obvious all this stuff's coming from Slytherin? The Heir of Slytherin,
the monster of Slytherin - why don't they just chuck all the Slytherins
out?" he roared, to nods and scattered applause.
Percy Weasley was sitting in a
chair behind Lee, but for once he didn't seem keen to make his views heard. He
was looking pale and stunned.
"Percy's in shock,"
George told Harry quietly. "That Ravenclaw girl - Penelope Clearwater -
she's a prefect. I don't think he thought the monster would dare attack a
prefect."
But Harry was only
half-listening. He didn't seem to be able to get rid of the picture of
Hermione, lying on the hospital bed as though carved out of stone. And if the
culprit wasn't caught soon, he was looking at a lifetime back with the
Dursleys. Tom Riddle had turned Hagrid in because he was faced with the
prospect of a Muggle orphanage if the school closed. Harry now knew exactly how
he had felt.
"What're we going to
do?" said Ron quietly in Harry's ear. "D'you think they suspect
Hagrid?"
"We've got to go and talk
to him," said Harry, making up his mind. "I can't believe it's him
this time, but if he set the monster loose last time he'll know how to get
inside the Chamber of Secrets, and that's a start."
"But McGonagall said we've
got to stay in our tower unless we're in class -"
"I think," said Harry,
more quietly still, "it's time to get my dad's old cloak out again."
Harry had inherited just one
thing from his father: a long and silvery Invisibility Cloak. It was their only
chance of sneaking out of the school to visit Hagrid without anyone knowing
about it. They went to bed at the usual time, waited until Neville, Dean, and
Seamus had stopped discussing the Chamber of Secrets and finally fallen asleep,
then got up, dressed again, and threw the cloak over themselves.
The journey through the dark and
deserted castle corridors wasn't enjoyable. Harry, who had wandered the castle
at night several times before, had never seen it so crowded after sunset.
Teachers, prefects, and ghosts were marching the corridors in pairs, staring
around for any unusual activity. Their Invisibility Cloak didn't stop them
making any noise, and there was a particularly tense moment when Ron stubbed his
toe only yards from the spot where Snape stood standing guard. Thankfully,
Snape sneezed at almost exactly the moment Ron swore. It was with relief that
they reached the oak front doors and eased them open.
It was a clear, starry night.
They hurried toward the lit windows of Hagrid's house and pulled off the cloak
only when they were right outside his front door.
Seconds after they had knocked,
Hagrid flung it open. They found themselves face-to-face with him aiming a
crossbow at them. Fang the boarhound barked loudly behind him.
"Oh," he said,
lowering the weapon and staring at them. "What're you two doin'
here?"
"What's that for?"
said Harry, pointing at the crossbow as they stepped inside.
"Nothin' - nothin' -"
Hagrid muttered. "I've bin expectin' -
doesn' matter - Sit down - I'll make tea -"
He hardly seemed to know what he
was doing. He nearly extinguished the fire, spilling water from the kettle on
it, and then smashed the teapot with a nervous jerk of his massive hand.
"Are you okay,
Hagrid?" said Harry. "Did you hear about Hermione?"
"Oh, I heard, all
righ'," said Hagrid, a slight break in his voice.
He kept glancing nervously at
the windows. He poured them both large mugs of boiling water (he had forgotten
to add tea bags) and was just putting a slab of fruitcake on a plate when there
was a loud knock on the door.
Hagrid dropped the fruitcake.
Harry and Ron exchanged panicstricken looks, then threw the Invisibility Cloak
back over themselves and retreated into a corner. Hagrid checked that they were
hidden, seized his crossbow, and flung open his door once more.
"Good evening,
Hagrid."
It was Dumbledore. He entered,
looking deadly serious, and was followed by a second, very odd-looking man.
The stranger had rumpled gray
hair and an anxious expression, and was wearing a strange mixture of clothes: a
pinstriped suit, a scarlet tie, a long black cloak, and pointed purple boots.
Under his arm he carried a lime-green bowler.
"That's Dad's boss!"
Ron breathed. "Cornelius Fudge, the Minister of Magic!"
Harry elbowed Ron hard to make
him shut up.
Hagrid had gone pale and sweaty.
He dropped into one of his chairs and looked from Dumbledore to Cornelius
Fudge.
"Bad business,
Hagrid," said Fudge in rather clipped tones. "Very bad business. Had
to come. Four attacks on Muggle-borns. Things've gone far enough. Ministry's
got to act."
"I never," said
Hagrid, looking imploringly at Dumbledore. "You know I never, Professor
Dumbledore, sir -"
"I want it understood,
Cornelius, that Hagrid has my full confidence," said Dumbledore, frowning
at Fudge.
"Look, Albus," said
Fudge, uncomfortably. "Hagrid's record's against him. Ministry's got to do
something - the school governors have been in touch -"
"Yet again, Cornelius, I
tell you that taking Hagrid away will not help in the slightest," said
Dumbledore. His blue eyes were full of a fire Harry had never seen before.
"Look at it from my point
of view," said Fudge, fidgeting with his bowler. "I'm under a lot of
pressure. Got to be seen to be doing something. If it turns out it wasn't
Hagrid, he'll be back and no more said. But I've got to take him. Got to.
Wouldn't be doing my duty -"
"Take me?" said
Hagrid, who was trembling. "Take me where?"
"For a short stretch
only," said Fudge, not meeting Hagrid's eyes. "Not a punishment, Hagrid,
more a precaution. If someone else is caught, you'll be let out with a full
apology -"
"Not Azkaban?" croaked
Hagrid.
Before Fudge could answer, there
was another loud rap on the door.
Dumbledore answered it. It was
Harry's turn for an elbow in the ribs; he'd let out an audible gasp.
Mr. Lucius Malfoy strode into
Hagrid's hut, swathed in a long black traveling cloak, smiling a cold and
satisfied smile. Fang started to growl.
"Already here, Fudge,"
he said approvingly. "Good, good..."
"What're you doin'
here?" said Hagrid furiously. "Get outta my house!"
"My dear man, please
believe me, I have no pleasure at all in being inside your - er - d'you call
this a house?" said Lucius Malfoy, sneering as he looked around the small
cabin. "I simply called at the school and was told that the headmaster was
here."
"And what exactly did you
want with me, Lucius?" said Dumbledore. He spoke politely, but the fire
was still blazing in his blue eyes.
"Dreadful thing,
Dumbledore," said Malfoy lazily, taking out a long roll of parchment,
"but the governors feel it's time for you to step aside. This is an Order
of Suspension - you'll find all twelve signatures on it. I'm afraid we feel
you're losing your touch. How many attacks have there been now? Two more this
afternoon, wasn't it? At this rate, there'll be no Muggle-borns left at
Hogwarts, and we all know what an awful loss that would be to the school."
"Oh, now, see here,
Lucius," said Fudge, looking alarmed, "Dumbledore suspended - no, no
- last thing we want just now."
"The appointment - or
suspension - of the headmaster is a matter for the governors, Fudge," said
Mr. Malfoy smoothly. "And as Dumbledore has failed to stop these attacks
-"
"See here, Malfoy, if
Dumbledore can't stop them," said Fudge, whose upper lip was sweating now,
"I mean to say, who can?"
"That remains to be
seen," said Mr. Malfoy with a nasty smile. "But as all twelve of us
have voted -"
Hagrid leapt to his feet, his
shaggy black head grazing the ceiling.
'An' how many did yeh have ter
threaten an' blackmail before they agreed, Malfoy, eh?" he roared.
"Dear, dear, you know, that
temper of yours will lead you into trouble one of these days, Hagrid,"
said Mr. Malfoy. "I would advise you not to shout at the Azkaban guards
like that. They won't like it at all."
"Yeh can' take
Dumbledore!" yelled Hagrid, making Fang the boarhound cower and whimper in
his basket. "Take him away, an' the Muggle-borns won' stand a chance!
There'll be killin' next!"
"Calm yourself,
Hagrid," said Dumbledore sharply. He looked at Lucius Malfoy.
"If the governors want my
removal, Lucius, I shall of course step aside -"
"But -" stuttered
Fudge.
"No!" growled Hagrid.
Dumbledore had not taken his
bright blue eyes off Lucius Malfoy's cold gray ones.
"However," said
Dumbledore, speaking very slowly and clearly so that none of them could miss a
word, "you will find that I will only truly have left this school when
none here are loyal to me...Help will always be given at Hogwarts to those who
ask for it."
For a second, Harry was almost
sure Dumbledore's eyes flickered toward the corner where he and Ron were
hidden.
"Admirable
sentiments," said Malfoy, bowing. "We shall all miss your - er -
highly individual way of running things, Albus, and only hope your successor
willl manage to prevent any - ah - killins."
He strode to the cabin door,
opened it, and bowed Dumbledore out. Fudge, fiddling with his bowler, waited
for Hagrid to go ahead of him, but Hagrid stood his ground, took a deep breath,
and said carefully, "If anyone wanted ter find out some stuff, all they'd
have ter do would be ter follow the spiders. That'd lead 'em right. That's all
I'm sayin'."
Fudge stared at him in
amazement.
"All right, I'm comin',
said Hagrid, pulling on his moleskin overcoat. But as he was about to follow
Fudge through the door, he stopped
again and said loudly, "An' someone'll need ter feed Fang while I'm
away."
The door banged shut and Ron
pulled off the Invisibility Cloak.
"We're in trouble
now," Ron said hoarsely. "No Dumbledore. They might as well close the
school tonight. There'll be an attack a day with him gone."
Fang started howling, scratching
at the closed door. CAPTER FIFTEEN ARAGOG
Summer was creeping over the
grounds around the castle; sky and lake alike turned periwinkle blue and
flowers large as cabbages burst into bloom in the greenhouses. But with no
Hagrid visible from the castle windows, striding the grounds with Fang at his
heels, the scene didn't look right to Harry; no better, in fact, than the
inside of the castle, where things were so horribly wrong.
Harry and Ron had tried to visit
Hermione, but visitors were now barred from the hospital wing.
"We're taking no more
chances," Madam Pomfrey told them severely through a crack in the
infirmary door. "No, I'm sorry, there's every chance the attacker might
come back to finish these people off..."
With Dumbledore gone, fear had
spread as never before, so that the sun warming the castle walls outside seemed
to stop at the mullioned windows. There was barely a face to be seen in the
school that didn't look worried and tense, and any laughter that rang through
the corridors sounded shrill and unnatural and was quickly stifled.
Harry constantly repeated
Dumbledore's final words to himself "I will only truly have left this
school when none here are loyal to me...Help will always be given at Hogwarts to
those who ask for it." But what good were these words? Who exactly
were they supposed to ask for help, when everyone was just as confused and
scared as they were?
Hagrid's hint about the spiders
was far easier to understand. The trouble was, there didn't seem to be a single
spider left in the castle to follow. Harry looked everywhere he went, helped
(rather reluctantly) by Ron. They were hampered, of course, by the fact that
they weren't allowed to wander off on their own but had to move around the
castle in a pack with the other Gryffindors. Most of their fellow students
seemed glad that they were being shepherded from class to class by teachers,
but Harry found it very irksome.
One person, however, seemed to be
thoroughly enjoying the atmosphere of terror and suspicion. Draco Malfoy was
strutting around the school as though he had just been appointed Head Boy.
Harry didn't realize what he was so pleased about until the Potions lesson
about two weeks after Dumbledore and Hagrid had left, when, sitting right
behind Malfoy, Harry overheard him gloating to Crabbe and Goyle.
"I always thought Father
might be the one who got rid of Dumbledore," he said, not troubling to
keep his voice down. "I told you he thinks Dumbledore's the worst
headmaster the school's ever had. Maybe we'll get a decent headmaster now.
Someone who won't want the Chamber of Secrets closed. McGonagall won't last
long, she's only filling in..."
Snape swept past Harry, making
no comment about Hermione's empty seat and cauldron.
"Sir," said Malfoy
loudly. "Sir, why don't you apply for the headmaster's job?"
"Now, now, Malfoy,"
said Snape, though he couldn't suppress a thin-lipped smile. "Professor
Dumbledore has only been suspended by the governors. I daresay he'll be back
with us soon enough."
"Yeah, right," said
Malfoy, smirking. "I expect you'd have Father's vote, sir, if you wanted
to apply for the job - I'll tell Father you're the best teacher here,
sir -"
Snape smirked as he swept off
around the dungeon, fortunately not spotting Seamus Finnigan, who was
pretending to vomit into his cauldron.
"I'm quite surprised the
Mudbloods haven't all packed their bags by now," Malfoy went on. "Bet
you five Galleons the next one dies. Pity it wasn't Granger -"
The bell rang at that moment,
which was lucky; at Malfoy's last words, Ron had leapt off his stool, and in
the scramble to collect bags and books, his attempts to reach Malfoy went
unnoticed.
"Let me at him," Ron
growled as Harry and Dean hung onto his arms. "I don't care, I don't need
my wand, I'm going to kill him with my bare hands -"
"Hurry up, I've got to take
you all to Herbology," barked Snape over the class's heads, and off they
marched, with Harry, Ron, and Dean bringing up the rear, Ron still trying to
get loose. It was only safe to let go of him when Snape had seen them out of
the castle and they were making their way across the vegetable patch toward the
greenhouses.
The Herbology class was very
subdued; there were now two missing from their number, Justin and Hermione.
Professor Sprout set them all to
work pruning the Abyssinian Shrivelfigs. Harry went to tip an armful of
withered stalks onto the compost heap and found himself face-to-face with Ernie
Macmillan. Ernie took a deep breath and said, very formally, "I just want
to say, Harry, that I'm sorry I ever suspected you. I know you'd never attack
Hermione Granger, and I apologize for all the stuff I said. We're all in the
same boat now, and, well -"
He held out a pudgy hand, and
Harry shook it.
Ernie and his friend Hannah came
to work at the same Shrivelfig as Harry and Ron.
"That Draco Malfoy
character," said Ernie, breaking off dead twigs, "he seems very
pleased about all this, doesn't he? D'you know, I think he might be
Slytherin's heir."
"That's clever of
you," said Ron, who didn't seem to have forgiven Ernie as readily as
Harry. "Do you think it's Malfoy, Harry?" Ernie asked.
"No," said Harry, so
firmly that Ernie and Hannah stared.
A second later, Harry spotted
something.
Several large spiders were
scuttling over the ground on the other side of the glass, moving in an
unnaturally straight line as though taking the shortest route to a prearranged
meeting. Harry hit Ron over the hand with his pruning shears.
"Ouch! What're you
-"
Harry pointed out the spiders,
following their progress with his eyes screwed up against the sun.
"Oh, yeah," said Ron,
trying, and failing, to look pleased. "But we can't follow them now
-"
Ernie and Hannah were listening
curiously.
Harry's eyes narrowed as he
focused on the spiders. If they pursued their fixed course, there could be no
doubt about where they would end up.
"Looks like they're heading
for the Forbidden Forest..."
And Ron looked even unhappier
about that.
At the end of the lesson
Professor Sprout escorted the class to their Defense Against the Dark Arts
lesson. Harry and Ron lagged behind the others so they could talk out of
earshot.
"We'll have to use the
Invisibility Cloak again," Harry told Ron. "We can take Fang with us.
He's used to going into the forest with Hagrid, he might be some help."
"Right," said Ron, who
was twirling his wand nervously in his fingers. "Er - aren't there -
aren't there supposed to be werewolves in the forest?" he added as they
took their usual places at the back of Lockhart's classroom.
Preferring not to answer that
question, Harry said, "There are good things in there, too. The centaurs
are all right, and the unicorns..."
Ron had never been into the
Forbidden Forest before. Harry had entered it only once and had hoped never to
do so again.
Lockhart bounded into the room
and the class stared at him. Every other teacher in the place was looking
grimmer than usual, but Lockhart appeared nothing short of buoyant.
"Come now," he cried,
beaming around him. "Why all these long faces?"
People swapped exasperated
looks, but nobody answered.
"Don't you people
realize," said Lockhart, speaking slowly, as though they were all a bit
dim, "the danger has passed! The culprit has been taken away -"
"Says who?" said Dean
Thomas loudly.
"My dear young man, the
Minister of Magic wouldn't have taken Hagrid if he hadn't been one hundred
percent sure that he was guilty," said Lockhart, in the tone of someone
explaining that one and one made two.
"Oh, yes he would,"
said Ron, even more loudly than Dean.
"I flatter myself I know a touch
more about Hagrid's arrest than you do, Mr. Weasley," said Lockhart in a
self-satisfied tone.
Ron started to say that he
didn't think so, somehow, but stopped in midsentence when Harry kicked him hard
under the desk.
"We weren't there,
remember?" Harry muttered.
But Lockhart's disgusting
cheeriness, his hints that he had always thought Hagrid was no good, his
confidence that the whole business was now at an end, irritated Harry so much
that he yearned to throw Gadding with Ghouls right in Lockhart's stupid
face. Instead he contented himself with scrawling a note to Ron: Let's do it
tonight. Ron read the message, swallowed hard, and looked sideways
at the empty seat usually filled by Hermione. The sight seemed to stiffen his
resolve, and he nodded.
The Gryffindor common room was
always very crowded these days, because from six o'clock onward the Gryffindors
had nowhere else to go. They also had plenty to talk about, with the result
that the common room often didn't empty until past midnight.
Harry went to get the
Invisibility Cloak out of his trunk right after dinner, and spent the evening
sitting on it, waiting for the room to clear. Fred and George challenged Harry
and Ron to a few games of Exploding Snap, and Ginny sat watching them, very
subdued in Hermione's usual chair. Harry and Ron kept losing on purpose, trying
to finish the games quickly, but even so, it was well past midnight when Fred,
George, and Ginny finally went to bed.
Harry and Ron waited for the
distant sounds of two dormitory doors closing before seizing the cloak,
throwing it over themselves, and climbing through the portrait hole.
It was another difficult journey
through the castle, dodging all the teachers. At last they reached the entrance
hall, slid back the lock on the oak front doors, squeezed between them, trying
to stop any creaking, and stepped out into the moonlit grounds.
"'Course," said Ron
abruptly as they strode across the black grass, "we might get to the
forest and find there's nothing to follow. Those spiders might not've been
going there at all. I know it looked like they were moving in that sort of
general direction, but..."
His voice trailed away
hopefully.
They reached Hagrid's house, sad
and sorry-looking with its blank windows. When Harry pushed the door open, Fang
went mad with joy at the sight of them. Worried he might wake everyone at the
castle with his deep, booming barks, they hastily fed him treacle fudge from a
tin on the mantelpiece, which glued his teeth together.
Harry left the Invisibility
Cloak on Hagrid's table. There would be no need for it in the pitch-dark
forest.
"C'mon, Fang, we're going
for a walk," said Harry, patting his leg, and Fang bounded happily out of
the house behind them, dashed to the edge of the forest, and lifted his leg
against a large sycamore tree.
Harry took out his wand,
murmured, "Lumos!" and a tiny light appeared at the end of it,
just enough to let them watch the path for signs of spiders.
"Good thinking," said
Ron. "I'd light mine, too, but you know - it'd probably blow up or
something..."
Harry tapped Ron on the
shoulder, pointing at the grass. Two solitary spiders were hurrying away from
the wandlight into the shade of the trees.
"Okay," Ron sighed as
though resigned to the worst, "I'm ready. Let's go."
So, with Fang scampering around
them, sniffing tree roots and leaves, they entered the forest. By the glow of
Harry's wand, they followed the steady trickle of spiders moving along the
path. They walked behind them for about twenty minutes, not speaking, listening
hard for noises other than breaking twigs and rustling leaves. Then, when the
trees had become thicker than ever, so that the stars overhead were no longer
visible, and Harry's wand shone alone in the sea of dark, they saw their spider
guides leaving the path.
Harry paused, trying to see
where the spiders were going, but everything outside his little sphere of light
was pitch-black. He had never been this deep into the forest before. He could
vividly remember Hagrid advising him not to leave the forest path last time
he'd been in here. But Hagrid was miles away now, probably sitting in a cell in
Azkaban, and he had also said to follow the spiders.
Something wet touched Harry's
hand and he jumped backward, crushing Ron's foot, but it was only Fang's nose.
"What d'you reckon?"
Harry said to Ron, whose eyes he could just make out, reflecting the light from
his wand.
"We've come this far,"
said Ron.
So they followed the darting
shadows of the spiders into the trees. They couldn't move very quickly now; there
were tree roots and stumps in their way, barely visible in the near blackness.
Harry could feel Fang's hot breath on his hand. More than once, they had to
stop, so that Harry could crouch down and find the spiders in the wandlight.
They walked for what seemed like
at least half an hour, their robes snagging on low-slung branches and brambles.
After a while, they noticed that the ground seemed to be sloping downward,
though the trees were as thick as ever.
Then Fang suddenly let loose a
great, echoing bark, making both Harry and Ron jump out of their skins.
"What?" said Ron
loudly, looking around into the pitch-dark, and gripping Harry's elbow very
hard.
"There's something moving
over there," Harry breathed. "Listen...sounds like something
big..."
They listened. Some distance to
their right, the something big was snapping branches as it carved a path
through the trees.
"Oh, no," said Ron.
"Oh, no, oh, no, oh -"
"Shut up," said Harry
frantically. "It'll hear you."
"Hear me?" said
Ron in an unnaturally high voice. "It's already heard Fang!"
The darkness seemed to be
pressing on their eyeballs as they stood, terrified, waiting. There was a
strange rumbling noise and then silence.
"What d'you think it's
doing?" said Harry.
"Probably getting ready to
pounce," said Ron.
They waited, shivering, hardly
daring to move.
"D'you think it's
gone?" Harry whispered.
"Dunno -"
Then, to their right, came a
sudden blaze of light, so bright in the darkness that both of them flung up
their hands to shield their eyes. Fang yelped and tried to run, but got lodged
in a tangle of thorns and yelped even louder.
"Harry!" Ron shouted,
his voice breaking with relief "Harry, it's our car!"
"What?"
"Come on!"
Harry blundered after Ron toward
the light, stumbling and tripping, and a moment later they had emerged into a
clearing.
Mr. Weasley's car was standing,
empty, in the middle of a circle of thick trees under a roof of dense branches,
its headlights ablaze. As Ron walked, open-mouthed, toward it, it moved slowly
toward him, exactly like a large, turquoise dog greeting its owner.
"It's been here all the
time!" said Ron delightedly, walking around the car. "Look at it. The
forest's turned it wild..."
The sides of the car were
scratched and smeared with mud. Apparently it had taken to trundling around the
forest on its own. Fang didn't seem at all keen on it; he kept close to Harry,
who could feel him quivering. His breathing slowing down again, Harry stuffed
his wand back into his robes.
"And we thought it was
going to attack us!" said Ron, leaning against the car and patting it.
"I wondered where it had gone!"
Harry squinted around on the
floodlit ground for signs of more spiders, but they had all scuttled away from
the glare of the headlights.
"We've lost the
trail," he said. "C'mon, let's go and find them."
Ron didn't speak. He didn't
move. His eyes were fixed on a point some ten feet above the forest floor,
right behind Harry. His face was livid with terror.
Harry didn't even have time to
turn around. There was a loud clicking noise and suddenly he felt something
long and hairy seize him around the middle and lift him off the ground, so that
he was hanging facedown. Struggling, terrified, he heard more clicking, and saw
Ron's legs leave the ground, too, heard Fang whimpering and howling - next
moment, he was being swept away into the dark trees.
Head hanging, Harry saw that
what had hold of him was marching on six immensely long, hairy legs, the front
two clutching him tightly below a pair of shining black pincers. Behind him, he
could hear another of the creatures, no doubt carrying Ron. They were moving
into the very heart of the forest. Harry could hear Fang fighting to free
himself from a third monster, whining loudly, but Harry couldn't have yelled
even if he had wanted to; he seemed to have left his voice back with the car in
the clearing.
He never knew how long he was in
the creature's clutches; he only knew that the darkness suddenly lifted enough
for him to see that the leaf-strewn ground was now swarming with
spiders. Craning his neck sideways, he
realized that they had reached the ridge of a vast hollow, a hollow that had
been cleared of trees, so that the stars shone brightly onto the worst scene he
had ever laid eyes on.
Spiders. Not tiny spiders like
those surging over the leaves below. Spiders the size of carthorses,
eight-eyed, eight-legged, black, hairy, gigantic. The massive specimen that was
carrying Harry made its way down the steep slope toward a misty, domed web in
the very center of the hollow, while its fellows closed in all around it,
clicking their pincers excitedly at the sight of its load.
Harry fell to the ground on all
fours as the spider released him. Ron and Fang thudded down next to him. Fang
wasn't howling anymore, but cowering silently on the spot. Ron looked exactly
like Harry felt. His mouth was stretched wide in a kind of silent scream and
his eyes were popping.
Harry suddenly realized that the
spider that had dropped him was saying something. It had been hard to tell,
because he clicked his pincers with every word he spoke.
"Aragog!" it called.
"Aragog!"
And from the middle of the
misty, domed web, a spider the size of a small elephant emerged, very slowly.
There was gray in the black of his body and legs, and each of the eyes on his
ugly, pincered head was milky white. He was blind.
"What is it?" he said,
clicking his pincers rapidly.
"Men," clicked the
spider who had caught Harry.
"Is it Hagrid?" said
Aragog, moving closer, his eight milky eyes wandering vaguely.
"Strangers," clicked
the spider who had brought Ron.
"Kill them," clicked
Aragog fretfully. "I was sleeping..."
"We're friends of
Hagrid's," Harry shouted. His heart seemed to have left his chest to pound
in his throat.
Click, click, click went the
pincers of the spiders all around the hollow.
Aragog paused.
"Hagrid has never sent men
into our hollow before," he said slowly.
"Hagrid's in trouble,"
said Harry, breathing very fast. "That's why we've come."
"In trouble?" said the
aged spider, and Harry thought he heard concern beneath the clicking pincers. "But
why has he sent you?"
Harry thought of getting to his
feet but decided against it; he didn't think his legs would support him. So he
spoke from the ground, as calmly as he could.
"They think, up at the
school, that Hagrid's been setting a - a - something on students. They've taken
him to Azkaban."
Aragog clicked his pincers
furiously, and all around the hollow the sound was echoed by the crowd of
spiders; it was like applause, except applause didn't usually make Harry feel
sick with fear.
"But that was years
ago," said Aragog fretfully. "Years and years ago. I remember it
well. That's why they made him leave the school. They believed that I
was the monster that dwells in what they call the Chamber of Secrets. They
thought that Hagrid had opened the Chamber and set me free." "And you...you didn't come from the Chamber of
Secrets?" said Harry, who could feel cold sweat on his forehead.
"I!" said Aragog,
clicking angrily. "I was not born in the castle. I come from a distant
land. A traveler gave me to Hagrid when I was an egg. Hagrid was only a boy,
but he cared for me, hidden in a cupboard in the castle, feeding me on scraps
from the table. Hagrid is my good friend, and a good man. When I was
discovered, and blamed for the death of a girl, he protected me. I have lived
here in the forest ever since, where Hagrid still visits me. He even found me a
wife, Mosag, and you see how our family has grown, all through Hagrid's
goodness..."
Harry summoned what remained of
his courage.
"So you never - never
attacked anyone?"
"Never," croaked the
old spider. "It would have been my instinct, but out of respect for
Hagrid, I never harmed a human. The body of the girl who was killed was
discovered in a bathroom. I never saw any part of the castle but the cupboard in
which I grew up. Our kind like the dark and the quiet..."
"But then...Do you know what did
kill that girl?" said Harry. "Because whatever it is, it's back and
attacking people again -"
His words were drowned by a loud
outbreak of clicking and the rustling of many long legs shifting angrily; large
black shapes shifted all around him.
"The thing that lives in
the castle," said Aragog, "is an ancient creature we spiders fear
above all others. Well do I remember how I pleaded with Hagrid to let me go,
when I sensed the beast moving about the school."
"What is it?" said
Harry urgently.
More loud clicking, more
rustling; the spiders seemed to be closing in.
"We do not speak of
it!" said Aragog fiercely. "We do not name it! I never even told
Hagrid the name of that dread creature, though he asked me, many times."
Harry didn't want to press the
subject, not with the spiders pressing closer on all sides. Aragog seemed to be
tired of talking. He was backing slowly into his domed web, but his fellow
spiders continued to inch slowly toward Harry and Ron.
"We'll just go, then,"
Harry called desperately to Aragog, hearing leaves rustling behind him.
"Go?" said Aragog
slowly. "I think not..."
"But - but -"
"My sons and daughters do
not harm Hagrid, on my command. But I cannot deny them fresh meat, when it
wanders so willingly into our midst. Good-bye, friend of Hagrid."
Harry spun around. Feet away,
towering above him, was a solid wall of spiders, clicking, their many eyes
gleaming in their ugly black heads.
Even as he reached for his wand,
Harry knew it was no good, there were too many of them, but as he tried to
stand, ready to die fighting, a loud, long note sounded, and a blaze of light
flamed through the hollow.
Mr. Weasley's car was thundering
down the slope, headlights glaring, its horn screeching, knocking spiders
aside; several were thrown onto their backs, their endless legs waving in the
air. The car screeched to a halt in front of Harry and Ron and the doors flew
open.
"Get Fang!" Harry
yelled, diving into the front seat; Ron seized the boarhound around the middle
and threw him, yelping, into the back of the car - the doors slammed shut - Ron
didn't touch the accelerator but the car didn't need him; the engine roared and
they were off, hitting more spiders. They sped up the slope, out of the hollow,
and they were soon crashing through the forest, branches whipping the windows
as the car wound its way cleverly through the widest gaps, following a path it
obviously knew.
Harry looked sideways at Ron.
His mouth was still open in the silent scream, but his eyes weren't popping
anymore.
"Are you okay?"
Ron stared straight ahead,
unable to speak.
They smashed their way through
the undergrowth, Fang howling loudly in the back seat, and Harry saw the side
mirror snap off as they squeezed past a large oak. After ten noisy, rocky
minutes, the trees thinned, and Harry could again see patches of sky.
The car stopped so suddenly that
they were nearly thrown into the windshield. They had reached the edge of the
forest. Fang flung himself at the window in his anxiety to get out, and when
Harry opened the door, he shot off through the trees to Hagrid's house, tail
between his legs. Harry got out too, and after a minute or so, Ron seemed to
regain the feeling in his limbs and followed, still stiff-necked and staring.
Harry gave the car a grateful pat as it reversed back into the forest and
disappeared from view.
Harry went back into Hagrid's
cabin to get the Invisibility Cloak. Fang was trembling under a blanket in his
basket. When Harry got outside again, he found Ron being violent sick in the
pumpkin patch.
"Follow the spiders,"
said Ron weakly, wiping his mouth on his sleeve. "I'll never forgive
Hagrid. We're lucky to be alive."
"I bet he thought Aragog
wouldn't hurt friends of his," said Harry.
"That's exactly Hagrid's
problem!" said Ron, thumping the wall of the cabin. "He always thinks
monsters aren't as bad as they're made out, and look where it's got him! A cell
in Azkaban!" He was shivering uncontrollably now. "What was the point
of sending us in there? What have we found out, I'd like to know?"
"That Hagrid never opened
the Chamber of Secrets," said Harry, throwing the cloak over Ron and
prodding him in the arm to make him walk. "He was innocent."
Ron gave a loud snort.
Evidently, hatching Aragog in a cupboard wasn't his idea of being innocent.
As the castle loomed nearer
Harry twitched the cloak to make sure their feet were hidden, then pushed the
creaking front doors ajar. They walked carefully back across the entrance hall
and up the marble staircase, holding their breath as they passed corridors
where watchful sentries were walking. At last they reached the safety of the
Gryffindor common room, where the fire had burned itself into glowing ash. They
took off the cloak and climbed the winding stair to their dormitory.
Ron fell onto his bed without
bothering to get undressed. Harry, however, didn't feel very sleepy. He sat on
the edge of his fourposter, thinking hard about everything Aragog had said.
The creature that was lurking
somewhere in the castle, he thought, sounded like a sort of monster Voldemort
-even other monsters didn't want to name it. But he and Ron were no closer to
finding out what it was, or how it petrified its victims. Even Hagrid had never
known what was in the Chamber of Secrets.
Harry swung his legs up onto his
bed and leaned back against his pillows, watching the moon glinting at him
through the tower window.
He couldn't see what else they
could do. They had hit dead ends everywhere. Riddle had caught the wrong
person, the Heir of Slytherin had got off, and no one could tell whether it was
the same person, or a different one, who had opened the Chamber this time.
There was nobody else to ask. Harry lay down, still thinking about what Aragog
had said.
He was becoming drowsy when what
seemed like their very last hope occurred to him, and he suddenly sat bolt
upright.
"Ron," he hissed
through the dark, "Ron -"
Ron woke with a yelp like
Fang's, stared wildly around, and saw Harry.
"Ron - that girl who died.
Aragog said she was found in a bathroom," said Harry, ignoring Neville's
snuffling snores from the corner. "What if she never left the bathroom?
What if she's still there?"
Ron rubbed his eyes, frowning
through the moonlight. And then he understood, too.
"You don't think -
not Moaning Myrtle?" CHAPTER SIXTEEN THE CHAMBER OF SECRETS
"All those times we were in
that bathroom, and she was just three toilets away," said Ron bitterly at
breakfast next day, "and we could've asked her, and now..."
It had been hard enough trying
to look for spiders. Escaping their teachers long enough to sneak into a girls'
bathroom, the girls' bathroom, moreover, right next to the scene of the first
attack, was going to be almost impossible.
But something happened in their
first lesson, Transfiguration, that drove the Chamber of Secrets out of their
minds for the first time in weeks. Ten minutes into the class, Professor
McGonagall told them that their exams would start on the first of June, one
week from today.
"Exams?" howled
Seamus Finnigan. "We're still getting exams?"
There was a loud bang behind
Harry as Neville Longbottom's wand slipped, vanishing one of the legs on his
desk. Professor McGonagall restored it with a wave of her own wand, and turned,
frowning, to Seamus.
"The whole point of keeping
the school open at this time is for you to receive your education," she
said sternly. "The exams will therefore take place as usual, and I trust
you are all studying hard."
Studying hard! It had never
occurred to Harry that there would be exams with the castle in this state.
There was a great deal of mutinous muttering around the room, which made
Professor McGonagall scowl even more darkly.
"Professor Dumbledore's
instructions were to keep the school running as normally as possible, she said.
"And that, I need hardly point out, means finding out how much you have
learned this year."
Harry looked down at the pair of
white rabbits he was supposed to be turning into slippers. What had he learned
so far this year? He couldn't seem to think of anything that would be useful in
an exam.
Ron looked as though he'd just
been told he had to go and live in the Forbidden Forest.
"Can you imagine me taking
exams with this?" he asked Harry, holding up his wand, which had just
started whistling loudly.
Three days before their first
exam, Professor McGonagall made another announcement at breakfast.
"I have good news,"
she said, and the Great Hall, instead of falling silent, erupted.
"Dumbledore's coming
back!" several people yelled joyfully.
"You've caught the Heir of
Slytherin!" squealed a girl at the Ravenclaw table.
"Quidditch matches are back
on!" roared Wood excitedly.
When the hubbub had subsided,
Professor McGonagall said, "Professor Sprout has informed me that the
Mandrakes are ready for cutting at last. Tonight, we will be able to revive
those people who have been Petrified. I need hardly remind you all that one of
them may well be able to tell us who, or what, attacked them. I am hopeful that
this dreadful year will end with our catching the culprit."
There was an explosion of
cheering. Harry looked over at the Slytherin table and wasn't at all surprised
to see that Draco Malfoy hadn't joined in. Ron, however, was looking happier
than he'd looked in days.
"It won't matter that we
never asked Myrtle, then!" he said to Harry. "Hermione'll probably
have all the answers when they wake her up! Mind you, she'll go crazy when she
finds out we've got exams in three days' time. She hasn't studied. It might be
kinder to leave her where she is till they're over."
Just then, Ginny Weasley came
over and sat down next to Ron. She looked tense and nervous, and Harry noticed
that her hands were twisting in her lap.
"What's up?" said Ron,
helping himself to more porridge.
Ginny didn't say anything, but
glanced up and down the Gryffindor table with a scared look on her face that
reminded Harry of someone, though he couldn't think who.
"Spit it out," said
Ron, watching her.
Harry suddenly realized who
Ginny looked like. She was rocking backward and forward slightly in her chair,
exactly like Dobby did when he was teetering on the edge of revealing forbidden
information.
"I've got to tell you
something," Ginny mumbled, carefully not looking at Harry.
"What is it?" said
Harry.
Ginny looked as though she
couldn't find the right words.
"What?"
said Ron.
Ginny opened her mouth, but no
sound came out. Harry leaned forward and spoke quietly, so that only Ginny and
Ron could hear him. "Is it something about the Chamber of Secrets? Have
you seen something? Someone acting oddly?"
Ginny drew a deep breath and, at
that precise moment, Percy Weasley appeared, looking tired and wan.
"If you've finished eating,
I'll take that seat, Ginny. I'm starving, I've only just come off patrol
duty."
Ginny jumped up as though her
chair had just been electrified, gave Percy a fleeting, frightened look, and
scampered away. Percy sat down and grabbed a mug from the center of the table.
"Percy!" said Ron
angrily. "She was just about to tell us something important!"
Halfway through a gulp of tea,
Percy choked.
"What sort of thing?"
he said, coughing.
"I just asked her if she'd
seen anything odd, and she started to say
"Oh - that - that's nothing
to do with the Chamber of Secrets," said Percy at once.
"How do you know?"
said Ron, his eyebrows raised.
"Well, er, if you must
know, Ginny, er, walked in on me the other day when I was - well, never mind -
the point is, she spotted me doing something and I, um, I asked her not to
mention it to anybody. I must say, I did think she'd keep her word. It's
nothing, really, I'd just rather -"
Harry had never seen Percy look
so uncomfortable.
"What were you doing,
Percy?" said Ron, grinning. "Go on, tell us, we won't laugh."
Percy didn't smile back.
"Pass me those rolls,
Harry, I'm starving."
Harry knew the whole mystery
might be solved tomorrow without their help, but he wasn't about to pass up a
chance to speak to Myrtle if it turned up - and to his delight it did,
midmorning, when they were being led to History of Magic by Gilderoy Lockhart.
Lockhart, who had so often
assured them that all danger had passed, only to be proved wrong right away,
was now wholeheartedly convinced that it was hardly worth the trouble to see
them safely down the corridors. His hair wasn't as sleek as usual; it seemed he
had been up most of the night, patrolling the fourth floor.
"Mark my words," he
said, ushering them around a corner. "The first words out of those poor
Petrified people's mouths will be 'It was Hagrid.' Frankly, I'm
astounded Professor McGonagall thinks all these security measures are
necessary."
"I agree, sir," said
Harry, making Ron drop his books in surprise.
"Thank you, Harry, said
Lockhart graciously while they waited for a long line of Hufflepuffs to pass.
"I mean, we teachers have quite enough to be getting on with, without
walking students to classes and standing guard all night..."
"That's right," said
Ron, catching on. "Why don't you leave us here, sir, we've only got one
more corridor to go -"
"You know, Weasley, I think
I will," said Lockhart. "I really should go and prepare my next class
-"
And he hurried off.
"Prepare his class,"
Ron sneered after him. "Gone to curl his hair, more like."
They let the rest of the
Gryffindors draw ahead of them, then darted down a side passage and hurried off
toward Moaning Myrtle's bathroom. But just as they were congratulating each
other on their brilliant scheme.
"Potter! Weasley! What are
you doing?"
It was Professor McGonagall, and
her mouth was the thinnest of thin lines.
"We were - we were -"
Ron stammered. "We were going to - to go and see -"
"Hermione," said
Harry. Ron and Professor McGonagall both looked at him.
"We haven't seen her for
ages, Professor," Harry went on hurriedly, treading on Ron's foot,
"and we thought we'd sneak into the hospital wing, you know, and tell her
the Mandrakes are nearly ready and, er, not to worry -"
Professor McGonagall was still
staring at him, and for a moment, Harry thought she was going to explode, but
when she spoke, it was in a strangely croaky voice.
"Of course," she said,
and Harry, amazed, saw a tear glistening in her beady eye. "Of course, I
realize this has all been hardest on the friends of those who have been...I quite
understand. Yes, Potter, of course you may visit Miss Granger. I will inform
Professor Binns where you've gone. Tell Madam Pomfrey I have given my
permission."
Harry and Ron walked away,
hardly daring to believe that they'd avoided detention. As they turned the
corner, they distinctly heard Professor McGonagall blow her nose.
"That," said Ron
fervently, "was the best story you've ever come up with."
They had no choice now but to go
to the hospital wing and tell Madam Pomfrey that they had Professor
McGonagall's permission to visit Hermione.
Madam Pomfrey let them in, but
reluctantly.
"There's just no point
talking to a Petrified. person," she said, and they had to admit she had a
point when they'd taken their seats next to Hermione. It was plain that
Hermione didn't have the faintest inkling that she had visitors, and that they
might just as well tell her bedside cabinet not to worry for all the good it
would do.
"Wonder if she did see the
attacker, though?" said Ron, looking sadly at Hermione's rigid face.
"Because if he sneaked up on them all, no one'll ever know..."
But Harry wasn't looking at
Hermione's face. He was more interested in her right hand. It lay clenched on
top of her blankets, and bending closer, he saw that a piece of paper was
scrunched inside her fist.
Making sure that Madam Pomfrey
was nowhere near, he pointed this out to Ron.
"Go on and get it
out," Ron whispered, shifting his chair so that he blocked Harry from
Madam Pomfrey's view.
It was no easy task. Hermione's
hand was clamped so tightly around the paper that Harry was sure he was going
to tear it. While Ron kept watch he tugged and twisted, and at last, after
several tense minutes, the paper came free.
It was a page torn from a very
old library book. Harry smoothed it out eagerly and Ron leaned close to read
it, too.
"Of the many fearsome beasts and monsters that
roam our land, there is none more curious or more deadly than the Basilisk,
known also as the King of Serpents. This snake, which may reach gigantic size
and live many hundreds of years, is born from a chicken's egg, hatched beneath
a toad. Its methods of killing are most wondrous, for
aside from its deadly and venomous fangs, the Basilisk has a
murderous stare, and all who are fixed with the beam of its eye shall suffer
instant death. Spiders flee before the Basilisk, for it is their mortal enemy,
and the Basilisk flees only from the crowing of the rooster, which is fatal to
it."
And beneath this, a single word
had been written, in a hand Harry recognized as Hermione's. Pipes. It was as though somebody had just flicked a light on in
his brain.
"Ron," he breathed.
"This is it. This is the answer. The monster in the Chamber's a basilisk
- a giant serpent! That's why I've been hearing that voice all over the
place, and nobody else has heard it. It's because I understand
Parseltongue..."
Harry looked up at the beds
around him.
"The basilisk kills people
by looking at them. But no one's died - because no one looked it straight in
the eye. Colin saw it through his camera. The basilisk burned up all the film
inside it, but Colin just got Petrified. Justin... Justin must've seen the
basilisk through Nearly Headless Nick! Nick got the full blast of it, but he
couldn't die again.. and Hermione and that Ravenclaw prefect were found with a
mirror next to them. Hermione had just realized the monster was a basilisk. I
bet you anything she warned the first person she met to look around corners
with a mirror first! And that girl pulled out her mirror - and -"
Rods jaw had dropped.
"And Mrs. Norris?" he
whispered eagerly.
Harry thought hard, picturing
the scene on the night of Halloween.
"The water..." he said
slowly. "The flood from Moaning Myrtle's bathroom. I bet you Mrs. Norris
only saw the reflection..."
He scanned the page in his hand
eagerly. The more he looked at it, the more it made sense.
"...The crowing of the
rooster...is fatal to it"! he read aloud. "Hagrid's roosters were
killed! The Heir of Slytherin didn't want one anywhere near the castle once the
Chamber was opened! Spiders flee before it.! It all fits!"
"But how's the basilisk
been getting around the place?" said Ron. "A giant snake...Someone
would've seen..."
Harry, however, pointed at the
word Hermione had scribbled at the foot of the page.
"Pipes," he said.
"Pipes...Ron, it's been using the
plumbing. I've been hearing that voice inside the walls..."
Ron suddenly grabbed Harry's
arm.
"The entrance to the
Chamber of Secrets!" he said hoarsely. "What if it's a bathroom? What
if it's in -"
"Moaning Myrtle's
bathroom," said Harry. They sat there, excitement coursing through them, hardly
able to believe it.
"This means," said
Harry, "I can't be the only Parselmouth in the school. The Heir of Slytherin's
one, too. That's how he's been controlling the basilisk."
"What're we going to
do?" said Ron, whose eyes were flashing. "Should we go straight to
McGonagall?"
"Let's go to the staff
room," said Harry, jumping up. "She'll be there in ten minutes. It's
nearly break."
They ran downstairs. Not wanting
to be discovered hanging around in
another corridor, they went straight into the deserted staff room. It
was a large, paneled room full of dark, wooden chairs. Harry and Ron paced around
it, too excited to sit down.
But the bell to signal break
never came.
Instead, echoing through the
corridors came Professor McGonagall's voice, magically magnified.
"All students to return to
their House dormitories at once. All teachers return to the staff room. Immediately,
please."
Harry wheeled around to stare at
Ron. "Not another attack? Not now?"
"What'll we do?" said
Ron, aghast. "Go back to the dormitory?" "No," said Harry,
glancing around. There was an ugly sort of wardrobe to his left, full of the
teachers' cloaks. "In here. Let's hear what it's all about. Then we can
tell them what we've found out."
They hid themselves inside it,
listening to the rumbling of hundreds of people moving overhead, and the staff
room door banging open. From between the musty folds of the cloaks, they
watched the teachers filtering into the room. Some of them were looking
puzzled, others downright scared. Then Professor McGonagall arrived.
"It has happened," she
told the silent staff room. "A student has been taken by the monster. Right
into the Chamber itself."
Professor Flitwick let out a
squeal. Professor Sprout clapped her hands over her mouth. Snape gripped the
back of a chair very hard and said, "How can you be sure?"
"The Heir of
Slytherin," said Professor McGonagall, who was very white, "left
another message. Right underneath the first one. 'Her skeleton will lie in
the Chamber forever.'"
Professor Flitwick burst into
tears.
"Who is it?" said
Madam Hooch, who had sunk, weak-kneed, into a chair. "Which student?"
"Ginny Weasley," said
Professor McGonagall.
Harry felt Ron slide silently
down onto the wardrobe floor beside him.
"We shall have to send all
the students home tomorrow," said Professor McGonagall. "This is the
end of Hogwarts. Dumbledore always said..."
The staffroom door banged open
again. For one wild moment, Harry was sure it would be Dumbledore. But it was
Lockhart, and he was beaming.
"So sorry - dozed off -
what have I missed?"
He didn't seem to notice that
the other teachers were looking at him with something remarkably like hatred.
Snape stepped forward. "Just the man," he said. "The very man. A
girl has been snatched by the monster, Lockhart. Taken into the Chamber of
Secrets itself. Your moment has come at last."
Lockhart blanched.
"That's right,
Gilderoy," chipped in Professor Sprout. "Weren't you saying just last
night that you've known all along where the entrance to the Chamber of Secrets
is?"
"I - well, I
-"sputtered Lockhart.
"Yes, didn't you tell me
you were sure you knew what was inside it?" piped up Professor Flitwick.
"D-did I? I don't recall
-"
"I certainly remember you
saying you were sorry you hadn't had a crack at the monster before Hagrid was
arrested," said Snape. "Didn't you say that the whole affair had been
bungled, and that you should have been given a free rein from the first?"
Lockhart stared around at his
stony-faced colleagues.
"I - I really never - you
may have misunderstood -" "We'll leave it to you, then, Gilderoy," said
Professor McGonagall. "Tonight will be an excellent time to do it. We'll
make sure everyone's out of your way. You'll be able to tackle the monster all
by youself. A free rein at last."
Lockhart gazed desperately
around him, but nobody came to the rescue. He didn't look remotely handsome
anymore. His lip was trembling, and in the absence of his usually toothy grin,
he looked weak-chinned and feeble.
"V-very well," he
said. "I'll - I'll be in my office, getting - getting ready."
And he left the room.
"Right," said
Professor McGonagall, whose nostrils were flared, "that's got him
out from under our feet. The Heads of Houses should go and inform their
students what has happened. Tell them the Hogwarts Express will take them home
first thing tomorrow. Will the rest of you please make sure no students have
been left outside their dormitories."
The teachers rose and left, one
by one.
It was probably the worst day of
Harry's entire life. He, Ron, Fred, and George sat together in a corner of the
Gryffindor common room, unable to say anything to each other. Percy wasn't
there. He had gone to send an owl to Mr. and Mrs. Weasley, then shut himself up
in his dormitory.
No afternoon ever lasted as long
as that one, nor had Gryffindor Tower ever been so crowded, yet so quiet. Near
sunset, Fred and George went up to bed, unable to sit there any longer.
"She knew something,
Harry," said Ron, speaking for the first time since they had entered the
wardrobe in the staff room. "That's why she was taken. It wasn't some
stupid thing about Percy at all., She'd found out something about the Chamber
of Secrets. That must be why she was -" Ron rubbed his eyes frantically.
"I mean, she was a pure-blood. There can't be any other reason."
Harry could see the sun sinking,
blood-red, below the skyline. This was the worst he had ever felt. If only
there was something they could do. Anything.
"Harry" said Ron.
"D'you think there's any chance at all she's not - you know -"
Harry didn't know what to say.
He couldn't see how Ginny could still be alive.
"D'you know what?"
said Ron. "I think we should go and see Lockhart. Tell him what we know.
He's going to try and get into the Chamber. We can tell him where we think it
is, and tell him it's a basilisk in there."
Because Harry couldn't think of
anything else to do, and because he wanted to be doing something, he agreed.
The Gryffindors around them were so miserable, and felt so sorry for the
Weasleys, that nobody tried to stop them as they got up, crossed the room, and
left through the portrait hole.
Darkness was falling as they
walked down to Lockhart's office. There seemed to be a lot of activity going on
inside it. They could hear scraping, thumps, and hurried footsteps.
Harry knocked and there was a
sudden silence from inside. Then the door opened the tiniest crack and they saw
one of Lockhart's eyes peering through it.
"Oh - Mr. Potter - Mr.
Weasley -" he said, opening the door a bit wider. "I'm rather busy at
the moment -if you would be quick -"
"Professor, we've got some
information for you," said Harry. "We think it'll help you."
"Er - well - it's not
terribly -" The side of Lockhart's face that they could see looked very
uncomfortable. "I mean - well - all right -"
He opened the door and they
entered.
His office had been almost
completely stripped. Two large trunks stood open on the floor. Robes,
jade-green, lilac, midnight blue, had been hastily folded into one of them;
books were jumbled untidily into the other. The photographs that had covered
the walls were now crammed into boxes on the desk.
"Are you going
somewhere?" said Harry.
"Er, well, yes," said
Lockhart, ripping a life-size poster of himself from the back of the door as he
spoke and starting to roll it up. "Urgent call - unavoidable - got to go
-"
"What about my
sister?" said Ron jerkily.
"Well, as to that - most
unfortunate -" said Lockhart, avoiding their eyes as he wrenched open a
drawer and started emptying the contents into a bag. "No one regrets more
than I -"
"You're the Defense Against
the Dark Arts teacher!" said Harry. "You can't go now! Not with all
the Dark stuff going on here!"
"Well - I must say - when I
took the job -" Lockhart muttered, now piling socks on top of his robes.
"nothing in the job description - didn't expect -"
"You mean you're running
away?" said Harry disbelievingly. "After all that stuff you did
in your books -" "Books can be misleading," said Lockhart
delicately.
"You wrote them!"
Harry shouted.
"My dear boy," said
Lockhart, straightening up and frowning at Harry. "Do use your common
sense. My books wouldn't have sold half as well if people didn't think I'd done
all those things. No one wants to read about some ugly old Armenian warlock,
even if he did save a village from werewolves. He'd look dreadful on the front
cover. No dress sense at all. And the witch who banished the Bandon Banshee had
a harelip. I mean, come on -"
"So you've just been taking
credit for what a load of other people have done?" said Harry
incredulously.
"Harry, Harry," said
Lockhart, shaking his head impatiently, "it's not nearly as simple as
that. There was work involved. I had to track these people down. Ask them
exactly how they managed to do what they did. Then I had to put a Memory Charm
on them so they wouldn't remember doing it. If there's one thing I pride myself
on, it's my Memory Charms. No, it's been a lot of work, Harry. It's not all
book signings and publicity photos, you know. You want fame, you have to be
prepared for a long hard slog."
He banged the lids of his trunks
shut and locked them.
"Let's see," he said.
"I think that's everything. Yes. Only one thing left."
He pulled out his wand and
turned to them. "Awfully sorry, boys, but I'll have to put a Memory
Charm on you now. Can't have you blabbing my secrets all over the place. I'd
never sell another book -"
Harry reached his wand just in
time. Lockhart had barely raised his, when Harry bellowed, "Expelliarmus!"
Lockhart
was blasted backward, falling over his trunk; his wand flew high into the air;
Ron caught it, and flung it out of the open window.
"Shouldn't have let
Professor Snape teach us that one," said Harry furiously, kicking Lockhart's
trunk aside. Lockhart was looking up at him, feeble once more. Harry was still
pointing his wand at him.
"What d'you want me to
do?" said Lockhart weakly. "I don't know where the Chamber of Secrets
is. There's nothing I can do."
"You're in luck," said
Harry, forcing Lockhart to his feet at wandpoint. "We think we know
where it is. And what's inside it. Let's go." They marched Lockhart out of his office and down the
nearest stairs, along the dark corridor where the messages shone on the wall,
to the door of Moaning Myrtle's bathroom. They sent Lockhart in first. Harry was pleased to see that
he was shaking.
Moaning Myrtle was sitting on
the tank of the end toilet.
"Oh, it's you," she
said when she saw Harry. "What do you want this time?"
"To ask you how you
died," said Harry.
Myrtle's whole aspect changed at
once. She looked as though she had never been asked such a flattering question.
"Ooooh, it was
dreadful," she said with relish. "It happened right in here. I died
in this very stall. I remember it so well. I'd hidden because Olive Hornby was
teasing me about my glasses. The door was locked, and I was crying, and then I
heard somebody come in. They said something funny. A different language, I
think it must have been. Anyway, what really got me was that it was a boy
speaking. So I unlocked the door, to tell him to go and use his own toilet, and
then -" Myrtle swelled importantly, her face shining. "I died." "How?" said Harry.
"No idea," said Myrtle
in hushed tones. "I just remember seeing a pair of great, big, yellow
eyes. My whole body sort of seized up, and then I was floating away..." She
looked dreamily at Harry. "And then I came back again. I was determined to
haunt Olive Hornby, you see. Oh, she was sorry she'd ever laughed at my glasses."
"Where exactly did you see
the eyes?" said Harry.
"Somewhere there,"
said Myrtle, pointing vaguely toward the sink in front of her toilet.
Harry and Ron hurried over to
it. Lockhart was standing well back, a look of utter terror on his face.
It looked like an ordinary sink.
They examined every inch of it, inside and out, including the pipes below. And
then Harry saw it: Scratched on the side of one of the copper taps was a tiny
snake.
"That tap's never
worked," said Myrtle brightly as he tried to turn it.
"Harry," said Ron.
"Say something. Something in Parseltongue."
"But -" Harry thought
hard. The only times he'd ever managed to speak Parseltongue were when he'd
been faced with a real snake. He stared hard at the tiny engraving, trying to
imagine it was real.
"Open up," he said.
He looked at Ron, who shook his
head.
"English," he said.
Harry looked back at the snake,
willing himself to believe it was alive. If he moved his head, the candlelight
made it look as though it were moving.
"Open up," he said.
Except that the words weren't
what he heard; a strange hissing had escaped him, and at once the tap glowed
with a brilliant white light and began to spin. Next second, the sink began to
move; the sink, in fact, sank, right out of sight, leaving a large pipe
exposed, a pipe wide enough for a man to slide into.
Harry heard Ron gasp and looked
up again. He had made up his mind what he was going to do.
"I'm going down
there," he said.
He couldn't not go, not now they
had found the entrance to the Chamber, not if there was even the faintest,
slimmest, wildest chance that Ginny might be alive.
"Me too," said Ron.
There was a pause.
"Well, you hardly seem to
need me," said Lockhart, with a shadow of his old smile. "I'll just
-"
He put his hand on the door
knob, but Ron and Harry both pointed their wands at him.
"You can go first,"
Ron snarled.
White-faced and wandless,
Lockhart approached the opening.
"Boys," he said, his
voice feeble. "Boys, what good will it do?"
Harry jabbed him in the back
with his wand. Lockhart slid his legs into the pipe.
"I really don't think
-" he started to say, but Ron gave him a push, and he slid out of sight.
Harry followed quickly. He lowered himself slowly into the pipe, then let go.
It was like rushing down an
endless, slimy, dark slide. He could see more pipes branching off in all
directions, but none as large as theirs, which twisted and turned, sloping
steeply downward, and he knew that he was falling deeper below the school than
even the dungeons. Behind him he could hear Ron, thudding slightly at the
curves.
And then, just as he had begun
to worry about what would happen when he hit the ground, the pipe leveled out,
and he shot out of the end with a wet thud, landing on the damp floor of a dark
stone tunnel large enough to stand in. Lockhart was getting to his feet a
little ways away, covered in slime and white as a ghost. Harry stood aside as
Ron came whizzing out of the pipe, too.
"We must be miles under the
school," said Harry, his voice echoing in the black tunnel.
"Under the lake,
probably," said Ron, squinting around at the dark, slimy walls.
All three of them turned to
stare into the darkness ahead.
"Lumos!" Harry
muttered to his wand and it lit again. "C'mon," he said to Ron and
Lockhart, and off they went, their footsteps slapping loudly on the wet floor. The tunnel was so dark that they could only see a little
distance ahead. Their shadows on the wet walls looked monstrous in the
wandlight.
"Remember," Harry said
quietly as they walked cautiously forward, "any sign of movement, close
your eyes right away..."
But the tunnel was quiet as the
grave, and the first unexpected sound they heard was a loud crunch as
Ron stepped on what turned out to be a rat's skull. Harry lowered his wand to
look at the floor and saw that it was littered with small animal bones. Trying
very hard not to imagine what Ginny might look like if they found her, Harry
led the way forward, around a dark bend in the tunnel.
"Harry - there's something
up there -" said Ron hoarsely, grabbing Harry's shoulder.
They froze, watching. Harry
could just see the outline of something huge and curved, lying right across the
tunnel. It wasn't moving.
"Maybe it's asleep,"
he breathed, glancing back at the other two. Lockhart's hands were pressed over
his eyes. Harry turned back to look at the thing, his heart beating so fast it
hurt.
Very slowly, his eyes as narrow
as he could make them and still see, Harry edged forward, his wand held high.
The light slid over a gigantic
snake skin, of a vivid, poisonous green, lying curled and empty across the
tunnel floor. The creature that had shed it must have been twenty feet long at
least.
"Blimey," said Ron
weakly.
There was a sudden movement
behind them. Gilderoy Lockhart's knees had given way.
"Get up," said Ron
sharply, pointing his wand at Lockhart.
Lockhart got to his feet - then
he dived at Ron, knocking him to the ground.
Harry jumped forward, but too
late - Lockhart was straightening up, panting, Ron's wand in his hand and a
gleaming smile back on his face.
"The adventure ends here,
boys!" he said. "I shall take a bit of this skin back up to the
school, tell them I was too late to save the girl, and that you two tragically
lost your minds at the sight of her mangled body - say good-bye to your
memories!"
He raised Ron's Spellotaped wand
high over his head and yelled, "Obliviate!"
The wand exploded with the force
of a small bomb. Harry flung his arms over his head and ran, slipping over the
coils of snake skin, out of the way of great chunks of tunnel ceiling that were
thundering to the floor. Next moment, he was standing alone, gazing at a solid
wall of broken rock.
"Ron!" he shouted.
"Are you okay? Ron!"
"I'm here!" came Ron's
muffled voice from behind the rockfall. "I'm okay - this git's not, though
- he got blasted by the wand -"
There was a dull thud and a loud
"ow!" It sounded as though Ron had just kicked Lockhart in the shins.
"What now?" Ron's
voice said, sounding desperate. "We can't get through - it'll take
ages..."
Harry looked up at the tunnel
ceiling. Huge cracks had appeared in it. He had never tried to break apart
anything as large as these rocks by magic, and now didn't seem a good moment to
try - what if the whole tunnel caved in?
There was another thud and
another "ow!" from behind the rocks. They were wasting time. Ginny
had already been in the Chamber of Secrets for hours...Harry knew there was only
one thing to do.
"Wait there," he
called to Ron. "Wait with Lockhart. I'll go on...If I'm not back in an
hour..."
There was a very pregnant pause,
"I'll try and shift some of this rock," said Ron, who seemed to be
trying to keep his voice steady. "So you can - can get back through. And,
Harry -"
"See you in a bit,"
said Harry, trying to inject some confidence into his shaking voice.
And he set off alone past the
giant snake skin.
Soon the distant noise of Ron
straining to shift the rocks was gone. The tunnel turned and turned again.
Every nerve in Harry's body was tingling unpleasantly. He wanted the tunnel to
end, yet dreaded what he'd find when it did. And then, at last, as he crept around
yet another bend, he saw a solid wall ahead on which two entwined serpents were
carved, their eyes set with great, glinting emeralds.
Harry approached, his throat
very dry. There was no need to pretend these stone snakes were real; their eyes
looked strangely alive.
He could guess what he had to
do. He cleared his throat, and the emerald eyes seemed to flicker.
"Open,"
said Harry, in a low, faint
hiss.
The serpents parted as the wall
cracked open, the halves slid smoothly out of sight, and Harry, shaking from
head to foot, walked inside. CHAPTER SEVENTEEN THE HEIR OF SLYTHERIN
He was standing at the end of a
very long, dimly lit chamber. Towering stone pillars entwined with more carved
serpents rose to support a ceiling lost in darkness, casting long, black
shadows through the odd, greenish gloom that filled the place.
His heart beating very fast, Harry stood
listening to the chill silence. Could the basilisk be lurking in a shadowy
corner, behind a pillar? And where was Ginny?
He pulled out his wand and moved
forward between the serpentine columns. Every careful footstep echoed loudly
off the shadowy walls. He kept his eyes narrowed, ready to clamp them shut at
the smallest sign of movement. The hollow eye sockets of the stone snakes
seemed to be following him. More than once, with a jolt of the stomach, he
thought he saw one stir.
Then, as he drew level with the
last pair of pillars, a statue high as the Chamber itself loomed into view,
standing against the back wall.
Harry had to crane his neck to
look up into the giant face above: It was ancient and monkeyish, with a long,
thin beard that fell almost to the bottom of the wizard's sweeping stone robes,
where two enormous gray feet stood on the smooth Chamber floor. And between the
feet, facedown, lay a small, black-robed figure with flaming-red hair.
"Ginny!" Harry
muttered, sprinting to her and dropping to his knees. "Ginny - don't be
dead - please don't be dead -" He flung his wand aside, grabbed Ginny's
shoulders, and turned her over. Her face was white as marble, and as cold, yet
her eyes were closed, so she wasn't Petrified. But then she must be...
"Ginny, please wake
up," Harry muttered desperately, shaking her. Ginny's head lolled
hopelessly from side to side.
"She won't wake," said
a soft voice.
Harry jumped and spun around on
his knees.
A tall, black-haired boy was
leaning against the nearest pillar, watching. He was strangely blurred around
the edges, as though Harry were looking at him through a misted window. But
there was no mistaking him.
"Tom - Tom Riddle?"
Riddle nodded, not taking his
eyes off Harry's face.
"What d'you mean, she won't
wake?" Harry said desperately. "She's not - she's not -?"
"She's still alive,"
said Riddle. "But only just."
Harry stared at him. Tom Riddle
had been at Hogwarts fifty years ago, yet here he stood, a weird, misty light
shining about him, not a day older than sixteen.
"Are you a ghost?"
Harry said uncertainly.
"A memory," said
Riddle quietly. "Preserved in a diary for fifty years."
He pointed toward the floor near
the statue's giant toes. Lying open there was the little black diary Harry had
found in Moaning Myrtle's bathroom. For a second, Harry wondered how it had got
there - but there were more pressing matters to deal with.
"You've got to help me,
Tom," Harry said, raising Ginny's head again. "We've got to get her
out of here. There's a basilisk...I don't know where it is, but it could be along
any moment...Please, help me."
Riddle didn't move. Harry,
sweating, managed to hoist Ginny half off the floor, and bent to pick up his
wand again.
But his wand had gone.
"Did you see -?"
He looked up. Riddle was still
watching him - twirling Harry's wand between his long fingers.
"Thanks," said Harry,
stretching out his hand for it.
A smile curled the corners of
Riddle's mouth. He continued to stare at Harry, twirling the wand idly.
"Listen," said Harry
urgently, his knees sagging with Ginny's dead weight. "We've got to go! If
the basilisk comes -"
"It won't come until it is
called," said Riddle calmly.
Harry lowered Ginny back onto
the floor, unable to hold her up any longer.
"What d'you mean?" he
said. "Look, give me my wand, I might need it -"
Riddle's smile broadened.
"You won't be needing
it," he said.
Harry stared at him.
"What d'you mean, I won't
be -?"
"I've waited a long time
for this, Harry Potter," said Riddle. "For the chance to see you. To
speak to you."
"Look," said Harry,
losing patience, "I don't think you get it. We're in the Chamber of
Secrets. We can talk later -"
"We're going to talk
now," said Riddle, still smiling broadly, and he pocketed Harry's wand.
Harry stared at him. There was
something very funny going on here ...
"How did Ginny get like
this?" he asked slowly.
"Well, that's an
interesting question," said Riddle pleasantly. "And quite a long
story. I suppose the real reason Ginny Weasley's like this is because she
opened her heart and spilled all her secrets to an invisible stranger."
"What are you talking
about?" said Harry.
"The diary," said
Riddle. 'My diary. Little Ginny's been writing in it for months and months,
telling me all her pitiful worries and woes - how her brothers tease her, how
she had to come to school with secondhand robes and books, how -" Riddle's
eyes glinted "- how she didn't think famous, good, great Harry Potter
would ever like her..."
All the time he spoke, Riddle's
eyes never left Harry's face. There was an almost hungry look in them.
"It's
very boring, having to listen to the silly little troubles of an
eleven-year-old girl," he went on. "But I was patient. I wrote back.
I was sympathetic, I was kind. Ginny simply loved me. No one's ever understood
me like you, Tom ... I'm so glad I've got this diary to confide in ... It's like
having a friend I can carry around in my pocket ..."
Riddle laughed, a high, cold
laugh that didn't suit him. It made the hairs stand up on the back of Harry's
neck.
"If I say it myself, Harry,
I've always been able to charm the people I needed. So Ginny poured out her
soul to me, and her soul happened to be exactly what I wanted... I grew stronger
and stronger on a diet of her deepest fears, her darkest secrets. I grew
powerful, far more powerful than little Miss Weasley. Powerful enough to start
feeding Miss Weasley a few of my secrets, to start pouring a little of my soul
back into her..."
"What d'you mean?"
said Harry, whose mouth had gone very dry.
"Haven't you guessed yet,
Harry Potter?" said Riddle softly. "Ginny Weasley opened the Chamber
of Secrets. She strangled the school roosters and daubed threatening messages
on the walls. She set the Serpent of Slytherin on four Mudbloods, and the
Squib's cat."
"No," Harry whispered.
"Yes," said Riddle,
calmly. "Of course, she didn't know what she was doing at first. It was
very amusing. I wish you could have seen her new diary entries...far more
interesting, they became... Dear Tom," he recited, watching Harry's
horrified face, 'I think I'm losing my memory. There are rooster feathers all
over my robes and 1 don't know how they got there. Dear Tom, l can't remember
what I did on the night of Halloween, but a cat was attacked and I've got paint
all down my front. Dear Tom, Percy keeps telling me I'm pale and I'm not
myself. I think he suspects me... There was another attack today and I don't know
where I was. Tom, what am I going to do? I think I'm going mad... I think I'm the
one attacking everyone, Tom!"
Harry's fists were clenched, the
nails digging deep into his palms.
"It took a very long time
for stupid little Ginny to stop trusting her diary," said Riddle.
"But she finally became suspicious and tried to dispose of it. And that's where
you came in, Harry. You found it, and I couldn't have been more delighted. Of
all the people who could have picked it up, it was you, the very person I was
most anxious to meet..."
"And why did you want to
meet me?" said Harry. Anger was coursing through him, and it was an effort
to keep his voice steady.
"Well, you see, Ginny told
me all about you, Harry," said Riddle. "Your whole fascinating
history." His eyes roved over the lightning scar on Harry's forehead, and
their expression grew hungrier. "I knew I must find out more about you,
talk to you, meet you if I could. So I decided to show you my famous capture of
that great oaf, Hagrid, to gain your trust -"
"Hagrid's my friend,"
said Harry, his voice now shaking. "And you framed him, didn't you? I thought
you made a mistake, but -"
Riddle laughed his high laugh
again.
"It was my word against
Hagrid's, Harry. Well, you can imagine how it looked to old Armando Dippet. On
the one hand, Tom Riddle, poor but brilliant, parentless but so brave, school
prefect, model student... on the other hand, big, blundering Hagrid, in trouble
every other week, trying to raise werewolf cubs under his bed, sneaking off to
the Forbidden Forest to wrestle trolls... but I admit, even I was surprised how
well the plan worked. I thought someone must realize that Hagrid couldn't
possibly be the Heir of Slytherin. It had taken me five whole years to find out
everything I could about the Chamber of Secrets and discover the secret
entrance... as though Hagrid had the brains, or the power!
"Only the Transfiguration
teacher, Dumbledore, seemed to think Hagrid was innocent. He persuaded Dippetto
keep Hagrid and train him as gamekeeper. Yes, I think Dumbledore might have
guessed...Dumbledore never seemed to like me as much as the other teachers did
..."
"I bet Dumbledore saw right
through you," said Harry, his teeth gritted.
"Well, he certainly kept an
annoyingly close watch on me after Hagrid was expelled," said Riddle
carelessly. "I knew it wouldn't be safe to open the Chamber again while I
was still at school. But I wasn't going to waste those long years I'd spent
searching for it. I decided to leave behind a diary, preserving my
sixteen-year-old self in its pages, so that one day, with luck, I would be able
to lead another in my footsteps, and finish Salazar Slytherin's noble
work."
"Well, you haven't finished
it," said Harry triumphantly. "No one's died this time, not even the
cat. In a few hours the Mandrake Draught will be ready and everyone who was
Petrified will be all right again -"
"Haven't I already told
you," said Riddle quietly, "that killing Mudbloods doesn't matter to
me anymore? For many months now, my new target has been - you."
Harry stared at him.
"Imagine how angry I was
when the next time my diary was opened, it was Ginny who was writing to me, not
you. She saw you with the diary, you see, and panicked. What if you found out
how to work it, and I repeated all her secrets to you? What if, even worse, I
told you who'd been strangling roosters? So the foolish little brat waited until
your dormitory was deserted and stole it back. But I knew what I must do. It
was clear to me that you were on the trail of Slytherin's heir. From everything
Ginny had told me about you, I knew you would go to any lengths to solve the
mystery - particularly if one of your best friends was attacked. And Ginny had
told me the whole school was buzzing because you could speak Parseltongue ...
"So I made Ginny write her
own farewell on the wall and come down here to wait. She struggled and cried
and became very boring. But there isn't much life left in her... She put too much
into the diary, into me. Enough to let me leave its pages at last... I have been
waiting for you to appear since we arrived here. I knew you'd come. I have many
questions for you, Harry Potter."
"Like what?" Harry
spat, fists still clenched.
"Well," said Riddle,
smiling pleasantly, "how is it that you - a skinny boy with no
extraordinary magical talent - managed to defeat the greatest wizard of all
time? How did you escape with nothing but a scar, while Lord Voldemort's powers
were destroyed?"
There was an odd red gleam in
his hungry eyes now.
"Why do you care how I
escaped?" said Harry slowly. "Voldemort was after your time..."
"Voldemort," said
Riddle softly, "is my past, present, and future, Harry Potter..."
He pulled Harry's wand from his
pocket and began to trace it through the air, writing three shimmering words:
TOM MARVOLO RIDDLE
Then he waved the wand once, and
the letters of his name rearranged themselves:
I AM LORD VOLDEMORT
"You
see?" he whispered. "It was a name I was already using at Hogwarts,
to my most intimate friends only, of course. You think I was going to use my
filthy Muggle father's name forever? I, in whose veins runs the blood of
Salazar Slytherin himself, through my mother's side? I, keep the name of a
foul, common Muggle, who abandoned me even before I was born, just because he
found out his wife was a witch? No, Harry - I fashioned myself a new name, a
name I knew wizards everywhere would one day fear to speak, when I had become
the greatest sorcerer in the world!"
Harry's brain seemed to have
jammed. He stared numbly at Riddle, at the orphaned boy who had grown up to
murder Harry's own parents, and so many others...At last he forced himself to
speak.
"You're not," he said,
his quiet voice full of hatred.
"Not what?" snapped
Riddle.
"Not the greatest sorcerer
in the world," said Harry, breathing fast. "Sorry to
disappoint you and all that, but the
greatest wizard in the world is Albus Dumbledore. Everyone says so. Even when
you were strong, you didn't dare try and take over at Hogwarts. Dumbledore saw
through you when you were at school and he still frightens you now, wherever
you're hiding these days -"
The smile had gone from Riddle's
face, to be replaced by a very ugly look.
"Dumbledore's been driven
out of this castle by the mere memory of me!" he hissed.
"He's not as gone as you
might think!" Harry retorted. He was speaking at random, wanting to scare
Riddle, wishing rather than believing it to be true.
Riddle opened his mouth, but
froze.
Music was coming from somewhere.
Riddle whirled around to stare down the empty Chamber. The music was growing
louder. It was eerie, spine-tingling, unearthly; it lifted the hair on Harry's
scalp and made his heart feel as though it was swelling to twice its normal
size. Then, as the music reached such a pitch that Harry felt it vibrating
inside his own ribs, flames erupted at the top of the nearest pillar.
A crimson bird the size of a
swan had appeared, piping its weird music to the vaulted ceiling. It had a
glittering golden tail as long as a peacock's and gleaming golden talons, which
were gripping a ragged bundle.
A second later, the bird was
flying straight at Harry. It dropped the ragged thing it was carrying at his
feet, then landed heavily on his shoulder. As it folded its great wings, Harry
looked up and saw it had a long, sharp golden beak and a beady black eye.
The bird stopped singing. It sat
still and warm next to Harry's cheek, gazing steadily at Riddle.
"That's a phoenix."
said Riddle, staring shrewdly back at it.
"Fawkes?" Harry
breathed, and he felt the bird's golden claws squeeze his shoulder gently.
"And that -" said
Riddle, now eyeing the ragged thing that Fawkes had dropped, "that's the
old school Sorting Hat -"
So it was. Patched, frayed, and
dirty, the hat lay motionless at Harry's feet.
Riddle began to laugh again. He
laughed so hard that the dark chamber rang with it, as though ten Riddles were
laughing at once.
"This is what Dumbledore
sends his defender! A songbird and an old hat! Do you feel brave, Harry Potter?
Do you feel safe now?"
Harry didn't answer. He might
not see what use Fawkes or the Sorting Hat were, but he was no longer alone,
and he waited for Riddle to stop laughing with his courage mounting.
"To business, Harry,"
said Riddle, still smiling broadly. "Twice - in your past, in my future -
we have met. And twice I failed to kill you. How did you survive? Tell me
everything. The longer you talk," he added softly, "the longer you
stay alive."
Harry was thinking fast,
weighing his chances. Riddle had the wand. He, Harry, had Fawkes and the
Sorting Hat, neither of which would be much good in a duel. It looked bad, all
right...but the longer Riddle stood there, the more life was dwindling out of
Ginny...and in the meantime, Harry noticed suddenly, Riddle's outline was
becoming clearer, more solid...If it had to be a fight between him and Riddle,
better sooner than later.
"No one knows why you lost
your powers when you attacked me," said Harry abruptly. "I don't know
myself. But I know why you couldn't kill me. Because my mother died to save me.
My common Muggle-born mother," he added, shaking with suppressed rage.
"She stopped you killing me. And I've seen the real you, I saw you last
year. You're a wreck. You're barely alive. That's where all your power got you.
You're in hiding. You're ugly, you're foul -"
Riddle's face contorted. Then he
forced it into an awful smile. "So. Your mother died to save you. Yes,
that's a powerful countercharm. I can see now...there is nothing special about
you, after all. I wondered, you see. There are strange likenesses between us,
after all. Even you must have noticed. Both half-bloods, orphans, raised by
Muggles. Probably the only two Parselmouths to come to Hogwarts since the great
Slytherin himself We even look something alike...but after all, it was merely a
lucky chance that saved you from me. That's all I wanted to know."
Harry stood, tense, waiting for
Riddle to raise his wand. But Riddle's twisted smile was widening again.
"Now, Harry, I'm going to
teach you a little lesson. Let's match the powers of Lord Voldemort, Heir of
Salazar Slytherin, against famous Harry Potter, and the best weapons Dumbledore
can give him..."
He cast an amused eye over
Fawkes and the Sorting Hat, then walked away. Harry, fear spreading up his numb
legs, watched Riddle stop between the high pillars and look up into the stone
face of Slytherin, high above him in the half-darkness. Riddle opened his mouth
wide and hissed - but Harry understood what he was saying ...
"Speak to me, Slytherin,
greatest of the Hogwarts Four."
Harry wheeled around to look up
at the statue, Fawkes swaying on his shoulder.
Slytherin's gigantic stone face
was moving. Horrorstruck, Harry saw his mouth opening, wider and wider, to make
a huge black hole.
And something was stirring
inside the statue's mouth. Something was slithering up from its depths.
Harry backed away until he hit
the dark Chamber wall, and as he shut his eyes tight he felt Fawkes' wing sweep
his cheek as he took flight. Harry wanted to shout, "Don't leave me!"
but what chance did a phoenix have against the king of serpents?
Something huge hit the stone
floor of the Chamber. Harry felt it shudder - he knew what was happening, he
could sense it, could almost see the giant serpent uncoiling itself from
Slytherin's mouth. Then he heard Riddle's hissing voice:
"Kill him."
The basilisk was moving toward
Harry; he could hear its heavy body slithering heavily across the dusty floor.
Eyes still tightly shut, Harry began to run blindly sideways, his hands
outstretched, feeling his way - Voldemort was laughing.
Harry tripped. He fell hard onto
the stone and tasted blood the serpent was barely feet from him, he could hear
it coming.
There was a loud, explosive
spitting sound right above him, and then something heavy hit Harry so hard that
he was smashed into the wall. Waiting for fangs to sink through his body he
heard more mad hissing, something thrashing wildly off the pillars.
He couldn't help it - he opened
his eyes wide enough to squint at what was going on.
The enormous serpent, bright,
poisonous green, thick as an oak trunk, had raised itself high in the air and
its great blunt head was weaving drunkenly between the pillars. As Harry
trembled, ready to close his eyes if it turned, he saw what had distracted the
snake.
Fawkes was soaring around its
head, and the basilisk was snapping furiously at him with fangs long and thin
as sabers Fawkes dived. His long golden beak sank out of sight and a sudden
shower of dark blood spattered the floor. The snake's tail thrashed, narrowly
missing Harry, and before Harry could shut his eyes, it turned - Harry looked
straight into its face and saw that its eyes, both its great, bulbous yellow
eyes, had been punctured by the phoenix; blood was streaming to the floor, and
the snake was spitting in agony.
"NO!" Harry heard
Riddle screaming. "LEAVE THE BIRD! LEAVE THE BIRD! THE BOY IS BEHIND YOU.
YOU CAN STILL SMELL HIM. KILL HIM!"
The blinded serpent swayed,
confused, still deadly. Fawkes was circling its head, piping his eerie song,
jabbing here and there at its scaly nose as the blood poured from its ruined
eyes.
"Help me, help me,"
Harry muttered wildly, "someone - anyone..."
The snake's tail whipped across
the floor again. Harry ducked. Something soft hit his face.
The basilisk had swept the
Sorting Hat into Harry's arms. Harry seized it. It was all he had left, his
only chance - he rammed it onto his head and threw himself flat onto the floor
as the basilisk's tail swung over him again.
Help me - help me -
Harry thought, his eyes screwed
tight under the hat. Please help me. There was no answering voice. Instead, the hat contracted,
as though an invisible hand was squeezing it very tightly.
Something very hard and heavy
thudded onto the top of Harry's head, almost knocking him out. Stars winking in
front of his eyes, he grabbed the top of the hat to pull it off and felt
something long and hard beneath it.
A gleaming silver sword had
appeared inside the hat, its handle glittering with rubies the size of eggs.
"KILL THE BOY! LEAVE THE
BIRD! THE BOY IS BEHIND YOU. SNIFF - SMELL HIM."
Harry was on his feet, ready.
The basilisk's head was falling, its body coiling around, hitting pillars as it
twisted to face him. He could see the vast, bloody eye sockets, see the mouth
stretching wide, wide enough to swallow him whole, lined with fangs long as his
sword, thin, glittering, venomous -
It lunged blindly - Harry dodged
and it hit the Chamber wall. It lunged again, and its forked tongue lashed
Harry's side. He raised the sword in both his hands -
The basilisk lunged again, and
this time its aim was true - Harry threw his whole weight behind the sword and
drove it to the hilt into the roof of the serpent's mouth -
But as warm blood drenched
Harry's arms, he felt a searing pain just above his elbow. One long, poisonous
fang was sinking deeper and deeper into his arm and it splintered as the
basilisk keeled over sideways and fell, twitching, to the floor.
Harry slid down the wall. He
gripped the fang that was spreading poison through his body and wrenched it out
of his arm. But he knew it was too late. White-hot pain was spreading slowly
and steadily from the wound. Even as he dropped the fang and watched his own
blood soaking his robes, his vision went foggy. The Chamber was dissolving in a
whirl of dull color.
A patch of scarlet swam past,
and Harry heard a soft clatter of claws beside him.
"Fawkes," said Harry
thickly. "You were fantastic, Fawkes..."
He felt the bird lay its
beautiful head on the spot where the serpent's fang had pierced him.
He could hear echoing footsteps
and then a dark shadow moved in front of him.
"You're dead, Harry
Potter," said Riddle's voice above him. "Dead. Even Dumbledore's bird
knows it. Do you see what he's doing, Potter? He's crying."
Harry blinked. Fawke's head slid
in and out of focus. Thick, pearly tears were trickling down the glossy
feathers.
"I'm going to sit here and
watch you die, Harry Potter. Take your time. I'm in no hurry."
Harry felt drowsy. Everything
around him seemed to be spinning.
"So ends the famous Harry
Potter," said Riddle's distant voice. "Alone in the Chamber of
Secrets, forsaken by his friends, defeated at last by the Dark Lord he so
unwisely challenged. You'll be back with your dear Mudblood mother soon, Harry...
She bought you twelve years of borrowed time... but Lord Voldemort got you in the
end, as you knew he must..."
If this is dying, thought Harry,
it's not so bad.
Even the pain was leaving him...
But was this dying? Instead of
going black, the Chamber seemed to be coming back into focus. Harry gave his
head a little shake and there was Fawkes, still resting his head on Harry's
arm. A pearly patch of tears was shining all around the wound - except that
there was no wound.
"Get away, bird," said
Riddle's voice suddenly. "Get away from him - I said, get away -"
Harry raised his head. Riddle
was pointing Harry's wand at Fawkes; there was a bang like a gun, and Fawkes
took flight again in a whirl of gold and scarlet.
"Phoenix tears..." said
Riddle quietly, staring at Harry's arm. "Of course...healing powers...I
forgot..."
He looked into Harry's face.
"But it makes no difference. In fact, I prefer it this way. Just you and
me, Harry Potter...you and me..."
He raised the wand ...
Then, in a rush of wings, Fawkes
had soared back overhead and something fell into Harry's lap - the diary.
For a split second, both Harry
and Riddle, wand still raised, stared at it. Then, without thinking, without
considering, as though he had meant to do it all along, Harry seized the
basilisk fang on the floor next to him and plunged it straight into the heart
of the book.
There was a long, dreadful,
piercing scream. Ink spurted out of the diary in torrents, streaming over
Harry's hands, flooding the floor. Riddle was writhing and twisting, screaming
and flailing and then -
He had gone. Harry's wand fell
to the floor with a clatter and there was silence. Silence except for the
steady drip drip of ink still oozing from the diary. The basilisk venom had
burned a sizzling hole right through it.
Shaking all over, Harry pulled
himself up. His head was spinning as though he'd just traveled miles by Floo
powder. Slowly, he gathered together his wand and the Sorting Hat, and, with a
huge tug, retrieved the glittering sword from the roof of the basilisk's mouth.
Then came a faint moan from the
end of the Chamber. Ginny was stirring. As Harry hurried toward her, she sat
up. Her bemused eyes traveled from the huge form of the dead
basilisk, over Harry, in his blood-soaked
robes, then to the diary in his hand. She drew a great, shuddering gasp and
tears began to pour down her face.
"Harry - oh, Harry - I
tried to tell you at b-breakfast, but I c-couldn't say it in front of Percy -
it was me, Harry - but I - I s-swear I d-didn't mean to - R-Riddle made me, he
t-took me over - and - how did you kill that - that thing? W-where's Riddle?
The last thing I r-remember is him coming out of the diary -"
" It's all right,"
said Harry, holding up the diary, and showing Ginny the fang hole,
"Riddle's finished. Look! Him and the basilisk. C'mon, Ginny, let's get
out of here -"
"I'm going to be
expelled!" Ginny wept as Harry helped her awkwardly to her feet.
"I've looked forward to coming to Hogwarts ever since B-Bill came and
n-now I'll have to leave and - w-what'll Mum and Dad say?"
Fawkes was waiting for them,
hovering in the Chamber entrance. Harry urged Ginny forward; they stepped over
the motionless coils of the dead basilisk, through the echoing gloom, and back
into the tunnel. Harry heard the stone doors close behind them with a soft
hiss.
After a few minutes' progress up
the dark tunnel, a distant sound of slowly shifting rock reached Harry's ears.
"Ron!" Harry yelled,
speeding up. "Ginny's okay! I've got her!"
He heard Ron give a strangled
cheer, and they turned the next bend to see his eager face staring through the
sizable gap he had managed to make in the rock fall.
"Ginny!" Ron thrust an
arm through the gap in the rock to pull her through first. "You're alive!
I don't believe it! What happened?" How - what - where did that bird come
from?"
Fawkes had swooped through the
gap after Ginny.
"He's Dumbledore's,"
said Harry, squeezing through himself.
"How come you've got a
sword?" said Ron, gaping at the glittering weapon in Harry's hand.
"I'll explain when we get
out of here," said Harry with a sideways glance at Ginny, who was crying
harder than ever.
"But -"
"Later," Harry said
shortly. He didn't think it was a good idea to tell Ron yet who'd been opening
the Chamber, not in front of Ginny, anyway. "Where's Lockhart?"
"Back there," said
Ron, still looking puzzled but jerking his head up the tunnel toward the pipe.
"He's in a bad way. Come and see."
Led by Fawkes, whose wide
scarlet wings emitted a soft golden glow in the darkness, they walked all the
way back to the mouth of the pipe. Gilderoy Lockhart was sitting there, humming
placidly to himself.
"His memory's gone,"
said Ron. "The Memory Charm backfired. Hit him instead of us. Hasn't got a
clue who he is, or where he is, or who we are. I told him to come and wait
here. He's a danger to himself."
Lockhart peered good-naturedly
up at them all.
"Hello," he said.
"Odd sort of place, this, isn't it? Do you live here?"
"No," said Ron,
raising his eyebrows at Harry.
Harry bent down and looked up
the long, dark pipe.
"Have you thought how we're
going to get back up this?" he said to Ron.
Ron shook his head, but Fawkes
the phoenix had swooped past Harry and was now fluttering in front of him, his
beady eyes bright in the dark. He was waving his long golden tail feathers.
Harry looked uncertainly at him.
"He looks like he wants you
to grab hold..." said Ron, looking perplexed. "But you're much too
heavy for a bird to pull up there -"
"Fawkes," said Harry,
"isn't an ordinary bird." He turned quickly to the others.
"We've got to hold on to each other. Ginny, grab Ron's hand. Professor
Lockhart -"
"He means you," said
Ron sharply to Lockhart.
"You hold Ginny's other
hand -"
Harry tucked the sword and the
Sorting Hat into his belt, Ron took hold of the back of Harry's robes, and
Harry reached out and took hold of Fawkes's strangely hot tail feathers.
An extraordinary lightness
seemed to spread through his whole body and the next second, in a rush of
wings, they were flying upward through the pipe. Harry could hear Lockhart
dangling below him, saying, "Amazing! Amazing! This is just like
magic!" The chill air was whipping through Harry's hair, and before he'd
stopped enjoying the ride, it was over - all four of them were hitting the wet
floor of Moaning Myrtle's bathroom, and as Lockhart straightened his hat, the
sink that hid the pipe was sliding back into place.
Myrtle goggled at them.
"You're alive," she
said blankly to Harry.
"There's no need to sound
so disappointed," he said grimly, wiping flecks of blood and slime off his
glasses.
"Oh, well...I'd just been
thinking...if you had died, you'd have been welcome to share my toilet,"
said Myrtle, blushing silver.
"Urgh!" said Ron as
they left the bathroom for the dark, deserted corridor outside. "Harry! I
think Myrtle's grown fond of you! You've got competition, Ginny!"
But tears were still flooding
silently down Ginny's face.
"Where now?" said Ron,
with an anxious look at Ginny. Harry pointed.
Fawkes was leading the way,
glowing gold along the corridor. They strode after him, and moments later,
found themselves outside Professor McGonagall's office.
Harry knocked and pushed the
door open. CHAPTER EIGHTEEN DOBBY'S REWARD
For a moment there was silence
as Harry, Ron, Ginny, and Lockhart stood in the doorway, covered in muck and
slime and (in Harry's case) blood. Then there was a scream.
"Ginny!"
It was Mrs. Weasley, who had
been sitting crying in front of the fire. She leapt to her feet, closely
followed by Mr. Weasley, and both of them flung themselves on their.
Harry, however, was looking past
them. Professor Dumbledore was standing by the mantelpiece, beaming, next to
Professor McGonagall, who was taking great, steadying
gasps, clutching her chest. Fawkes went whooshing past Harry's
ear and settled on Dumbledore's shoulder, just as Harry found himself and Ron
being swept into Mrs. Weasley's tight embrace.
"You saved her! You saved
her! How did you do it?"
"I think we'd all like to
know that," said Professor McGonagall weakly.
Mrs. Weasley let go of Harry,
who hesitated for a moment, then walked over to the desk and laid upon it the
Sorting Hat, the ruby-encrusted sword, and what remained of Riddle's diary.
Then he started telling them
everything. For nearly a quarter of an hour he spoke into the rapt silence: He
told them about hearing the disembodied voice, how Hermione had finally
realized that he was hearing a basilisk in the pipes; how he and Ron had
followed the spiders into the forest, that Aragog had told them where the last
victim of the basilisk had died; how he had guessed that Moaning Myrtle had
been the victim, and that the entrance to the Chamber of Secrets might be in
her bathroom...
"Very well," Professor
McGonagall prompted him as he paused, "so you found out where the entrance
was -breaking a hundred school rules into pieces along the way, I might add -
but how on earth did you all get out of there alive, Potter?"
So Harry, his voice now growing
hoarse from all this talking, told them about Fawkes's timely arrival and about
the Sorting Hat giving him the sword. But then he faltered. He had so far
avoided mentioning Riddle's diary - or Ginny. She was standing with her head
against Mrs. Weasley's shoulder, and tears were still coursing silently down
her cheeks. What if they expelled her? Harry thought in panic. Riddle's diary
didn't work anymore...How could they prove it had been he who'd made her do it
all?
Instinctively, Harry looked at
Dumbledore, who smiled faintly, the firelight glancing off his half-moon
spectacles.
"What interests me
most," said Dumbledore gently, "is how Lord Voldemort managed to
enchant Ginny, when my sources tell me he is currently in hiding in the forests
of Albania."
Relief - warm, sweeping,
glorious relief - swept over Harry. "W-what's that?" said Mr. Weasley
in a stunned voice. "You-Know-Who? En-enchant Ginny? But Ginny's not ...
Ginny hasn't been ... has she?"
"It was this diary,"
said Harry quickly, picking it up and showing it to Dumbledore. "Riddle
wrote it when he was sixteen..."
Dumbledore took the diary from
Harry and peered keenly down his long, crooked nose at its burnt and soggy
pages.
"Brilliant," he said
softly. "Of course, he was probably the most brilliant student Hogwarts
has ever seen." He turned around to the Weasleys, who were looking utterly
bewildered.
"Very few people know that
Lord Voldemort was once called Tom Riddle. I taught him myself, fifty years
ago, at Hogwarts. He disappeared after leaving the school... traveled far and
wide...sank so deeply into the Dark Arts, consorted with the very worst of our
kind, underwent so many dangerous, magical transformations, that when he resurfaced
as Lord Voldemort, he was barely recognizable. Hardly anyone connected Lord
Voldemort with the clever, handsome boy who was once Head Boy here."
"But, Ginny," said
Mrs. Weasley. "What's our Ginny got to do with - with - him?"
"His d-diary" Ginny
sobbed. "I've b-been writing in it, and he's been w-writing back all year
-"
"Ginny!" said Mr.
Weasley, flabbergasted. "Haven't I taught you anything. What have I always
told you? Never trust anything that can think for itself if you can't see where
it keeps its brain? Why didn't you show
the diary to me, or your mother? A suspicious object like that, it was clearly
full of Dark Magic!'
"I d-didn't know,"
sobbed Ginny. "I found it inside one of the books Mum got me. I th-thought
someone had just left it in there and forgotten about it -"
"Miss Weasley should go up
to the hospital wing right away," Dumbledore interrupted in a firm voice.
"This has been a terrible ordeal for her. There will be no punishment.
Older and wiser wizards than she have been hoodwinked by Lord Voldemort."
He strode over to the door and opened it. "Bed rest and perhaps a large,
steaming mug of hot chocolate. I always find that cheers me up," he added,
twinkling kindly down at her. "You will find that Madam Pomfrey is still
awake. She's just giving out Mandrake juice - I daresay the basilisk's victims
will be waking up any moment."
"So Hermione's okay!"
said Ron brightly.
"There has been no lasting
harm done, Ginny," said Dumbledore.
Mrs. Weasley led Ginny out, and
Mr. Weasley followed, still looking deeply shaken.
"You know, Minerva,"
Professor Dumbledore said thoughtfully to Professor McGonagall, "I think
all this merits a good feast. Might I ask you to go and alert the
kitchens?"
"Right," said
Professor McGonagall crisply, also moving to the door. "I'll leave you to
deal with Potter and Weasley, shall I?"
"Certainly," said
Dumbledore.
She left, and Harry and Ron
gazed uncertainly at Dumbledore. What exactly had Professor McGonagall meant,
deal with them? Surely - surely - they weren't about to be punished?
"I seem to remember telling
you both that I would have to expel you if you broke any more school rules,
said Dumbledore.
Ron opened his mouth in horror.
"Which goes to show that
the best of us must sometimes eat our words," Dumbledore went on, smiling.
"You will both receive Special Awards for Services to the School and - let
me see - yes, I think two hundred points apiece for Gryffindor."
Ron went as brightly pink as
Lockhart's valentine flowers and closed his mouth again.
"But one of us seems to be
keeping mightily quiet about his part in this dangerous adventure,"
Dumbledore added. "Why so modest, Gilderoy?"
Harry gave a start. He had
completely forgotten about Lockhart. He turned and saw that Lockhart was
standing in a corner of the room, still wearing his vague smile. When
Dumbledore addressed him, Lockhart looked over his shoulder to see who he was
talking to.
"Professor
Dumbledore," Ron said quickly, "there was an accident down in the
Chamber of Secrets. Professor Lockhart -"
"Am I a professor?"
said Lockhart in mild surprise. "Goodness. I expect I was hopeless, was
I?"
"He tried to do a Memory
Charm and the wand backfired," Ron explained quietly to Dumbledore.
"Dear me," said
Dumbledore, shaking his head, his long silver mustache quivering. "Impaled
upon your own sword, Gilderoy!"
"Sword?" said Lockhart
dimly. "Haven't got a sword. That boy has, though." He pointed at
Harry. "He'll lend you one."
"Would you mind taking
Professor Lockhart up to the infirmary, too?" Dumbledore said to Ron.
"I'd like a few more words with Harry..."
Lockhart ambled out. Ron cast a
curious look back at Dumbledore and Harry as he closed the door.
Dumbledore crossed to one of the
chairs by the fire.
"Sit down, Harry," he
said, and Harry sat, feeling unaccountably nervous.
"First of all, Harry, I
want to thank you," said Dumbledore, eyes twinkling again. "You must
have shown me real loyalty down in the Chamber. Nothing but that could have
called Fawkes to you."
He stroked the phoenix, which
had fluttered down onto his knee. Harry grinned awkwardly as Dumbledore watched
him.
"And so you met Tom
Riddle," said Dumbledore thoughtfully. "I imagine he was most
interested in you..."
Suddenly, something that was
nagging at Harry came tumbling out of his mouth.
"Professor Dumbledore...Riddle
said I'm like him. Strange likenesses, he said...
"Did he, now?" said
Dumbledore, looking thoughtfully at Harry from under his thick silver eyebrows.
"And what do you think, Harry?"
"I don't think I'm like
him!" said Harry, more loudly than he'd intended. "I mean, I'm - I'm
in Gryffindor, I'm..."
But he fell silent, a lurking
doubt resurfacing in his mind.
"Professor," he
started again after a moment. "The Sorting Hat told me I'd - I'd have done
well in Slytherin. Everyone thought I was Slytherin's heir for a while ...
because I can speak Parseltongue ..."
"You can speak
Parseltongue, Harry," said Dumbledore calmly, "because Lord Voldemort
- who is the last remaining ancestor of Salazar Slytherin - can speak
Parseltongue. Unless I'm much mistaken, he transferred some of his own powers
to you the night he gave you that scar. Not something he intended to do, I'm
sure..."
"Voldemort put a bit of
himself in me?" Harry said, thunderstruck.
"It certainly seems
so."
"So I should be in
Slytherin," Harry said, looking desperately into Dumbledore's face.
"The Sorting Hat could see Slytherin's power in me, and it -"
"Put you in
Gryffindor," said Dumbledore calmly. "Listen to me, Harry. You happen
to have many qualities Salazar Slytherin prized in his hand-picked students.
His own very rare gift, Parseltongue - resourcefulness - determination - a
certain disregard for rules," he added, his mustache quivering again.
"Yet the Sorting Hat placed you in Gryffindor. You know why that was.
Think."
"It only put me in Gryffindor,"
said Harry in a defeated voice, "because I asked not to go in
Slytherin..."
'Exactly, "said Dumbledore,
beaming once more. "Which makes you very different from Tom Riddle. It is
our choices, Harry, that show what we truly are, far more than our abilities."
Harry sat motionless in his chair, stunned. "If you want proof, Harry,
that you belong in Gryffindor, I suggest you look more closely at this."
Dumbledore reached across to
Professor McGonagall's desk, picked up the blood-stained silver sword, and handed
it to Harry. Dully, Harry turned it over, the rubies blazing in the firelight.
And then he saw the name engraved just below the hilt.
Godric Gryffindor
"Only a true Gryffindor
could have pulled that out of the hat, Harry," said Dumbledore simply.
For a minute, neither of them
spoke. Then Dumbledore pulled open one of the drawers in Professor McGonagall's
desk and took out a quill and a bottle of ink.
"What you need, Harry, is
some food and sleep. I suggest you go down to the feast, while I write to Azkaban
-we need our gamekeeper back. And I must draft an advertisement for the Daily
Prophet, too," he added Thoughtfully. "We'll be needing a new Defense
Against the Dark Arts teacher... Dear me, we do seem to run through them, don't
we?"
Harry got up and crossed to the
door. He had just reached for the handle, however, when the door burst open so
violently that it bounced back off the wall.
Lucius Malfoy stood there, fury
in his face. And cowering behind his legs, heavily wrapped in bandages, was
Dobby.
"Good evening,
Lucius," said Dumbledore pleasantly.
Mr. Malfoy almost knocked Harry
over as he swept into the room. Dobby went scurrying in after him, crouching at
the hem of his cloak, a look of abject terror on his face.
The elf was carrying a stained
rag with which he was attempting to finish cleaning Mr. Malfoys shoes.
Apparently Mr. Malfoy had set out in a great hurry, for not only were his shoes
half-polished, but his usually sleek hair was disheveled. Ignoring the elf
bobbing apologetically around his ankles, he fixed his cold eyes upon
Dumbledore.
"So!" he said
"You've come back. The governors suspended you, but you still saw fit to
return to Hogwarts."
"Well, you see,
Lucius," said Dumbledore, smiling serenely, "the other eleven
governors contacted me today. It was something like being caught in a hailstorm
of owls, to tell the truth. They'd heard that Arthur Weasleys daughter had been
killed and wanted me back here at once. They seemed to think I was the best man
for the job after all. Very strange tales they told me, too...Several of them
seemed to think that you had threatened to curse their families if they didn't
agree to suspend me in the first place."
Mr. Malfoy went even paler than
usual, but his eyes were still slits of fury.
"So - have you stopped the
attacks yet?" he sneered. "Have you caught the culprit?"
"We have," said
Dumbledore, with a smile.
"Well?" said Mr.
Malfoy sharply. "Who is it?"
"The same person as last
time, Lucius," said Dumbledore. "But this time, Lord Voldemort was
acting through somebody else. By means of this diary."
He held up the small black book
with the large hole through the center, watching Mr. Malfoy closely. Harry,
however, was watching Dobby.
The elf was doing something very
odd. His great eyes fixed meaningfully on Harry, he kept pointing at the diary,
then at Mr. Malfoy, and then hitting himself hard on the head with his fist.
"I see..." said Mr.
Malfoy slowly to Dumbledore.
"A clever plan," said
Dumbledore in a level voice, still staring Mr. Malfoy straight in the eye.
"Because if Harry here -" Mr. Malfoy shot Harry a swift, sharp look
"and his friend Ron hadn't discovered this book, why -- Ginny Weasley
might have taken all the blame. No one would ever have been able to prove she
hadn't acted of her own free will..."
Mr. Malfoy said nothing. His
face was suddenly masklike.
"And imagine,"
Dumbledore went on, "what might have happened then...The Weasleys are one of
our most prominent pure-blood families. Imagine the effect on Arthur Weasley
and his Muggle Protection Act, if his own daughter was discovered attacking and
- killing Muggle-borns ... Very fortunate the diary was discovered, and Riddle's
memories wiped from it. Who knows what the consequences might have been
otherwise..."
Mr. Malfoy forced himself to
speak.
"Very fortunate," he
said stiffly.
And still, behind his back,
Dobby was pointing, first to the diary, then to Lucius Malfoy, then punching
himself in the head.
And Harry suddenly understood.
He nodded at Dobby, and Dobby backed into a corner, now twisting his ears in punishment.
"Don't you want to know how
Ginny got hold of that diary, Mr. Malfoy?" said Harry.
Lucius Malfoy rounded on him.
"How should I know how the
stupid little girl got hold of it?" he said.
"Because you gave it to
her," said Harry. "In Flourish and Blotts. You picked up her old
Transfiguration book and slipped the diary inside it, didn't you?"
He saw Mr. Malfoy's white hands
clench and unclench.
"Prove it," he hissed.
"Oh, no one will be able to
do that," said Dumbledore, smiling at Harry. "Not now that Riddle has
vanished from the book. On the other hand, I would advise you, Lucius, not to
go giving out any more of Lord Voldemort's old school things. If any more of
them find their way into innocent hands, I think Arthur Weasley, for one, will
make sure they are traced back to you..."
Lucius Malfoy stood for a
moment, and Harry distinctly saw his right hand twitch as though he was longing
to reach for his wand. Instead, he turned to his house-elf. "We're going,
Dobby!"
He wrenched open the door and as
the elf came hurrying up to him, he kicked him right through it. They could
hear Dobby squealing with pain all the way along the corridor. Harry stood for
a moment, thinking hard. Then it came to him -
"Professor
Dumbledore," he said hurriedly. "Can I give that diary back to Mr.
Malfoy, please?"
"Certainly, Harry,"
said Dumbledore calmly. "But hurry. The feast, remember...Harry grabbed the
diary and dashed out of the office. He could hear Dobby's squeals of pain
receding around the corner. Quickly, wondering if this plan could possibly
work, Harry took off one of his shoes, pulled off his slimy, filthy sock, and
stuffed the diary into it. Then he ran down the dark corridor.
He caught up with them at the
top of the stairs.
"Mr. Malfoy," he
gasped, skidding to a halt, "I've got something for you -"
And he forced the smelly sock
into Lucius Malfoy's hand.
"What the -?"
Mr. Malfoy ripped the sock off
the diary, threw it aside, then looked furiously from the ruined book to Harry.
"You'll meet the same sticky end as your parents one of these days, Harry
Potter," he said softly. "They were meddlesome fools, too."
He turned to go.
"Come, Dobby. I said,
come."
But Dobby didn't move. He was
holding up Harry's disgusting, slimy sock, and looking at it as though it were
a priceless treasure.
"Master has given a
sock," said the elf in wonderment. "Master gave it to Dobby."
"What's that?" spat
Mr. Malfoy. "What did you say?"
"Got a sock," said
Dobby in disbelief. "Master threw it, and Dobby caught it, and Dobby -
Dobby is free."
Lucius Malfoy stood frozen,
staring at the elf Then he lunged at Harry.
"You've lost me my servant,
boy!"
But Dobby shouted, "You
shall not harm Harry Potter!"
There was a loud bang, and Mr.
Malfoy was thrown backward. He crashed down the stairs, three at a time,
landing in a crumpled heap on the landing below. He got up, his face livid, and
pulled out his wand, but Dobby raised a long, threatening finger.
"You shall go now," he
said fiercely, pointing down at Mr. Malfoy. "You shall not touch Harry
Potter. You shall go now."
Lucius Malfoy had no choice.
With a last, incensed stare at the pair of them, he swung his cloak around him
and hurried out of sight.
"Harry Potter freed
Dobby!" said the elf shrilly, gazing up at Harry, moonlight from the
nearest window reflected in his orb-like eyes. "Harry Potter set Dobby
free!"
"Least I could do,
Dobby," said Harry, grinning. "Just promise never to try and save my
life again."
The elf's ugly brown face split
suddenly into a wide, toothy smile.
"I've just got one
question, Dobby," said Harry as Dobby pulled on Harry's sock with shaking
hands. "You told me all this had nothing to do with
He-Who-Must-Not-Be-Named, remember? Well -"
"It was a clue, sir,"
said Dobby, his eyes widening, as though this was obvious. "Was giving you
a clue. The Dark Lord, before he changed his name, could be freely named, you
see?"
"Right," said Harry
weakly. "Well, I'd better go. There's a feast, and my friend Hermione
should be awake by now..."
Dobby threw his arms around
Harry's middle and hugged him.
"Harry Potter is greater by
far than Dobby knew!" he sobbed. "Farewell, Harry Potter!"
And with a final loud crack,
Dobby disappeared.
Harry had been to several
Hogwarts feasts, but never one quite like this. Everybody was in their pajamas,
and the celebration lasted all night. Harry didn't know whether the best bit
was Hermione running toward him, screaming "You solved it! You solved
it!" or Justin hurrying over from the Hufflepuff table to wring. his hand
and apologize endlessly for suspecting him, or Hagrid turning up at half past
three, cuffing Harry and Ron so hard on the shoulders that they were knocked
into their plates of trifle, or his and Ron's four hundred points for
Gryffindor securing the House Cup for the second year running, or Professor
McGonagall standing up to tell them all that the exams had been canceled as a
school treat ("Oh, no!" said Hermione), or Dumbledore announcing
that, unfortunately, Professor Lockhart would be unable to return next year,
owing to the fact that he needed to go away and get his memory back. Quite a
few of the teachers joined in the cheering that greeted this news.
"Shame," said Ron,
helping himself to a jam doughnut. "He has starting to grow on me."
The rest of the final term
passed in a haze of blazing sunshine. Hogwarts was back to normal with only a
few, small differences - Defense Against the Dark Arts classes were canceled
("but we've had plenty of practice at that anyway," Ron told a
disgruntled Hermione) and Lucius Malfoy had been sacked as a school governor.
Draco was no longer strutting around the school as though he owned the place.
On the contrary, he looked resentful and sulky. On the other hand, Ginny
Weasley was perfectly happy again.
Too soon, it was time for the
journey home on the Hogwarts Express. Harry, Ron, Hermione, Fred, George, and
Ginny got a compartment to themselves. They made the mos of the last few hours
in which they were allowed to do magic before the holidays. They played
Exploding Snap, set off the very last of
Fred and George's Filibuster fireworks, and practiced disarming each other by
magic. Harry was getting very good at it.
They were almost at King's Cross
when Harry remembered something.
"Ginny - what did you see
Percy doing, that he didn't want you to tell anyone?"
"Oh, that," said
Ginny, giggling. "Well - Percy's got a girlfriend." Fred dropped a
stack of books on George's head.
"What?"
"It's that Ravenclaw
prefect, Penelope Clearwater," said Ginny. "That's who he was writing
to all last summer. He's been meeting her all over the school in secret. I
walked in on them kissing in an empty classroom one day. He was so upset when
she was - you know - attacked. You won't tease him, will you?" she added
anxiously.
"Wouldn't dream of it,"
said Fred, who was looking like his birthday had come early.
"Definitely not," said
George, sniggering.
The Hogwarts Express slowed and
finally stopped.
Harry pulled out his quill and a
bit of parchment and turned to Ron and Hermione.
"This is called a telephone
number," he told Ron, scribbling it twice, tearing the parchment in two,
and handing it to them. "I told your dad how to use a telephone last
summer - he'll know. Call me at the Dursleys', okay? I can't stand another two
months with only Dudley to talk to..."
"Your aunt and uncle will
be proud, though, won't they?" said Hermione as they got off the train and
joined the crowd thronging toward the enchanted barrier. "When they hear
what you did this year?"
"Proud?" said Harry.
"Are you crazy? All those times I could've died, and I didn't manage it?
They'll be furious..."
And together they walked back
through the gateway to the Muggle world.
|
|
|